1942 Glants Mars42 Eng

User Manual: 1942

Open the PDF directly: View PDF PDF.
Page Count: 431 [warning: Documents this large are best viewed by clicking the View PDF Link!]

Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
MODERN WAR STUDIES
Theodore A. Wilson
General Editor
Raymond A. Callahan
J.Garry Clifford
Jacob W. Kipp
Jay Luvaas
Allan R. Millett
Dennis Showalter
Series Editors
Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
THE RED ARMY'S EPIC DISASTER
IN OPERATION MARS, 1942
David M. Glantz
German translations by Mary E. Glantz
Maps by Darin Grauberger
University Press of Kansas
© 1999 by the University Press of Kansas
All rights reserved
Published by the University Press of Kansas (Lawrence, Kansas 66049),
which was organized by the Kansas Board of Regents and is operated and
funded by Emporia State University, Fort Hays State University, Kansas
State University, Pittsburg State University, the University of Kansas, and
Wichita State University
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Glantz, David M.
Zhukov's greatest defeat : the Red Army's epic disaster in
Operation Mars, 1942 / David M. Glantz ; German translations by Mary
E. Glantz ; maps by Darin Grauberger
p. cm. (Modern war studies)
Includes bibliographical references and index.
ISBN 0-7006-0944-X (alk. paper)
1. Zhukov, Georgil Konstantinovich, 1896-1974. 2. World War,
1939-1945—Campaigns—Eastern Front. 3. World War, 1939-1945
Soviet Union. 4. Marshals—Soviet Union—Biography. I. Title.
II. Series.
D764.G5575 1999
940.54'217'092—dc21 98-46835
British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data is available.
Printed in the United States of America
10 98765432
The paper used in this publication meets the minimum requirements of the
American National Standard for Permanence of Paper for Printed Library
Materials Z39.48-1984.
To the memory of the tens of thousands of Soviet and German soldiers
who fought and died in or survived the terrible carnage of this operation,
only to be forgotten by history.
Contents
List of Maps and Illustrations ix
Introduction 1
ONE. PRELUDE 5
To Stalingrad: The Wehrmacht and Operation Blau 5
Halting the German Juggernaut: Not a Step Back 8
Thunder in the North 10
Counteroffensive of the Gods: The Genesis of Operations Mars,
Uranus, Saturn, and Jupiter 12
On the Eve 45
Two. THE RED GOD OF WAR UNLEASHED 77
Storm along the Vazuza River 77
The Belyi Deep Thrust 110
The Advance up the Luchesa Valley 139
The Assault across the Molodoi Tud River 150
THREE. THE RED GOD OF WAR CONTAINED 175
The Sychevka Meat Grinder 178
Formation of the Belyi Pocket 191
Stalemate in the Luchesa Valley 208
The Struggle for Urdom 218
FOUR. FRUSTRATION, FURY, AND DEFEAT 223
The Encirclement and Destruction of the Belyi Pocket 231
Reinforcing Failure along the Vazuza River 252
Exhaustion in the North 266
Defeat in the Luchesa River Valley 274
Taking Stock 279
FIVE. EPILOGUE 285
The Eclipse of Mars and the Demise of Jupiter 285
The Achievements of Uranus and Transformation of Saturn 309
The Reputations of Gods and Men 314
viii Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Appendices
From the Archives: Selective Orders and Directives from
Operation Mars
Red Army Command Personnel in Operation Mars
Orders of Battle
Comparative Data on Operations
Postscript on Losses
Notes
Selective Bibliography
Index
325
345
351
373
379
381
405
409
Maps and Illustrations
MAPS
The Summer-Fall Campaign, May to October 1942 7
Soviet Strategic Offensive Plan, 26 September 1942 21
Operations Mars and Jupiter: the Rzhev-Sychevka Operation,
25 November to December 1942 23
Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Sychevka Sector 50
Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Belyi Sector 56
Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Luchesa River Sector 61
Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Molodoi Tud Sector 67
25 to 27 November 1942: the Sychevka Sector 78
28 November 1942: the Sychevka Sector 103
26 to 27 November 1942: the Belyi Sector 118
28 to 30 November 1942: the Belyi Sector 135
25 to 30 November 1942: the Luchesa River Sector 142
25 to 27 November 1942: the Molodoi Tud Sector 152
29 November to 5 December 1942: the Molodoi Tud Sector 161
29 November to 1 December 1942: the Sychevka Sector 181
1 to 6 December 1942: the Belyi Sector 203
1 to 11 December 1942: the Luchesa River Sector 210
7 to 10 December 1942: the Belyi Sector 236
11 to 16 December 1942: the Belyi Sector 247
2 to 10 December 1942: the Sychevka Sector 254
11 to 14 December 1942: the Sychevka Sector 261
7 to 23 December 1942: the Molodoi Tud Sector 268
Summary: Operation Mars 288
The Winter Campaign, November 1942 to March 1943 311
ILLUSTRATIONS
Marshal G. K. Zhukov
Zhukov during his command of the Western Direction
General M. A. Purkaev, Kalinin Front commander, 1942
General I. S. Konev, Western Front commander
163
164
165
165
ix
x Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
General V. A. Iushkevich, 22d Army commander 166
General M. D. Solomatin, 1st Mechanized Corps commander 166
Colonel I. F. Dremov, 47th Mechanized Brigade commander 166
General M. E. Katukov, 3d Mechanized Corps commander 166
Colonel A. Kh. Babadzhanian, 3d Mechanized Brigade commander 167
Major A. F. Burda, 39th Tank Regiment commander 167
Advancing Siberian riflemen 167
Attacking Soviet infantry 168
Automatic weapons men in ambush positions 168
Soviet cavalrymen 169
Cavalry in the attack 169
Soviet infantry assault a village 170
An antitank rifle team 170
Soviet infantry assault in the snow 171
Artillery being hauled forward 171
Soviet tanks attack down a forest road 172
A combined infantry and tank assault 172
Riflemen dismounting from assaulting tanks 173
Destroyed German equipment 173
Soviet tanks advancing beside a dead German soldier 174
Introduction
On 19 November 1942, Red Army forces struck a massive blow at Stalingrad
against the hitherto triumphant German Army. Within the course of a single
week, Soviet forces had encircled German Sixth Army, one of the Wehrmacht's
most vaunted armies, within the deadly Stalingrad cauldron. Just over two
months later, the tattered remnants of that once proud German army and a
host of allied forces perished in what has come to be known as one of the
most famous battles of the German-Soviet war.
History informs us that the titanic Battle of Stalingrad altered the course
of the war on the Eastern Front and set the German Army and German Reich
on an inexorable course toward utter and humiliating defeat. History has
also anointed the victors of Stalingrad with enduring fame. The Red Army
emerged from the Battle of Stalingrad a force that seemingly never again
suffered strategic or significant operational defeat. The supposed architects
of the Stalingrad victory entered the annals of military history as unvanquished
heroes who led the subsequent largely unblemished Soviet march to victory.
Foremost among those military heroes stands the imposing figure of Mar-
shal of the Soviet Union Georgi Konstantinovich Zhukov, the hero of Mos-
cow, Stalingrad, Kursk, and Berlin.
History, however, often misinforms us. The muses of history are fickle.
They record only what is reported and often ignore what is not. The lasting
adage, "To the victors belong the spoils of war," is correct. Clearly, history is
one of those spoils. Nowhere is this truth more evident than in the case of
the war on the Eastern Front. The history of the German-Soviet war to late
1942 has been German military history because it was primarily the Germans
who proudly recounted its course and nature. Conversely, the history of the
war after late 1942 has been Soviet history because the victors earned the
right to describe their victories. These have been, and remain, the historical
realities of the war on the Eastern Front.
The very names "Moscow," "Stalingrad," "Kursk," "Belorussia," and "Ber-
lin" evoke images of grandiose Soviet victories. However, these magnificent
victorious battles have, in turn, tended to pervert the history of the war on
the Eastern Front by masking numerous failures and defeats, which quite
naturally punctuated the Red Army's march to ultimate victory and fame.
Likewise, they have accentuated the reputations of commanders to almost
2 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
superhuman proportions, causing readers to forget the fact that, after all, these
leaders were human beings who shared liberally the faults so obvious in every
human.
This volume initiates a long and painstaking process to correct the his-
tory ofthat most terrible war by providing necessary context to those famous
victories which have long been recorded and extolled. Essentially, this pro-
cess is an impartial one, for as much has been forgotten about the period of
German victory before late 1942 as was forgotten about the Soviet triumphant
march after late 1942. This process also restores humanity, a human face, and
human failings to those to whom war has accorded lasting fame.
The subject of this volume is the most glaring instance where history has
failed us, the forgotten Soviet Operation Mars. Operation Mars, planned for
October 1942 and conducted in late November, was the companion piece of
Operation Uranus, the code name for the Soviet Stalingrad strategic counter-
offensive. Taken together, the twin strategic operations, significantly named for
the gods, represented the Red Army's effort to regain the strategic initiative on
the Eastern Front and to begin a long march to total victory over the German
Wehrmacht and Nazi Germany. Planned, orchestrated, and directed by Mar-
shal Zhukov, Operation Mars, appropriately named for the god of war, was the
centerpiece of Soviet strategic efforts in fall 1942. By virtue of its scale and in-
tent, strategically, Operation Mars was at least as important as Operation Ura-
nus. In its fickleness, however, history has forgotten Operation Mars because it
failed and extolled Operation Uranus because it succeeded. In short, the suc-
cessful wrote the histories and naturally emphasized their successes, while the
defeated found it difficult to write credibly of the victories they achieved in the
humiliating process of being defeated.
Sufficient German and Soviet archival materials are now available to re-
construct the factual historical framework of Operation Mars within the con-
text of the momentous events and shift in strategic military fortunes that took
place on the German Eastern Front in fall 1942. These archival materials,
German and Soviet alike, provide the factual backbone of this volume. By
exploiting these materials, we can now reconstruct an accurate picture of what
took place, when, where, on what scale, and, to a slightly lesser extent, why.
The only major gap still to be filled is the human dimension of the struggle.
Here I have relied on existing memoirs, which are often inaccurate, and my
own understanding of the war and those who fought in it to reconstruct the
thoughts, hopes, and dilemmas faced by those who led, fought, and died in
the operation. For example, we now have the benefit of Zhukov's war itiner-
ary to reconstruct where he was located and when throughout the war and
sufficient archival materials to challenge the factual basis and content of large
segments of his memoirs. By studying where he was throughout the war and
Introduction 3
what his forces did throughout his tenure in command, we can now correct
many of the inaccuracies and inconsistencies in his memoirs.
I have reconstructed the course, scope, and intent of Operation Mars based
on sound archival sources, and I have inferred larger aspects of the Soviet fall
1942 strategic plan, in particular, the plan for Operation Jupiter, on the basis of
partial archival evidence. The decisions, actions, personalities, motivations, and
undocumented conversations and thoughts of the commanders, however, are
based on archival materials to a markedly lesser extent. They reflect my subjec-
tive understanding of the operations and men, in some instances from their
own accounts and, more often, based on their previous or subsequent actions
or ultimate fate. This historical license on my part, however, in no way alters
or detracts from the factual accuracy of what did occur in Operation Mars and
why.
I give special thanks in the preparation of this volume to my daughter,
Mary Elizabeth Glantz, who translated voluminous German archival materi-
als for me, and to my wife, Mary Ann, who painstakingly proofed and edited
the draft manuscript. I alone am responsible for any and all errors.
CHAPTER 1
Prelude
TO STALINGRAD: THE WEHRMACHT AND OPERATION BLAU
OKH Headquarters, Vinnitsa, Ukraine, 25 July 1942
Adolf Hitler's decision to shift his Fuehrer Headquarters to Vinnitsa in the
western Ukraine was not an altogether welcome event for those who -were
directing the German war effort on the Eastern Front from the grimy Ukrai-
nian city. In particular, Chief of German Army General Staff Franz Haider,
who for weeks had been arguing with Hitler over the niceties of German
military strategy in the East, would now have to contend directly with Hitler's
imposing presence. Haider knew that, inevitably, this meant bowing to the
Fuehrer's vaunted will.1
As chief of the General Staff and titular head of the German Army High
Command (Oberkommando das Heere, or OKH), Haider had chosen the dusty
and now downright hot Ukrainian city as the best location from which to con-
trol this, the second major attempt to defeat the Red Army and drive the
Soviet Union from the war. To all appearances, by late July the choice of
Vinnitsa seemed to have been propitious for, prior to the Fuehrer's arrival,
German arms had once again been blessed with unprecedented good fortune.
Haider well recalled, however, how similar German success a year before had
been dashed at Moscow, in part, he believed, because Hitler had interfered
with strategic planning and the day-to-day conduct of operations. Haider
dreaded his renewed interference, lest history should repeat itself in 1942.
In late July there was little reason to assume it would. Driven by the false
presumption that the German summer offensive would occur in the north
against Soviet forces defending Moscow, the Russians themselves, thought
Haider, had paved the way for German success by squandering over 250,000
men and immense amounts of equipment in a futile mid-May offensive south
of Khar'kov.2 The sudden Soviet offensive, which was originally diversionary
in nature and designed to exploit perceived German weakness in the south,
had caught the German command by surprise. Nevertheless, quick-thinking
and fleet-footed German commanders had reacted with customary efficiency.
They had parried the clumsy Soviet effort and annihilated the bulk of the
attacking Red Army force. In fact, by attacking into the very teeth of the mighty
6 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
host, which the Germans had been secretly assembling for their new spring
and summer advance across southern Russia, the Soviets had invited inevi-
table defeat and conditioned success for subsequent German operations in
southern Russia.
After their spectacular victory at Khar'kov, on 28 June 1942, German
forces, operating within the parameters of newly formulated Operation Blau,
commenced a spectacular advance eastward.3 Replicating their unprec-
edented Barbarossa offensive of summer 1941, German armored and motor-
ized spearheads swept relentlessly across the steppes of southern Russia from
the Kursk region to the northern Donbas, with seemingly endless columns
of German, Hungarian, and Italian infantrymen trailing in their wake. The
headlong advance rent the Soviet front in two, brushed aside pesky but often
still clumsy Soviet counterattacks, and within days reached the wide Don River
near Voronezh, Spilling southeastward between the rivers Don and Northern
Donets, the armored columns of German Fourth and First Panzer Armies
raced unfettered into the great bend of the Don, while other armies pressed
Soviet forces back toward Rostov (see Map 1).
Despite this clear offensive success, Haider was uneasy, and not just be-
cause of Hitler's arrival at the front. Unlike 1941, Soviet forces had melted
away before the advancing German tide, and the expected encirclements of
tens of thousands of massed Russian infantry had not materialized. Even the
pockets formed near Millerovo and north of Rostov had produced only mea-
ger yields. Even more unsettling to Haider and more damaging to the care-
fully orchestrated German plan, it seemed likely that the precipitous advance
would encourage Hitler, who was, as ever, preoccupied as much with occu-
pying space and capturing resources as he was with destroying enemy armies.
Haider, who from the very beginning had recoiled from the prospects of
launching German armies willy-nilly into the endless spaces of southern Rus-
sia, could only imagine where Hitler's insatiable appetite would now propel
German forces. In fact, the very day Hitler moved into his new headquarters,
he issued Directive 43 for Operation Bluecher, which ordered General Erich
von Manstein's Eleventh Army on the Crimean Peninsula to cross the Kerch
Straits onto the Taman Peninsula even before the besieged Russian city of
Sevastopol' had fallen.4 This made it abundantly clear that Hitler was already
listening to the siren call of the Caucasus and their rich economic booty.
Haider well understood the original strategic and operational intent of
Operation Blau. The original operational plan called for a three-phase opera-
tion. During the first phase, German forces were to destroy Soviet armies
defending forward of Voronezh on the Don River. In phase two they were to
advance southeastward along the southern bank of the Don into the Millerovo
region to begin the encirclement of Soviet forces in the eastern Donets Basin,
or Donbas. Finally, in phase three, they would exploit to seize Rostov, the
8 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
great Don River berid, and the prize of Stalingrad on the Volga River. Once
Stalingrad had fallen, the directive implied that German forces would subse-
quently drive into the Caucasus, but it did not describe the precise nature of
that advance. Inherent in Operation Blau was the assumption that the Red
Army would be decimated in repeated German encirclements. By 25 July it
was clear that this had not and would not occur.
It was also clear to all at the Vinnitsa headquarters that German successes
had set Hitler's mind and imagination into frenzied motion. Heated discussions
in OKH headquarters and the new Fuehrer headquarters produced a flurry of
new and altered orders. In Hitler's view, these exploited new opportunities,
but to Haider and many other German generals they perverted the original
intent, future prospects, and perhaps the ultimate fate of Operation Blau. The
most significant of these new orders was Directive 45, which was simply en-
titled "For the Continuation of Operation Braunschweig [Blau]."5 Assuming
that the principal objective of Operation Blau, the "conclusive destruction of
Soviet defensive strength," had been accomplished, the directive required that
a fourth phase of Blau, an advance into the Caucasus, code-named Operation
Edelweiss, be conducted simultaneously with the assault on Stalingrad.
What seemed to Hitler to be the exploitation of opportunity and good for-
tune was far more foreboding to Haider and the General Staff. Now, instead
o
of concentrating the full offensive strength of the newly formed German Army
Groups A and B on the seizure of Stalingrad as was called for by the original
plan, Hitler required that the two army groups advance simultaneously toward
Stalingrad and into the Caucasus along distinctly diverging axes. As German
Sixth Army struggled to overcome logistical problems as it spearheaded Army
Group B's advance on Stalingrad and Hitler fretted over the army's slow
progress, Haider "confided to his diary that there was 'intolerable grumbling'
over mistakes the Fuehrer had provoked by his own previous orders."6
However, the events unfolding in late July and the decisions being made
in German headquarters complexes in Vinnitsa and in forward German armies
were only mildly unsettling, for they took place within a context of unre-
strained hope and spectacular military victories. A thousand miles away, in
Moscow, Hitler's adversary, Stalin, pondered developments from a far more
sobering perspective.
HALTING THE GERMAN JUGGERNAUT:
NOT A STEP BACK
Stavka (Headquarters, Supreme High Command), Moscow,
the Kremlin, 28 July 1942
The Generalissimo was irate. More than ten years of intrigue and ruthless
triumph over his internal political opponents, an equally long record dealing
Prelude 9
with treacherous foreign leaders, and even a year of humiliating military de-
feats at the hands of the foreign leader whom he thought he best understood
had not prepared losif Vissarionovich Stalin for the ignominies his armies had
suffered during the recent spring and summer. Hitler had betrayed him in
June 1941 by launching Operation Barbarossa, and even the knowledge that
he himself might have unleashed war against Hitler in 1942 did not assuage
his lingering hatred for the impetuous German, who, Stalin grudgingly ad-
mitted, was so much like himself. In the wake ofthat betrayal, Soviet armies
had suffered immense losses and traded extensive territories to gain the time
needed to amass the military force required to halt the German offensive and
reverse Soviet military fortunes. In the end, thought Stalin, it was Hitler's
impetuosity that would doom both him and the German Army to defeat.
By late 1941 Hitler's impetuosity had propelled now threadbare German
armies to the outskirts of Leningrad, Moscow, and Rostov. There, plentiful
Soviet reserves, led by iron-willed and ruthless Soviet commanders who were
willing to sacrifice themselves and their men to the Soviet cause, brought the
German advance to an end and nearly converted Soviet tactical and opera-
tional victories into German strategic rout. Stalin shuddered imperceptibly
as he remembered how near total victory had been. "How then," he thought,
"could those winter victories have been followed this spring and summer with
new catastrophic Soviet defeats? What went wrong? Who was to blame?
Should I have listened to the advice of others who told me to bide my time,
fortify my defensive positions, wait to repel the German attack, and then
strike? Should I have listened more closely to Zhukov, Shaposhnikov, Vasilev-
sky, and others?"
Introspection was uncharacteristic of Stalin. Too much deep thought,
questioning, and self-doubt, he believed, undercut one's instinct and will and
one's ability to prevail. Shedding the momentary impulse toward weakness,
he took a deep draft on his ubiquitous pipe and answered his own fleeting
questions. "No! I was right. Although the Germans did not attack where we
expected, and Marshal Timoshenko's offensive in the south failed, Hitler's
impetuosity," he concluded, "has once again prevailed. He has chosen a path
that leads nowhere but to overextension and defeat. That defeat may take
place along the Don, in the Caucasus, at Moscow, or in all three locations.
What is clear, however, is that a stubborn and determined Red Army will
prevail. It is just a matter of time."
Thought behind him, Stalin peered down at the draft Order No. 227,
which was lying on his desk, and in particular at the end of a paragraph whose
words leapt from the paper, forming a slogan that would live in history: "Not
a step back [Ni shagu nazad]! Such must be our higher purpose now."7 The
ruthless fine print accompanying the bold slogan, which had long been char-
acteristic of Stalin's harsh leadership, gave meaning to the now famous ex-
hortation. In essence, if the slogan failed to inspire, the firing squad, the knout,
10 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
the penal battalions, and the line-following detachments would do so. "In-
trospection aside," Stalin mused, "I have not lost my touch."
Stalin signed the order, summoned his secretary A. N. Poskrebyshev to
transmit it to the General Staff, and turned to face the immense wall map
whose vivid blue and red arrows mutely recorded the progress of war. His
eyes drifted to the south of Russia, across the Donbas, along the Don River,
and into the Caucasus. Large blue arrows, annotated on the map the morn-
ing before by intense young staff officers, pierced the Don near Rostov and
at Kalach west of Stalingrad. Stalin quickly glanced up to the north where
the German front line was marked by a huge salient jutting toward Moscow
in the Rzhev and Viaz'ma regions. This grotesque and threatening legacy of
the frustrating winter battles the year before remained remarkably quiet—a
long blue line confronted by multiple red defense lines anchored to the rear
on the concentric red circles denoting the Moscow Defensive Region. As he
peered at the map, Stalin bitterly recalled that it was from this menacing sa-
lient that all the German offensive arrows were to have emanated this past
summer. Despite the ensuing defeats in the south, Stalin took solace in the
knowledge that German defeats at Moscow during the winter had at least
soured Hitler on the idea of launching another attempt to seize the Soviet
capital city.
"Now," he thought, as his eyes once again drifted south to the banks of
the Don, "we need to anoint another Soviet city with the honor and prowess
of Moscow and indelibly emblazon its name on the German psyche as a sym-
bol of even greater defeat." Stalin was convinced that fate, born of stark
geographical realities and the inexorable eastern progress of the large blue
German attack arrow across the Don River, would accord that distinction to
his namesake city, Stalingrad. Along the center of the blue arrow, a Soviet
General Staff officer had neatly inscribed in red, 6-ia Armiia (6th Army).
THUNDER IN THE NORTH
Kalinin Front Headquarters, east of Rzhev, 23 August 1942
Colonel General Ivan Stepanovich Konev, Kalinin Front commander, knew
and resented the fact that world attention was on the titanic struggle at Stalin-
grad. For over three weeks, he had been trying to alter that grim reality.
Ostensibly with the intent of drawing German attention and forces away from
the Stalingrad sector, since 1 August his forces, together with armies of the
Western Front's right flank, had been pounding German Ninth Army defenses
covering the approaches to Rzhev. The attack had been the idea of Army Gen-
eral G. K. Zhukov, the Western Front commander, and, lamented Konev,
Zhukov's armies had garnered the greatest glory in the operation. Few be-
Prelude 11
sides Konev knew what Zhukov's real intent had been. Simmering over his
failure to destroy German Army Group Center at Moscow in winter 1941 and
thwarted in his designs to engage German forces once again along the Mos-
cow axis in spring and summer 1942, Zhukov had bided his time while Ger-
man forces had spread across southern Russia. Now, in August, Zhukov was
once again implementing his "northern strategy," designed to crush German
Army Group Center once and for all. A month before, he had launched an
unsuccessful offensive with Western Front's left wing north of Briansk, but
that offensive had done little damage and had barely caught the attention of
the German High Command. He resolved that the new attack near Rzhev
•would do more, and it did.8
In extremely heavy fighting, Konev's 30th and 29th Armies had ground
up German forces northeast of Rzhev and advanced steadily on the city. To
the south Zhukov committed his 31st and 20th Armies, and on 6 August his
fresh 6th and 8th Tank Corps and 2d Guards Cavalry Corps joined battle and
began to exploit the lead armies' success. For three days a major tank battle
raged as German operational reserves tried to close the breech and halt the
Soviet advance. Halt it they did, but only after losing Zubtsov and falling back
to new defense lines along the Vazuza River, just east of Sychevka. The bitter
and costly operation petered out after 23 August, and although Ninth Army
held, it did so only barely. Only Konev and Zhukov knew that the August
operation at Rzhev had served a greater end, as a dress rehearsal for what
was to come. Next time the attack would be more extensive and, Zhukov
believed, would end with the destruction of the German army group.
German Ninth Army Headquarters, Sychevka, 1 September 1942
General der Panzertruppen Walter Model, Ninth Army commander, just re-
turned from convalescent leave, appreciated how close was his brush with
disaster. With German attentions focused on the south, the vicious Soviet
attack had caused immense disruption and losses in Ninth Army.9 He had
met the wave after wave of advancing Soviet infantry, tanks, and cavalry by
throwing his reinforcements into battle piecemeal. It was a hell of a way to
use armored reserves, but at least the Soviet advance had finally been brought
to a halt. Model thought bitterly of the way Hitler had dismissed the threat.
To Hitler, diversionary assaults such as this were expected in light of what
was going on further south at Stalingrad, and the obvious solution was to hold
fast until the Soviets wore themselves out. Model had responded to the crisis
and to High Command indifference in characteristically frank fashion. On
16 August, at the height of the Rzhev battle, he had informed his army group
commander, Field Marshal Guenther von Kluge: "Ninth Army is about fin-
ished and has to have three more divisions. If those could not be given, he
12 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
said, the army group will have to take responsibility for what happened next
and 'provide detailed instructions as to how the battle is to be continued.'"10
Such an ultimatum from the man whose forces had saved Rzhev in winter
1941 could not go unheeded. The army group provided the necessary rein-
forcements and the German lines held.
"The problem was," thought Model, "that it was the German forces in the
salient that were wearing out." Already, Army Group Center had been forced
to abandon its ambitious late summer plans to eliminate the Soviet Sukhinichi
salient east of Viaz'ma. Zhukov's two summer offensives had seen to that.
Moreover, "Army Group Center had held its own through the summer
barely."
COUNTEROFFENSIVE OF THE GODS: THE GENESIS OF
OPERATIONS MARS, URANUS, SATURN, AND JUPITER
Sixth Army Headquarters, in the Field near Kalach, 15 September 1942
Colonel General Friedrich Paulus, the tall, stately, but harried German Sixth
Army commander, had just heard encouraging reports from his staff, which
helped ease the mounting frustrations of the hectic previous days.11 His army's
LI Army Corps had reached the main Stalingrad railroad station and the banks
of the Volga River, while neighboring XXXXVIII Panzer Corps, detached from
Fourth Panzer Army, swept forward to the banks of the Volga in the south-
ern sector of the ruined city. In between were the shattered but stubborn
remnants of Soviet 62d Army, which clung to every city block and smashed
building foundation in fanatical determination to fulfill Stalin's entreaties to
stand firm in his namesake city.
Paulus reviewed the frustrating but often exhilarating events of recent
weeks as his powerful army attempted, at first alone, to fulfill Hitler's orders
to seize the key city on the Volga. In late July, his army had struck east to-
ward the Don River and, in heavy fighting, had destroyed two hastily fielded
Soviet tank armies west of Kalach on the Don. His army then drove on east-
ward through the litter of destroyed armor and seized Don River crossings at
Kalach. Faced with increasing resistance from two new Soviet armies (62d
and 64th), Hitler approved a revision to Directive 45, which ordered three
corps of Fourth Army to march on Stalingrad from the southwest in tandem
with Paulus's advancing Sixth Army. The coordinated drive, which began on
1 August, soon consumed the German High Command's attentions, since it
believed that Stalingrad was the pivotal point to which Soviet reserves would
naturally gravitate. Heavy fighting along the banks of the Don River and along
the approaches to the city confirmed the High Command's belief. As Ger-
Prelude 13
man forces painfully fought their way into the city, the Soviets began a drum-
beat of counteroffensives against Sixth Army's ever-extending northern flank
covering the sector between the Don and Volga rivers. The Soviet attacks
plagued Paulus as he tried to focus his attention on seizing the city while
constantly concerned for the safety of his left flank.
To assuage Paulus's concerns, the OKH allocated to him, first, the Italian
Eighth Army, which he positioned on his far left flank along the south bank
of the Don and, then, Rumanian Third Army, which permitted him to re-
place additional German troops further south along the Don. The relieved
German troops then entered the cauldron of fire that was Stalingrad. Through-
out September the struggle intensified as the Germans advanced through the
ruins of the city house by house and factory by factory, but at appalling
human cost. "True to their nature," thought Paulus, "the Soviets fed ever more
troops into the urban meat grinder in a process that would clearly cease only
once every inch of city turf had fallen to German forces." Suppressing an
almost irrepressible urge to stop the slaughter by going over to the defen-
sive, instead Paulus pushed his tiring soldiers on. Paulus's opponent, the
defender of Stalingrad, Lieutenant General V. I. Chuikov, and his bloodied
62d Army simply refused to collapse.
Paulus's subsequent impulsive announcement on 26 September that the
city's center had fallen was clearly premature and overly optimistic.12 Although
the Soviet bridgehead had dwindled in places to a matter of a few square yards,
a seemingly never-ending stream of Soviet arriving reinforcements outpaced
German losses. While pushing imperceptibly toward the river's bank, Sixth
Army was nevertheless losing a war of attrition. By 6 October, lamenting the
appalling losses, Sixth Army's war diary noted, "The occupation of the city is
not to be accomplished in such a fashion."13 The dilemma was that Hitler and
the High Command had staked virtually all on the city's seizure.
Paulus's lengthening struggle with Chuikov's stubborn defenders mesmer-
ized the German High Command. History has clearly demonstrated that Ger-
man fixation on the fighting in the city blinded them to the critical situation
along Sixth Army's extended and increasingly vulnerable flanks. As they had
a year before at Moscow, the German High Command assumed that the
issue would be resolved in the environs of the city and, as a consequence,
Stalingrad would be the destination of most, if not all, Soviet strategic reserves.
There, they assumed, the last Soviet battalions would be sent. Thus, the
Germans were neither ready nor able to cope with what befell them on 19
November, when fresh Soviet forces tore through their vulnerable flanks,
which were defended largely by Rumanians, and encircled exhausted Ger-
man Sixth Army in its target city. Less apparent to all was the utter neglect
that the German High Command accorded to other front sectors. Ironically,
14 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
it was in the most critical of these sectors that the Soviet High Command
planned to deal the Germans their most devastating defeat in late fall and
winter 1942.
Stavka, Moscow, the Kremlin, 26 September 1942
Intense discussions had gone on for days within the Stavka among those most
influential in determining Soviet military strategy. Zhukov joined those dis-
cussions on 26 September after returning from a visit to the Stalingrad Front.
The venue and format for the discussions was customary. During the day,
key Stavka members and representatives of the General Staff met in the
General Staff building. There they assessed the military situation in various
front sectors, studied/ront commanders' proposals for future actions, calcu-
lated the relative force strengths and correlations of forces along key axes,
discussed military options, and formulated draft plans. Other General Staff
officers busily studied proposals and plans, prepared detailed estimates of the
situation, surveyed available strategic reserves, assessed manpower and equip-
ment availability and military and industrial production rates, and performed
a host of other duties necessary to harness the power of the Red Army in the
service of prospective offensive action. Late in the evening, key military fig-
ures adjourned to the Kremlin, where they met with Stalin to discuss strate-
gic options in sessions that lasted until the wee hours of the morning.
Despite the autocratic nature of the Soviet regime, and unlike the case of
Hitler and his High Command, the decision to undertake major offensives
was not taken lightly. Moreover, it involved considerable genuine debate. Re-
peated earlier defeats and the high troop death toll weighed heavily on even
the most callous leader. Even if one's conscience tolerated the death of thou-
sands of soldiers, there was the practical question of sustaining the morale
necessary for the carnage to produce battlefield victory. All clearly under-
stood that the cream of the June 1941 peacetime Red Army had perished in
the first eight months of war, and even the immense manpower base of the
Soviet Union could not sustain that process indefinitely without disastrous
results. As if to underscore the problem, merely kilometers away the first
Soviet women's rifle brigade was already forming.14
Debate was not a new phenomenon in Stavka planning circles. What was
new, however, was the degree of debate and its vigor and freshness. While
Stalin's opinion, quite naturally, had dominated discussions in earlier months,
the elusiveness of victory and the sharpness of recent catastrophic defeats
conditioned Stalin to listen more respectfully to the most capable of his mili-
tary experts. By now he had also developed a keen understanding of the
strengths, weaknesses, and personal quirks of each member of his military
entourage. Ironically, despite the harsh experiences of the first year of war,
Prelude 15
that entourage had changed little. Each member brought to the group unique
personal perspectives born of combat experience and valuable biases that
needed to be aired and debated in full. Now, in the fall of 1942, Stalin finally
understood that these discussions were essential for victory.
The key figures in Stalin's closest circle of advisors were Stavka mem-
bers G. K. Zhukov, 1st Deputy Minister of Defense and Deputy Supreme
High Commander, A. M. Vasilevsky, Deputy Minister of Defense and Chief
of the General Staff, and N. F. Vatutin, Deputy Chief of the General Staff
and Voronezh Front commander. Others in the General Staff, including
S. P. Ivanov, Chief of the General Staff's Operations Directorate, Stavka
representatives like Red Army Artillery Chief N. N. Voronov, and front
commanders like I. S. Konev (Western), A. I. Eremenko (Stalingrad), and
Vatutin (Voronezh and then Southwestern) also played key roles in the stra-
tegic debate.
Prior experience and the unique personalities of these key figures shaped
the debate and produced a plan for what would become the most ambitious
and comprehensive strategic offensive the Stavka and General Staff had yet
proposed. Strategic realities and the exigencies of on-going combat meant
that Stavka attention was riveted, first, on the massive German force lodged
deep in southern Russia and, second, on the still looming threat posed by
German forces in the Rzhev salient to Moscow. Reality dictated that Ger-
man forces in southern Russia be defeated and the threat to Moscow elimi-
nated. The vital question was how to accomplish this. Here, the personal
histories and biases of Stalin's entourage were key.
Army General Georgi Konstantinovich Zhukov, Stalin's premier mili-
tary advisor, had begun the war as a "southerner," conditioned by his cav-
alry training and duty in the Ukraine to appreciate the critical strategic
importance of the region.15 The former commander of the Kiev Military
District (1940) and chief of the General Staff on the eve of war, Zhukov's
prewar plans, in accordance with Stalin's desires, had given priority to stra-
tegic defenses in the Ukraine. During the terrible fighting of summer and
fall of 1941, however, Zhukov had recognized the error in his ways. As
Reserve Front commander after 30 July 1941, Zhukov's attentions shifted
to the front's central sector. There, in July and August 1941, he orchestrated
the Soviet counteroffensives around Smolensk, whose ferocity contributed,
in part, to the German High Command's decision to halt the drive on Mos-
cow and instead encircle Soviet forces defending stubbornly in the Kiev
region. Zhukov had later crossed swords with Stalin over the necessity for
defending Kiev, and when Zhukov's recommendation to abandon Kiev was
overruled, Stalin "exiled" him to Leningrad. In the disastrous October days,
after the Germans resumed their advance on Moscow, Stalin summoned
Zhukov to Moscow to help the Stavka stave off impending disaster. Com-
16 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
manding in succession the Reserve and Western Fronts, Zhukov restored
order from confusion and was instrumental in bringing the German advance
to a halt at the gates of the Russian capital.
In close coordination with Stalin, Zhukov then organized and conducted
the December 1941 Moscow counteroffensive and, in January 1942, expanded
that offensive into a grand, although ultimately futile attempt to destroy Ger-
man Army Group Center. The glorious but frustrating Moscow episode con-
verted Zhukov into a convinced "northerner." Thereafter, Army Group Center
became his nemesis, and Zhukov remained preoccupied with the task of its
destruction. During spring 1942, when the Stavka planned for their summer
campaign, like the chief of the Red Army General Staff at that time, Marshal
B. M. Shaposhnikov, Zhukov argued strenuously that the Western Direction
was the most critical strategic axis for future operations. Supported by other
key General Staff figures and Stalin as well, Zhukov's view prevailed. All ac-
cepted the preeminent importance of the Moscow axis and concluded that
this was the axis along which German offensive operations would resume in
summer 1942.
Despite their acceptance of Zhukov's view of the threat, Stavka members
disagreed sharply as to how best to deal with it during the upcoming Sum-
mer Campaign. Unlike Shaposhnikov and Vasilevsky, who argued that the
Red Army conduct an initial strategic defense until German forces had spent
their offensive strength, Zhukov argued for a preemptive offensive against
German forces lodged in the Rzhev salient. While, at least in principle, Stalin
accepted Shaposhnikov's and Vasilevsky's defensive view, his innate impa-
tience prevailed, and he ordered limited offensive action. Rather than ap-
proving Zhukov's recommendation for limited offensive action at Rzhev,
however, Stalin approved a recommendation by Marshal S. K. Timoshenko,
the commander of the Southwestern Direction, to launch a limited offensive
in the south around Khar'kov. The Khar'kov offensive launched in May 1942
ended in bloody failure and facilitated the subsequent German offensive.
The ensuing disastrous course of events at Khar'kov and the subsequent
triumphant German march through southern Russia only served to convince
Zhukov that his assessment had been correct. In his view strategic issues would
be resolved only along the Western Direction. Throughout the summer and
early fall of 1942, while high drama unfolded in the south, Zhukov remained
in command of forces on the Western Direction, certain that the best way to
smash the Wehrmacht in southern Russia was to defeat it along the Mos-
cow axis. To this end, in July he launched a fierce but largely forgotten offen-
sive on Western Front's left wing north of Briansk. When that operation
failed, in August he struck with the joined flanks of his Kalinin and West-
ern Fronts at German forces defending Rzhev. Although the so-called
Pogoreloe-Gorodishche offensive faltered in early September, the damage
Prelude 17
it inflicted on German Army Group Center was considerable, and it demon-
strated the potential devastating effects that an expanded operation could have
in the future. In essence, it became a dress rehearsal for the even larger and
more decisive subsequent operation.
Chief of the Red Army General Staff Colonel General Aleksandr Mi-
khailovich Vasilevsky was arguably the Red Army's finest senior staff officer.16
Rising from colonel to colonel general in four years, Vasilevsky was Shaposh-
nikov's favorite and his heir apparent on the General Staff. His even tem-
perament and intellectual keenness balanced the sheer power, crudeness,
and even brutality of Zhukov. Throughout the war, the two made a superb
team of effective Stavka troubleshooters, representatives, and command-
ers. Neither a "northerner" nor a "southerner," Vasilevsky's strategic vision
spanned the entire front. Clearly junior to Zhukov, at this stage of the war
his view was influential but not decisive. In short, he lived with Stalin's and
Zhukov's views but tended to moderate their excesses.
Deputy chief of the General Staff and Voronezh Front commander Army
General Nikolai Fedorovich Vatutin was a superb staff officer who also proved
to be a daring troop commander.17 Gifted with strategic vision and personal
audacity and capable of working with both Zhukov and Vasilevsky, Vatutin
could easily grasp the opportunities available to the Soviets in fall 1942. Shar-
ing Zhukov's love for combat duty, by virtue of his assignment as Voronezh
Front commander and by virtue of his thirst for victory, he tended to be a
"southerner." It would not be coincidental that Vatutin would command
Southwestern Front in the Stalingrad counteroffensive.
Stalin, the grand arbiter and ultimate decisionmaker, had for months pa-
tiently listened to the views of these, his principal military advisors. He him-
self recognized the opportunities at hand and the personal prejudices of his
subordinates, and insofar as possible, he consciously harnessed the energy
and potential of those differing and competing individuals, as would become
crystal clear as the new Soviet strategic plan took shape.
Throughout September and into early October 1942, Stalin often solic-
ited the advice of his principal subordinates regarding the launch of new coun-
teroffensive action. In their memoirs, Zhukov, Vasilevsky, Army General A. I.
Eremenko (Stalingrad Front commander), Major General S. M. Shtemenko
(deputy chief of the General Staff's Operations Directorate), and others uni-
formly described the various stages of proposals, counterproposals, and nego-
tiations as the forthcoming counteroffensive took shape. They unanimously
agree that the ensuing plan for the Stalingrad counteroffensive operation
(code-named Uranus) was the product of these High Command initiatives
and that Zhukov, Vasilevsky, and a limited circle of other figures were most
responsible for the plan. Once the plan for the Stalingrad operation was de-
veloped, they agree that in mid-November new diversionary operations else-
18 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
where along the front, and in particular at Rzhev, were added to the plan to
draw or keep German reserves away from Stalingrad.
Vasilevsky later noted in his memoirs: "After the Stavka [from 16 to 19
November] had discussed a number of issues, the operational plan and time
schedules were finally approved. Zhukov then received the assignment to pre-
pare a diversionary operation on the Kalinin and the Western Fronts. The
Stavka made me responsible for coordinating the actions of all three fronts
of the Stalingrad area while carrying out the offensive."18
Zhukov's recollection substantiated Vasilevsky1 s account when he wrote
of the November planning sessions:
Vasilevsky and I pointed out to the Supreme High Commander that, as
soon as German troops at Stalingrad and in the northern Caucasus found
themselves in a desperate spot, the Nazi High Command would be com-
pelled to transfer some of its forces from other sectors, particularly from
Vyaz'ma, to assist the southern grouping.
To prevent this, it was essential to prepare urgently and conduct an
offensive north of Vyaz'ma and, first, smash the Germans in the Rzhev
salient. We suggested using troops in the Kalinin and Western Fronts for
this operation. "That would be fine," Stalin said, "but which of you will
take charge?"
As Vasilevsky and I had already agreed on that score, I explained, "The
Stalingrad operation is completely ready. Vasilevsky can coordinate opera-
tions at Stalingrad while I take charge of the preparations for an offen-
sive by the Kalinin and Western Fronts."
Between November 20 and December 8, the planning and prepara-
tion of this operation were finalized.19
Archival and other materials flatly contradict Zhukov's retrospective ac-
count. Moreover, Zhukov's claims sharply differ from the materials found in
other memoirs and clearly reveal that Soviet key political and military figures
who were involved in the offensive planning and historians who wrote about
the operation made a major and concerted attempt to cover up what really
transpired in planning for the Soviet winter counteroffensive. These same
memoir materials and overwhelming evidence from both the German and
Soviet archives now permit us to reconstruct what really occurred in fall 1942.
Zhukov did play a significant role in those September and early October
Stavka meetings.20 More important, the decisions that Zhukov maintained
were made in the November Stavka session were likely made in late Sep-
tember and early October. Evidencing his frustration over being ignored
during the spring and the eclipse of his near success at Rzhev in August,
Zhukov argued that the Soviet Union could best achieve strategic victory by
Prelude 19
smashing German Army Group Center. Moreover, he argued, the amassing
of Soviet strategic reserves, which had gone on at near frenzied pace in sum-
mer 1942, would permit the Red Army to deliver two major and mutually
supporting counteroffensives: one against German Army Group Center at
Rzhev and the other against Army Group South at Stalingrad. To make
his point, during a meeting in Stalin's office, Zhukov pointed out the favor-
able correlation of forces in all front sectors, but particularly in the central
sector. Here, in the center, the combined strength of the Kalinin and West-
ern Fronts, backed up by the Moscow Defense Zone, numbered almost 1.9
million men, supported by over 24,000 guns and mortars, 3,300 tanks, and
1,100 aircraft. This, Zhukov pointed out, represented 31 percent of the man-
power, 32 percent of the artillery, almost 50 percent of the armor, and over
35 percent of the total Soviet strength, and this massive force was concen-
trated on only 17 percent of the overall front. On the other hand, the just
over 1 million men fielded by the three Soviet/rents in the Stalingrad region
had about 15,000 guns and mortars, 1,400 tanks, and just over 900 aircraft in
support.21 Admittedly, the Rumanian, Italian, and Hungarian armies in the
German entourage were more vulnerable than the Germans, and their pres-
ence in the south undoubtedly improved Soviet chances for success. But,
Zhukov argued, would it not be wiser and more productive to use the com-
bat weight of the Red Army, much of it relatively fresh, to smash once and
for all the large and arrogant German force that threatened Moscow; in
essence, to do what the Red Army had come so close to doing in the previous
winter?
Recalling the considerable damage his forces had done to German Ninth
Army several months before, Zhukov argued that, in addition to collapsing
German Army Group Center, an operation against the Rzhev salient would
inevitably also weaken German defenses in the south and condition subse-
quent success there as well. Moreover, the availability and location ofStavka
strategic reserves would enable rapid and flexible development and expan-
sion of each offensive or readjustment of offensive aims should either offen-
sive falter. Zhukov waved his arms at Stalin's large wall map and loudly recited
the imposing list of armies available to the Western and Kalinin Fronts and
the positions of vital strategic reserves. He emphasized, in particular, the im-
posing list of mechanized and tank corps available to his two fronts and the
superbly refitted tank army of Lieutenant General P. S. Rybalko, then in West-
ern Front reserve west of Kaluga. Zhukov asked Ivanov to highlight on the
map those armies still in Stavka reserve. Dutifully, Ivanov designated the large
red map circles in succession: 2d Guards Army and associated 2d Guards
Mechanized Corps in the process of forming in the Tambov region midway
between Moscow and Stalingrad; 2d Reserve Army in the Vologda region with
three rifle divisions and two rifle brigades; 3d Reserve Army near Kalinin with
20 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
two rifle divisions and two rifle brigades; and 10th Reserve Army in the Volga
Military District.22 Although the three latter armies would not take the field
until late November and December, they would be available to support
either of the offensives. The most ready of the armies, Lieutenant General
R. la. Malinovsky's powerful 2d Guards, Zhukov pointed out, was positioned
to participate in the later stages of either operation. In addition, the Stavka
had the refitted 6th Mechanized Corps in the Moscow Defense Zone, the
fresh 7th and 24th Tank Corps in reserve in the south, as well as 2d and 23d
Tank Corps assigned to the Volga Military District near Stalingrad.
"In short," stated Zhukov, "the requisite forces are in place to conduct
two concerted strategic operations with a high probability of success." Dur-
ing the Moscow meetings, Vasilevsky and Vatutin focused their attention on
what might be done in the south, carefully reminding the assemblage of the
difficulties encountered earlier in attempts to defeat Army Group Center. In
the end, Stalin accepted Zhukov's recommendations. Although mildly criti-
cized by Zhukov in winter 1941 for mandating an offensive on too broad a
front, Stalin too still seethed over the earlier failure to defeat Army Group
Center. Thus, Zhukov's arguments for a repeat effort fell on receptive ears.
On the evening of 26 September, Stalin announced to his commanders,
"You may continue to plan your offensive. Conduct two efforts. Zhukov will
control the Rzhev operation and Vasilevsky the operation at Stalingrad." Dur-
ing the following days, the General Staff developed outline plans for two two-
phase operations, each assigned the code name of a planet (see Map 2). The
first operation, Zhukov's Operation Mars, would commence in mid-October
with the immediate objective of encircling German Ninth Army forces in the
Rzhev and Sychevka salient. Two to three weeks later, it would be followed
by an attack along the Viaz'ma axis by the Western Front's central sector
armies designed to link up with victorious forces of Operation Mars and
envelop all forces of German Army Group Center. The second phase of
Zhukov's operation was possibly code-named Jupiter. Vasilevsky's initial
operation, code-named Uranus and tentatively set for mid-November, was
designed to envelop German Sixth Army in the Stalingrad region. His sec-
ond phase, Operation Saturn, would begin in early December with the
objective of enveloping all of German Army Group B, pinning its remnants
against the Sea of Azov, and cutting off the safe withdrawal of German Army
Group A from the Caucasus.
Late on 26 September, the Stavka planners adjourned their sessions and
returned to their respective front sectors to coordinate planning with front
commanders and staffs. Zhukov traveled with Vasilevsky back to the South-
western Front to survey the latest conditions there. Zhukov was to rejoin his
Western and Kalinin Fronts on 12 October, the initial date set for the launch
of Operation Mars. However, bad weather delayed offensive preparations for
Map 2. Soviet Strategic Offensive Plan, 26 September 1942
24 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
around the flaming circumference of the Rzhev salient would join in the con-
flagration and complete the destruction of German Ninth Army. All would
then regroup to participate in Operation Jupiter.
Operation Jupiter would commence once destruction of Ninth Army had
been insured. Planned only in outline form before the launch of Mars, dur-
ing Jupiter Western Front's 5th and 33d Armies, heavily reinforced and de-
ployed adjacent to the Moscow—Viaz'ma road, would pierce German defenses
covering Viaz'ma. Once through the tactical defenses, Zhukov planned to
commit two tank corps (9th and 10th) to begin an operational exploitation.
For good measure, Rybalko's 3d Tank Army would join the exploitation to
ensure link-up with Kalinin Front forces in the Viaz'ma region.26
Zhukov and the Stavka lavished extraordinary armor, artillery, and engi-
neer support on the two fronts participating in Mars. Support included 31
tank brigades and 12 tank regiments, totaling 2,352 tanks, over 54 artillery
regiments, 30 guards mortar battalions, and 23 antitank regiments with al-
most 10,000 guns and mortars, and 20 separate engineer and sapper battal-
ions. This support included one of the newly fielded separate heavy guards
mortar regiments (heavy Katiushas, or "Stalin organs") and 18 separate heavy
guards mortar battalions. In fact, this support exceeded that provided to
Vasilevsky's armies earmarked to carry out Operation Uranus.
Headquarters, Western Front, 15 October 1942
Ivan Stepanovich Konev was comfortable in his new assignment.27 If com-
mand of Kalinin Front forces had been rewarding, then returning to com-
mand the prestigious Western Front was positively exhilarating. Konev had
served in and commanded Western Front before, although in difficult days
that he preferred to forget. He could not forget, however, since the trials of
summer 1941 still burned in his soul. Then he had commanded the vaunted
19th Army, raised on the eve of war in the North Caucasus Military District.
The stolid army of two rifle and one mechanized corps was supposed to have
been the strategic reserve for the critical wartime Southwestern Front. In the
chaos surrounding the launch of Barbarossa, however, Konev's once proud
army had been hastily rerouted to the central sector and had gone into battle
piecemeal west of Smolensk. Chewed up by advancing German panzer forces,
his army had scattered; some divisions perished in Smolensk, and others were
driven in confusion into hasty defenses east of Smolensk, where they helped
to stem temporarily the headlong German advance.
After Stalin dispatched Zhukov to Leningrad in September 1941, Konev
rose to command Western Front, only to see his front dismembered and
largely destroyed during the German October drive on Moscow. After two-
26 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
the painstaking process of planning the new offensive. Since the Stavka had
ordered detailed preparation of the first phase only, Mars became the focus
of staff work, while Konev, alone, contemplated the outlines of subsequent
Operation Jupiter. He knew too well from experience the hazards of raising
staff expectations. He had to admit, however, that he could not drive Jupiter
from his mind, despite the fact that Mars was to commence on 28 October,
a few short weeks away.
Five days later, Konev's front staff had transformed the general Stavka
concept for Operation Mars into a detailed_/ron£ concept of operations. Konev
was pleased as he read the concept provided him by Colonel General V. D.
Sokolovsky, the front chief of staff:
The main attack will be delivered by 20th Army units in the direction of
GTediakino and Kateriushka. After penetration of the tactical depth of the
enemy defenses, a cavalry-mechanized group will be introduced into the
penetration. In cooperation with the armies of the left wing of the Kalinin
Front, this group must play a decisive role in the encirclement and de-
struction of the enemy Rzhev-Sychevka grouping.
To secure success along the main attack axis in 20th Army's sector,
create a two- to threefold superiority over the enemy in manpower and
weaponry.
20th Army will deliver the main attack with four rifle divisions on its
right flank with the objective of penetrating the enemy defense along a
front from Vasel'ki through Grediakino to Prudy and seize the first and
second defensive positions along the line Maloe Petrakovo—Bol'shoe and
Maloe Kropotovo—Podosinovka, andZherebtsovo. Subsequently, the army
must reach west of the Rzhev—Sychevka railroad line. On the first day, I
propose that the cavalry-mechanized group cross to the western bank of
the Vazuza River.
On the second day, the forces of four rifle divisions must secure the
railroad line, after which three divisions will advance to the northwest and
the fourth to the southwest. Such a maneuver must create a corridor 15
to 18 kilometers wide through which the cavalry-mechanized group can
be introduced into the penetration. Subsequently, the cavalry-mechanized
group will perform the following missions:
6th Tank Corps will deliver a concentrated attack in the direction of
Sychevka and occupy that point in cooperation with [second echelon]
8th Guards Rifle Corps units, attacking from the northeast;
one cavalry division will attack toward Andreevskoe to prevent the
approach of enemy reserves from the southwest and to destroy enemy
forces withdrawing from Sychevka;
Prelude 27
2d Guards Cavalry Corps (minus one division) will advance on Cherto-
lino [west of Rzhev] to sever the Rzhev-Olenino railroad line and, sub-
sequently, in cooperation with units attacking from the front, destroy
the Rzhev enemy grouping.31
Konev well understood the intense work that would be required to con-
vert the rather glib concept into a workable operational plan. Staff planners
confronted major problems. It was difficult to launch a major offensive across
a major river, even if, as Konev hoped, the river's surface was frozen. In ad-
dition, after the initial assault, the river would pose a major obstacle to for-
ward movement and a bottleneck for the forward transport of sustaining
supplies. On 20th Army's right flank, the Osuga River restricted movement
and canalized the advance into a narrow corridor. It, too, would have to be
crossed early if the offensive was to develop with requisite speed. Drawing
the boundary line between 20th and 31st Armies along the Osuga remedied
this problem to a degree, but even so, the terrain was not ideal for an attack.
Konev was also concerned about the enemy. Although German infantry
divisions were still understrength from the August battles, they were now dug
into well-prepared and fortified defenses. When his intelligence organs re-
ported that German 5th Panzer Division still stiffened German forward de-
fenses, Konev shuddered as he recalled the damage that division had done
to advancing Soviet forces in August. More ominously, somewhere to the rear
lurked other panzer forces, but intelligence did not record their strength or
precise location. Konev sincerely hoped that the concerted Soviet attack
against all sectors of the Rzhev salient would attract these dangerous reserves
elsewhere. In his heart, however, he knew he would confront his share.
Driving these thoughts from his mind, Konev left the headquarters for
his quarters, leaving his staff to do its proper job.
Headquarters, Kalinin Front, Toropets, 28 October 1942
Just over two weeks had passed since the receipt of the revised Stavka direc-
tive for renewed operations against German troops at Rzhev, and the Kalinin
Front staff was busily preparing implementing orders in the presence of
Zhukov himself. Within two days after receipt of the directive, ihefront com-
mander, Army General Maksim Alekseevich Purkaev, had presented his con-
cept of operations to his assembled staff, pointing out the extensive and
important tasks assigned the front by Zhukov and emphasizing that Zhukov
himself would likely keep close track of preparations. True to his word, for
the past week Zhukov had traveled throughout the front sector, inspecting
every detail of the offensive preparations. Zhukov had brought with him the
detailed support plans for Operation Mars, which the General Staff had pre-
28 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
pared between 12 and 20 October. Now Zhukov had to insure that these
supporting plans concurred with the detailed plans worked out by Purkaev,
his staff, and subordinate armies and corps. He now sat beside Purkaev dis-
cussing the first major change in the plan. As usual, this change was prompted
not by the enemy but rather by the weather. Such was to be expected in a fall
offensive, particularly in the forested northern fringes of the black earth belt
of northwestern Russia. In characteristic fashion, the transition from sum-
mer to fall had been marked by frenetically changing weather. The good
conditions of early October gave way to torrential cold rains by mid-month.
The rains turned the black earth into black goo, and the roads, already
chowdered up by increased supply transports running to and fro from the
front to rear and back, simply would not tolerate further heavy traffic. The
same had occurred in Western Front's sector, and, as a consequence, Zhukov
once again sought and was granted Stavka permission to delay the onset of
operations until at least mid-November. In fact, thought Zhukov, depending
on conditions, General Vasilevsky may have to launch his forces' offensive
first.
Another reality that was not altogether unpleasant struck Zhukov. If
Vasilevsky's forces did succeed, then the Germans might weaken their cen-
tral front, thus facilitating success in Operation Mars. If he did not, the suc-
cess of Operation Mars would inevitably eclipse Uranus as well as the future
fame and fortunes of those who planned and conducted it. Unaccustomed to
accepting defeats and always confident to the extreme, Zhukov never enter-
tained the thought that it might be his forces that failed.
Sitting beside Purkaev was comforting to Zhukov. The scholarly-looking
general, who was two years older than Zhukov's forty-six years, had already
experienced grim circumstances in the war.32 His quiet demeanor of a su-
perb staff officer enabled him to weather these heavy storms without losing
his equilibrium. Before the war Purkaev had served as chief of staff in the
Belorussian Military District and then as Zhukov's chief of staff in the Kiev
Special Military District. (When war began he had been General Kirponos's
chief of staff in the same military district.) Subsequently, Purkaev had sur-
vived the disastrous encirclement and destruction of Southwestern Front at
Kiev and later rejoined Zhukov's command to lead first 60th and then 3d
Shock Armies during the Moscow counteroffensive. His performance in the
Kholm-Toropets operation in winter 1941 had earned for Purkaev command
of the Kalinin Front when Konev left the front to command Western Front
in late August. "Yes," Zhukov said to himself, "Konev and Purkaev are well
suited to my purposes."
The day before, Purkaev had presented his proposed operation plan to
Zhukov and recommended it not be changed, even in the circumstances of a
major delay. Zhukov himself admitted that the plan would be difficult for the
Prelude 29
front staff to orchestrate, since unlike Konev, who had to plan only one army
attack, Purkaev had to plan three. At least, thought Zhukov, Purkaev would
not be distracted by having to prepare additional armies for a subsequent
major operation. The trick, however, was to guarantee that two of Purkaev's
attacks converged on Olenino and the third deep thrust eastward progressed
sufficiently to link up with Konev's advancing forces. In addition, Zhukov
ordered Purkaev to organize a fourth offensive against an altogether sepa-
rate target, the city of Velikie Luki, located a fair distance west of the Rzhev
salient. Appreciating the perplexing problems confronting Purkaev, Zhukov
allocated Purkaev three new and powerful mechanized corps, which were
commanded by among the Red Army's most competent and most daring
armor officers, Major Generals M. D. Solomatin, M. E. Katukov, and I. P.
Korchagin. All three corps were to tear apart German defenses on the west
flank of the Rzhev salient and link up with Konev's powerful armored host
attacking from the east. Further, Zhukov directed Purkaev to employ two of
the corps in the Belyi sector and the third in a thrust up the Luchesa River
valley.
Purkaev's plan, once fully coordinated with his subordinate army com-
manders, required 41st and 22d Armies to strike against the west side of the
Rzhev salient in the sector just south of Belyi and in the Luchesa River valley
sector further north. At the same time, his 39th Army would launch an attack
along a broad front against the apex of the salient to tie down German forces
and seize Olenino (a German corps headquarters) and a key sector of the
Rzhev-Olenino railroad line. Purkaev's 41st Army, commanded by Major
General G. F. Tarasov, would commit the Stalin 6th Siberian Volunteer Rifle
Corps, consisting of one rifle division and four rifle brigades, to penetrate
German tactical defenses south of Belyi. Once through German defenses,
General Solomatin's 1st and General Korchagin's 2d Mechanized Corps would
then exploit toward Andreevskoe and Sychevka. There they would link up
with 20th Army's cavalry and tank forces to form an armored shield around
the base of the Rzhev salient and block the advance of German armor re-
serves racing to rescue their comrades encircled in the salient.33 Follow-on
army rifle forces would form an outer encirclement line with the exploiting
armor and reduce the strong-point city of Belyi, which had defied Soviet
capture in the winter offensive of 1941 and had plagued the Soviets ever since.
Further to the north, Purkaev's smaller 22d Army, commanded by Ma-
jor General V. A. lushkevich, would conduct a two-division assault against
weaker German forces defending astride the Luchesa River. Once through
the German defenses, General Katukov's 3d Mechanized Corps would ex-
ploit 22d Army's success by advancing up the river valley toward Olenino to
link up with advancing 39th Army forces. Army rifle forces would then assist
41st Army forces in reducing the German's Belyi strong point. Meanwhile,
32 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
August, when the team of Zhukov and Konev had come close to ruining his
army and with it the remainder of Army Group Center. If only von Bock and
Paulus and the rest of the crew in the south had success. Only then would
the pressure and the suspense end here. But according to recent word, the
German juggernaut in the south had run out of steam. Paulus was actually
on the defense in the ruins of Stalingrad, and Army Group A's fine First Panzer
and Seventeenth Armies were lodged firmly and helplessly, it seemed, in the
foothills of the Caucasus Mountains. Model suppressed a laugh as the ab-
surd image flitted threw his mind of an arc filled with Wehrmacht troopers
sitting helplessly isolated on a bare Caucasus Mountain peak. What was Hitler
doing? Where was the German Army going? Where would it end?
The musing ended as Model remembered the information that had set
his mind on such a random, useless, and damaging course. Intelligence infor-
mation was unsettling at best and downright upsetting at worst. Since late
August, while all eyes were on the titanic struggle further south, the German
General Staff intelligence organization, Fremde Heere Ost (Foreign Armies
East), headed by the brilliant, energetic, and young Colonel Reinhardt Gehlen,
had generated and sent to the front an increasing number of alarming reports
of increased Soviet activity in the central front sector. Ordinarily this would
not have bothered Model, for since spring 1942 the Soviets had identified the
Moscow axis as the priority axis, and they had continued to do so throughout
June, even as German forces dashed toward the Don. Presumably, however,
subsequent events in the south had changed these priorities. Or had they?
Gehlen's reports clearly said no, they had not. Most disconcerting was the fact
that not only did these reports not accord with Hitler's strategic view, to an
increasing degree they accorded with Model's own intelligence data.
A report prepared by Gehlen's organization on 29 August predicted in-
creased offensive potential on the part of the Soviets during the forthcoming
winter. Most probably, they would use it "against Army Group Center, to
eliminate the threat to Moscow and to gain a success where the configura-
tion of the front would not overtax the tactical capabilities of the lower com-
manders."35 Although Soviet rail traffic had increased opposite Army Group
Center in September, Gehlen detected no specific attack indicators in the
region. On 15 September Gehlen admitted that, given realities in the south,
initial Soviet action would occur in that region because he estimated the
Soviets had the resources to carry out only one major offensive. In fact, wrote
Gehlen, to do so the Soviets might have to move reinforcements south, away
from Army Group Center's sector.36 That optimistic appraisal, at least from
Army Group Center's perspective, quickly faded when, on 17 September,
Fremde Heere Ost began to reverse itself by again planting the seed of a pos-
sible Soviet attack against Ninth Army. Intensified Soviet rail movement along
the flanks of the Rzhev salient prompted this estimate, whereas previous
Prelude 33
movement had been concentrated primarily near the salient's northeast point.
A Soviet parachute drop of 300 to 400 men on 24 September indicated height-
ened diversionary activity to disrupt German lines of communications in the
region. On 1 October the Soviets commenced long-range artillery fire on
O O Ö v
German rail and highway installations near Osuga, within artillery range just
west of the Vazuza River.37
By October Soviet troop movements adjacent to and outside the salient
prompted Gehlen to conclude,"The Russian forces assembling around Ninth
Army were battle forces."38 On the other hand, clear and extensive Russian
defensive measures around Rzhev proper forestalled an intelligence predic-
tion of an imminent attack. While some German military leaders, including
General Alfred Jodl, the head of the Armed Forces Staff (OKW), conceded
that a limited Soviet attack was possible against the base of the Rzhev salient,
by mid-October Gehlen concluded an attack was probable against the cen-
ter and left wing of Army Group Center, in both Third Panzer and Ninth
Army's sectors.
These conflicting national-level assessments provided context for infor-
mation Model received from his own intelligence organs and substantially
increased its importance. Ninth Army's Ic (chief of the intelligence branch)
was Colonel Georg Buntrock, who has been described as "a small, wiry
infantryman who had come from a divisional la [operations] post in the
Crimea."39 A novice in the realm of intelligence work, he understood that
success at Ninth Army could pave the way for critical operational assignment
elsewhere. He later noted, "I was surprised to observe and experience how
this branch succeeded in unveiling the hidden image of the enemy situation."40
Relying on internal army intelligence collection assets, which included
front-line reports, POW information, raid and patrol reports, army aerial
reconnaissance, radio intercept, some espionage, and artillery observation.
Buntrock lacked the resources and broad perspective available to higher
commands. Nevertheless, his information tended to be fresher, and it was
useful to juxtapose it against higher-level estimates. Although, admittedly, as
in all sectors, natural tunnel vision tended to heighten concerns at lower com-
mand levels, by late October national estimates tended to confirm Buntrock's
local assessments. In short, Ninth Army was increasingly convinced it was a
preeminent Soviet target.
On 29 October Buntrock prepared a comprehensive intelligence assess-
ment, showed it to Model, and in early evening dispatched it by teletype to
Army Group headquarters in Smolensk. Agreeing with Fremde Heere Ost's
assessment of two weeks before, Buntrock concluded: "The enemy would
mount a major offensive against the Ninth Army, striking both the east and
west faces of the [Rzhev] trapezoid. . . . The objective was to break into the
trapezoid from both sides, encircle the troops in it, annihilate the Ninth Army,
34 Zhukov's Creates t Defeat
crack open the front, destroy Army Group Center, and seal this victory by
advancing in triumph to recapture Smolensk."41
Unbeknownst to Buntrock, his brief assessment captured the full extent
of Soviet intent, ironically, even Zhukov's imaginative musings. Buntrock's
and Model's problem now was to determine when, precisely where, and in
what strength the offensive would materialize. Even more important, they
had to convince the High Command that the threat was genuine. Buntrock
worked strenuously to address the first problem. It was Model's role to do
the latter and to prepare his army for the attack when it came.
As Model calmly reflected on Buntrock's predictions, he catalogued the
measures he himself could undertake to thwart Soviet offensive plans. If
Buntrock was correct, reasoned Model, the attack was not imminent and was,
perhaps, weeks away. While Soviet attack preparations appeared near comple-
tion in the east, in the •west they lagged, probably thrown awry by the recent
heavy rains. Model, having operated extensively in the region almost a year
before, well knew how the rains could paralyze troop movements. How then
could he use this time to his best advantage to avoid the problem that had
beset Ninth Army in August?
Model mentally reviewed his army's dispositions. His own former XXXIX
Panzer Corps defended the most vulnerable sector in the east along the Vazuza
and Osuga rivers, where Soviet forces had ended their August offensive.
There, three German infantry divisions (102d, 337th, and 78th) defended
along with 5th Panzer Division, backed up by 9th Panzer Division in opera-
tional reserve west of Sychevka. To the north, XXVII Army Corps defended
the sector from just west of Rzhev to Osuga with six infantry divisions (256th,
87th, 129th, 254th, 72d, and 95th). To the corps' rear, 14th Motorized Divi-
sion was in reserve north of the Rzhev—Olenino railroad line and Chertolino.
XXIII Army Corps defended the apex of the salient with three infantry divi-
sions (110th, 253d, and 206th) deployed from the Luchesa River southwest
of Olenino to the Volga River west of Rzhev, backed up by the heavy Gross-
deutschland Motorized Division, which occupied reserve positions from the
Olenino region southward toward Belyi. Completing Ninth Army defenses
in the Rzhev salient, Model's XXXXI Panzer Corps defended from the base
of the salient southwest of Belyi to the Luchesa River with three infantry
divisions (the shaky 2d Luftwaffe Field Division, 246th, and 86th). The SS
Cavalry Division occupied positions to the rear of the corps' left flank.42
Model faced a twofold dilemma as he contemplated defense of the sa-
lient. First, he had to position forces within the salient conducive to the best
defense. This meant positioning his mobile reserves so that they could have
the greatest effect. He was satisfied with present reserve dispositions. Every
sector had available mobile reserves, and 1st Panzer Division was in army
reserve, centrally located at the base of the salient and capable of responding
36 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Gun Artillery Regiment, transferred southward from Rzhev into 31st Army's
sector. This report, received from the 102d Infantry Division Ic, Captain Dr.
Friedrich Lange, into whose sector the artillery moved, highlighted a series
of similarly alarming reports from this division.43
The 102d Infantry Division occupied defenses astride the Osuga River
on XXXIX Panzer Corps' and 5th Panzer Division's left flank. Its rightmost
regiment, the 195th, occupied the most vulnerable sector located between
the Osuga and Vazuza rivers, and divisional headquarters was on the Osuga's
left bank overlooking German and Soviet forward positions in the 195th
Regiment's sector. Lange's concern over Soviet artillery reinforcement in-
creased on 5 November, when, for the first time, incoming Soviet artillery
fire included new caliber weapons and salvoes fromKatiusha multiple rocket
launchers. The latter were most frequently used to prepare for or support
offensives. Further analysis indicated that Soviet artillery strength opposite
the 102d had doubled in recent weeks.
The reports from the 102d Infantry Division paralleled similar reports
from adjacent divisions and, in particular, from 5th Panzer, and numerous
reports from POWs seized from along the front during intensified Soviet
reconnaissance activities pointed to likely Soviet action on 7 November, which
was Red Army Day. During the night of 5-6 November, the 102d Infantry
Division repelled a Soviet raiding party supported by several tanks. The next
day, traffic opposite the corps' front increased. Reconnaissance detected 800
to 1,000 men reinforcing Soviet positions near Rzhev, a smaller number were
sighted moving up along the Vazuza, and radio intercepts hinted at immi-
nent offensive action. Faced with these new indicators, German intelligence
organs reached differing conclusions. Buntrock at Ninth Army considered
them to be continuing indications of a future Soviet offensive. Lange, on the
other hand, was sure an attack was imminent, although not yet of an "opera-
tional semi-strategic scale."44
November 7 arrived, and despite the ominous indicators, relative quiet
still reigned along the front, punctuated only by desultory artillery fire. That
day, however, the 102d Division picked up a forty-three-year-old deserter
from the Soviet 88th Rifle Division's 426th Rifle Regiment who informed
them of plans for a major Russian attack toward Rzhev and Sychevka. This
news was not overly alarming, however, since the deserter was ignorant of
the precise attack date, and his division had been in the sector for some
time.
Late that evening, at twenty minutes before midnight, as if to shake the
Germans from their relative complacency, the Soviets commenced a terrible
storm of artillery against the 102d Division's positions. The rain of steel and
explosives went on for two hours, and then German artillery struck back at
the offending artillery and at what German forward observers reported were
Prelude 37
assembling hordes of Red Army infantry. The storm nevertheless passed, and
the bright sunlight of the next morning showed nothing but the calm of a
stagnant front.
With their frayed nerves salved and the night's tension relieved, von Armin,
like his army commander in Sychevka, reflected on Gehlen's most recent
intelligence estimate, freshly released on 6 November. This estimate of the
prospects confronting Army Group Center, which supplemented his normal
daily report, contained a fascinating dispatch purported to have come from
Germany's famous master spy against the Soviets, who was code-named MAX:
On 4 November war council in Moscow presided over by Stalin. Present:
12 marshals and generals. In this war council, the following principles were
set down: (a) Careful advance in all operations to avoid heavy losses; . . .
(f) Carrying out all planned offensive undertakings, if possible before 15
November, insofar as the weather situation permits, Mainly: from Grozny
[out of the Caucasus] ... in the Don area at Voronezh; at Rzhev; south of
Lake Ilmen and Leningrad [presumably meaning the Toropets region].
The troops for the front will be taken out of the reserves.45
Whether or not MAX was a legitimate source, Gehlen accorded consider-
able credence to the report since it reinforced his own general theory. Whether
or not by coincidence, although no Soviet sources speak of a November Krem-
lin meeting, and both Zhukov and Vasilevsky record that they were in the field,
the contents of MAX's report regarding Soviet offensive intent was strikingly
compatible with the actual Soviet strategic plan. A meeting of this sort did occur
in the Kremlin sometime during the last two days of October.
Emboldened by MAX's report, Gehlen began his 6 November estimate
stating, "Before the German east front, the point of main effort of the com-
ing operations looms with increasing distinctness in the area of Army Group
Center." Hedging his bet somewhat, he added that it was unclear whether
the Russians would have sufficient forces to conduct an offensive against Army
Group B as well. Even so, he noted, "The enemy's attack preparations in the
south are not so far advanced that one must reckon with a major operation
here in the near future simultaneously with the expected offensive against
Army Group Center." Gehlen cited a number of incentives for such a Soviet
approach, including the political and military need for a quick and major
success, "which the enemy believes he can obtain better at Army Group
Center than at Army Group B"; "the greater advantages for assembly and
jumping-off points offered by the configuration of the Army Group Center
front; and the possibility of destroying Army Group Center and cutting off
German forces to the north contrasted with the greater difficulties and lesser
exploitation possibilities of the southern operation."46
38 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Addressing specific likely Soviet actions against the Rzhev salient, Gehlen
described "simultaneous enveloping attacks ... to dislodge and destroy the
northeastward jutting block of Army Group Center," including a major thrust
to the southwest and Sychevka through the eastern face of the salient. He
explained the apparent inconsistencies in his estimate by admitting that, as
had often been the case before, the Soviets could probably muster more troops
for the offensive than anticipated by the Germans. Unknown to Gehlen, his
estimate was remarkably accurate. So also was his added comment that "the
Russians had often set goals too distant for the forces they used."47 The com-
ment described Zhukov to a tee. Where Gehlen did err, however, was in
underestimating the power of the southern strategic thrust.
In fact, within days, decisions were taken in Moscow to realize Gehlen's
estimate.
Stavka, Moscow, the Kremlin, 13 November 1942
With their inspection trips to the front concluded, on the evening of 12 No-
vember Zhukov and Vasilevsky returned to Moscow. The following morn-
ing, they met with Stalin and the State Defense Committee to present their
final plans, make last-minute modifications to force concentrations, and set
the exact attack dates. After extended discussions of Vasilevsky's plan, Stalin
accepted Vasilevsky's recommendation that Vatutin's Southwestern Front
commence its offensive on 19 November and Eremenko's Stalingrad Front
do so twenty-four hours later. Depending on the success of Operation Ura-
nus, the follow-on Operation Saturn could begin close to the originally planned
date of 10 December. Vasilevsky then asked Stalin for prompt release of 2d
Guards Army and its associated 2d Mechanized Corps from Stavka reserve
so that it could reach the Stalingrad region in time to participate in Opera-
tion Saturn. Stalin replied, "Let's wait to hear what Georgi Konstantinovich
has to
say."
Zhukov then reported on the situation in Kalinin and Western Fronts'
sectors. Confirming the continued need for the already approved delay, he
said that the onset of colder weather now permitted Operation Mars to begin
on 24 or 25 November. "In reality," said Zhukov, "this should work to our
advantage. If Uranus achieves quick success, the Germans are likely to begin
shifting armored reserves from Army Group Center's sector to the south
immediately, since it takes at least ten days to effect the move. If this is the
case, German forces will be weakened to the extent that the operation will
require fewer troops than I originally supposed. I can now adjust my troop
concentrations to achieve still more." At this point, Zhukov recommended
the change in plans he had been thinking about since his last visit to Moscow
at the end of October. Specifically, he requested permission to transfer Gen-
Prelude 39
eral Korchagin's 2d Mechanized Corps from 41st Army to 3d Shock Army
control. Rather than participating in the two-corps thrust on Sychevka from
the west, Korchagin's corps would exploit the attack on Velikie Luki and, just
perhaps, later spearhead a southerly joint drive by 3d Shock, 4th Shock, and
43d Army on Smolensk.
To justify this proposed change, Zhukov cited the likely weakening of
German armored reserves, the limited extent of the axis south of Belyi, which
he declared could not accommodate two full mechanized corps operating
abreast, and the capability of Solomatin's mechanized corps to do the job,
if properly reinforced. This Zhukov said he would do by adding two addi-
tional mechanized brigades and, perhaps, another separate tank brigade to
Solomatin's force. Zhukov exuded a confidence that impressed Stalin. He had
not seen him so animated since the discussions on the eve of the Moscow
winter offensive. Moreover, Stalin himself was inclined to agree with Zhukov,
since he also ached to end things once and for all in the central sector of the
front. He was also inwardly pleased by the healthy competition that was ap-
parent as Vasilevsky and Zhukov presented their complementary, yet com-
peting, plans.
To Vasilevsky's barely perceptible displeasure, Zhukov then added, "In
the event Uranus fails, we will still be in a good position to succeed in Mars,
but only if you [Stalin] maintain 2d Guards Army and other reinforcing
mobile corps in positions from which they can move to my support." Vasilevsky
knew this meant leaving 2d Guards Army at Tambov. When Stalin agreed,
Vasilevsky knew that he would have to carry out Operation Uranus with only
the forces he had at hand. Characteristically, he did not mention his options
should Zhukov's plan fail.
Stalin ended the session by approving both Vasilevsky's and Zhukov's plans
and the timetable for forthcoming operations. He also gave Zhukov permis-
sion to make the required modifications to his force configuration. Before
leaving the room, Zhukov had Ivanov notify Purkaev to begin immediate
movement of Korchagin's 2d Mechanized Corps to its new assembly areas
east of Velikie Luki. The following morning, both Zhukov and Vasilevsky
returned to the field to check attack preparations with their front and army
commanders.
XXXIX Panzer Corps Headquarters, Nastasino, 13 November 1942
An eerie quiet hung over the German front lines along the Vazuza River as
corps staff officers met with General von Arnim for their daily staff update.
The lull that had embraced the front since the violent artillery exchange late
on 7 November had persisted, and the assembled officers were both relieved
and perplexed. The simple urge for self-preservation prompted the feeling
40 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
of relief. Yet they knew from past experience that sooner or later the heavens
would fill with a rain of projectiles, the earth would shake violently around
them, and they would hear the menacing grinding of tank treads accompa-
nied by a chorus of guttural "Hurrahs" from hordes of advancing Soviet troops.
Inevitably, many would not live to see the next day. The tension was almost
unbearable.
All still placed great faith in German intelligence predictions, and they
well understood that the rains, which had begun in mid-October, had immo-
bilized the Soviets and put off the inevitable. But, they asked themselves, how
long would the respite last? Along the Ninth Army perimeter, Russian activ-
ity had virtually ceased. Artillery fire slackened, scouting and raids ended, as
did the forward movement of new units. Old units continued to occupy their
sectors, and Soviet radio transmissions used the old familiar call signs. The
continuing flow of deserters reported heightened defensive activity in their
ranks, and Soviet aircraft vigorously opposed German reconnaissance flights.
Through this impenetrable veil, German intelligence detected a curious
mixture of menacing and comforting data. Some troop movements were
detected, usually at night, but the glaring headlights of Russian vehicles, as
often as not, headed from front to rear as well as from rear to front. MAX
reported the arrival of 110 new tanks in Soviet 20th Army's sector across the
Vazuza River, and later, two fresh Russian divisions had arrived in this and
other critical sectors. The 102d Infantry Division reported the arrival of an
estimated twenty-two new Soviet artillery batteries by 10 November, and
Lange reasoned that the proportion of artillery to infantry was far too low.
Either the guns were dummies, or the increased artillery presaged the immi-
nent arrival of even more infantry.48
By 13 November, careful and painstaking German radio intercepts had
detected five new Russia army headquarters, three around Moscow and two
northeast of Rzhev. How many of these were new and how many had already
been in these locations could not, however, be determined. Two of these
armies were the 29th, which had disappeared from Kalinin Front's order of
battle a month before, and the 3d Tank Army, which had last been detected
during the Soviet attack north of Briansk in July. Another army, tentatively
identified as "Reserve," was 2d Guards in the Tambov region. Radio inter-
cepts also identified the new 6th "Stalin" Rifle Corps west of Belyi and ten-
tatively located several new mechanized formations in the Kalinin Front.
Front-line reports, however, confirmed that the Russian order of battle along
the front remained static.49
The XXXIX Panzer Corps situation map, which the assembled officers
studied, showed some confusing changes in Soviet troop concentrations oppo-
site the corps defending along the Vazuza River and in other sectors of the
Rzhev salient. The corps Ic reviewed these changes. As of 1 November, he
42 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
to come from First Panzer Army, then overextended deep in the Caucasus,
or from Army Group Center, far to the north. Should Uranus succeed, it would
do so quickly, and German reserves shifted from other sectors would arrive
too late to restore the situation. In fact, thought Zhukov, there is a very real
chance that the Germans will face the worst of circumstances, with reserves
on the road unable to affect either operation. Yes! Zhukov concluded, the
code names chosen for the operations were apt. The gods, the Bolshevik
general admitted, should smile down on Soviet arms.
The next day Zhukov met in the Kremlin with Vasilevsky, the State De-
fense Committee, and Stalin. With all attack preparations virtually completed,
the meeting's only purpose was to gain Stalin's final approval for the guns to
sound less than forty-eight hours later. The discussions were perfunctory and
brief. The General Staff, front and army staffs, and service and branch com-
manders had worked out the myriad of details associated with the massive
operations. Now all that was required was the word "go" from Stalin. Attack
orders would then be passed down through division, regiment, battalion,
company, and finally, in the final hours before the attack, to the common
tankist, artilleryman, sapper, and infantryman. Zhukov knew that, despite the
draconian security measures and the extensive efforts to conceal the attack,
officers and men alike, however low on the chain of command, would have
sensed the approach of battle. The soldier's instinct was a powerful force.
Officers and soldiers alike, they were all survivors, and survivors inevitably
knew; they felt the approach of battle. Ironically, thought Zhukov, that will
to survive actually drove them on, for victory would provide their only hope
of ultimate survival.
Stalin calmly uttered the fateful word his commanders awaited. Vasilev-
sky's attack would commence as planned on 19 and 20 November, and
Zhukov's forces would join the fray less than a week later. There was little
emotion in Stalin's words. What emotion he possessed had been drained from
his being in 1941. He understood he could launch immense legions into com-
bat. As before, those legions could succeed or fail, and hundreds of thousands
could perish in the process. Stalin did understand power and the costs and
consequences of unleashing military force. He had developed an acute ap-
preciation of consequence and, because of it, an immense tolerance of cost.
After all, these operations were transitional, and whether they succeeded or
failed, others would follow. The end was clear. The power of the Soviet state
and its military instrument was mightier than that of Germany. Whatever
occurred in Operations Uranus and Mars, that was reality, and in the end
reality would prevail.
Zhukov remained in Moscow after the Kremlin meeting. Stalin had not
required it, but Zhukov wanted to be with the Stavka and General Staff when
Vasilevsky's blow fell. He knew that the first hours of an offensive often indi-
Prelude 43
cated success or failure, and the nerve center of the Soviet military machine
was the best place to make that judgment. Thereafter, he could return to his
troops at Rzhev.
Early the following morning, Zhukov joined with anxious officers in the
General Staff to await the first word of Vasilevsky's progress. Promptly at 0720
hours, on the requisite signal Ogon' (fire), and on time, thousands of tubes of
Soviet artillery, mortars, and multiple rocket launchers opened a rain of fire
on Rumanian and German defensive positions. The fire lasted for one hour
and twenty minutes and was followed at 0848 hours by a final two-minute
volley. Promptly at 0850 hours, as the artillery lifted into the depth of the
enemy defenses, the infantry and infantry support tanks of Vatutin's 5th Tank
and 21st Armies began their assault on enemy forward defenses. In his mind,
Zhukov could imagine the imposing scene, and he silently wished that he were
present. Be patient, he told himself, your turn will come.
The reports came in at an agonizingly slow pace. The first reports made
it clear that, although light fog over the field of battle had obscured targets
from artillery observers, the sheer weight of fire made up for its inexactness.
The rain of fire plowed up huge furrows in the enemy's defensive positions
and vaporized dug-in enemy strong points, killing their occupants and ter-
rorizing soldiers in neighboring positions that had not been struck. The fog
also covered the advance of the massed infantry and tanks from enemy ob-
servation and the talons of dreaded enemy assault aircraft. Although opposi-
tion was heavy, by mid-morning the reports confirmed that Rumanian forward
defenses were crumbling, and General P. L. Romanenko, the 5th Tank Army
commander, had asked Vatutin for permission to commit his two tank corps
to combat. Vatutin assented, and at around 1300 hours, the 1st and 26th Tank
Corps went into action. They tore through remaining Rumanian defenses and
by late afternoon had advanced 16 kilometers into the Rumanians' operational
rear area. After them marched the cavalrymen of 8th Cavalry Corps, while to
the rear Soviet infantry mopped up the shattered remnants of the defending
Rumanian force.
When Zhukov left the General Staff in late afternoon, it was apparent to
him that Vasilevsky's forces had recorded an auspicious beginning. The key
question, thought Zhukov, was whether there were any German reserves
behind the Rumanian positions and, if so, how many? Soon, Zhukov was
en route by air to his Kalinin Front headquarters.
Headquarters, Kalinin Front, Toropets, 19-20 November 1942
When Zhukov arrived at Purkaev's headquarters in mid-evening, he shared
with Purkaev the favorable initial news from Stalingrad. Still animated over
the day's events, he immediately asked Purkaev and his staff to brief him on
44 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
the forthcoming operations. The comprehensive briefings, which lasted over
three hours, covered all front plans, including the attack on Velikie Luki.
Zhukov was especially attentive to the 3d Shock Army attack, and he inter-
rupted the briefing to ask whether 2d Mechanized Corps had as yet carried
out its new order to move westward and support Galitsky (K. N. Galitsky
commanded 3d Shock Army). Purkaev answered that the corps was en route
and added that, as Zhukov had requested, he had assigned two additional
mechanized brigades, the 47th and 48th, to cooperate with Solomatin's 2d
Mechanized Corps at Belyi.
Zhukov listened to the remainder of the briefings in relative silence, in-
terrupting only to advise this or that minor alteration. At the end of the ses-
sion, close to midnight, Zhukov approved all of the plans. Before he retired,
however, he read the latest dispatches from the Stalingrad region, but they
said little more than what he had known in early evening.
Army Group Center Headquarters, Smolensk, 21 November 1942
Field Marshal Guenther von Kluge, the commander of German Army Group
Center, seethed with apprehension. At no time during his long service on the
Eastern Front had events seemed so foreboding. Von Kluge, commander of
Fourth Army during the 1941 drive on Moscow, had succeeded to command
of the Army Group in mid-December during the darkest days of crisis, when
Hitler had replaced his predecessor, Fedor von Bock, for indecisiveness.
Hitler's orders were to stand fast before Moscow, and at tremendous sacri-
fice, von Kluge and his hard-pressed troops had done so. The Soviet tide had
receded, and the crisis had passed. Since the winter, von Kluge's forces had
whittled away at the patchwork of Soviet salients in the German lines, which
stood as monuments to that great Soviet winter offensive. By early summer, as
Army Group South plunged toward Stalingrad, most of the pesky Soviet salients
in Army Group Center's sector had been reduced, and von Kluge was plan-
ning to straighten the front one last time east of Viaz'ma in time to capitalize on
Army Group South's victory in the south with his own renewed attack on
Moscow. Instead, in mid-summer he had to contend with a series of vicious
local Soviet offensives, capped by Zhukov's major August assault on Rzhev.
The latest bulletin from OKH was potentially devastating in its conse-
quences. Not only had Army Group South been halted and forced to go over
to the defense at Stalingrad, the Soviets themselves, contrary to intelligence
predictions, had also launched a massive offensive only two days before, and
the news was already ominous. Von Kluge read the dispatch, catching only
key phrases as he thought of his own plight. "Rumanian defenses shattered
north and south of Stalingrad," "Russian armor advancing deep toward the
Don," "XXXXVIII Panzer Corps' single 22d Panzer Division heavily engaged
46 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
the cold harbinger of winter began to arrive.52 A series of weak cold fronts
passed south from the Baltic Sea, solidifying much of the mud. Then, on 13
November, there was a major cold snap, marked by temperatures in the low
twenties and cold crisp air. The ground quickly dried or froze, and vehicular
movement improved, permitting the necessary force and supply buildup
to resume. It would now be possible, concluded Konev, to meet the mid-
November attack date. How timely it would be! The latest reports from
Stalingrad indicated that Vasilevsky's armored columns would almost certainly
link up west of the city and encircle German Sixth Army. That, in turn, would
create ideal circumstances for the Rzhev assault. Like Zhukov, Konev was
sure that the Germans, who were never tardy in reacting to military exigen-
cies, would quickly begin dispatching their armored reserves south. Konev
noted that there were already reports from 20th Army intelligence that Ger-
man 5th Panzer Division might be withdrawing from the positions along the
Vazuza front that they had occupied since September. If so, it would vastly
improve his chances for success, for panzer divisions were far more formi-
dable obstacles than infantry divisions.
Konev could not dwell long on these distractions. There was too much at
hand to preoccupy him. His staff was in the final stages of coordinating at-
tack preparations within his subordinate armies. The task was imposing, and
he insisted on personally checking every detail. The attack plan itself was
complete, and specific formations had replaced the generic designations in
the original offensive concept. Major Generals N. I. Kiriukhin and V. S.
Polenov, the 20th and 31st Army commanders, had designated the nine rifle
divisions that would attack from the Osuga bridgehead, across the Vazuza
River, and through the narrow neck of land between the two rivers.53 These
divisions were regrouping into new jumping-off positions just to the rear, while
smaller divisional elements simulated defense in the front lines themselves.
Meanwhile, second echelon forces of Major General F. D. Zakharov's 8th
Guards Rifle Corps, and the Moscow 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division
and the two mobile corps of Major General V. V. Kriukov's Cavalry-Mechanized
Group were assembling east of the river. Most of the supporting artillery had
already moved into positions from which it could support the assault, but the
supply of these units with requisite ammunition was still under way.
On 18 November artillery forces had conducted fire registration under
the guise of harassing fires along the entire front south of Zubtsovto conceal
the fact that registration was going on. Two days later forward rifle divisions
began conducting reconnaissances-in-force, raids, and "searches" to deter-
mine last-minute changes in German tactical dispositions and to complement
an even broader observation effort to refine artillery targeting. This also took
place along a broad front and also out of sector to conceal the ultimate loca-
tions of the assault.
Prelude 47
It was an overwhelmingly complex task, thought Konev, to launch a suc-
cessful attack with such a mighty host; the least error could compromise the
plans and produce disaster. That was why operational security and the de-
ception plan were so vital. Security had improved immensely in the past year,
even if it had required ruthlessness and men's lives to convey this message to
commanders, staffs, and the troops. As a result, no longer did forces routinely
violate light discipline and stringent restraints on day movement. Now any
force movement required the specific approval of the army chief of staff.
Communications discipline had also improved, to a far greater degree than
before. Officers encoded their messages or observed complete radio silence.
This had enormous benefit, for disciplined communications permitted use
of signals for deceptive purposes, especially if the Germans routinely expected
to exploit lax Soviet communications procedures. Konev smiled to himself as
he thought of recent Soviet attempts to use communications to portray the
assembly of nonexistent armies north of Rzhev and south of the Vazuza front.
He wondered silently whether this attempt to deceive the Germans about
intended Soviet attack axes had actually worked. He hoped the reported
movement of German 1st and 5th Panzer Divisions was southward, for if it
was, they had taken the bait.
The front 's carefully worked out deception plan incorporated the premise
that the Germans expected an offensive against the Rzhev salient.54 They did
not know, however, the time and precise location of the assaults. Konev's plan,
therefore, sought to conceal the time of the attack and the main attack direc-
tions. The weather had assisted in this planning. It was reasonable for the
Germans to assume that a Soviet attack at Rzhev would precede any Stalingrad
venture because Rzhev was a likely Soviet priority objective and because an
assault at Rzhev would distract German attention and reserves from the south.
However, when the Rzhev attack did not occur and, instead, a major Soviet
effort materialized in the south, the Germans, who congenitally underesti-
mated Soviet strength and, hence, probably credited the Soviets with the
ability of carrying out only one major effort, would naturally assume this ef-
fort was in the south. In these circumstances, reasoned Konev, the Germans
were likely to consider any attack at Rzhev to be a diversion and would be
more inclined to dispatch reserves south to deal with the greater crisis.
Diversion or not, Stalingrad would distract the German's attention from
Rzhev and make it more difficult for the Germans to determine the time of
attack. The recurring Soviet artillery raids, periodic deliberate violations of
movement discipline, communications lapses, and staggered series of recon-
naissances in force were designed to increase German uncertainty. At the
same time, Konev sought to conceal the true location of his thrusts once they
materialized by simulating force attack concentrations in the north at the apex
of the Rzhev salient, south of Zubtsov on the direct rail and road routes to
Prelude 49
Army's most experienced armor commander, Lieutenant General P. S.
Rybalko. Rybalko's 3d Tank Army had been blooded in heavy fighting near
Bolkhov under Briansk Front control in July and August.56 Although unsuc-
cessful (and even clumsy) in that operation, the army had gained immensely
valuable experience, and now, fully refitted, rested, and reinforced, it camped
fitfully west of Kaluga under Western Front control. What a magnificent sight
it would be, mused Konev, when Rybalko's tanks rolled into Viaz'ma, an ob-
jective that had eluded Soviet capture for over a year. The city of Viaz'ma, as
much as the existence of Army Group Center, personified Soviet frustration.
Yes! Rybalko was the appropriate man to take the city.
As enticing as this image was, however, Konev knew that its realization
remained a dream, one whose fulfillment could now be imagined, but a dream
nevertheless. In his command post on the evening of 23 November 1942,
Konev resolved to pursue that dream with all the forces and energy at his
disposal.
Headquarters, 20th Army, Pesochnia, 24 November 1942
Less than twenty-four hours remained until the gods would unleash their fury
over German positions along the Vazuza. With his offensive preparations
nearing completion, Major General N. I. Kiriukhin, 20th Army commander,
talked quietly with his chief of staff and Commissar A. A. Lobachev as they
stared at the large-scale operations map on the command post wall. As the
map indicated, planning was complete (see Map 4). On it the army staff had
carefully calculated in large black boxes the correlation of opposing forces in
each offensive sector. The indices boded well. In manpower, 20th Army's
115,000 men outnumbered their German foes by a ratio of better than three
to one.57 In armor, the number was even more favorable, and in artillery the
ratio was overwhelming. Somehow, Kiriukhin was not comforted. He had seen
similar ratios before, and time and time again experience had demonstrated
that numbers were not everything. However, today, he told himself, we are '
better prepared than ever before.
Despite the comforting numbers, weather was again on Kiriukhin's and
Lobachev's minds. Another cold front had approached, and heavy, snow-laden
clouds hung ominously over the Vazuza River valley. The temperature was
minus five degrees Celsius. The fields and forests eastward from the river
were covered with a thin coating of snow that made the deep dark mud of
recent days only a memory. The new burst of cold air meant that the worst
fears of a new thaw would not be realized. It also meant, however, that the
November clouds, snow, and fog would shroud the river valley across which
the infantry and armor would advance and conceal the myriad of German
defensive positions that would contest their advance.
Map 4. Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Sychevka Sector
Prelude 51
For three days before, after each of his first echelon division commanders
had completed a personal, on-the-spot visual reconnaissance of his division's
sector, a required part of the preparation process called by the Soviets
rekognostsirovka (commander's reconnaissance), General Kiriukhin visited
with each commander at his forward command post. With the division's chief
of staff present, the two commanders reviewed attack preparations and ad-
dressed special problems that might arise during the attack in each sector.
The strongest German defenses were located in the narrow four-kilometer
sector between the Osuga and Vazuza rivers. There, the defenses were an-
chored on the fortified villages of Vasel'ki and Grediakino and consisted of
two well-prepared defense positions. The forwardmost position was up to one
kilometer deep and formed two defensive lines. These lines ran from the
northern edge of Vasel'ki across farmland and up onto the ridge between the
rivers, through light woods, to a small wooded knoll north of Grediakino, and
down to the western bank of the Vazuza River. Along this line, the German
195th Infantry Regiment's (102d Infantry Division) lead battalions were
lodged in a series of strong points constructed around key farm villages. In
between the strong points, German companies occupied ten to fifteen well-
constructed pillboxes and bunkers per square kilometer and firing points for
machine guns and small groups of infantry every twenty-five to thirty meters.
These positions were laced together with communications trenches. Just to
the rear were dug-in firing positions for machine guns and supporting mor-
tars and a web of cut-off positions and communications trenches connecting
the forward positions with the rear. Less than one kilometer to the rear and
along the next high ground was a second defensive line, consisting primarily
of bunkers and pillboxes equipped with antitank guns and infantry from the
lead battalion's reserve companies, supported by more mortars dug in on the
reverse slope.58
Further south, along the banks of the Vazuza between Grediakino and
Khlepen', the German first defensive line exploited the obstacle value of the
river itself. Forward battalions of the German 14th Infantry Regiment (78th
Infantry Division) occupied battalion strong points in Zevalovka and Khlepen'
and smaller strong points in between. Four to five kilometers to the rear, the
Germans formed a second defensive position, which traversed the entire sec-
tor and was anchored on battalion strong points in Maloe Petrakovo, Bol'shoe
Kropotovo, Maloe Kropotovo, Podosinovka, and Zherebtsovo. The open ter-
rain between these fortified villages was covered by interlocking fires and,
undoubtedly, deadly preplanned artillery concentrations. Key armor ap-
proaches into both defensive positions were well covered by obstacles and
antitank and antipersonnel mine fields.
The murky intelligence picture of opposing forces troubled General
Kiriukhin. He knew that the German 78th Infantry Division had begun re-
52 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
lieving 5th Panzer Division along the Vazuza, but he did not know how com-
plete that relief was. Therefore, he did not know how many tanks and Ger-
man APCs (armored personnel carriers) strengthened the German forward
defenses or how many tanks were in tactical reserve positions. In fact, some
reports claimed that the 5th Panzer Division had been withdrawn altogether
and been replaced by infantry elements of Motorized Division Grossdeutschland.
He certainly hoped so.
Major General F. A. Bobrov's 42d Guards and Colonel B. B. Gorodovi-
kov's 251st Rifle Divisions were to assault German positions at and north-
west of Grediakino, while Colonel G. P. Karamyshev's 326th Rifle Division
pinned down German forces in Vasel'la.59 Kiriukhin assigned two tank bri-
gades from the now disbanded 8th Tank Corps to attack with and support
the infantry. Once the attack had succeeded in breaking through the Ger-
man first defensive position and seizing the second, one element of General
Kriukov's Cavalry-Mechanized Group would advance across the Vazuza and
enter combat along the ridgeline seized by the 42d Guards Rifle Division. As
had been the practice since mid-summer 1942, the infantry assaults would
be led by companies and battalions of "the condemned," penal companies
and battalions formed from criminals and the politically unreliable.60 The
utility of this practice bothered Kiriukhin, for he was not sure how these troops
would perform. Kiriukhin was also concerned about German positions on the
northern bank of the Osuga River in the depth of the German defenses, which,
if not suppressed by Soviet artillery and 31st Army's attack, could deliver
devastating fire against his force's right flank throughout their advance. He
hoped the fog would rise sufficient for Soviet artillerymen to identify and
engage those critical targets.
Further south, Major General G. D. Mukhin's 247th and Colonel P. F.
Berestov's 331st Rifle Divisions, supported by three tank brigades, were to
assault across the mostly frozen Vazuza River between Trostino and Pechora
to seize the German strong points at Zevalovka and Prudy. Their headlong
assault was to propel them through German forward defenses in time to link
up with their right flank neighbor's attack on the second German defensive
position during the second day of the advance. After the second defensive
positions fell, four rifle divisions would quickly cross the Rzhev—Sychevka
railroad line by day's end, the 326th Rifle Division would seize the "corner
post" position at Vasel'la, and the 331st would reduce the German strong point
of Khlepen'. The 326th, 42d Guards, and 251st Rifle Divisions would then
wheel to the northwest to roll up German defenses, and the 247th would pivot
to the southwest to form a fifteen- to eighteen-kilometer breech in German
o
defenses and support commitment of the cavalry-mechanized group into the
German operational rear. The timing of this initial advance was crucial, and,
in turn, Kiriukhin realized that meeting the stringent timetable depended, in
Prelude 53
large measure, on the ability of supporting artillery to suppress German fir-
ing systems. That is why he had personally checked artillery positioning and
targeting. He could not, however, do anything about the fog.
The artillery available to Kiriukhin's army was imposing.61 It included one
of the few newly created artillery divisions in the Soviet force inventory with
five organic artillery regiments, three howitzer artillery regiments, three gun
artillery regiments, an antitank regiment, one mortar regiment, a guards
mortar regiment, and five guards mortar battalions. The latter included three
newly formed heavy guards mortar battalions (equipped with BM-31 rock-
ets), which had been fielded specifically to support offensive operations.
Kiriukhin's fifty-three regiments of artillery were to pulverize the German
forward defenses, first with preplanned barrages and artillery concentrations
and then with adjusted fire on targets throughout the depth of the enemy
defense. Kiriukhin understood, however, the tentative nature of preplanned
fires and the importance of accurate adjusted fire during the penetration. He
also knew how critical good visibility was to the delivery of accurate fires and,
hence, the success of the offensive. That was why he was so preoccupied with
the lingering fog.
Late on the third day of these visits, Kiriukhin traveled to the headquar-
ters of his second echelon 8th Guards Rifle Corps and 1st Guards Motorized
Rifle Division. Both forces had the mission of supporting and exploiting the
initial penetration. Major General F. D. Zakharov's corps consisted of the
26th Guards Rifle Division, the 148th and 150th Rifle Brigades, and two
supporting tank brigades. It was to follow the advancing first echelon, mop
up bypassed German resistance, expand the south flank of the penetration
toward Sychevka, and then follow and support exploiting mobile forces.62 They
were to go into action at the end of the first day of combat and before the
commitment of the mobile group. Simultaneously, Major General V. A.
Reviakhin's 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division, supported by another tank
brigade, would provide similar support for Soviet troops advancing along the
northern flank of the penetration.
The day before, on 23 November, Kiriukhin had visited the headquarters
of his cavalry-mechanized group, which was located near the village of Lukovinki
just east of Karamzino and eight kilometers from the Vazuza. The two corps
that constituted the group were dispersed in assembly areas spread eight kilo-
meters northward through the patchy forests. Although excellent march routes
connected these assembly areas with the front, the timely and coordinated
forward movement of these imposing cavalry and tank forces in synchroniza-
tion with the infantry advance was no mean task. Therefore, the movement plan
was detailed and complex. Kiriukhin knew that, as in the past, stronger than
anticipated enemy resistance or nature's whims could disrupt even the most
carefully laid plans. As a result, he spent hours with the group commander,
54 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Major General V. V. Kriukov, commander of 2d Guards Cavalry Corps, and
Colonel P. M. Arman, commander of 6th Tank Corps, discussing how the plan
would unfold in every imagined circumstance. Kriukov commanded the group
because of his greater experience and because the tank corps' regular com-
mander, Major General A. P. German, was recuperating from a recent illness.63
Kiriukhin sorely missed the experienced tank corps commander.
The cavalry-mechanized group's paper strength was most imposing.
Arman's tank corps consisted of the 22d, 100th, and 200th Tank Brigades,
the 6th
Motorized
Rifle
Brigade,
and the
llth
Separate Guards Mortar
(Katiusha) Battalion, while Kriukov's cavalry corps contained the 3d and 4th
Guards and 20th Cavalry Divisions, the 5th Separate Cavalry Artillery Bat-
talion, the 2d Separate Antitank Artillery Battalion, and the 151st Mortar
Regiment. The combined force numbered 21,011 men and 16,155 horses. It
was armed with 13,906 rifles and carbines, 2,667 light machine guns, 95 heavy
machine guns, 33 antiaircraft machine guns, and 384 antitank rifles, and sup-
ported by 48 76mm regimental and divisional filed guns, 64 120mm mortars,
71 82mm mortars, 226 50mm mortars, 48 45mm antitank guns, 12 37mm
o '
antiaircraft guns, and 170 tanks. Half of the latter were medium T-34 mod-
els, and the remainder was a mixture of Russian and foreign light tanks (such
as British Lend-Lease Matildas).64 The group's tanks, with the more than 360
infantry support tanks available to 20th Army, should have been more than
enough armor to guarantee success.
Ö O
The trick was to apply this force in timely fashion at the required point to
achieve the desired effect. Aside from Vasilevsky's apparent recent success
in the south, Soviet forces had never before performed that feat. The deli-
cate successful commitment of a large cavalry and mechanized force into a
penetration required well-coordinated movement and a proper mix of the
attacking forces so that they could survive in combat. Kriukov planned to form
three march columns, each consisting of cavalry and armor, all of which would
enter combat simultaneously along three separate march routes. On the
group's right flank, the first column, made up of the 3d Guards Cavalry
Division and 100th Tank Brigade, would cross the Vazuza River north of
Grediakino and concentrate west of Vedernikovo. The group's reserve col-
umn, with 4th Guards Cavalry Division and 5th Cavalry Artillery Battalion,
would follow 3d Guards Cavalry Division and protect its right flank. In the
group's center, the 200th Tank Brigade and 13th Guards Cavalry Regiment
would advance south of Kobylino and concentrate near Arestovo, and, on the
group's left flank, the 20th Cavalry Division and 22d Tank Brigade would
advance north of Prudy and concentrate near Bobrovka and Kholm. Finally,
the 6th Motorized Rifle Brigade, which had no armor of its own and few
trucks, would follow 4th Guards Cavalry Division and support and protect
the group's right flank.65
Prelude 55
Once they had occupied concentration areas west of the Vazuza River in
areas just cleared of Germans by assaulting forward rifle divisions, the cavalry-
mechanized group would form for combat and exploit toward Sychevka and
Chertolino in accordance with thefront mission. The mission of Arman's tank
corps read as follows: "6th Tank Corps with 1st Bicycle-Motorcycle Brigade
will deliver an attack from the Grigor'evo-Timonino-Zevalovka region toward
Viazovka, Barsuki, and Kholodnia with the mission, in cooperation with 20th
Army, of striking a blow from the southwest to secure Sychevka and block
the approach of enemy reserves to Sychevka. . . . Close up to the Vazuza River
on the night before the attack."66 Kriukov's order was similar, except his ulti-
mate objective was to exploit into the Medved' Forest and advance north-
ward on Chertolino.
As Kiriukhin sat with Lobachev and his chief of staff, they imagined
Kriukov's horses and armor then moving forward, silently they hoped, into
jumping-off positions to the rear of infantry, which was also massing on the
eastern banks of the Vazuza. As they spoke, most of the personnel of the army's
operations section were in the field monitoring and assisting with the sensi-
tive move. The large map on the command post wall was vividly scarred with
the maze of red arrows denoting the many movement routes that had to be
traversed in silence this night into the intricate pattern of squares denoting
the myriad of specific force assembly areas. Kiriukhin thought to himself,
surely the tens of thousands of men in his army then moving in the night will
raise German suspicions. But even if they do, he quickly added, it is already
irrelevant. Tomorrow the blow will fall, and there is little the Germans can
do about it before it does. The thought passed fleetingly though Kiriukhin's
mind that the same scene was being replicated that night in the headquar-
ters of other Soviet armies around the vast circumference of the silent Rzhev
salient.
Forward Command Post, 41st Army, Ramenka, 24 November 1942
On the evening of 24 November, about 110 kilometers west of the Vazuza front,
the 105,000 men and over 400 tanks of 41st Army were also completing their
offensive preparations.67 Infantry were occupying forward jumping-off posi-
tions, artillery had completed its painstaking displacement into new firing
positions, and the over 200 tanks of 1st Mechanized Corps were carefully
negotiating the almost totally frozen swamps, which stretched from the rear
area to the corps' final assembly area. It was no mean task, for although 41st
Army had no river to assault across, its attack sector was hemmed in by miser-
able terrain located just to the southwest of Belyi (see Map 5). Forweeks, the
army had postured for a possible attack further south through better ter-
rain astride the major road network leading from the front southward to
i
Map 5. Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Belyi Sector
Prelude 57
Dukhovshchina. There, both 41st and 43d Armies had simulated the concen-
tration of troops and armor in the hopes that the Germans would weaken their
defenses in the Belyi sector.68 That was why the army headquarters was located
at Ust'e, just to the east of the Dukhovshchina road and far to the southwest of
Belyi, rather than to the rear of the projected main attack sector.
Planning for the attack had been a difficult task, and even now, on the
eve of the attack, some key questions remained to be resolved. That was why
the three men so critical for the attack's success now met at the log forward
command post in a clearing west of Belyi and north of seemingly intermi-
nable forested swamps rather than at the more comfortable army head-
quarters at Ust'e. The three men were Major General G. F. Tarasov, the
thirty-six-year-old commander of 41st Army, Major General S. I. Povetkhin,
commander of the 6th Stalin Volunteer Siberian Rifle Corps, and Major
General M. D. Solomatin, commander of 1st Mechanized Corps. The forces
they commanded were relatively fresh. The army had been formed in May
1942, and German Fedorovich Tarasov, a former NKVD officer and com-
mander of the 249th Rifle Division in 1941, was its first and only commander.
Povetkhin's Siberian corps had formed in August and was granted the hon-
orific "Stalin" because its soldiers were presumably highly motivated volun-
teers. Povetkhin was a veteran commander who had led 47th Rifle Corps
during the harrowing battles in Belorussia in summer 1941. Solomatin's
mechanized corps was among the first of the new reinforced mechanized
corps formed in August 1942. The Soviets hoped the stronger mechanized
corps, which possessed a better balance of tank and motorized infantry than
the older tank corps, would be capable of better sustaining deep operations.
Tarasov's, Povetkhin's, and Solomatin's forces would receive their baptism
by fire in the Belyi sector. Although the three generals were considered to
be highly motivated and competent combat veterans, all would be sorely tested
in their new positions of authority.
Front commander Purkaev had assigned the three their initial missions
several weeks before, but changes in assigned forces, specifically the reas-
signment of 2d Mechanized Corps westward, had made Tarasov's task more
difficult. Although his mission was still straightforward, it would now be more
complicated to fulfill. Tarasov's army was to penetrate German defenses south
of Belyi, exploit to the west and north, link up with 20th Army forces at the
base of the Rzhev salient, and help reduce German forces encircled to the
north. Originally, Tarasov and his subordinates were convinced that the origi-
nal force of two assigned mechanized corps could easily accomplish their
missions. However, they were less sure that one corps could do so. There-
fore, many issues remained unresolved.
Tarasov still planned to use Povetkhin's rifle corps to penetrate German
tactical defenses.69 Solomatin's mechanized corps would then exploit to the
58 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
west to perform its primary function of linking up with 20th Army's mobile
forces. The question was how could Solomatin protect his southern flank from
German counterattacks and assist the infantry in encircling German forces
at Belyi while still performing his primary mission? Try as they did to reach a
solution, without the second mechanized corps the problem defied resolu-
tion. Zhukov thought he had provided a tentative solution when he took
Korchagin's 2d Mechanized Corps away from 41st Army. He had reassigned
two separate mechanized brigades (the 47th and 48th) to Tarasov, but that
only complicated matters. Solomatin wanted the brigades for his corps, but
Tarasov argued that the ensuing force of ten mobile brigades and regiments
would be too large for Solomatin to control. Besides, Tarasov wanted to hold
the two brigades as an army reserve, to employ at the most propitious mo-
ment during the offensive. In the end, Tarasov prevailed, and the brigades
remained in reserve. Consequently, Solomatin developed multiple plans for
the employment of his corps and never really had a clear idea as to how he
would perform his primary mission.
Other more routine problems had plagued 41st Army offensive planners.
Army forces had to assemble for the attack in the miserable terrain west of
Belyi and then attack well-prepared German defensive positions along the
key road running northward into Belyi, an artery that the Germans had clung
to tenaciously throughout vicious fighting the previous winter. Moreover, the
town of Belyi was a veritable fortress in its own right that had also held out
against repeated fierce Soviet winter assaults and would now severely impede
the Russian advance. The Belyi rollbaum (main road) ran south from the
town and then intersected with a main road southward from Toropets and
Zapadnaia Dvina through Dukhovshchina to lartsevo. The road was heavily
defended, and to its west lay vast expanses of forested swamp, which were
now fully or partially frozen. Communications west of the road were terrible,
and that made the Soviet supply buildup and force concentration extremely
difficult. The Germans had cut down the forests to a distance of up to two
kilometers along both sides of the road to provide better visibility and fields
of fire. The Germans converted all of the interminable villages that lined the
road into veritable fortresses, anchoring their initial defensive line. Just to the
east of the road was the Vishenka River. Although the river was fordable and,
moreover, frozen, its sharply descending banks and adjacent swamps also
formed a major obstacle for both infantry and tanks. Compounding the ob-
stacle value of the river, to the east lay a dense network of fortified villages in
open country and along the fringe of a major forest that stretched further to
the east. Soviet forces would have to penetrate this fortified defensive belt
and forest before they could reach the next open terrain, which lay along the
Nacha and Lebastino rivers further to the west. Soviet initial objectives were
located beyond the Nacha, along a German communications route running
Prelude 59
into Belyi from the southeast from the village and rail station of Vladimirskoe.
Intelligence detected a second German defensive belt along these rivers.70
Terrain considerations and associated German defenses made Vladimirskoe
the focus of all three commanders' attention. They agreed that they had to
overcome the second German defensive belt rapidly and seize the key rail
and road junction quickly in order for the operation to succeed. More im-
portant, they had to do so before German armored reserves could block the
Soviet advance.
By the night of 24 November, Tarasov, Povetkhin, and Solomatin had
reached agreement on a plan for doing so. Povetkhin's corps would initiate
the penetration after an extensive artillery preparation by Tarasov's twelve
artillery regiments had pulverized German forward defenses. Army intelli-
gence had determined that a single regiment of the German 246th Infantry
Division defended in the intended main attack sector, backed up by an under-
strength motorized regiment of unknown designation in camps east of Belyi
and some mobile reserves probably positioned along the communications
routes near Vladimirskoe.71 Povetkhin planned to commit Colonel N. O.
Gruz's 150th Rifle Division against the strongest German sector just south of
Belyi and Colonel A. E. Vinogradov's 75th and Colonel I. P. Repin's 74th Rifle
Brigades against German forces defending further south. Povetkhin held
Colonel I. P. Sivakov's 78th and Colonel Lobanov's 91st Rifle Brigades in
second echelon, ready to cooperate with exploiting mobile forces and widen
and deepen the breech in German defenses. On the right flank, Colonel
E. V. Dobrovol'sky's 17th Guards Rifle Division would seize Demiakhi from
German 2dLuflwaffe Field Division defenders, roll up the German defenses
in the south, and cover 41st Army's right flank as it advanced into the depths
of the German defense.
Given the strength and complexity of the German defenses, Solomatin
had developed two variants for committing his mechanized corps.72 If
Povetkhin broke cleanly through German forward defenses, he planned to
lead his advance with his three mechanized brigades, each spearheaded by
its own tank regiment with infantry assaulting on board the tanks. In this case
his two tank brigades would advance in corps second echelon behind the flanks
of his advancing force and ready to maneuver at any moment to exploit the
mechanized brigades' success. In the event of strong initial German resis-
tance, Solomatin planned to attack with a single mechanized brigade led by
its tank regiment in the center and his two tank brigades on the flanks. His
remaining mechanized brigades would remain in second echelon and follow
the attacking tank brigades. In both variants, the corps' lead brigades were to
cross the Nacha River and seize Shapkovo, Vladimirskoe, and Matrenino by
the end of the third day of operations. At that point, given the wide disper-
sion of his lead brigades, Solomatin hoped that Tarasov would have already
60 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
relinquished the two fresh separate mechanized brigades to his control. Other-
wise, he was in a quandary as to how he would be able to perform his subse-
quent mission. On the other hand, Solomatin was pleased that Tarasov had
assigned the bulk of the army's six antitank artillery regiments to his corps.
As he compared notes with Tarasov and Povetkhin, Solomatin knew that
his forces were already moving into their jumping-off positions in the eastern
fringes of the swamps, five to six kilometers from the forward German defenses.
They would exit from those positions early the next morning while the din of
the artillery and air preparation covered the rumbling sounds of the corps' 240
tanks. Solomatin wondered how his troops were reacting to this unexpected
night movement. Draconian security measures had been imposed to keep the
attack preparations secret. Nevertheless, thought Solomatin, soldierly instincts
would certainly raise suspicions among the troops over what was about to
occur. Everything possible had been done to dull the soldiers' sensibilities.
Only the deputy corps commander, the chief of staff, the brigade and artil-
lery regiment commanders, and several key operations officers knew about
the offensive, and they only knew what they needed to know. All written
operational documents were prepared at corps headquarters, and the chief
of staff retained only a single copy of them in his safe. All subsequent orders
from headquarters were delivered orally. Of necessity, as the date of the offen-
sive approached, regimental and battalion commanders were informed about
the forthcoming attack, but only their precise role in it. The soldiers them-
selves were notified only after they had reached their final jumping-off posi-
tions, a few hours before the attack. Solomatin knew, however, that despite
these security measures, those who had fought in and survived earlier battles
would instinctively know •what the next morning would bring. Solomatin
thought to himself, "I wish that I did."
Headquarters, 22d Army, Tagoshcha, 24 November 1942
While 20th and 41st Armies readied their major attacks against the base of
the Rzhev salient, 22d and 39th Armies prepared to launch important sec-
ondary attacks against the west flank and nose of the salient (see Map 6).
Although Zhukov categorized Major General V. A. lushkevich's attack as
secondary, he assigned 22d Army the new 3d Mechanized Corps, which was
commanded by one of the Red Army's most famous tank force commanders,
Major General M. E. Katukov. Katukov had earned his spurs as successful
commander of a tank brigade during the Moscow battles, and in 1942 he had
formed and led the 1st Tank Corps.73 When the Soviets formed mechanized
corps in September 1942, Stalin personally appointed Katukov to command
the new 3d Mechanized Corps. Katukov requested and retained much of his
old tank corps staff and his old tank brigades in the new formation, which
Map 6. Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Luchesa River Sector
62 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
gave the organization a battle-tested nucleus. Also joining Katukov's new
command as corps commissar was N. I. Popel, who would remain with
Katukov throughout the war and subsequently chronicle the wartime march
of both Katukov and his famous 1st Tank Army.
Vasilii Aleksandrovich lushkevich, the forty-five-year-old commander of
22d Army, was himself an experienced combat veteran who had begun his
military service during the Civil War. When the Germans launched Opera-
tion Barbarossa, he commanded a division and, later in the summer, the
Western Front's 44th Rifle Corps. Appointed by Zhukov to command 22d
Army in August 1941, he then commanded 31st Army during the Moscow
counteroffensive and 22d Army, again, after April 1942.
The eve of Operation Mars found General lushkevich at his army for-
ward command post near Tagoshcha, a small village on the swampy banks of
the Tagoshcha River five kilometers south of the Luchesa River. Communi-
cations were extremely bad in 22d Army's sector. One macadam road, which
ran southward from Nelidovo on the Rzhev—Zapadnaia Dvina—Velikie Luki
rail line to Belyi, paralleled the western flank of the Rzhev salient. lushkevich's
main headquarters at Smolianki was positioned along this road nine kilometers
south of Nelidovo, but it was too far from the front from which to control
operations. Halfway between Nelidovo and Belyi, several dirt roads extended
eastward on both sides of the Luchesa River valley through the forested
swamps toward Soviet forward positions. lushkevich's forward command post
was located along the most southerly of these frozen mud tracks, six kilometers
from the front lines.
There, in mid-afternoon, General lushkevich was holding last-minute dis-
cussions with Major General M. E. Katukov of 3d Mechanized Corps and
the commanders of the 185th and 238th Rifle Divisions, Colonels M. F.
Andriushchenko and I. V. Karpov. The relatively low strength of 22d Army,
which initially numbered about 80,000 men and 270 tanks supported by
7 artillery regiments and 3 antitank regiments, belied the army's excellent
offensive possibilities, for German defenses opposite the army were also quite
weak.74 Intelligence had detected elements of one regiment of the German
86th Infantry Division defending the Luchesa valley approach and a regiment
of the 110th Infantry Division defending along a broad front north and south
of Vetka. Somewhere to the rear lurked elements of Grossdeutschland
Motorized Division, but intelligence correctly assumed this division would
have to serve as a reserve for German XLI Panzer Corps and XXIII Army
Corps, deployed north and south of Olenino.
Characteristically, lushkevich chose to attack at the boundary of the two
defending German divisions. He also implemented an army deception plan
that, in addition to normal measures to insure secrecy, incorporated an
Prelude 63
offensive simulation on his army's left flank. There, Major General V. N.
Dalmatov concentrated two of his 362d Rifle Division's regiments in attack
positions in a small salient south of the Nelidovo-Olenino road. In any event,
this concentration would be useful when the remainder of 22d Army went
over to the offensive after the successful initiation of Mars.
Like its neighbors, 22d Army had to conduct extensive regrouping of its
limited forces during the days preceding the offensive to concentrate requi-
site strength on the Luchesa front. Over a period of two nights, Katukov's
armor moved forward from positions near army headquarters south of
Nelidovo into assembly areas eight kilometers from the front. At the same
time, Colonel M. F. Andriushchenko, the 185th Rifle Division commander,
concentrated his 280th and 1319th Rifle Regiments in a two-kilometer sec-
tor just south of the Luchesa, leaving a single remaining regiment to cover
his remaining fifteen kilometers of front to the north.75 Colonel I. V. Karpov
of the 238th Rifle Division did likewise, concentrating all three of his regi-
ments on Andriushchenko's right flank, leaving a single battalion to cover his
long right flank. The two-division force was to attack early the next morning,
penetrate German defenses, and pave the way for commitment of Katukov's
mechanized corps up the Luchesa valley.
Katukov's corps, arrayed in double echelon with his two tank brigades
forward, would follow the infantry and race forward to seize the town of
Starukhi, his first objective, by the end of the first day of operations. By the
end of the third day, his corps was to have reached the main road and Ger-
man communications route running from Olenino southward to Belyi.76 Once
astride the key artery, half of Katukov's corps was to lunge northward toward
Olenino and the other half southward to Belyi. Given the estimated enemy
strength, the task should have been relatively easy. So easy, in fact, that at
the last minute General lushkevich requested and received permission from
the front to initiate the assault early, at 1600 on 24 November, with an ar-
mored reconnaissance in force.
During the afternoon meeting, once the intelligence briefing was over
and Katukov had assured lushkevich that his forces were ready to go into
action, the army commander proposed to capitalize on German weakness
by conducting an armored reconnaissance in force. If the reconnaissance
were successful, he reasoned, it might unhinge the German defense even
before the army main force attacked.77 Anxious to begin the fray, Katukov
agreed. lushkevich asked Katukov which was the best of his designated
second echelon brigades. Katukov responded without hesitation, "Babad-
zhanian's 3d Mechanized Brigade." "So he will initiate the attack," said
lushkevich, "and at 1600 hours today." Although he was somewhat taken
aback by the audacity of the idea and was also aware that Colonel A. Kh.
Prelude 65
behind a small table. As he passed the table, the officer murmured, "Don't
think that I am to blame." Without answering, Babadzhanian followed his escort
into a second room. In that well-lit room, behind a larger table, sat the broad-
shouldered and light-haired figure of Lieutenant General V. A. lushkevich.
lushkevich quietly spoke, "So it is you, Babadzhanian?" Babadzhanian
reported, "Colonel Babadzhanian, commander of 3d Mechanized Brigade of
3d Mechanized Corps." lushkevich gazed attentively at the brigade com-
mander and, in the same quiet tone, said, "That is clear . . . and why did you
not carry out your combat order?" Babadzhanian responded, "I could not carry
it out!" "Explain!" the general said quietly. Babadzhanian repeated the words
he had uttered earlier to the liaison officer and added, "If I had succeeded
and begun the attack at midnight, by morning the entire brigade would have
been shot up by the enemy. I prefer to preserve the brigade." Peering at
Babadzhanian with a note of astonishment, lushkevich looked at those around
him and said, "Interesting . . . this sort of business smells of a tribunal. Inter-
o
esting!" he repeated, "But where is your brigade now?" Babadzhanian an-
swered, "With its full complement at the jumping-off position for the attack,
comrade general." lushkevich went on, "And tomorrow you will be able to
break through the defense?" "If you provide me time for preparation and
organization of the penetration," answered Babadzhanian. "How much day-
light is required to do this?" "I think about an hour will be sufficient," said
the brigade commander.81
"When does it become light today . . . ? At 0900? Well then . . . Colonel
Babadzhanian, commander of 3d Mechanized Corps' 3d Mechanized Bri-
gade, the attack will begin at 1200 hours. I myself will watch its course."
lushkevich stood up from the table, walked up to Babadzhanian, and added,
"Together with Western Front forces, we will conduct a rather serious
operation—we have to liquidate the enemy Rzhev grouping. We must pene-
trate the enemy defense, at all costs. It would be too costly for us to go
around the positions and not penetrate even a meter. We place the great-
est hope in your mechanized corps. And rifle forces will accompany you. I
wish you success. Excuse me for taking you from your brigade." Shaking
his hand, lushkevich suddenly added, "But why are you lacking your weapon?"
Babadzhanian glanced sidewise at his "bodyguards." "Aha, they were hasty!"
lushkevich now understood, and he added, "Now return it, and when you
have excused yourself, do not forget to leave the vehicle to the colonel—to
return to the brigade."82
In his memoirs, Babadzhanian wistfully added, "All such things occur
in
war."
Despite the failure of lushkevich's attempt to accelerate the offensive
timetable, further preparations proceeded on schedule. All were convinced
the morning would produce spectacular success.
66 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Forward Command Post, 39th Army, Krasnaia Gora,
24 November 1942
39th Army's forward command post was situated in a grove of trees east of
the road running southward from Selizharevo to Molodoi Tud and Olenino,
fifteen kilometers from the front and, not coincidentally, along the proposed
axis of the army's main attack. It was difficult to find a quiet location for the
CP in the region because it sat just forward of the main logistical umbilical of
Soviet forces deployed along the western flank of the Rzhev salient. With the
roads now frozen, truck and vehicular traffic clogged virtually every commu-
nications artery as the offensive buildup continued. While this made his re-
grouping more difficult, the army commander, General Zygin, recognized that
it probably confused the Germans as well. That extensive logistical umbilical
served five of the Kalinin Front's armies as well as an impressive number of
supporting units. That was one of the reasons why the army's (and front's)
objectives were so important. Seizure of the town of Molodoi Tud and Olenino
to the south, even if Mars did not succeed in full measure, would give the
Soviets control of the upper reaches of the Volga River and the Rzhev
Olenino-Velikie Luki road and rail system. This would reduce logistical sup-
port distances of Kalinin Front forces by at least half.
Major General A. I. Zygin, 39th Army commander, had also chosen
Krasnaia Gora as his command post because it was centrally located on an
army front that extended almost fifty kilometers across the apex of the Rzhev
salient (see Map 7). The front was well defined by key terrain. It ran along
the Molodoi Tud River, eastward from its headwaters north of Olenino in a
large sweeping arc to its junction with the Volga River and then southward
along the Volga into a bridgehead on the Volga's south bank, which Soviet
forces had seized in late summer. Army forces occupied the northern bank
of the Molodoi Tud throughout its length except for the pesky German bridge-
head on the northern bank at the town of Molodoi Tud itself. Southwest of
the town, the Soviets had a small foothold on the river's south bank opposite
their bridgehead across the Volga, some twenty kilometers to the east. In fact,
rather than attacking the German strong point of Molodoi Tud, Zygin planned
to exploit his positions in the opposing bridgeheads to effect a shallow envel-
opment of German defenders in the region. That was why the village of
Urdom, located midway between the bridgeheads, was his army's initial
objective.
General Zygin had taken command of 39th Army in August 1942 from
the NKVD General 1.1. Maslennikov and had led the army during late sum-
mer operations. Deprived of a major role in the August operation, he looked
forward to participating in the "kiH" of Army Group Center during Opera-
tion Mars. Zhukov and Purkaev had assigned a rather simple mission to his
Map 7. Dispositions on 24 November 1942: the Molodoi Tud Sector
68 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
army and a modest force of about 90,000 men with which to do the job.83
Since his was a secondary sector, his army lacked the large mechanized force
allocated to his neighbors and the crushing weight of supporting artillery units.
He did, however, possess two capable tank brigades, a mechanized brigade,
three tank regiments, and more than nine supporting artillery regiments. The
problem was to use that force to good effect over so large a front. Zygin
thought that his offensive plan did so effectively. In fact, on the evening of
24 November, he was discussing his plan with the commanders who would
lead the assault to breech the German Molodoi Tud River defenses. These
included Colonels V. G. Kovalenko, M. M. Busarov, and K. I. Sazonov, the
commanders of the 135th, 158th, and 373d Rifle Divisions, and Colonels
K. A. Malygin and D. I. Kuz'min, commanders of the 81st and 28th Tank
Brigades. There were also liaison officers from his forces, which were desig-
nated to attack from the river bridgeheads on the army's left and right flanks.
Zygin's "simple" mission horn front was "to attack to seize the high road
[bol'shak] running from Molodoi Tud to Rzhev in the Urdom—Zaitsevo sec-
tor and then, in cooperation with 22d Army and the Western Front shock
group, seize the key city of Olenino."84 In addition to the extended front of
his army, Zygin and his staff had to contend with daunting terrain problems.
The steep and wood-lined banks of the Molodoi Tud River posed a consid-
erable obstacle to forward movement, in particular given the well-developed
German defense system on the southern bank of the river and along the south-
ern slopes of the river's narrow valley. South of the German river defenses,
the terrain stretching southward toward the Rzhev-Olenino road and rail-
road line was heavily forested and rolling. The only extensive cleared areas
were adjacent to the roads, which fortunately generally ran from north to
south, and south of the army's bridgehead east of Zaitsevo. In mitigation of
the terrain problems, a single German infantry division (the 206th) defended
the entire sector from west of Molodoi Tud to the Volga bridgehead. Intelli-
gence had informed Zygin that elements of German 14th Motorized Divi-
sion were located in reserve in the Rzhev-Olenino sector, but these forces
were dispersed across a broad front and would require considerable time to
assemble.85 Zygin hoped to seize his initial objectives, Urdom in particular,
before German reserves assembled. Zygin dismissed rumors that elements
of German Grossdeutschland Motorized Division were in the region because
other seemingly more accurate information placed that division to the rear
of the Sychevka sector.
Over a week before, after consultations with Zhukov and Purkaev atfront
headquarters, Zygin had completed his planning and assigned subordinate
formations their missions. He chose to launch his army's main attack directly
southward across the Molodoi Tud River between the town of Molodoi Tud
and the Volga. This would avoid a direct attack on the well-defended town
Prelude 69
and provide the shortest route to Urdom and the key railroad line to the south.
After a one-hour artillery preparation, the 158th, 135th, and 373d Rifle Di-
visions, from left to right, would assault across the river supported by 81st
and 28th Tank Brigades. These forces would penetrate German tactical de-
fenses, seize Urdom by the end of the first day of operations, and, with the
tank brigades in the lead, push on to sever the Rzhev-Olenino road and rail-
road line by the end of the third day. Zygin ordered Colonel I. A. Il'ichev's
348th Rifle Division, then in army reserve, to join the assault on Olenino once
Urdom had fallen.
Zygin sought to increase the pressure on the defending German 206th
Infantry Division and to block or distract German operational reserves, should
they arrive in sector. Thus, he ordered his 100th Rifle Brigade, supported by
a regiment of the 186th Rifle Division and several battalions of the 117th Rifle
Brigade, to assault from the small bridgehead south of Molodoi Tud eastward
along the north bank of the Dubenka River. This forces was to sever the
Molodoi Tud-Olenino road, isolate German forces defending Molodoi Tud
proper, and strike Urdom from the west. At the same time, the 136th Rifle
Brigade, supported by two regiments of Major General A. G. Kudriavtsev's
178th Rifle Division and three separate tank regiments, would strike east-
ward from the Volga bridgehead toward Zaitsevo. These forces would turn
the German 206th Infantry Division's right flank, also attract German opera-
tional reserves, and perhaps join the attack on Urdom from the west. Zygin
backed up this attack with his second echelon 101st Rifle Brigade and the
46th Separate Mechanized Brigade. If and when this Volga thrust succeeded,
30th Army forces could join the fray from their Volga bridgehead on 39th
Army's left flank.
Thus, Zygin had orchestrated a three-pronged assault on the German
Urdom salient. Although secondary in nature, he was convinced the attack
could make major contributions to the success of Operation Mars as a whole.
The most daunting problem he faced, however, was how to control such com-
plex operations on so extensive a front. Synchronization of complex combat
operations, he well understood, had not been the Red Army's forte, eepecially
if German mobile force intervened.
Army Group Center Headquarters, Smolensk, 24 November 1942
Field Marshal Guenther von Kluge, the Army Group Center commander,
mentally catalogued the catastrophes that had befallen the Reich and the
Wehrmacht in recent days. It was depressing. The news from North Africa
was bad. Rommel's triumphant march toward Suez had ended in late Octo-
ber with defeat at El Alamein, and now his once proud Afrika Korps was in
headlong retreat across the northern wastes of the once inviting continent.
70 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
American forces had landed on the western extremities of North Africa and
were only now beginning to bring their immense combat potential to bear in
the war in the West. Von Kluge shuddered as he imagined the potential im-
pact of another power as imposing as Russia entering the war against Ger-
many. Hitler had moved his headquarters from Vinnitsa in the Ukraine to
the relative sanctuary of his "Wolf's Lair" in East Prussia. To von Kluge, the
symbolism of this move was devastating, all the more so since Hitler had also
replaced General Haider as chief of the General Staff, and Haider, an origi-
nal planner and war-horse of Barbarossa, personified both the competence
and reason of the German Army. Did this, reflected von Kluge, represent a
retreat from both competency and reason?
In the eastern theater, the full scale of the Stalingrad disaster had not yet
been realized, and the potential consequences loomed but were not appre-
ciated. By 24 November it was clear that several Rumanian armies had been
shattered and that German Sixth Army and a sizable part of Fourth Panzer
Army were encircled in the Stalingrad region. It was less clear whether the
encirclement would endure. However, whether it did or did not, the soldier
in von Kluge told him that things would never be the same. While one could
endure the defeat at Moscow and boldly strike out anew the following year,
he feared the army could not withstand a second disaster of even greater
proportions.
Regaining his frayed composure, von Kluge looked at the stacks of intel-
ligence and operational reports on his desk and contemplated the future of
his army group. He well understood his group's previous success and the pent-
up frustration of the Russians who wished to destroy it. He also knew that
Zhukov still commanded in the Russian central sector, and his army group
remained Zhukov's nemesis. How long then would the Russians and Zhukov
wait before unleashing their fury and hatred on his forces? How long indeed!
Calm still reigned along the flanks of the Rzhev salient, and Gehlen had said
that the Soviets would have a hard time mounting two major efforts. Con-
trary to his earlier predictions, it was now clear that the Soviet main effort
had begun in the south. Could Gehlen be wrong? worried von Kluge. Could
two major Soviet efforts emerge? Philosophically, he added to himself, "Only
time will tell."
Reports from his XXXIX Panzer Corps did little to assuage his concern.
After the extended lull along the front produced by endless mud, cold weather
had finally set in, first with a mild blast of cold air on 13 November and then,
on the 17th, with a truly typical Russian cold front. Almost immediately, the
mud roads and rivers were locked in ice. Cold weather in itself was a harbin-
ger of increased Soviet offensive activity, and despite indicators to the con-
trary, field commands and soldiers "leaned further forward in their foxholes."
The Russians, they thought, must be moving.
Prelude 71
Von Kluge's intelligence files contained hints of an answer. XXXIX Panzer
Corps' 102d Infantry Division, defending along the Osuga River, reported in-
tensified Russian harassing fire on 18 November, during which Russian "Stalin
organs" played their deadly tune. Sounds of sappers at work resounded along
the division front, and Russian soldiers, for the first time in white winter garb,
flitted about the far bank of the river on skis and sledges.86 As army group
intelligence analyzed these reports, other more convincing information seemed
to answer the burning question as to when the attack would come. Late on 18
November, an Abwehr agent in Bucharest, Rumania, learned from contacts
in the Swedish Embassy that supposedly on 27 or 28 November the Russians
would begin an attack in the Rzhev area toward Smolensk with all available
forces. Although Fremde Heere Ost (Foreign Armies East) and virtually all
concerned force Ics already knew this, the Abwehr (German intelligence) re-
ports confirmed that G. K. Zhukov would personally command the offensive.87
The fourth- or fifth-hand nature of the report, however, provoked skepticism,
and all major headquarters demanded confirmation by other sources.
The next day the news about the large-scale Soviet attack on Army Group
B had provoked mixed reaction within Army Group Center's command
group and staff. On the one hand, Gehlen had predicted a secondary Soviet
effort in the south. If this was that effort, the Army Group should be wary.
On the other hand, if Gehlen was wrong and the main Russian attack was
actually in the south, there was some cause for relaxation. In the ensuing
days, however, as the immense scope and aims of the Stalingrad thrust
became apparent to all, the implications for Army Group Center were
opaque but nevertheless ominous. For if the Soviets were that successful
at Stalingrad, even a secondary attack at Rzhev could become a major threat,
especially if Zhukov was in command.
On 19 and 20 November, the Russians conducted raids along the Osuga
and Vazuza front, which were awfully like those reconnaissances in force that
preceded major offensives. The most serious Soviet attack took place on the
19th near Grediakino, where infantry and tanks penetrated into 5th Panzer
Division defensive positions. After several unsuccessful local counterattacks,
the next day 5th Panzer was able to restore its defensives. During another
raid the 102d Infantry Division killed twenty-six Russian soldiers who had
attacked a hilltop position on their front. In the melee they apprehended a
Russian soldier who had feigned death to avoid capture. During interroga-
tion, he reported that an attack would occur at the end of November or in
early December. The same day a clandestine radio station, which was feed-
ing information to a Russian commissar who had deserted to Ninth Army,
radioed that the attack in Ninth Army's sector would occur at 0600 hours on
25 November.88 Although these recurring reports seemed to be indicative of
an impending attack, the exact date remained in doubt.
72 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Russian reconnaissance activity and troop movements, however, soon pro-
vided even stronger indications as to where the assault would be, particularly
in the 102d Infantry and 5th Panzer Division sectors. Troop movements in-
creased between the Osuga and Vazuza rivers, aerial reconnaissance indicated
that the forests east of the river were filling with troops and equipment, and
the density of identified Russian artillery concentration rose precipitously.
At the same time, however, other information only muddied the picture. A
deserter from the Russian 133d Rifle Division entered the 102d Infantry
Division's lines at a location where all other reports indicated the 88th Rifle
Division was stationed.89 Other reports stated that the Russian 6th Tank Corps
had withdrawn from the eastern flank of the Rzhev salient. Most intelligence
officers realized that conflicting reports, themselves, were often an indica-
tion of an impeding offensive, since the Soviets liberally spread misinforma-
tion in support of their operational plans.
In the face of this conflicting information and uncertainty, von Kluge did
not have to tell his commanders how to react. Instinctively, they became more
vigilant and attentively adjusted their dispositions. In XXXIX Panzer Corps,
General Model flew to the front daily in his light plane, where he traveled to
his subordinate headquarters on a tracked motorbike. He passed new infor-
mation to his commanders, personally inspected defensive dispositions,
checked counterattack plans, provided needed support, and demonstrated
an essential command presence on the potential field of battle. Von Kluge's
other corps commanders followed suit.
Tension continued to build on Saturday, 21 November. The flow of Rus-
sian deserters grew, in itself a possible indication of impending attack, and
the deserters provided German intelligence with new prospective attack dates.
One designated 25 November as the date, another the 22d, and still another
the 26th. Other attack indicators, however, could not confirm this informa-
tion, and Colonel Buntrock at XXXIX Panzer Corps informed his counter-
parts at Ninth Army and Army Group Center that an attack was not yet
imminent. The next morning, however, all key indicators began to flash red.
Enemy movement increased drastically, enemy artillery unit identifications
rose, and even more Russian deserters crossed into German lines. The new
deserters uniformly designated Wednesday, 25 November, as the attack
date.90 This was enough for Model and Ninth Army.
On Monday, 23 November, at 1020 hours, Ninth Army dispatched the
following message by teletype to subordinate units: "According to deserter
statements, Russian attacks will begin on the 25th or 26th of November.
Greater defense readiness is to be observed everywhere. Reserves, includ-
ing those of the higher commands, are being held ready for the most rapid
commitment."91
74 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Russian assault near dawn on 25 or 26 November. Another corps order,
issued to subordinate units at 0840 hours the same day, read, "From the 25th
to the 26th positions are to be fully occupied between 4 a.m. and full day-
light."94 This order placed all German troops along the Vazuza at full combat
readiness.
By evening on 24 November, von Kluge was satisfied he had done all in
his power to prepare for a Russian onslaught. His army and army group re-
serves were repositioning, and he had fended off OKH requests to dispatch
critical reserves southward. His 19th (under Army Group North control) and
20th Panzer Divisions were positioned to the rear of Velikie Luki and south
of Velizh covering possible thrusts toward Dukhovshchina and Smolensk, and
12th Panzer Division was en route northward from the Orel region. Certainly,
von Kluge reasoned, these reserves can handle any eventuality. What had hap-
pened at Stalingrad, however, was still cause for concern.
Troops, which for weeks had been "leaning forward in their foxholes" in
the expectation of action, were now fully armed, alert, and at the ready. Al-
though commanders were certain the attack would come, they were not all
certain as to where, and some even silently wondered whether they could
cope with its intensity. It was clear from intelligence data that the Vazuza front
was a likely target, but so also was the region north and south of Rzhev. In
the west there was some confusion as to how far south of Belyi the attack
would be. In fact, intelligence indicated a Soviet capability for multiple Rus-
sian assaults everywhere from the Luchesa River valley southward to the
Dukhovshchina road. In the north, Russian buildups were noted only in the
Volga bridgehead, and intelligence had still failed to locate the precise loca-
tion of Russian 39th Army headquarters. Some doubters also pointed out that
requisite Russian armor was not present even on the Vazuza front. However,
all could agree on the fact that only time would tell.
Stavka, Moscow, the Kremlin, 24 November 1942
Stalin read the terse message from Zhukov, "All is in readiness. We go in
the morning." After weeks of work on the now familiar plan, Stalin knew
what this meant. At 0900 the next day, thousands of guns would hurl their
deadly projectiles at the German lines. An hour later over 300,000 infan-
trymen would lunge through the pulverized German forward positions,
followed by the largest armored armada the Soviets had yet assembled to
participate in a single operation. Stalin personally knew many of the com-
manders who Zhukov, Konev, and Purkaev had honored with leading the
assault. They were the cream of the Red Army crop. If Romanenko's tank
army and Vol'sky's mechanized corps could succeed as they had at Stalin-
grad, then Katukov's, Solomatin's, and Getman's superb corps should do
Prelude 75
likewise at Rzhev. Fueled by Zhukov's intense hatred of Army Group Center,
they could not do otherwise.
Stalin smiled to himself over the competition he had generated among
his two leading commanders. Yes, Vasilevsky had done well in the south, and
it was evident that Zhukov knew it. And the envy showed. Earlier in the day,
when Stalin had suggested that, in light of Vasilevsky's success, it was possibly
time to release Malinovsky (2d Guards Army) to him, Zhukov had bristled.
His blunt reply reminded Stalin of what he could achieve. "Do not act impa-
tiently," he had written. "Remember what happened in winter 1941. Remem-
ber that Rybalko [3d Tank Army], Cherednichenko [5th Army], and Gordov
[33d Army] wait in the wings. Remember where Moscow is, and remember
that Smolensk lies along the shortest route to Berlin."
Zhukov's fears, thought Stalin, were unfounded. I know that Army Group
Center is the pivotal German force, and I know where Smolensk lies. And
Malinovsky's army still awaits its orders. Yes! He understood. Competition is
healthy, especially if it produces wholesale German defeat. But the time has
come for Zhukov to produce that promised victory for which he has yearned
so long.
The Red God of War Unleashed 79
repelled the assault easily and at the same time occupied all forward posi-
tions. To them it did not matter why the Russian battalion had attacked. What
was important was the fact that the German troops now felt ready for what-
ever would come. The snow and fog added to their sense of security, for they
knew that should the attack materialize that morning, the white shroud of
snow and fog would blind the dreaded Russian artillery.
Across the Vazuza, a flurry of last-minute movements convulsed the So-
viet lines. Infantrymen struggled through the snow in the dark into their
designated final attack positions. Battalion and company commanders had
learned of their destination and the upcoming battle only hours before. The
soldiers would learn only as they crouched in those forward positions. Sappers
quietly moved forward in the snow into the fields separating the German and
Soviet forward lines and down to the frozen bank of the Vazuza River, where
they began their dangerous work of clearing routes through forward German
minefields and obstacles. Periodically, the eerie silence was punctuated by
the muffled sounds of exploding mines and the pitiful cries of the maimed
and dying. Soldiers huddled in the forward trenches watched silently as com-
panies of "chosen" men, as they sarcastically referred to the convicts and
political prisoners who made up the penal battalions, slid forward on their
bellies to occupy assault positions well forward of the forward trenches. The
mixture of admiration and pity among those who were not "chosen" evapo-
rated quickly with the realization that they too would follow into the certain
cauldron of shell, shot, pain, and death.
Hundreds of meters to the rear all along the front, commanders and staff
officers, huddled in their greatcoats to ward off the bone-chilling cold and
with precious map cases under their arms, crawled into command bunkers
where they would oversee the assault. The fortunate few whose CPs were
equipped with binoculars and stereoscopes cursed silently as they realized
they would see nothing. The snow was falling at a rate of over an inch an hour.
Farther to the rear, one could hear the muffled sounds of artillery casings
rattling together like the unlikely sound of crickets in winter as the thousands
of artillery and mortar tubes of the 20th Army's twenty-odd artillery regiments
readied to fire into the snowy skies. In their bunkers, division commanders
cursed again as they realized their assault would be supported only by artil-
lery firing blindly at prearranged concentrations. The snow had grounded
supporting aircraft, and artillery observers could observe nothing. Time
passed, but at an agonizingly slow pace.
At 0749 hours, in a well-constructed command bunker overlooking the
Vazuza near the southern outskirts of the village of Novoselovo, Major Gen-
eral N.I. Kiriukhin turned to the colonel general standing next to him.3 Konev
nodded and Kiriukhin quietly whispered a single word, "Ogori [fire]," into his
radio transmitter. Seconds passed as hundreds of radios crackled into life,
82 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
tural cries of "Urrah" reached a crescendo as the brown masses reached the
Vazuza's far bank. New ranks of infantry emerged from the shadowy outline
of the river's near bank, forcing, as if by their sheer mass, their predecessors
on the far bank to lunge deeper into the German defenses.
Kiriukhin and Konev had viewed this scene before. Inured to the carnage
of an assault, this day they were encouraged by what they saw. Losses were
relatively few, and the lead ranks of infantry were already disappearing into
the gloom of the river's far bank. Within thirty minutes, several lead battal-
ions were across, and the remainder of the lead regiments were following with
their protective tank companies. The artillery fire had now ended, but the
generals' ears still rang from the intense din. Soon, thought the command-
0 O O
ers, General Mukhin's division would be across, and General Zakharov's sec-
ond echelon rifle corps could follow.
Unknown to Konev, however, the scene further north was less encourag-
ing. There, in the flatlands between the Osuga and Vazuza rivers and in 31st
Army's Osuga bridgehead further north, the artillery preparation had gone
as planned, but that was all. Upon its completion, the 88th, 239th, and 336th
Rifle Divisions of General Polenov's 31st Army, supported by the 32d and
145th Tank Brigades, flung themselves into the teeth of the German 102d
Infantry Division's defenses. The Germans were ready for them, and a ter-
rible carnage ensued. Records of the German 102d Infantry Division docu-
mented the futility of the Russian assault:
At 7:30 A.M., the brown masses of Russian infantry emerged from their
assembly places in the woods. Tanks, 25 thundering, spitting monsters,
rolled forward to support them. Wave after wave of Russians advanced
against the 102d Infantry Division.
The Germans were ready. Standing in their trenches, they fired over
their parapets into the enemy masses sweeping forward over the barren
fields. Their machine-guns raked the Russians. Anti-tank guns cracked
flatly; field guns roared. And the Russians fell. A handful reached the
German lines and were captured. Others charged forward. But at 9:40
[11:40] they paused to catch their breath. When they renewed their at-
tacks, this time in a light snowfall, the men of the 102d again drove them
back. The end of the day found the Germans firmly in possession of their
lines.4
The day's action decimated the three Soviet rifle divisions, causing infan-
try casualties of up to 50 percent. The two supporting tank brigades were also
in ruins. A Soviet after-action report recorded cryptically, "Units on 31st
Army's left flank also did not achieve success on the first day of the offen-
sive."5 This was classic understatement. The army attack did not even dent
84 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
cess at all. Major General G. D. Mukhin's 247th Rifle Division, with tanks
from the 80th Tank Brigade, had reached the far side of the river early in
the assault and, by noon, had seized the riverside villages of Zevalovka and
Kuznechikha from their German defenders. At the same time, infantry from
Colonel P. F. Berestov's 331st Rifle Division, on Mukhin's left flank, forced
the Vazuza River and seized the village of Prudy but was abruptly halted by
heavy German fire from the northern suburbs of the river town of Khlepen'.
Mukhin's first echelon regiments continued their advance in the afternoon
as snow again began to fall. By nightfall they drove German forces from the
small hamlets of Kriukovo and Bobrovka, just under two kilometers from the
river bank and just short of the positions from which Kiriukhin intended to
commit his cavalry-mechanized group to battle. Doing so on 25 November
was now clearly out of the question. Not only was there not enough room in
the small bridgehead to assemble the armor and cavalry, but the routes for-
ward were also still subject to German artillery fire.7 Moreover, Kiriukhin's
right flank divisions, which had resumed their attacks amid the afternoon
snowstorm, had accomplished little more than they had in the morning. Sol-
diers of the 42d Guards Rifle Division had wedged their way closer to the
outskirts of Grediakino, but fierce German resistance had once again halted
their advance. As before, the 326th and 251st Rifle Divisions also pounded
German defenses in vain.
The failure by 20th Army to achieve a penetration on its right flank de-
prived General Kriukov's cavalry-mechanized group of one of its approach
routes and its forward assembly area between the Osuga and Vazuza rivers.
Now Kiriukhin would have to alter his plan and commit his massed armor
and cavalry directly across the Vazuza into the teeth of the German defense.
Since the bridgehead was not large enough to hold the two mobile corps, and
approach routes would have to be adjusted, commitment could not occur
before the next day, if then. Konev listened silently to Kiriukhin's discussions
with his staff. He personally would see to it that the mobile group went into
action and not a day later than the 27th. It was Kiriukhin's task, growled Konev
to the distraught army commander, to create requisite space for the mobile
group to assemble.
The defending Germans did not have time to think about Kiriukhin's di-
lemma for they were preoccupied with their own survival. The 102d Infantry
Division's 195th Grenadier Regiment, supported by 2d Battalion, 14th Panzer
Grenadier Regiment, made quick work of repeated Russian tank and infan-
try assaults between VasePki and Grediakino. However, by evening and de-
spite the heavy snow, Russian tank and infantry had made minor gains, which
virtually severed communications between the 2d Battalion, 14th Grenadier
Regiment, defending Grediakino, and the rear area. During the repeated
The Red God of War Unleashed 85
attacks, supporting tanks from the 5th Panzer Division's 31st Panzer Regi-
ment took a heavy toll on Russian armor. During the first assault by thirty to
forty tanks, about ten of the Russian tanks, including four American models,
were destroyed before the attack collapsed. A second Russian tank assault,
which numbered thirty-four tanks, including some heavier models, struck
about an hour later, destroyed several German tanks, and raced toward the
western outskirts of Grediakino. They were halted only after specially formed
German tank destroyer teams manned by personnel carrying explosive charges
engaged the tanks in virtual hand-to-tank combat.8 Despite the temporary
crisis, the 195th Regiment and its supporting 5th Panzer troops held on to all
major villages along the front from Vasel'ki to Grediakino. The question was
could they do so in the morning when the Russian assault was sure to resume
with even greater ferocity. The XXXIX Panzer Corps waited in suspense for
word from its heavily engaged left flank division, since the Russian artillery
preparation had torn up all wire communications with forward headquarters
and commanders were too preoccupied with combat to make frequent radio
transmissions. Despite the lack of communications, it appeared that the 102d
Infantry had the situation under control. Had it been otherwise, Russian
armor would already be rolling up the Vazuza front's left flank.
Such was not the case, however, along the Vazuza front. Here, south of
Grediakino, the Soviet 247th Rifle Division's assault crushed the right flank
of the 14th Grenadier Regiment's (78th Division) 2d Rattalion at Zevalovka
and sent its remnants reeling to the rear. To the south the neighboring 3d
Battalion, the 13th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, which the 78th Infantry had
not yet relieved, clung tenaciously to its positions under heavy tank and in-
fantry assault. By this time Russian T-34 tanks with infantry mounted on them
had dashed into the open snow-covered fields south of Nikonovo, severing
communications between the 14th Grenadier Regiment and the 13th Panzer
Grenadier Regiment's 3d Battalion and threatening 5th Panzer Division's
headquarters at Bol'shoe Kropotovo. While the former fought for its survival
in the face of the main Russian assault, the latter slowly gave ground back
toward Prudy. Meanwhile, off to the right, the 78th Division's 215th Grena-
dier Regiment repelled repeated Russian attempts to cross the Vazuza at
Khlepen' and further south. Here, a lack of armor support doomed the Rus-
sians' efforts and resulted in heavy Russian casualties.
The afternoon brought still worse news to the German command as its
defenses in the Vazuza sector sagged badly under the weight of the Rus-
sian assault. General Kiriukhin shifted the bulk of Colonel P. F. Berestov's
331st Rifle Division across the river to assist the successful 247th and or-
dered the two division commanders to commit all of their infantry support
tank brigades to expand the bridgehead, which, Kiriukhin added, had to be
86 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
done at all costs. Advancing under renewed artillery and rocket launcher
fire, the nearly 100 Russian tanks, operating in small assault groups with
infantry on their backs, put unbearable pressure on the Germans. By night-
fall, the 14th Regiment's 2d Battalion and the 3d Battalion, 13th Panzer
Grenadiers, reinforced by the latter's 1st Battalion, brought Russian 147th
Rifle Division troops to a halt just east of the high ground around the vil-
lage of Arestovo. In the process, the 3d Battalion, 13th Panzer Grenadier
Regiment, gave up Prudy and withdrew to better defensive positions north
of Khlepen', where the 1st Battalion, 13th Panzer Grenadier Regiment,
joined the defense. Numerous small German company, platoon, and bat-
tery positions held out in the Russian rear, hunkered into positions amid
the tens of destroyed and incapacitated Russian tanks that dotted the snow-
covered landscape. The bypassed troops went to ground in the night hop-
ing for rescue in the morning.9
In the evening, General von Arnim at XXXIX Panzer Corps took stock of
the situation. It could have been worse. His left flank held firm between the
Osuga and Vazuza, although the 2d Battalion, 14th Panzer Grenadier Regi-
ment, was hard-pressed in the Grediakino sector. At nightfall, he dispatched
the 5th Panzer Division's reconnaissance battalion (K-55) to assist the belea-
guered grenadiers. Von Arnim's right flank was also relatively secure. The
78th Infantry Division's 215th Grenadier Regiment clung to its river defenses
south of Khlepen', and two battalions of the 5th Panzer's 13th Panzer Grena-
dier Regiment held the south flank of the Russian bridgehead north of Talitsa
and Khlepen', protecting 78th Infantry Division's headquarters at Siderova.
The central sector, however, gave him greater cause for concern. Here the
situation was unclear. Mixed elements of the 14th Grenadier Regiment, sup-
ported by two battalions of the 14th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, held a bro-
ken line extending roughly from Nikonovo through Arestovo to Talitsa, but
many units were isolated in the Russian rear, and Russian pressure would
undoubtedly increase in the morning. Almost instinctively, von Arnim sensed
the impending arrival in that sector of large Russian armored forces. If so,
the present defenses would certainly not hold.
Before retiring for the night, von Arnim ordered his remaining reserves
O O ' O
into line along the Vazuza front. These included the uncommitted battalions
of the 215th Grenadier and 13th Panzer Grenadier Regiments. At the same
time, von Arnim repeated a request he had earlier made to Ninth Army to
release 9th Panzer Division, then in laager west of Sychevka, to his control.
Model agreed, and by evening the lead elements of the fresh panzer division
were marching toward the Vazuza bridgehead. Finally, Model also gave von
Arnim control of the 1st Panzer Division's 2d Battalion, 1st Panzer Regiment,
which was in reserve near Osuga village.10 It was clear to von Arnim that the
principal Russian initial target would be the vital rail line south of the Osuga
The Red God of War Unleashed 87
River near Lozhki. Therefore, it was here that he intended to concentrate
his reserves.
As darkness fell along the Vazuza, Konev decided that 20th Army's progress
was sufficient to risk commitment of 6th Tank Corps into combat the follow-
ing day. Kiriukhin, of course, agreed. He too had decided that the German
defenses could be quickly breached only by the rapid and decisive commit-
ment of the tank and cavalry corps before German reserves intervened and
stabilized the front. However, to do this required major changes in existing
plans. Originally, Kiriukhin had planned to commit the mixed cavalry and
armor columns across the Vazuza into assembly areas on the western bank,
which had already been cleared of German defenders. This, however, was
no longer possible since German defenses still held firm between the Osuga
and Vazuza. rivers and since most of the projected cavalry-mechanized group's
forward assembly areas were still in German hands. Therefore, Kiriukhin
ordered Colonel P. M. Annan's 6th Tank Corps to move forward to the Vazuza
during the night, cross the river, and in the morning attack German positions
in conjunction with infantry from the two Soviet rifle divisions already in the
bridgehead. Arman's original objectives remained unchanged; his corps was
to sever the Rzhev—Sychevka railroad line. At the same time, General V. V.
Kriukov's cavalry corps was to move into positions formerly occupied by 6th
Tank Corps and prepare to follow the armor into the breech later on 26
November.11
Konev pointed out to Kiriukhin that, although 6th Tank Corps could prob-
ably tear a hole in German defenses, infantry reinforcements were required
to ensure the corps' success and, simultaneously, to widen the bridgehead.
Therefore, Kiriukhin ordered Major General F. D. Zakharov, the commander
of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps, to advance his 26th Guards Rifle Division and
148th and 150th Rifle Brigades across the Vazuza in tandem with and on the
southern flank of the tank corps.12 At the same time, Major General V. A.
Reviakhin's 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division and its supporting 31st Tank
Brigade were to follow the tank and cavalry corps and crush German forces
that the mobile forces had bypassed. Simultaneously, the 251st Rifle Divi-
sion would shift to the left, also enter the bridgehead, and expand the pene-
tration to the north and west.
The problem was, as Konev and Kiriukhin would soon learn, only two
fragile roads ran forward to the Vazuza, and these would not support the
forward movement of so vast a host. Nor could the advancing units effectively
coordinate their forward movements with one another. In short, too many
forces •were being committed too rapidly into too small a space, and neither
the enemy nor the weather would cooperate. Nevertheless, with Zhukov
egging them on, Konev and Kiriukhin had no choice but to issue the neces-
sary orders.
88 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
26 November
Taken individually, the orders that Soviet second echelon formations received
late on 25 November seemed neither outrageous nor conflicting. Arman's
6th Tank Corps, with its 170 tanks, was to move across the Vazuza overnight
and, in the morning, attack in 247th Rifle Division's sector "to rapidly exploit
that division's success and secure Novaia Grinevka, Nikonovo, Arestovo,
Pod'iablon'ka, and Bobrovka."13 Once Arman's corps had seized these Ger-
man strong points, it would begin a westward exploitation across the rail-
road line. By morning the corps was to assemble for the attack east of the
river, with its 22d Tank Brigade and 6th Motorized Rifle Brigade east of
Kuznechikha, its 200th Tank Brigade southeast ofthat village, and its 100th
Tank Brigade northeast of Prudy. Meanwhile, General Kriukov would move
his cavalry corps into the 6th Tank Corps' former assembly areas and pre-
pare to follow the armor later on the 26th. The infantry of General Zakharov's
8th Guards Rifle Corps was to share river crossing sites with the 100th Tank
Brigade and also ford to the river's west bank further south. At the same time,
General Reviakhin's 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division was to cross the river
on the trail of 6th Tank Corps and in conjunction with the advancing cavalry.
All of this meant that, in a period of about twenty-four hours, largely at night
and under nearly constant German harassing fire, over 200 tanks, 30,000
infantry, and 10,000 cavalrymen had to move forward along two roads that
had already been unmercifully chowdered up by incessant shellfire.
Considered collectively, therefore, none of the orders could be carried out.
The evening of 25—26 November was a staff officer's nightmare.14 Despite the
best efforts of army staff officers and the staffs of the advancing formations,
the marching troops and equipment became inexorably entangled and inevi-
tably delayed. In the end none of the forces completed their concentration at
the requisite time. The 6th Tank Corps completed its move into forward
assembly areas by mid-morning at the same time that the 8th Guard Rifle Corps
forces completed their deployment across the river. To the rear, the cavalry
corps took most of the day to occupy 6th Tank Corps's abandoned positions,
and the 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division scarcely moved at all. As a result,
at dawn on 26 November, the 247th and 331st Rifle Divisions renewed their
advance in the bridgehead, but without any additional armor support. To make
the matter worse, German forces were already beginning to launch local coun-
terattacks aimed at regaining territory lost the previous day.
At 0630 hours, in the predawn darkness, Lieutenant Colonel Kaeter's 1st
Battalion, 14th Infantry Regiment, supported by five tanks from 1st Battal-
ion, 13th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, struck Russian positions north of
Prudy. At the same time, Kampfgruppe von Bodenhausen, made up of the
2d Battalion, 215th Grenadier Regiment, and a few supporting tanks, struck
The Red God of War Unleashed 89
Russian positions at Zevalovka. In between, bicycle reconnaissance troops and
the 9th Battalion, 14th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, erected a thin defensive
screen to forestall a new Russian advance and cover the flanks of counter-
attacking German forces. Nearly constant Russian artillery fire disrupted Ger-
man assembly for the attack and continued to make communications difficult,
at best.
Von Bodenhausen's counterattack immediately ran into difficulty and was
stopped cold northeast of Nikonovo at 0630 hours by dug-in Russian infan-
try supported by tanks, antitank guns, and skillfully employed antitank rifles.
Von Bodenhausen's forces now found themselves hemmed in by a stout de-
fense and threatened by newly arriving Russian forces, including sixty tanks,
which appeared to be massing for a new attack. On von Bodenhausen's left
flank, 2d Battalion, 14th Grenadier Regiment, and 1st Battalion, 14th Panzer
Grenadier Regiment, were soon swept away and dispersed by the renewed
Russian assault, which also wounded the panzer battalion commander. Lieu-
tenant Colonel Kaeter's assault from Prudy also failed, and the supporting
battalion from 13th Panzer Regiment was decimated. As a result Kaeter's force
withdrew to the northern outskirts of Khlepen' and dug in.15
For the Germans, the news from the northern front was more encourag-
ing. There, at 0900 hours, Russian infantry renewed their assault supported
by T-34 tanks advancing though a veil of artificial smoke. A battalion of the
195th Grenadier Regiment and 2d Battalion, 14th Panzer Grenadier Regi-
ment, repelled the assault by 1100 hours, destroying about ten Russian tanks
at the expense of four of their own. Despite repeated Russian attempts to
regain the initiative, the German lines around Grediakino held.
By 1200 hours, it was clear to von Arnim that both reinforcements and a
new command arrangement were necessary if the corps was to prevent the
situation from deteriorating into a rout along the Vazuza front. Therefore,
he ordered 9th Panzer Division to form twokampfgruppen (combat groups),
each named for their commanders, Remont and von Zettwitz, and each con-
sisting of forty tanks, logistical support, and armored infantry. The two groups
were to attack up the Rzhev—Sychevka road against the projected spear-
head of the advancing Russians. Unfortunately, the two groups reported
they would not be ready for combat until early on 27 November. In the
meantime, von Arnim ordered 1st Panzer Division's 2d Battalion, 1st Panzer
Regiment (Kampfgruppe Buschen), which was equipped with eight heavy
tanks, to join the 5th Panzer Division's defense in the Khlepen' sector.16 It
too, however, would not be ready to move until late in the day. No sooner
had these arrangements been made than at 1400 hours all hell broke loose in
the central sector, where a heavy Russian tank and infantry assault com-
menced, swept away German defenders, and made changes in the command
arrangement imperative.
90 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
The new Russian assault began just as General Metz, the 5th Panzer Di-
vision commander, and von Arnim were discussing how best to deal with the
problem of destroying the Russian bridgehead. Metz wanted to launch coun-
terattacks from the north at Kobylino, where the division reconnaissance
battalion (K-55) and 2d Battalion, 14th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, still held
firmly to Grediakino, and the shoulder of the Russian penetration. There, keen
German familiarity with the terrain would facilitate an attack by the 9th Panzer
Division's Kampfgruppen, and success would further separate the Russian
main efforts in the north and along the Vazuza front. On the other hand, von
Arnim wanted the counterattack to strike directly east from Nikonovo toward
the Vazuza River. Metz argued that, although this was the shortest route to
the river, it would likely encounter the bulk of Russian armor. Adding to the
confusion, Major General Scheller, the 9th Panzer Division commander, then
arrived at the division command post and reported that 1st Panzer Division's
Kampfgruppe Buschen would not be ready for combat until later in the day.
Therefore, he recommended the counterattack be delayed until its arrival.
Metz insisted that the situation demanded immediate action, and without
further discussion, the decision was made to launch an immediate attack from
Nikonovo and Bol'shoe Kropotovo to the east without waiting for Kampf-
gruppe Buschen to arrive.17
With the decision made, General von Arnim of XXXIX Panzer Corps also
altered his command arrangements in order to provide unified control of
forces north and south of the bridgehead, which was vital since the Russians
already threatened to penetrate to the Rzhev-Sychevka road and split Ger-
man forces. He assigned Major General Voelkers, the 78th Infantry Division
commander whose headquarters was in Siderova, control of all of his and 5th
Panzer Division forces on the southern flank of the bridgehead, while he gave
General Scheller of 9th Panzer Division responsibility for the northern sec-
tor. General Scheller would control his division (when it arrived) and the
elements of the 5th Panzer and 78th Divisions, which were struggling east of
the Rzhev—Sychevka road and along the northern flank of the bridgehead.
Scheller's orders were to hold the northern flank of the bridgehead and at-
tack eastward with the Kampfgruppen of 9th Panzer when they reached the
battlefield. Meanwhile, General Voelker's forces would stabilize the south-
ern flank from forward of Podosinovka to Khlepen'.18 The decision came none
too soon, for in mid-afternoon the Russian armored host struck violently at
the junction of the two German forces.
Neither Colonel P. M. Arman and his subordinate brigade commanders
nor the tank crews and motorized riflemen of 6th Tank Corps slept on the
night of 25—26 November. In fact, fulfilling Kiriukhin's orders had been a
nightmare, and they had not yet even seen the enemy. All night and into the
morning the long columns of tanks and trucks had painstakingly made their
92 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
just west of Maloe Kropotovo, leaving several battalions of infantry from the
247th Rifle Division to defend Bol'shoe Kropotovo. Meanwhile, the tank
brigade's 2d Battalion, commanded by Captain M.S. Pinsky, lunged forward
near nightfall to seize a section of the Rzhev-Sychevka road near Berezovka
and threaten the key village of Lozhki just south of the critical Osuga River
bridge. Despite Pinsky's local success, however, by nightfall German coun-
terattacks had driven the tired 247th Rifle Division infantry out of Bol'shoe
Kropotovo.20 Symbolizing the stubborn German resistance, General Metz
then moved his division headquarters back into the village. By doing so, Metz
established a lasting pattern that would plague the Soviet advance through-
out the operation. No matter how far the Soviet armor advanced, pesky Ger-
man forces would continue to occupy key strong points to their rear.
Meanwhile, as the 22d Tank Brigade fought for possession of the two
villages and struggled to reach the Sychevka road, Colonel I. T. Esipenko's
6th Motorized Rifle Brigade, with some of its troopers riding on a few tanks
and trucks provided by neighboring tank brigades and others simply advanc-
ing on foot, veered north from the path of 22d Brigade, sideswiped Ger-
man forces defending Kobylino, and threatened the German defenders of
Grediakino from the rear. Colonel Esipenko was killed in the heavy fighting
south of Grediakino and replaced by the brigade's military commissar, E. F.
Rybalko.21
On the 22d Tank Brigade's left flank, Colonel V. P. Vinakurov's 200th
and Colonel I. M. Ivanov's 100th Tank Brigades slashed westward through
Bobrovka, Nikonovo, Arestovo, and Podosinovka and in late afternoon occu-
pied positions several kilometers east of the Rzhev-Sychevka road. In their
haste to reach the highway, however, they were not able to clear all German
forces from these village strong points, either. As a result, by nightfall, by-
passed and counterattacking German forces recaptured Nikonovo, Arestovo,
and Podosinovka from follow-on Soviet infantry. The 6th Tank Corps had
accomplished its main objective for the day. Its brigades had reached or were
close to reaching the main road, but the cost had been terrible. During the
several hours of intense fighting, the corps had lost half of its 170 tanks and
just under half of its men. More ominously, its ammunition and fuel reserves
had dwindled, and resupply was questionable as long as the Germans held
on to the villages astride the corps' logistical routes to the rear. To Arman,
however, this consideration was clearly secondary. He had been ordered to
cut the Rzhev—Sychevka road, and tomorrow he would do so.
As Arman's tank corps lunged into action, the first large-scale German
counterattack struck into the teeth and flanks of the Soviet tank assault. At
1730 hours, when darkness was already embracing the chaotic battlefield and
while the Russian tank attack was driving the remnant of German 14th Grena-
dier Regiment and supporting panzer grenadiers southwest from Arestovo
94 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
evening, General Voelker reported to corps: "All units are severely weakened,
[and there have been] great losses in equipment and weapons, especially in
light and medium antitank guns and heavy infantry weapons."25 The cost to
the Russians was obviously higher, for the Germans counted at least 50 de-
stroyed Russian tanks, and the snow-covered fields in front of and between
German and Russian positions were littered with brown- and white-clad
Russian dead.
During the evening of 26 November, fighting slackened, and the Ger-
mans frantically attempted to resupply the troops in their forward positions.
This was difficult because many units were still cut off, and the road network
was cut in many places by Russian infantry and armor. Major Steiber, de-
fending in Grediakino with his 2d Battalion, 14th Panzer Grenadier Regiment,
was still almost cut off, and his fuel and ammunition were running short.
Therefore, he formed his few remaining tanks into stationary "packs" and
strong points. The German force that had recaptured Bol'shoe Kropotovo
was also almost encircled, and it was not clear exactly where the strongest
Russian attacks would materialize in the morning.
Across the front lines, Konev and Kiriukhin, now joined at the 20th Army
command post by Zhukov, also took stock of the day's action. They were not
altogether happy with what they saw, and Zhukov alternatively criticized his
subordinates and urged them on. Briefings that evening indicated that the
326th, 251st, and 331st Rifle Divisions continued to fight along existing lines
without any appreciable gains. The traffic snarl along the river prevented
either of the latter from regrouping and moving to the assistance of the 247th
Rifle Division in the bridgehead. At great cost in lives and equipment, the
42d Guards Rifle Division had reached the outskirts of Grediakino, pushed a
battalion into the German rear west of the village, and actually seized some
buildings on the outskirts of the village proper. But its offensive strength was
spent, and most of its supporting armor had been damaged or destroyed. This
meant that the 247th Rifle Division was the only force left to cooperate with
the 6th Tank Corps as it advanced deeper into the German rear from the
bridgehead.
As the 6th Tank Corps advanced, artillery support had been inadequate,
initially because of the difficulty in identifying targets on a battlefield that was
a patchwork quilt of overlapping positions and, subsequently, because of the
resumed heavy snowfall. The snow also inhibited operations by Soviet air-
craft, which tried to commence air operations on the second day of the at-
tack. Therefore, as the tanks advanced, neither artillery nor infantry nor cavalry
supported them.26 This accounted for their heavy losses to German antitank
fire and their minimal progress. Most frustrating was the inability of follow-
on cavalry and infantry forces to join battle in support of the 6th Tank Corps.
General Kriukov's 2d Guards Cavalry Corps had made it into the tank corps'
The Red God of War Unleashed 95
former assembly areas east of the Vazuza River, and its cavalry scouts had
pushed their way through the crowds of troopers massed near the Vazuza
and secured two crossings that could be used the next day. Finally, Colonel
P. T. Kursakov's 20th Cavalry Division actually made it forward to the river's
east bank. Once there, however, a 20th Army operations officer informed him
that army rear service and logistical elements required all river crossing sites.27
Kursakov reluctantly laagered for the night on the river's east bank and waited
for new orders. The remainder of the cavalry corps moved no further.
Meanwhile, General Zakharov's 8th Guards Rifle Corps reached the river,
and he managed to push lead elements of his 150th and 148th Rifle Brigades
across the river and into combat north of Khlepen'. Even so, the bulk of his
force, especially the 26th Guards Rifle Division, remained east of the river
and uncommitted. Finally, General Reviakhin's 1st Guards Motorized Rifle
Division and its supporting 31st Tank Brigade was firmly locked in traffic
halfway between their assembly areas and their designated river crossings.28
With Zhukov's and Konev's insistent counsel, Kiriukhin issued new or-
ders late in the evening. In the morning Colonel Arman's tank corps was to
continue its drive to the Rzhev—Sychevka road. Kriukov's cavalry was to cross
the Vazuza during the night and early morning hours and then race forward
to support the armor, while Zakharov's and Reviakhin's follow-on infantry
were to reinforce the bridgehead, exterminate remaining German centers of
resistance, and expand the offensive to the flanks. When planning artillery
support for the next day's operation, the assembled generals were chagrined
to hear that army artillery had been unable to displace forward and could not
fire to support operations along or beyond the Rzhev-Sychevka road. Zhukov
raged at his subordinate commanders, and despite the lack of artillery, he
insisted the attack proceed.
27 November
Early on 27 November, Colonel Arman of the 6th Tank Corps reported to
20th Army that he would not be able to carry out Kiriukhin's new order
until his forces were resupplied and reinforced (see Map 8).29 Since Ger-
man forces had recaptured so many villages in his rear area, and his fuel or
ammunition stocks were rapidly dwindling, it would be suicidal, he said, to
press on with the attack. After a heated exchange between Arman and
Kiriukhin, reluctantly, the latter had no choice but to acquiesce. Kiriukhin
permitted Arman's brigades to occupy defensive positions just short of the
Rzhev—Sychevka road and on the outskirts of Podosinovka, while Kiriukhin
and the army staff devoted the remainder of the day to pushing reinforce-
ments forward and consolidating their tenuous grip on the Vazuza bridge-
head. Throughout the day, Captain Pinsky's battalion of the 22d Tank Brigade
The Red God of War Unleashed 97
heavy losses. Colonel Pankratov's 4th Guards Cavalry Division, once it had
crossed the river, spent the day being pounded by German air strikes and
artillery and mortar fire, while it laagered in ravines near Kuznechikha. With-
out firing a shot in anger, it passively sat stationary while also suffering griev-
ous losses.
Nor did the commitment of Kriukov's cavalry secure the Soviet rear area.
All day German bombers and assault aircraft, as well as artillery and mortars
firing from the unconquered German strong points, delivered effective and
devastating fire against the supply columns of the 6th Tank and 8th Guards
Rifle Corps. In short, the commitment of the cavalry corps was a complete
failure. Again, after-action reports attributed the blame to the front and army
headquarters, as well as the cavalry corps:
It is also necessary to note that, during the approach of the 2d Guards
Cavalry Corps to the forward edge of the enemy defense, the corps com-
mander was informed incorrectly by front headquarters that the enemy
was already destroyed and was withdrawing under the cover of rear
guards at a time when the enemy defense, in actuality, had not been
fully penetrated.
The 2d Guards Cavalry Corps' reconnaissance also functioned poorly
and was not able to provide the corps commander with information about
actual conditions before the beginning of the attack. As a result, the 2d
Guards Cavalry Corps commander operated blindly and selected a method
of attacking from the march which was unfortunate for existing conditions.
The 20th and 3d Guards Cavalry Divisions' units entered combat with-
out sufficient fire preparation. Cooperation between the divisions and
their regiments was poorly organized.32
In fact, the performance of the cavalry corps fairly represented the over-
all dismal Soviet performance on 27 November. At day's end the 6th Tank
Corps remained immobile in positions short of the Rzhev-Sychevka road, cut
off from its supporting infantry and cavalry, and out of range of its support-
ing artillery. However, during the day it did receive enough ammunition and
fuel to resume its offensive the following day, but only barely. On 20th Army's
right flank, the 326th, 42d Guards, and 251st Rifle Divisions continued their
attacks on German positions from the Osuga River to Grediakino, but except
in the region just west of Grediakino, all of the attacks failed without any
appreciable gains. Along the western outskirts of Grediakino, the 42d Guards
Rifle Division's riflemen edged ever closer to encircling fully the stubborn
defense of Major Steiger's 2d Battalion, 14th Panzer Grenadier Regiment.
The 8th Guards Rifle Corps' two rifle brigades reinforced their positions fac-
ing Zherebtsovo and Khlepen', but their repeated attacks also made little
98 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
headway. Late in the evening, Major General 1.1. Korzhenevsky's 26th Guards
Rifle Division, also from 8th Guards Rifle Corps, moved up and relieved
cavalry forces, which had become exhausted by their struggle for Arestovo
and Podosinovka. The two weakened cavalry divisions (the 20th and 3d
Guards) withdrew to new assembly areas with orders to join their sister divi-
sion in a new advance in the morning to assist the renewed attack by the
6th Tank Corps. Badgered unmercifully by Zhukov, Konev personally "re-
proached" Kriukov for his slow movement and "demanded" that, during the
night, his weary cavalrymen bypass German strong points and penetrate to
the Rzhev—Sychevka road and rail line "at all costs." Kriukov and his men had
no choice but to try to do so.
At this juncture, the 20th Army's last major second echelon formation
finally reached the battlefield. Imagining the emaciated condition of the 247th
Rifle Division, which he was designated to reinforce, General Reviakhin re-
lentlessly drove his 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division forward.33 Overcom-
ing his constant frustration with incessant traffic delays, at midday on 27
November, his division finally succeeded in crossing the Vazuza River at
Zevalovka through a welter of swearing road guards and distraught army staff
officers. In the growing darkness of late afternoon and without pausing to
wait for his supporting tanks to catch up, Reviakhin marched his division di-
rectly into battle against the German strong points at Nikonovo and M aloe
Kropotovo. Attacking Nikonovo without proper tank support, his 3d Guards
Rifle Regiment quickly wilted under the withering German automatic weap-
ons and mortar fire. The regiment attacked twice more in the evening, and
fully half of the regiment's 3,000 men perished in desperate combat. The same
fate befell Reviakhin's 1st Guards Rifle Regiment as it assaulted the bristling
strong point of Maloe Kropotovo. Barbed wire entanglements and exploding
minefields broke up his advancing formation, while a hail of small arms,
machine-gun, and mortar fire decimated his infantry. Without tank or artil-
lery support, the attacks were suicidal and condemned to utter and costly
failure. Having lost all their combat effectiveness, both regiments withdrew
to lick their wounds, and Reviakhin reluctantly reported his failure to army
headquarters.
Tension, anxiety, and sheer anger reigned supreme at the 20th Army's
command post. Both Zhukov and Konev alternatively threatened and exhorted
harried staff officers and greeted combat reports with oaths and new threats.
The plan was going awry, and everyone knew it. Characteristically, both
Zhukov and Konev knew that only fear could prompt the sort of superhuman
efforts required to overcome the day's disasters, and they were expert at gen-
erating fear. As thoroughly competent commanders, they also knew what had
to be done to transform temporary defeat into victory, and this they resolved
to do. Reflecting on the situation, they knew the next day's action would likely
vemmg me piicujj ui luices tu ciusbings in me rruuy region."
The Red God of War Unleashed 99
tell the story. The 6th Tank Corps was still poised short of the Rzhev-Sychevka
road and clearly capable of thrusting across it. The trick now was to provide
that corps with the strength necessary to do so. That meant driving Kriukov's
cavalry corps forward, while all the remaining available infantry strenuously
cleared the bridgehead of German defenders.
Zhukov's decision, quickly assented to by Konev, was to renew the attack
in all sectors with increased ferocity in the belief that, somewhere, German
defenses would crack. Any breech in the defenses, however small, would
distract the Germans from the armored thrust against their center. Besides,
reasoned Zhukov, the Germans must also be concerned with potential disas-
ters looming elsewhere along the circumference of the Rzhev salient. "As we
speak," noted Zhukov, "Tarasov's [41st Army] mobile forces are racing into
the German rear near Belyi, and the Germans are under attack in two other
major sectors as well. . . . Therefore," Zhukov concluded, "the solution is to
attack everywhere with determination and at all cost." It was Kiriukhin and
the other army commanders who had to convey these strident orders to their
struggling troops. They did so during the night, while Zhukov flew to Kalinin
Front headquarters to mobilize support for the 20th Army's faltering efforts
along the Vazuza River.
Ignorant of the respite accorded to them by Soviet mismanagement of
the battle, the German command hurried to shore up their sagging defenses.
At any moment they expected a torrent of Russian armor to pour across their
Rzhev-Sychevka communications umbilical. Early in the morning, General
von Arnim made yet another command adjustment by resubordinating the
102d Infantry Division to 9th Panzer Division in the northern sector. Since
the 102d had handily fended off all Russian attacks northward along the Osuga
River and between the Osuga and the Vazuza, some of its units could now be
employed as local reserves in adjacent sectors. As dawn broke, Russian at-
tacks resumed all along the front. To the Germans' relief, however, it seemed
as if the Russians were dissipating their strength by attacking simultaneously
in so many sectors. In early morning, Kampfgruppe Steiger repelled one such
attack against its precarious positions around Grediakino.34 Although von
Arnim had called for increased air support, continued bad weather limited
the number of sorties that could be flown in response. East of the Vazuza
River, the Russians greeted these flights with intense antiaircraft fire and
intensified fighter sorties of their own. The heavy snowstorm of the previous
night gave way to heavy clouds, dense but patchy ground fog, and occasional
snow showers. Despite the bad weather and the overlapping German and
Soviet positions, German artillery maintained steady fire against attacking
Russian forces and suspected troop concentrations in the Russian rear area.
However, since XXXIX Panzer Corps headquarters had not approved Gen-
eral Metz's repeated requests that corps artillery be assigned to division con-
100 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
trol, the time necessary to pass targets from observers to artillery units and
obtain authorization to fire inhibited the timely attack of lucrative Russian
targets.
The heaviest Russian attacks on 27 November were against German de-
fenses in the Nikonovo sector. At 0915 hours General Hochbaum's 9th Panzer
Kampfgruppe reported that heavy Russian attacks had forced his troops to
abandon Novaia Grinevka and withdraw to Nikonovo. Further, he reported
that Russian deserters and POWs indicated that a larger attack would mate-
rialize in the same area later in the morning (presumably that of the 2d Guards
Cavalry Corps). To forestall this advance and weaken enemy pressure on
Khlepen', General Scheller's Kampfgruppe was ordered to attack northward
toward the Arestovo region into the presumed southern flank of the advanc-
ing Russian force. At 1200 hours another Russian force (the 3d Guards Cav-
alry Division) attacked German positions at Podosinovka, overrunning and
capturing two German artillery batteries before the arrival of four 88mm and
five assault guns of the German 667th Assault Gun Detachment halted the
Russian attack.35
Soon after, the situation deteriorated further. At 1300 hours a new Rus-
sian force (probably elements of the 20th Cavalry Division) launched a two-
pronged attack from Novaia Grinevka and Arestovo against Nikonovo.
Lacking telephone links with 5th Panzer headquarters, the commander of
the Nikonovo garrison, Colonel von Bodenhausen of the 31st Panzer Regi-
ment, radioed, "Heavy tank attacks from the east and south have made the
situation very serious." Shortly after, the 9th Panzer Division radioed a re-
port: "Group Hochbaum's tank attacks on Arestovo are a failure. Eighteen
enemy tanks are destroyed and eight of ours are lost. Many other of our tanks
are damaged, but they can be brought home."36 The remnants of Hochbaum's
force made it through Russian lines to Nikonovo, where they joined Colonel
von Bodenhausen's defense. Subjected to heavy Russian artillery fire, the
beleaguered group held out against repeated heavy assaults throughout the
afternoon, the first launched by the 247th Rifle Division's troopers and then
by a regiment of the newly arrived 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division.
In mid-afternoon the fighting spread, first to M aloe Kropotovo, where
another regiment of Reviakhin's motorized division and 247th Rifle Division
forces struck German defenses, and then to Bol'shoe Kropotovo, where the
5th Panzer Division's security and alarm units, cooks, and antiaircraft gun-
ners held the Russians at bay, but only barely. Intense fighting swirled around
these strong points all afternoon until a "fast detachment," formed by the
garrison at Nikonovo, lunged out of the safety of its defensive positions and
linked up with a similar detachment dispatched by the 9th Battalion, 14th
Panzer Grenadier Regiment, from its positions at Zherebtsovo. The joint at-
The Red God of War Unleashed 101
tack struck the attacking Russian forces on both flanks and temporarily shat-
tered their attack.
The situation had now become serious enough to warrant another call for
help to XXXIX Panzer Corps. Von Arnim's staff responded promptly by re-
questing one regiment of the 129th Infantry Division, then located in the
Rzhev region, be sent to bolster the 78th Infantry and 5th Panzer Divisions'
defenses. The 129th Infantry Division's 430th Grenadier Regiment was to
travel by railroad from Rzhev and commit its 1st Battalion in Podosinovka
and its 2d Battalion to form a reserve for the 5th Panzer Division along the
northern sector of the bridgehead. The XXXIX Panzer Corps insisted, how-
ever, that the latter be committed to combat only after corps' approval. Gen-
eral von Arnim hoped that these reinforcements would compensate for the
high attrition in corps' units, for on 27 November, the 5th Panzer Division
had lost another 33 men killed, 142 wounded, and 7 missing, bringing the
total division casualties toll since 25 November to more than 700 men.37
In short, the XXXIX Panzer Corps and its subordinate divisions finally
realized that the Russians had located a weak seam between the 78th Infan-
try and 5th Panzer Divisions, and they firmly believed that on the morrow
the Russians would attempt to exploit that seam. Intelligence information,
including deserter and POW reports and aerial reconnaissance, which showed
intense movement forward all day in the central sector, only confirmed their
assessment. Until the necessary reinforcements arrived, however, there was
little else the Germans could do except wait and hope that their positions held
out before the Russians renewed their onslaught.
28 November
The German XXXIX Panzer Corps' assumption was indeed correct. Zhukov,
Konev, and Kiriukhin knew that they had located a weak seam in the Ger-
man defenses. In fact, they had detected that seam after only one day of
combat, and their frustration resulted from their inability to exploit the
opportunity. German defenses were only strained when they should have al-
ready been broken. Zhukov demanded that Konev and Kiriukhin pierce the
German defenses that night with a joint infantry and tank assault and exploit
the breakthrough the following day with the 6th Tank and 2d Guards Cavalry
Corps. However, that would be no easy task because, in addition to the likely
fierce German resistance, once again, the weather failed to cooperate. Late
on the evening of 27 November, heavy snow again began to fall, and the ac-
companying fog blanketed and obscured the scarred battlefield. Zhukov's new
order required General Kiriukhin's infantry to engage German forces in their
strong points in the Soviet rear area at the same time that General Kriukov's
102 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
cavalry regrouped and conducted a delicate night march forward to join
Colonel Arman's armor. Arman, in turn, was to lunge forward across the
Rzhev-Sychevka road at midnight. Once across the road, the combined force
would finally begin the exploitation in accordance with Zhukov's original plan:
the tank corps toward Sychevka and the cavalry forces deeper into the base
of the Rzhev salient (see Map 9).38
Colonel Arman's 6th Tank Corps brigades rose from their laager positions
east of the Rzhev-Sychevka road shortly before midnight and trundled for-
ward slowly through the snowy darkness, led by Captain Pinsky's battalion of
the 22d Tank Brigade, which was already astride the road.39 Somewhere to
their rear, they knew that the cavalry we re following. Initially, there were few
Germans available to contest Arman's advance. While Pinsky's 2d Battalion
thrust northwest toward Loshki, his parent 22d Tank Brigade struggled to
catch up. Many tanks fell by the wayside as victims of the snowy roads or due
to mechanical problems. Despite the disturbing attrition in armor, which
reduced the brigade to battalion size, by morning Colonel Vedenichev's bri-
gade had linked up with Pinsky's battalion, and together they attacked Ger-
man defenses at Lozhki. Although Vedenichev's tank brigade briefly captured
the key town, a company from the German 62d Engineer Battalion held the
critical bridge over the Osuga River north of Lozhki until reinforced later in
the morning by the newly arrived 2d Battalion, 430th Grenadier Regiment.
Soon, Arman's 6th Motorized Rifle Brigade, now commanded by the brigade's
commissar, E. F. Rybalko, relieved Vedenichev's tankists. Together, they
abandoned Lozhki and advanced westward to join the remainder of Arman's
force, which was now searching for another crossing over the Osuga River
further west. From here Arman hoped his corps could turn the flank of
German defenses at the Osuga River bridge. As Arman's corps moved up river,
the Germans promptly reoccupied Lozhki.
While the 22d Tank Brigade advanced on Lozhki, in early morning Colo-
nel V. P. Vinakurov's 200th Tank Brigade, reinforced by the 1st Bicycle-
Motorcycle Brigade, plunged across the Rzhev—Sychevka road and raced
forward to seize the villages of Azarovo and Soustevo, northwest of Lozhki.
There, increasing German resistance and attrition brought the advance to a
halt. Down to a strength of about twenty tanks, Vinakurov's brigade could do
little more until reinforced by Vedenichev's remaining armor. The tank corps
commander, Colonel Arman, was beside himself over his inability to cross
northward over the Osuga River. Since the 20th Army had been unable to
move its artillery forward into the bridgehead, and his tank forces were
advancing out of the range of supporting artillery fire, fire support for his
advance was sporadic and generally ineffective. Although his 22d and 200th
Tank Brigades had made it across the Rzhev-Sychevka road, his 100th Tank
Brigade had not. Colonel Ivanov's 100th Brigade had departed its night camp
Map 9. Situation on 28 November 1942: the Sychevka Sector
104 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
northwest of Podosinovka after midnight but immediately ran into heavy
German resistance along the Rzhev Sychevka road and was forced to go over
to the defense. The lack of artillery support had doomed the 100th Brigade's
attack to failure by its inability to suppress the German defense.40 Adding to
Annan's discomfiture, the advance of Kriukov's cavalry was poorly coordi-
nated, and Arman was not sure where, in what strength, or how successful
the cavalry thrust had been. He only knew that Kriukov's force had not
reached his positions in full force.
Kriukov's cavalry began its night advance shortly after midnight, while
Soviet infantry from the 247th Rifle, 1st Guards Motorized Rifle, and 26th
Guards Rifle Divisions were again striking German defensive positions around
Bol'shoe Kropotovo, Maloe Kropotovo, Nikonovo, and Podosinovka.41 His
20th and 3d Guards Cavalry Division were supposed to lead the advance,
bypass German village strong points, and join Arman's tank corps across the
Rzhev-Sychevka road, while the 4th Guards Cavalry Division and Kriukov's
headquarters staff would follow the 3d Guards Cavalry Division. Colonel
P. T. Kursakov, commander of the 20th Cavalry Division, ordered his 103d and
124th Cavalry Regiments to penetrate German positions between Bol'shoe
Kropotovo and Maloe Kropotovo "at full gallop," while the 22d Regiment
followed in support. The sudden emergence of the cavalry columns from the
snowy gloom caught the German defenders unaware, and a heated battle
erupted as the horses and men tore into and through German firing posi-
tions in the grove of trees between the two villages. After several hours of
heavy fighting, Kursakov's two lead regiments made it through the gap with
heavy losses, overran a German mortar battery and company strong point,
and crossed the Rzhev-Sychevka road.42
Kursakov's 22d Cavalry Regiment, however, was not so fortunate. At-
tempting to emulate its sister regiments, the 22d ran into a storm of German
flanking fire, which tore its ranks apart. The German defenders of the adja-
cent villages lit up the grove of trees with flares and searchlights and unmer-
cifully pounded the column with artillery, mortars, and machine-gun fire. The
cavalrymen were forced to dismount and defend the grove, which soon also
became the target of German infantry counterattacks. A six-hour, often hand-
to-hand struggle ensued during which the regimental commander, Major
A. Alakhverdian, and many of his men perished. By mid-morning the regiment's
remnants desperately tried to break out of the ring of fire. Many succeeded
in reaching Arestovo, but a band of sixty-three men, who were covering the
regiment's flank, were cut off and totally destroyed in the fierce fighting.
Surveying the heavy fighting raging to his front, Kriukov ordered the 4th
Guards Cavalry Division to halt its advance and, with the corps' headquar-
ters, to occupy temporary positions from which it could resume the advance,
it was hoped, later in the day.
The Red God of War Unleashed 105
To the south, Colonel M. D. lagodin's 3d Guards Cavalry Division suf-
fered the same fate as the 20th Cavalry. lagodin received his orders to move
forward three hours late, and as a result he had to conduct his advance in full
daylight. No sooner had his two lead regiments begun their advance between
the German strong points of Maloe Kropotovo and Podosinovka than they
too came under heavy German artillery and mortar fire. Oblivious to the hail
of fire, his regiments ran the gauntlet between the fiery German positions
with predictably mixed results. Despite heavy losses in men, horses, and
equipment, the 12th Guards Cavalry Regiment made it through the German
defenses along with small portions of the 9th and 14th Regiments and the
division commander and staff. The second echelon 10th Guards Cavalry
Regiment, however, while trying to find a safe way through the hail of deadly
German fire, swung wildly south of its sister regiments into the German rear
area south of Zherebtsovo. There, in a fierce morning battle, the regiment
was broken into pieces and, according to Soviet accounts, "almost fully
destroyed."43
A German account of the heated cavalry action south of Zherebtsovo later
noted:
Lieutenant Colonel Reissinger, the commander of the 215th Grenadier
Regiment, was ordered to gather all the units in the threatened sector
into one combat group under his command, to close the gap, and, while
ignoring the enemy who had already broken through, to prevent further
breakthroughs. In his sector, Reissinger was able to assemble around him,
in a blocking position in Lopatok [south of Zherebtsovo], the division train-
ing company and whatever assault guns and stragglers were available. As
he was organizing them, about 5 Cossack squadrons galloped down upon
them, trying to break out to the southeast.
Everyone who had a weapon, whether infantryman, artilleryman, and
even the assault guns and a light battery, engaged them in direct fire. By
chance, a Ju-88 was circling over the village, discovered the Russians, and
joined in the battle with its bombs and on-board weapons. All of the
Cossacks were killed by this conglomerate of fire. After this episode,
Reissinger organized the defense in his sector, which came under con-
stant fire. He formed three sectors out of splinter groups and stragglers,
which actually succeeded in closing the gap and repulsing all attacks.44
At midday on 28 November, the cavalry corps commander, General
Kriukov, surveyed the carnage that had befallen his corps and, simulta-
neously, sought to unite his remnants with Arman's similarly beleaguered
tank forces. He was not comforted by what he saw. His 20th Cavalry Divi-
sion with two weakened regiments had crossed the Rzhev--Sychevka road.
106 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
seized Belokhvostovo west of the road, and advanced to Doronino. One
regiment of his 3d Guards Cavalry Division followed the 20th Division across
the road and was approaching Filippovo. His remaining forces, including the
bulk of the 4th Guards Cavalry Division, remained east of the road under his
personal command but interspersed with Soviet infantry and entangled in the
web of German strong points. Moreover, he scarcely had any communica-
tions with his cavalry west of the road or with Arman's tank corps, if it still
existed at all.45
Arman's 6th Tank Corps still existed, but in a shaken and weakened state
similar to Kriukov's cavalry corps. By mid-afternoon, his two tank brigades
that had made it across the Rzhev-Sychevka road defended the villages of
Azarovo and Soustevo and the south banks of the Osuga River west of Lozhki
with a meager force of about forty tanks. His 6th Motorized Rifle Brigade
had been forced to abandon Lozhki, and virtually tankless, it was defending
with the remnants of 1st Bicycle-Motorcycle Brigade against newly arrived
German infantry that threatened to advance southward from Lozhki along
the Rzhev-Sychevka road into and through his rear area. Since his 100th Tank
Brigade was still halted east of the road, there was no force that could defend
his rear area. Moreover, his communications with army acndfront were weak
at best; he was not sure where Kriukov's cavalry were located; and even if
communications were available, the army could still provide no artillery sup-
port. With dwindling fuel and ammunition, it was even questionable whether
he could withdraw, much less continue to attack. At this juncture, the worst
occurred as the Germans commenced local counterattacks from the north
and south along the Rzhev—Sychevka road.46
General von Arnim, the commander of XXXIX Panzer Corps, was proud
of the manner in which his troops had withstood the expected Russian on-
slaught on 28 November. By day's end, the harrowing hours of action even
seemed to have produced distinctly positive results. While it was true
that Russian armor and cavalry were still west of the Rzhev-Sychevka
road, German strongholds in and along the flanks of the bridgehead had
held, and the exploiting Russian force had apparently suffered an unmerciful
beating.
The day's action had begun early, at 0400 hours, when Kampfgruppe von
Bodenhausen in Nikonovo had reported heavy Russian assaults on the village's
defenses. Soon after, Kampfgruppe Getto in Maloe Kropotovo weighed in
with information that strong Russian armor and infantry columns were
advancing between his location and Podosinovka and that the heavy snow in-
hibited the use of his antitank weapons. At first corps dismissed these reports
as somewhat exaggerated. By 0550 hours, however, fresh reports of renewed
Russian attacks on these strong points were supplemented by reports from
the 102d Infantry Division's security elements along the Rzhev-Sychevka road
The Red God of War Unleashed 107
that Russian armor had crossed the road and was attacking Lozhki from the
south. Just before, the 1st Battalion, 430th Grenadier Regiment, had traversed
the same treacherous road and had reached Podosinovka safely. Immediately,
General von Arnim ordered this battalion to attack northward at dawn in
cooperation with 9th Panzer Division tanks against the southern flank of the
presumed Russian advance. Before it could do so, however, the Russians again
assaulted Podosinovka with infantry, tanks, and cavalry, forcing the Germans
to go over to the defense.47
By 0800, Kampfgruppe Getto in Maloe Kropotovo radioed that at least
six cavalry squadrons had made it through the German lines toward the
Rzhev-Sychevka road. As dawn broke, the 5th Panzer Division's headquar-
ters elements in Bol'shoe Kropotovo also reported observing "masses of horse-
men, assault guns, and vehicles moving westward three kilometers to the
south." The 5th Panzer forces and their neighbors in Maloe Kropotovo en-
gaged the advancing Russians with all available weapons, including "wither-
ing fire" from artillery, antiaircraft, and rocket launchers, under the personal
supervision of the division commander, General Metz, who adjusted the fire
and exhorted his men on. The concentrated fire decimated the Russian col-
umns, and according to eyewitnesses, "the battlefield was spotted with dead
and wounded, a view which the oldest veteran cannot forget."48
Meanwhile, fierce and confused fighting raged on around Podosinovka.
At 1000 hours an "uneasy" corps staff reported that the town had fallen, but
this proved to be false. The village remained under heavy assault, and although
it "burned in several places," its defenders held firm. Russian cavalry had
bypassed the town and were being chopped to pieces at Lopatok, further
south. At the same time, the 2d Battalion, 430th Grenadier Regiment, re-
ported that Lozhki had fallen and that it was now defending the key Osuga
River bridge north of the town. Later in the day, to von Arnim's relief, the
battalion reported that Lozhki was again in its hands.49
All along the perimeter of the blazing bridgehead, Russian assaults struck
against German strong points, but to no avail. Nikonovo, Bol'shoe Kropotovo,
Maloe Kropotovo, Podosinovka, and countless other points absorbed the best
efforts that Russian infantry could muster, but all held out. Most important,
along the Rzhev—Sychevka road, most German security outposts also held out,
in particular at Lozhki, and further south German reserves continued to
threaten the communications lines of those Russian forces which had made
the perilous crossing west of the road.
That night a German staff officer succinctly summed up the day's action
in the 5th Panzer War Diary: "The difficulties of the current day's battle have
come to an end. This eventful day, whose morning hours were filled with
alarming reports since early morning, has become a total success for the di-
vision. With weak forces, it succeeded not only in blocking the attack between
108 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Podosinovka and Maloe Kropotovo, but also in repulsing all strong enemy
attacks against individual bases."50
That evening German intelligence indicated that their forces had engaged
strong, fresh, and well-equipped Russian forces that day and prevailed. The
cost, however, had been high. Among the many dead from 5th Panzer Divi-
sion were the division Ic and three intelligence staff officers who were killed
by a direct bomb hit on their bunker. The XXXIX Panzer Corps commander,
General von Arnim, also realized that the ultimate fate of his defense along
the Vazuza River depended, in large measure, on the stubbornness and
durability of German defenses elsewhere along the periphery of the Rzhev
salient. He knew that battle raged in at least three other sectors to the north
and west. Most serious was the Russian thrust at Belyi, which, if it succeeded,
would place a Russian dagger at his back. Von Arnim had seen the message
traffic between the Ninth Army and the XXXXI Panzer Corps in the Belyi
sector, and the situation there was so ominous that General Model had flown
there. Von Arnim's worst fear, short of complete Russian breakthrough in
the Vazuza region, was that the Ninth Army would order him to relinquish
control of part or all of the 9th Panzer Division or other reserves already
committed in his sector. Were that to occur, the optimism that currently
reigned in his headquarters and those of his subordinate divisions would surely
sour.
Putting these thoughts behind him, von Arnim reviewed the situation,
adjusted his corps' defensive dispositions, and issued new orders to cap the
successful day. First, he ordered the 9th Panzer Division to create a reserve
force of "clerks and bottle washers," convalescents, and those who had just
returned from leave that could function on 30 November as a reserve for the
5th Panzer Division. He then resubordinated to 5th Panzer Division those
9th Panzer Division forces that had gone into the line in support of the 5th
Panzer that day.51
Zhukov, Konev, and Kiriukhin faced even more serious dilemmas. Late
on 27 November, Zhukov had flown to the Kalinin Front headquarters, where,
although in nearly constant communications with Konev, he continued fret-
ting about the disturbing situation in Konev's sector. With Stalin insisting on
hourly reports and constantly breathing down his neck for reports on the situ-
ation, Zhukov had to strain to find comforting news for the Generalissimo.
He knew that all was not going according to plan along the Vazuza. As bad as
things were, however, he still had some options, but only if he could sustain
the flagging attack. The German tactical defenses had been ripped open but
not totally overcome. His lead and second echelon rifle divisions were locked
in bitter combat for remaining German strong points, and the almost encircled
German position at Grediakino still held out, in doing so keeping his two main
rifle forces out of direct contact with one another. Somehow, Zhukov thought,
The Red God of War Unleashed 109
a way must be found to overcome that obstacle. Only then could the infantry
perform their key mission of supporting the mobile group. To provide stron-
ger infantry support, Zhukov had Konev hasten the transfer of the 354th Rifle
Division from the front right flank into the Vazuza bridgehead.
Zhukov had long been raging over the appalling deficiency in artillery
support for the 20th Army. Since the chaos at the Vazuza River bridges two
days before, the artillery had been unable to move across the river into posi-
tions from which it could support the mobile group's advance. Even now, only
a few batteries had made their way across the frozen waters. Konev and
Kiriukhin explained that the constant German artillery fire from the numer-
ous unconquered German strong points made occupation of new artillery
positions hazardous at best and, in many cases, totally impossible. Zhukov
retorted that the solution was to crush the German enclaves, and in the mean-
time he ordered that the artillery begin displacing forward regardless of cost.
The 20th Army's mobile group itself was clearly shattered, with half its
strength still in the bridgehead with General Kriukov and the remaining half
under Colonels Arman and Kursakov west of the Rzhev-Sychevka road.
Somehow these two parts had to be combined into a new whole, either by
completing the thrust across the road or by withdrawing the advanced force
back across the road. Naturally, Zhukov preferred the former solution. Zhukov
still had the fresh 5th Tank Corps with 131 tanks in reserve, but he was re-
luctant to commit that force until exploitation and success seemed a cer-
tainty.52 More important, General Solomatin's 1st Mechanized Corps, fighting
to the west, had just reached the final German defense line southwest of Belyi.
If successful, within days it could strike the German XXXIX Panzer Corps in
the rear. Zhukov decided then and there to hold the 5th Tank Corps infront
reserve until its strength could be put to better use. Meanwhile, he ordered
Konev to renew Soviet assaults in the morning against Grediakino and the
other German strong points while he reassembled and reinforced his mobile
group. Army reports informed Zhukov that the tank corps still had at least
fifty tanks and could be quickly resupplied with fifty more. Experience indi-
cated that a force of this size could still cause considerable damage, espe-
cially against a foe whose strength had been as severely eroded as his own.
After arriving at the Kalinin Front headquarters, Zhukov met with Gen-
eral Purkaev and instructed him as to how his front could act in the interest
of Konev's forces. At the same time, Zhukov made the final decisions regard-
ing the 20th Army's future operations.
Later in the evening, after he had issued new orders to Konev and shortly
before Stalin's nightly meeting with the Stavka and General Staff, Zhukov
telephoned Stalin to report on the day's action and his new intentions. He
reported extensively on the combat successes in the 41st and 22d Armies'
sectors, but regarding combat in 20th Army's sector, he stated only that, al-
110 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
though the German tactical defense was almost shattered, reconsolidation
of the mobile force would be required the following day. He gave a frank
report on the stubbornness of German strong-point defenses and used this
fact as the basis for a request for the Stavka to release to him fresh rifle
forces. In customary fashion, Stalin urged Zhukov on, pointedly mention-
ing the continued success of Vasilevsky's forces in the south, but he reso-
lutely refused further reinforcements until Zhukov could demonstrate more
complete success.
As Zhukov retired that night, he innately understood that the situation
was far more tenuous than he had let on to Stalin. In fact, he realized that the
6th Tank Corps might be entirely encircled and unable to break out. If so, he
recognized, he would have even more difficult decisions to make in the morn-
ing. Returning quickly to the command post, he ordered Konev and Kiriukhin
to dispatch an immediate message to Arman: "During the night of 28-29
November, break out to the east across the Rzhev—Sychevka road and recon-
stitute your corps in the Arestovo region, [signed] Zhukov." As he once again
returned to his quarters, he sincerely hoped Arman could do so. If not, only
success of the Belyi thrust could pull Zhukov's and Konev's chestnuts out of
the fire.
THE BELYI DEEP THRUST
25 November
The 6th Stalin Siberian Volunteer Rifle Corps' forward command post was
skillfully positioned on the edge of a frozen marsh adjacent to a clump of woods
jutting southward from a larger mass of woods about three kilometers west
of the Belyi—Demekhi road. It was well camouflaged with dead marsh grass
and snow, and protected communications trenches led northward from the
CP to a denser network of trenches, which disappeared into the west side of
the forest mass. Thus, although located only a single kilometer across open
snow-covered fields from the forward edge of the front lines, the corps CP
was relatively protected from the fire of German gunners, who routinely raked
the forest's edge with fire in the hopes of finding a CP and catching one of its
high-ranking occupants unaware. Despite the early hour, the CP was bus-
tling with liaison officers passing to and fro with last-minute orders. It was
only thirty minutes before signal rockets would introduce the booming
cacophony of the 41st Army's artillery preparation. Major General G. F.
Tarasov, the 41st Army commander, and his chief of artillery had joined Major
General S.I. Povetkhin, the 6th Rifle Corps commander, and his staff to work
out last-minute details for the attack and observe the initial results of their
many weeks of tireless planning.
The Red God of War Unleashed 111
As they spoke, thousands of men in the forested and marshy reaches ki-
lometers to their right and left had just received word that the hours of pains-
taking movement forward had not been a drill. Within minutes they would
have their chance to test and defeat German defenses along the vaunted Belyi
road. In brief meetings in their assembly areas, unit politruks (political offi-
cers) dutifully pointed out what the homeland and party expected of them.
The obligatory announcements having been made, in a more practical vein,
the politruks then reminded the huddled men of the sacrifices many others
had made on this terrain. Today, they explained, every soldier had the op-
portunity to erase the frustration of earlier defeats and, at the same time, make
the Germans pay in blood for the suffering they had inflicted on the Soviet
people. Hate, fear, loathing, revenge—it made no difference—these were the
stimuli that moved an army, as the politruk well knew. For those whose
emotions were drained, the vodka ration steeled the soul for what was about
to follow.
Tarasov attentively listened as Povetkhin once again explained his plan
and the variants for the commitment of Solomatin's armor through his ad-
vancing infantry. All seemed in order. Driven by his concern over the strength
of the German defense, General Solomatin, the 1st Mechanized Corps com-
mander, had selected his second variant for committing his corps into battle,
and he would lead the attack with his two tank brigades and a mechanized
brigade.33 The artillery was registered in, sappers were doing their danger-
ous work in the fields and low broad valley to their front, and hours before,
reconnaissance parties had felt out German defenses all along the entire army
front. In the darkness before them, light snow fell, which softened the stark
outlines of surrounding trenches, grotesquely broken trees, and the icy rims
of nearby shell holes. Tarasov was satisfied. Everything had gone according
to plan, and now it would be up to his massed troopers to traverse the open
terrain to the road and beyond into the wood lines that masked the main
German defense line. Once across this killing zone, Solomatin's armor could
wreak its havoc. Tarasov knew that almost half of his chosen penetration sec-
tor was manned by air force troops of the German 2d Luftwaffe Field Divi-
sion, ersatz troops that represented Air Marshal Hermann Goering's donation
to the German ground war effort. Tarasov and his staff derisively referred to
these half-trained troops as "Army Group Center's Rumanians." He hoped
they would oblige by collapsing like the real Rumanians had a week before
along the Don, but privately he was not so sure they would.
As the moments ticked away, Tarasov also worried about German oper-
ational reserves. He could imagine sweeping away the several infantry
regiments that defended south of Belyi with relative ease, but he was more
concerned with recent intelligence reports from partisans, which noted the
movement of German armor units from Sychevka into the Vladimirskoe re-
112 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
gion. If the reports -were true, thought Tarasov, this meant that Solomatin
would have to advance quickly to breech the tactical defenses before Ger-
man armor intervened. Silently, Tarasov lamented the loss of his second
mechanized corps. Now, he thought, he would have to think long and hard
about when he could release his two additional mechanized brigades and
where he could best employ them.
While Tarasov and Povetkhin met in the relative security of their well-
equipped GP, less than 500 meters to their front, Colonel Vinogradov, the
75th Rifle Brigade commander, peered with binoculars over the parapet of
the far more austere and crude dugout that served as his CP.54 Despite the
increased danger and repeated command enjoinders for commanders to pro-
tect themselves better, Vinogradov liked to be well forward where he could
see the action. He had left the protective custody of his command deep bun-
ker to supervise the battle of his four rifle battalions from a relatively exposed
position carved out of the frozen marshes just to the rear of his 2d Battalion,
which was attacking in the center of his brigade's formation. Just to his front,
he could barely make out the shadowy figures of company and battalion
officers crouched and running from position to position, making last-minute
adjustments to their attack formation. Out of sight beyond the front lines, he
imagined sappers armed with pliers and explosives busily dismantling Ger-
man obstacles. From time to time, the quiet was torn by an occasional shot
or muffled explosion marking either the presence of a jittery German sentry
or the productive work or fatal mistake of a sapper. Periodically, a German
flare rose, only to be swallowed by the predawn gloom and lightly falling snow.
Try as they might, neither side could see very far, and the imagination of at-
tacker and defender alike ruled supreme.
Vinogradov glanced at his watch. No sooner had the watch's large hand
reached the half hour than the sky lit up and the air reverberated with a cho-
rus of muffled explosions followed by the shrill screeching of a thousand shells.
"Nachalos" (It has begun), he muttered to himself, as he instinctively hugged
the ground in the front of his dugout. The earth shook with the violence of
an earthquake as the vague outlines of explosions tore apart the dim horizon.
For what seemed like an eternity, Vinogradov and the hundreds of soldiers
crouched low in the trenches before him remained immobile, embraced by
the comforting sounds of the booming guns. All appreciated the protective
wall of fire before them, but all also knew what would occur as that wall moved
on into the German defenses and the firing finally ended. Then they would
experience the eternal fate of infantrymen.
Shortly before 0900 hours as the sounds of explosions receded into the
distance, the sounds ofKatiushas ripped the air. Moments later, instinctively,
battalion and company officers rose from their crouch, mounted the para-
pets in front of the trenches, and blew shrilly on their whistles. Behind them
The Red God of War Unleashed 113
followed masses of white-clad infantry, all growling a husky "Urrah." Soon
the sounds of the guns were replaced by the sounds of men, a chorus punc-
tuated increasingly by the staccato crack of rifle and machine-gun fire. As the
lead infantrymen disappeared into the murky dawn, tanks lumbered forward
from the flanks of Vinogradov's position with infantry scurrying alongside or
riding on the tanks themselves. Vinogradov watched silently as the tanks rolled
down the slope through the frozen fields toward the German positions along
the dreaded Belyi road. He and his chief of staff prepared to follow that
evening as soon as Solomatin had committed the main body of his armor.
The lead three battalions in the 75th Rifle Brigade's assault echelon, with
o
reinforced tank companies from the 35th Mechanized Brigade's 4th Tank
Regiment in support, lumbered across the fields toward the German defenses
along the Belyi road. Fire from the German strong points along the road was
light, even from the fortified village of Klemiatino on the brigade's left flank.55
As the troopers passed through the first German defense line, they saw why.
The artillery preparation had torn the defenses apart, leaving those few Ger-
mans who remained alive too dazed to offer any resistance. Rolling across
the road to a new crescendo of "Urrahs," the massed infantry poured into
the Vishenka River valley beyond. The steep western slopes of the river slowed
infantry and tanks alike, but the advance rolled on across the frozen waters
and up the open eastern slopes of the valley toward the village of Tsitsina,
which marked the second German defensive position. Here resistance stiff-
ened, as German troopers, still nearly deafened by the artillery din, put up
stout resistance with machine-gun, small arms, and mortar fire. Soviet infan-
try fell in greater numbers, and the tanks, now devoid of their infantry riders,
fired indiscriminately at the defenders.
The sharp fight at Tsitsina lasted for an hour, and shortly after noon the
surviving German defenders melted into the tree line to the east, while their
comrades still locked in the village perished. The forest fighting that followed
was sporadic but more time consuming. Although there was no longer any
organized defense line, small groups of Germans fought from ambush, forc-
ing the advancing infantry and armor to deploy for assaults repeatedly. By
nightfall Vinogradov's lead battalions were one kilometer deep into the for-
ests when a liaison officer sent by the commander ordered a temporary halt.
The advance had gone favorably and according to plan. Now it was time to
sort units out while Solomatin's armor went into action.
Throughout the day Major General M. D. Solomatin had personally su-
pervised the deployment of his 1st Mechanized Corps into its attack posi-
tions. This was the trickiest stage of the operation and the first time the corps
had participated in a major offensive operation. His units had to keep pace
with the advancing infantry and be ready to commit to action in the proper
formation to both assist in the penetration, should it prove more difficult than
114 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
anticipated, and, at the same time, be ready to exploit according to plan. All
the while, corps' logistical elements had to keep pace in order to sustain the
advance with necessary fuel and maintenance support. Solomatin was pleased
that his corps had accomplished all of its preparatory tasks superbly, and he
welcomed the approach of evening when the corps could really begin its
lethal work.
The infantry advance had indeed gone well during the early stages.
Vinogradov's 75th Rifle Brigade had broken cleanly through German forward
defenses. On his right flank, Colonel I. P. Repin's 74th Rifle Brigade, sup-
ported by tank companies from the 65th Tank Brigade, had routed German
air force troopers in the strong points of Emel'ianova and Shiparevo and
penetrated deep into the forest on Vinogradov's southern flank. Further to
the south, Colonel E. V. Dobrovol'sky's crack 17th Guards Rifle Division had
helped seize Shevnino and had driven shaken German troopers into hedge-
hog defensive positions around Demekhi. On the left, Colonel N. O. Gruz's
150th Rifle Division stormed German defenses at Klemiatino and was now
locked in heavy combat for Dubrovka on the left flank of the huge gap torn
in German defenses. Apparently, the only difficulties the advancing infantry
had experienced were in this left flank sector, where by late afternoon Colo-
nel Gruz repeatedly appealed to Solomatin to release his 219th Tank Brigade
to help overcome the fierce German resistance on the 6th Rifle Corps' ex-
treme left flank. Solomatin appreciated Gruz's position as well as the impor-
tance of the drive on Belyi. However, this early hour was no time to deviate
from the plan by premature commitment of his precious armor anywhere but
forward. The plan, thought Solomatin, will support Gruz's needs.
As night fell on the first day of action, Solomatin, from his headquarters
tank positioned to the rear of the 35th Mechanized Brigade, activated his
portion of the plan. He ordered his 65th and 219th Tank Brigades and 35th
Mechanized Brigade to commit forward detachments to the immediate sup-
port of the advancing infantry. These detachments, consisting of tank com-
panies reinforced with infantry and sappers, were to advance in cooperation
with the 6th Rifle Corps' infantry to assist their night advance. Specifically,
they were to press the retreating enemy and prevent him from erecting new
defenses, strengthen Soviet defenses (where required), and, finally, facilitate
the commitment of their parent brigades the next morning.56
At his 41st Army command bunker that evening, General Tarasov was
also pleased. General Povetkhin had left the bunker in late afternoon to
check the progress of his corps' formations, and after a short exchange
with Solomatin via liaison officers, Tarasov approved Solomatin's request
to commit his armor. His parting message to Solomatin was, "I expect your
tanks to be along the Nacha tomorrow. Do all in your power not to dis-
appoint me."
The Red God of War Unleashed 115
Despite the general expectations of a Russian assault, the ferocity, strength,
violence, and location of the blow surprised the German XXXXI Panzer Corps
headquarters. Colonel General Joseph Harpe, the corps commander, listened
intently to his chief of staff as he outlined the carnage of the day. It was clear
that the Russians had torn a gaping hole in German defenses between Belyi
and Demekhi, and the severity of the blow had smashed the better part of
two regiments of the Luftwaffe division and a regiment of the 246th Infantry
Division. Thankfully, thought Harpe, the energy of the Russian thrust is ap-
parently straight ahead and not directed at Belyi proper. Remnants of the
246th Infantry Division's 352d Grenadier Regiment clung grimly to the for-
ward German trench lines south of Belyi, and the vaunted air force troopers,
or what was left of them, still clung to Demekhi, but only barely.57
However, what was done was done. The important thing now was to shore
up the defenses along the shoulders of the Russian penetration, prevent the
fall of Belyi, and stop the Russians short of the Nacha River. Harpe knew
that Belyi had been in German hands since late 1941, and in addition to hav-
ing considerable symbolic value, it was a critical node in the Rzhev salient
defenses in general. The Russians could get at the city in two ways: either by
direct assault, or by cutting its rearward communications routes, which lay
along and west of the Nacha River valley. These two realities dictated all of
Harpe's subsequent actions.
At midday, before the full picture of the situation had emerged, Harpe
traveled to 1st Panzer Division, where he met with the division commander,
Lieutenant General Walter Kruger, and with Ninth Army commander, Gen-
eral Model, who had flown in for the meeting in his Fieseier Storch aircraft.58
Model, concerned with the major attack along the Vazuza River, also well
understood the importance of "Fortress Belyi" and the 1st Panzer Division's
potentially vital role in its defense. Together, the three generals reviewed their
options, giving priority to bolstering the Belyi defense, slowing the Russian
advance, and erecting blocking positions along the Nacha River. The 1st
Panzer would play a key role in all three tasks.
The shaken remnants of the 352d Grenadier Regiment clung desperately
to defenses around the little hamlet of Budino in the Vishenka valley, which
was just northeast of the ruined defenses at Klemiatino. There, a battalion of
the 352d stubbornly held out against overwhelming force. The 246th Infan-
try Division had dispatched all the reserves it could muster to reinforce the
battalion, but few were available since the entire front around Belyi was under
Russian assault. In addition, late on the first day of battle, the neighboring
86th Infantry Division to the north dispatched its 2d Battalion, 167th Grena-
dier Regiment, to reinforce the 352d Regiment's defense.39
The largest tactical reserve force available to General Harpe was the 14th
Motorized Infantry Regiment, then in camps southeast of Belyi for refitting,
116 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
and two battalions of Grossdeutschland Motorized Division's Fusilier Regiment,
also in camps along the Obsha River northwest of the city. The former was a
remnant of a division destroyed in 1941. The latter had been deployed to the
region in late October to defend against the eventuality of a Russian attack,
and the regiment's third battalion was stationed further north near Olenino but
still earmarked for future movement into the region. Harpe decided to com-
mit the 41st Regiment the next day against the northern flank of the penetrat-
ing Russian forces and to use Grossdeutschland's Fusilier Regiment as a rapid
reaction force to bolster his Belyi defenses. However, these forces could not
complete their movement until morning on 26 November, and the force was
still too small to have a decisive impact on the battle unfolding around Relyi.
Therefore, Harpe also ordered General Kruger to commit his panzer division
to the fray without delay and before its full assembly.
Harpe's plan was to create a special group (gruppe) for the defense of
Relyi and to use that group to launch counterattacks to restore lost German
positions south of the town. Group Kruger, named for the 1st Panzer Divi-
sion commander, consisted of the remnants of the 352d Regiment, the two
battalions of Grossdeutschland's Fusilier Regiment (Kampfgruppe Kassnitz)
commanded by the regiment's commander, Colonel Kassnitz, and the 1st
Panzer Division's 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment (Kampfgruppe von
Wietersheim) commanded by the 113th Regiment's commander.60 The new
group contained all mobile reserves available for commitment on the morn-
ing of 26 November. Harpe realized that, for his plan to have any chance of
success, during the ensuing night the 352d Grenadier Regiment would have
to hold out south of Belyi, come what may.
Kampfgruppe von Wietersheim, formed around the nucleus of the 2d
Battalion 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, and 1st Battalion, 33d Panzer
Regiment, and supported by the 2d Battalion, 73d Panzer Artillery Regiment,
rushed forward during a frigid night march from its assembly area near
Vladimirskoe to the region southeast of Belyi and -went into action in the early
morning directly from the march. Kampfgruppe Kassnitz, without waiting for
reinforcement by the Fusilier Regiment's 3d Battalion, marched all night and
began closing into Baturino in the rear of the beleaguered battalion of the
246th Regiment, also before dawn.
With the immediate task of providing reinforcements for Belyi accom-
plished, Harpe ordered the remainder of Kruger's 1st Panzer Division, as it
arrived, to occupy blocking positions along the long expanse of the Nacha
River. With a long night march in prospect and Russians in unknown strength
in the German rear, it was a race whose outcome Harpe could not predict.
He could only hope that whatever German strength remained scattered to
the Russians' front could slow their progress sufficiently for the reinforce-
ments to have some effect.
The Red God of War Unleashed 117
Harpe then turned to army commander General Model for support. He
asked that Model release all available panzer reserves to the XXXXI Panzer
Corps' control. Model, who had already dispatched elements of the SS Cav-
alry Division to reinforce and protect the flanks of the tenuous Luftwaffe
Division defenses around Demekhi, now dispatched orders to the 12th, 19th,
and 20th Panzer Divisions to begin movement to the region. Knowing that
this would take days, the three generals returned to the problem at hand, the
defense of Belyi.
26 November
Throughout the night of 25-26 November, the infantry of General Povetkhin's
6th Rifle Corps, supported by Solomatin's armored forward detachments,
picked their way forward through the darkened and snow-covered forests east
of the Vishenka River (see Map 10). Although resistance was light along
the corps' main attack axis, the going was slow because of the darkness and
numerous obstacles and ambushes constructed or conducted by small bands
of retreating German forces. Colonel Vinogradov's lead battalions of the 75th
Brigade, led by small, tailored reconnaissance teams, each containing sappers
to clear mines, were two kilometers east of Tsitsina as dawn broke. Shortly
before dawn, a liaison team from the 35th Mechanized Brigade reached
Vinogradov's field headquarters located on the forest floor one kilometer in
the brigade rear. The team included Major M. N. Afanas'ev, whose 4th Tank
Regiment tanks had been supporting Vinogradov's night march, and a rep-
resentative of Lieutenant Colonel V. I. Kuz'menko, the brigade commander.
They were there to coordinate the passage of the brigade's mobile forces
through Vinogradov's lines. Although thoroughly planned in advance, this
tricky operation required careful attention since the exact location of the
passage would vary, depending on how far the rifle brigade had traveled during
the night.61 In this case, the brigade had done better than expected, but the
mechanized force closed into the infantry positions somewhat later than
expected.
The liaison teams met with Vinogradov's staff and battalion commanders
to work out details concerning exact march routes and fire support during
the passage and the task organization of each force during the subsequent
advance. After about two hours of discussion, the armor began its painstak-
ing movement along forested tracks through Vinogradov's infantry toward the
small village of Spas on the Vena River, which lay about three kilometers to
the front. Vinogradov expected vigorous German opposition along the Vena,
since the river, which ran from south to north, contained a communications
road and numerous villages, and partisans reported that the Germans had
cleared a kilometer-wide swath of forest along the road and river bank.
Map 10. Situation from 26 to 27 November 1942: the Belyi Sector
The Red God of War Unleashed 119
All along the 6th Rifle Corps' front, similar coordination went on between
Povetkhin's advancing infantry and Solornatin's first echelon main force bri-
gades. To the north, the right flank regiment of the 150th Rifle Division and
the 219th Tank Brigade prepared to advance on Marino in the Vena River
valley. At the same time, in the south, the 74th Rifle Brigade worked with
the 65th Tank Brigade for the advance on Bykovo, also in the Vena valley.
While this coordination proceeded, Solomatin personally supervised the for-
ward movement of his second echelon 19th and 37th Mechanized Brigades.
He knew that, in the final analysis, success depended wholly on his ability to
commit his armor at the right place and at the right time. And this was the
first time his mechanized corps had conducted such a delicate operation under
combat conditions.
Back at army headquarters, General Tarasov waited expectantly for dawn
and the renewed advance. He was already frustrated, for although Povetkhin's
force had made good progress toward the Vena River, his left flank had run
into stubborn resistance in the Vishenka River valley south of Belyi. By noon
on the previous day, the Germans had abruptly halted the advance of the left
flank regiments of Colonel Gruz's 150th Rifle Division at Budino, and de-
spite repeated Soviet assaults with heavy losses, Gruz's force was not able to
dislodge the stubborn German force. Toward nightfall Tarasov had concurred
with Solomatin's recommendation and rejected Gruz's request for additional
armor support. Now, however, Tarasov was less sure of that decision. The
150th Rifle Division had attacked all night, but the German defenses still held.
To make matters worse, shortly before dawn a German armored task force
entered the fray just east of the German village strong point. A vicious two-
hour seesaw exchange of attacks and counterattacks ensued that cost the di-
vision more heavy losses, and at the end of the exchange Budino was still in
German hands and the ISOth's forward progress remained stalled. Gruz again
requested armor support, and this time Tarasov and Solomatin relented, dis-
patching a battalion from the 219th Brigade to support renewed 150th Rifle
Division assaults planned for the next morning.
Trying to ignore the vexing problems south of Belyi, Solomatin's armor
and Povetkhin's infantry renewed their joint headlong advance eastward to-
ward the Nacha River at 1000 hours on 26 November. Solomatin left the
weakened 150th Rifle Division and 219th Tank Brigade on the left to deal
with the unconquered German strong points south of Belyi. The resolute
German resistance south of Belyi had only increased the urgency of a suc-
cessful Soviet advance in the key central sector. Soviet commanders reasoned
that, if they could sever German communications routes beyond the Nacha
River, in particular, the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road, the German defense at Belyi
was bound to wither, even if direct Soviet assaults there failed. At the time,
however, few of the Soviet commanders recognized the serious dilemma they
120 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
now faced. For once Solomatin's exploiting force was across the Nacha River,
it would be faced with the choice of continuing its headlong advance to its
primary objective deep in the German rear or weakening its forward momen-
tum by diverting forces to deal with German forces bypassed in Belyi. In short,
the exploiting Soviets risked dispersing their forces in front of a reinforcing
enemy. Unbeknownst to the Soviets, suddenly Zhukov's decision to deprive
the 41st Army of its second mechanized corps loomed large. Nevertheless,
Solomatin's armor advanced resolutely eastward with Povetkhin's infantry
following in its wake.
Attacking in the southern sector, Lieutenant Colonel A. I. Shevchenko's
64th Tank Brigade, accompanied by infantry from Colonel Repin's 74th Rifle
Brigade, made spectacular progress because few Germans remained in their
sector. Shevchenko personally rode with the reinforced tank battalion that
served as his brigade's forward detachment, and by mid-afternoon his force
had penetrated nine kilometers from Shevino through the forests to a road
running into the Vena River valley south of Bykovo village. Sweeping north-
eastward, the forward detachment soon reached the Vena and seized a key
bridge, permitting the follow-on 37th Mechanized Brigade's 3d Tank Regi-
ment to cross. While Lieutenant Colonel N. M. Shanaurin's 37th Brigade
raced forward to begin its passage over the partially frozen Vena, Shevchenko
wheeled his detachment south to bypass German positions in Bykovo. At
Syrmatnaia, just north of Samsonikha, his force surprised and captured a
security outpost manned by elements of the S S Cavalry Division, who were
surprised to see a Soviet force so deep in the German rear.62 To the south, in
the Soviet rear area, two regiments of the 17th Guards Rifle Division pounded
German defenses at Demekhi, while a single regiment struggled to maintain
communications with Shevchenko's exploiting armor.
In the center of the emerging Soviet penetration, in late morning Vino-
gradov's 75th Rifle Brigade resumed its advance, now spearheaded by Major
Afanas'ev's 4th Tank Regiment and accompanied by the remainder of Lieu-
tenant Colonel V. I. Kuz'menko's 35th Mechanized Brigade. German resis-
tance collapsed, and Afanas'ev's armor plunged through the remaining forests
to the open fields west of the Vena River. Halting briefly to form for combat,
the regiment captured the village of Spas in the Vena valley after a short,
vicious fight.63 Turning north along the river, the regiment with the mecha-
nized brigade following closely and then took heavy fire from German de-
fenders in the village of Tarakanovo, which forced the tankists to halt and
wait for Vinogradov's infantry to catch up. By nightfall, the combined force
assembled in the river valley and prepared to assault German defensive posi-
tion at Tarakanovo and Sorokino on the high wooded ground east of the river.
Unbeknownst to Vinogradov and Afanas'ev, they were faced by elements of
the German 41st Motorized Regiment, hastily dispatched south to slow the
The Red God of War Unleashed 121
Soviet advance, since the Vena River was the last favorable defensive barrier
forward of the critical Nacha River.
While the bulk of Solomatin's corps advanced successfully in the expand-
ing penetration, Colonel Ia. A. Davydov's 219th Tank Brigade and Colonel
Gruz's 150th Rifle Division continued to contend with the hornets' nest of
enemy resistance south of Belyi. German forces continued to hold out in
Budino against repeated attacks, and when Colonel Gruz sent a force around
the German's left flank before dawn, it ran straight into a fresh German
armored task force south of Baturino. Gruz mounted attack after unsuccess-
ful attack, and after the Germans themselves attacked his positions, he once
again asked for more armor support. Solomatin responded by dispatching an
additional battalion of the 219th Tank Brigade to support Gruz at Baturino.
This, however, weakened Solomatin's eastward thrust because the 219th Tank
Brigade's battalion had been supporting the eastward advance of another
150th Rifle Division regiment toward the division's intermediate objective,
the town of Dubrovka, which the Germans had successfully defended all night.
With his attention split between two objectives, Baturino and Dubrovka, Gruz
could seize neither without additional reinforcement. In mid-afternoon,
Tarasov finally recognized Gruz's dilemma, and he ordered Solomatin to once
again shift his forces. Accordingly, Solomatin withdrew the two tank battal-
ions of his 219th Tank Brigade from the fight for Baturino and committed
them instead to the struggle for Dubrovka. At the same time, he ordered his
second echelon 19th Mechanized Brigade, commanded by Colonel V. V.
Ershov, to reinforce Gruz's forces attacking Baturino.
In late afternoon the 41st Army's forces resumed their attacks. Supported
by Colonel Ia. A. Davydov's now reassembled 219th Tank Brigade, Gruz's
150th Rifle Division overcame German defenses at Dubrovka and drove for-
ward against heavy resistance to capture Vlaznevo and positions opposite
Mar'ino in the Vena River valley. To cap the day's frustration, however, by
nightfall the 219th Tank Brigade's advance had again been halted, this time
by heavy German resistance and fire from Mar'ino. Meanwhile, desperate
fighting continued south of Baturino as the 19th Mechanized Brigade lent
its weight to the struggle. During heavy fighting in the blowing snow, villages
passed from hand to hand in successive attacks by both contending forces
until nightfall brought the fighting to a temporary end. Despite the heavy
fighting and the severe losses on both sides, Baturino remained in German
hands. By this time, the 150th Rifle Division had lost fully half of its strength
and the 219th Tank Brigade half of its original fifty tanks.64 Now the 19th
Mechanized Brigade and its accompanying tank regiment were suffering the
same sorts of losses with few noticeable gains. The meat-grinder operations
around the villages south of Belyi were taking a terrible toll and doing little
to facilitate Solomatin's advance. The wooded terrain, numerous ravines, and
122 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
ruined villages that characterized the region only enhanced the deadly ef-
fects, of German antitank fire and assisted the Germans in their desperate
hand-to-hand struggle with the attacking Soviet armor.
In the evening Tarasov surveyed the day's progress from his command
bunker. Preoccupied with the army's deep objectives, he still dismissed the
day's trials south of Belyi as only a temporary setback. He was more struck
by the 1st Mechanized Corps' progress in the center and in the south. Al-
though Solomatin had not reached the Nacha River and the vital German
supply arteries beyond, his corps was across the Vena River and within strik-
ing distance of its prize. Already Solomatin had requested that Tarasov re-
lease to his control the army's two separate mechanized brigades to accelerate
1st Mechanized Corps' forward thrust. However, convinced that Solomatin's
force was sufficient to accomplish its assigned missions, Tarasov had de-
murred. Indeed, Tarasov was already eyeing possible offensive opportuni-
ties along the flanks of Solomatin's penetration. The extra brigades, he
reasoned, could be used either to unhinge German defenses at Belyi without
weakening Solomatin's drive or to expand the offensive to the south or both.
Tarasov sensed that the Germans were stretched thin and thus unable to deal
with crises everywhere. He knew the Germans possessed operational reserves,
but these reserves, too, were distant and would be hard pressed to cope with
successful Soviet attacks elsewhere along the periphery of the Rzhev salient,
to say nothing of the disaster at Stalingrad in the south. No, Tarasov did not
expect many German reserves to intervene, and before any did, he was con-
fident that the overstretched German defense lines would break. His orders
issued that night should do the trick. Late in the evening Tarasov dispatched
new orders to Solomatin through the army chief of staff, which required
Solomatin to continue his headlong advance, at night, and with all possible
speed. Companion orders directed the second echelon brigades of Povetkhin's
rifle corps to follow in Solomatin's wake.
The German defenses were indeed stretched thin, since the only rein-
forcements immediately available to the XXXXI Panzer Corps were the
sweating columns of the 1st Panzer Division lumbering forward along
the Vladimirskoe-Sychevka road. Early on 26 November, General Kruger,
the 1st Panzer Division commander, reached the 246th Infantry Division
headquarters, where General Harpe joined him. The headquarters was well
situated in the village of Vasnevo in rolling terrain on the open high ground
just west of the confluence of the Nacha and Vena rivers. The dug-in com-
mand bunker overlooked the battlefield forward of Baturino in the Vishenka
and Vena valleys and was astride good communication lines extending south-
ward through the Vena valley and southeastward adjacent to the Nacha River
valley. It was an ideal location from which to supervise the heavy fighting by
the 1st Panzer's 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment near Baturino and the
The Red God of War Unleashed 123
struggle of the 41st Motorized Regiment along the Vena. Kruger also under-
stood that if Vasnevo fell, Belyi would also fall. Therefore, he did not intend
to budge. Unlike Tarasov, his number one operational priority was to hold
on to Belyi, and he dared to hope that reinforcements could take care of the
exploiting Russian armor further south.65
At 1100 hours, when Krager's headquarters became operational, the situ-
ation was not encouraging. Colonel von Wietersheim's kampfgruppe was
struggling gamely in defensive positions at Chirevo, one kilometer south of
Baturino, and trying in vain to dislodge Russian forces that had taken posses-
sion of the village of Motshchalniki on the group's right flank. Both sides had
suffered heavy losses trying to overcome each other's positions. Russian pos-
session of the village drove a wedge between the kampfgruppe and the 41st
Motorized Regiment, which was just then moving to occupy blocking posi-
tions further south along the Vena River. Worse still, Kampfgruppe Kassnitz
from Grossdeutschland Division reported by messenger that its movement
into the region would be delayed until early afternoon.66 Therefore, Kruger
had to postpone an immediate counterattack to restore the front lines. In-
stead, he concentrated his attention on strengthening his positions south of
Belyi and on erecting a temporary defense line southward along the Vena
River to forestall further Russian advance eastward into the corps' rear.
Kruger assembled two small task forces to defend along the Vena River.
He dispatched the first, which was controlled by the 352d Grenadier Regi-
ment and consisted of the 2d Battalion, 167th Grenadier Regiment, the 2d
Battalion, 352d Grenadier Regiment, and the 1st Battalion, 41st Regiment,
to occupy defenses along the Vena River south of Baturino and to protect
Kampfgruppe von Wietersheim's left flank. He formed a second and smaller
group consisting of the 50 survivors of the 1st Battalion, 352d Grenadier
Regiment, 100 men of the 3d Battalion, 41st Motorized Regiment, and mis-
cellaneous rear service personnel and placed it under 41st Motorized Regi-
ment control.67 This group was to erect defenses further south along the Vena
River. In early afternoon these small and frail task forces set out to establish
a defensive screen along the Vena River and to impede the Russians' forward
progress. Since the distances were so great and the situation was so uncer-
tain, no firm link, however, existed between these forces and von Wieter-
sheim's forces operating south of Baturino.
The two task forces reached their assigned positions along the Vena in
mid-afternoon and soon made contact with Russian armor units supported
by infantry. Forced from the river's western bank, the northern task force
dug in at the village of Mar'ino and repelled several weak Russian probing
attacks before evening. Further south, the second task force abandoned
the village of Spas on the western bank of the Vena and fell back to defend
the larger village of Tarakanovo on the river's east bank. As night fell their
124 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
position deteriorated. Russian tanks could be seen moving eastward in the
twilight across the river, around their left flank, and into their rear toward
Sorokino. Sadly, since no forces were available to block the Russian advance,
the task force commander reluctantly ordered his forces to conduct a delay-
ing action and then to withdraw westward to the Nacha River, where he hoped
German reinforcements were erecting new defenses.
Meanwhile, General Kruger finally decided that the deteriorating situa-
tion south of Belyi demanded that he launch a counterattack south from
Baturino, even though the two battalions of Kampfgruppe Kassnitz from
Grossdeutschland Division's Fusilier Regiment had not yet arrived. Con-
sequently, at noon Kruger's massed artillery fired a short preparation, and
Kampfgruppe von Wietersheim attacked southward from Baturino. Von
Wietersheim 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment troopers lunged forward and
in heavy fighting stormed Russian defenses at Nossovo on the south bank of
the Vishenka River. Soon, however, heavy Russian fire halted the grenadiers,
and two subsequent actions disrupted Kruger's attempt to regain the initia-
tive. First, the 2d Battalion, 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, which had
been left to defend Chirevo, was struck with a devastating rain of artillery
and mortar fire and suffered heavy casualties. Second, Kampfgruppe Kassnitz,
which had just arrived and gone into action, also suffered a sharp reverse.68
Kampfgruppe Kassnitz had finally reached the battlefield south of Belyi
in early afternoon. After a brief meeting with General Kruger in Baturino,
Kassnitz led his two battalions forward to join the single battalion of the 246th
Infantry Division's 352d Grenadier Regiment, which had been under siege
in Budino since the morning of 25 November. After surveying the scene to
his front and the carnage that littered the open snow-covered fields, Kassnitz
determined that an attack in support of von Wietersheim would be suicidal
because his proposed advance route traversed terrain zeroed in on by hun-
dreds of enemy artillery tubes. No sooner had Kassnitz made that decision
than a sudden Russian attack penetrated the positions of his 2d Battalion.
Only a violent and costly counterattack by the 1st Battalion enabled Kassnitz
to restore the situation. By this time his 2d Battalion had suffered such se-
vere losses that any further attack would have been futile.69 Quite understand-
ably, Kruger then canceled all further offensive action south of Belyi. Russian
attacks continued with increased ferocity throughout the late afternoon and
evening, but all were repelled with heavy losses. Kruger noted that, among
the attacking forces repulsed at the village of Turovo, southwest of Belyi, were
troops of the Russian 134th Rifle Division. This clearly indicated that the
Russians were shifting fresh forces into the Belyi pocket to develop their at-
tack on the Belyi defenses. Thankfully, late in the evening, the 4th Battalion
of Grossdeutschland Division's Fusilier Regiment arrived to bolster Colonel
Kassnitz's kampfgruppe.
The Red God of War Unleashed 125
Late in the afternoon, General Harpe received reports about the with-
drawal of his forces along the Vena River and Kruger's abortive counter-
attack south of Belyi. These reports merely confirmed what he already
suspected, that the focus of the Russian thrust remained the Nacha River and
the weakly protected German rear area. As he studied the corps intelligence
map posted on his command post wall, he read his Ic's assessment of the situ-
ation and estimated Russian strength:
The Red Army is south of Belyi between Wypozowa and Demischi. It has
broken through in the sector of the 352d Grenadier Regiment and, in-
deed,
at the
junction with
the 2d
Luftwaffe
Field
Division along
a
front
15-20 kilometers wide and to a depth of 30—40 kilometers, reaching al-
most to the Smolensk-Moscow and Jarzewo-Wladimirskoje road. The first
assault wave consisted of 22 Red infantry battalions, supported by up to
100 T-34 tanks. About 24 infantry battalions followed, supported by an-
other 200 tanks to enlarge the breakthrough to the east to tie up German
forces north of the autobahn.70
The report stated that another 20 Red infantry battalions and 100 tanks
were attacking further north in the Luchesa valley against the XXXXI Panzer
Corps' left flank, and the bulk of the Grossdeutschland Division was respond-
ing to meet that crisis. In the words of one German veteran, "The situation in
the Szytschewka—Rzhew Belyi area was exciting enough."71
General Harpe asked himself the simple question, "What is to be done?"
Answering the question, however, was more difficult. Although the situation
in Belyi proper had stabilized, albeit temporarily, the Nacha River front was
still wide open. Harpe knew that the weak defensive screen along the Vena
River had already collapsed, and no forces now stood between exploiting
Russian armor and the Nacha River. Therefore, Harpe had to position some
forces along the Nacha, and soon. The 1st Panzer Division's remaining un-
committed motorized regiment, the 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment, was
en route to the region from Sychevka along the ice- and snow-bound road to
Vladimirskoe, but it would not arrive until early the next day. In the mean-
time, he ordered the 1st Panzer Division's reconnaissance battalion (K-l) to
erect a light screen along the Nacha, but it had to do so without its armored
scout vehicles because they were mired deep in the mud of the Vladimirskoe
road.72 Harpe hoped the battalion's light infantry could hold along the river
until the remainder of the 1st Panzer Division arrived. Then, thought Harpe,
perhaps 1st Panzer's regiment can hold until the XXX Corps' divisions reach
the region. "If, if, if," Harpe repeated to himself. "In war," he added, "victory
or defeat always hinges on that word."
In this case, Harpe's "if's" and, in all likelihood, the ultimate outcome of
the entire operation depended on the arrival of the XXX Corps, which, that
126 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
very evening, Army Group Center headquarters had allocated to the Ninth
Army for use in the XXXXI Panzer Corps' sector. Commanded by Lieuten-
ant General Maximilian von Fretter-Pico, the XXX Corps headquarters had
just been reassigned from the Leningrad area to control General Model's large
panzer counterattack force, now assembling. Fretter-Pico's fresh corps was
to establish headquarters fifty kilometers southeast of Belyi, take control of
the 19th and 20th Panzer Division as well as the SS Cavalry Division and
whatever other infantry remained in corps reserve, and launch a counterat-
tack to restore the situation around Belyi.73 However, Harpe realized it would
take several days for the entire force to assemble. In the meantime, another
Army Group Center reserve division, the 12th Panzer, was due in Harpe's
sector by 30 November. Once these forces were at hand, Harpe was con-
vinced he would prevail, but only if he could keep the Russians at bay in the
interim.
27 November
Fighting subsided in the Belyi sector during the night of 26-27 November.
Tarasov's forces attacking German defenses south of Belyi had been deci-
mated in two days of heavy combat. The exhausted survivors required rein-
forcement, resupply, and new equipment before they could resume their
assaults. For that reason, late on 26 November, Tarasov had ordered Colo-
nel A. P. Kvashnin to shift a regiment of his 134th Rifle Division to the right
in support of Colonel Gruz's division. In turn, Tarasov intended to concen-
trate the remnants of the weakened 150th Rifle Division and 19th Mecha-
nized Brigade for what he hoped would be a final effort to crush German
defenses covering Baturino, due south of Belyi. In addition, Tarasov alerted
General Povetkhin of the 6th Rifle Corps to prepare Colonel F. I. Lobanov's
91st Rifle Brigade for future commitment to combat from his second ech-
elon to assist in the assault on Baturino, if necessary, and to extend the Soviet
attack frontage further to the east. Tarasov hoped that this maneuver would
exploit Solomatin's rout of German forces along the Vena River and turn the
right flank of German forces defending Belyi.
For the time being, however, Tarasov intended to hold Lobanov's bri-
gade in army reserve, at least through 27 November, in the hopes that the
reinforced and concentrated 150th Rifle Division could complete the job
south of Belyi. Tarasov ordered Solomatin to continue his advance with his
four mobile brigades and the remaining infantry of Povetkhin's 6th Rifle
Corps. To encourage Solomatin, he notified him that the 47th and 48th Sepa-
rate Mechanized Brigades would follow his corps' advance under army con-
trol and would be released to Solomatin's control when the time seemed
propitious. Solomatin thought that time had already come but knew better
The Red God of War Unleashed 127
than to press the point too strongly with the army commander. He knew that
both General Purkaev at front and General Zhukov were breathing down
Tarasov's neck, demanding that he accelerate his offensive to assist the ap-
parently lagging efforts of the 20th Army, which was struggling across the base
of the Rzhev salient near Sychevka. Clearly Zhukov was relying on the 41st
Army to insure that Operation Mars was a success. Solomatin was experienced
enough to have his doubts but prudent enough to keep them quiet.
The battle in the 41st Army's sector had evolved into two distinct but
clearly related struggles, one for possession of Belyi proper and the other for
the Nacha River crossings and the deep objectives of Operation Mars itself.
Tarasov had placed priority on the latter. Solomatin did not know which the
Germans would give priority to. He did know, however, that, without the fall
of Belyi, his proud corps would likely be marching into a trap. It was this belief
that prompted his repeated requests for use of the two additional mechanized
brigades. Those two brigades, he thought, in addition to making achievement
of his mission much more feasible, could well make the difference between
the survival or destruction of his entire force.
After a short night's respite the struggle for Belyi resumed at dawn on 27
November (see Map 10). This time the Germans initiated the action in ac-
cordance with a plan worked out by General Kruger. Three battalions of
Kampfgruppe Kassnitz's Fusilier Regiment initiated the attack at 1215 hours
against the left flank of the Soviet 150th Rifle Division, which was entrenched
o
in defenses around two small villages one kilometer north of Dubrovka on
the Vena River. '4 After Kassnitz's initial attack had succeeded in clearing the
villages of Russians, at 1300 hours his fourth battalion attacked on the regi-
ment's left flank and seized the village of Morozovo, just northwest of Chirevo.
At the same time, the 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment of Kampfgruppe
von Wietersheim struck the Soviet 150th Rifle Division's defenses around
Chirevo and Vlaznevo. Kruger, however, had launched his twin attacks just
as Colonel Gruz was massing his forces for an assault on German positions.
Thus the planned Soviet attacks became heavy counterattacks, and these were
conducted under a veil of devastating artillery and rocket fire. Kruger's forces
recoiled in the face of the heavy frontal assaults and were forced to cease
their assault on Vlaznevo, abandon the two villages seized by Kampfgruppe
Kassnitz, and withdraw to their original starting positions. Once again, the
losses on both sides were appalling. Although Kruger had failed to crack the
Soviet flank south of Belyi, Soviet forces were no closer to the city, and they
themselves ended the day on the defensive. Kruger had no time to congratu-
late himself, for within hours the focus of battle shifted eastward to the vital
road communications into Belyi.
As if to assuage Tarasov's frustration over his inability to smash the Ger-
man Belyi "corner post," Solomatin's 1st Mechanized Corps performed bril-
128 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
liantly on 27 November, even though much of its forward progress was into
a vacuum. During the night Solomatin's forward brigades continued their slow
advance through the snow-covered forests. The brigades were spearheaded
by small, motorized rifle company—size forward detachments whose missions
were to press withdrawing German forces and prevent them from erecting
prepared defenses.75 Meanwhile, Solomatin's tank and mechanized units
halted along the forest tracks to regroup, rest, resupply, and refuel. German
strength in most of Solomatin's offensive sector was insufficient to do more
than harry his advanced detachments. Only in the north along the Vena River
opposite Mar'ino and Tarakanovo did Solomatin's corps face any appreciable
opposition. Solomatin, however, continued to chaff over the absence of one
of his tank brigades. Tarasov did not release Colonel Davydov's 219th Tank
Brigade from the costly battle south of Belyi until late on 26 November. As a
result, Davydov's brigade did not reach its new assembly area along the Vena
River until the wee hours of the morning. Given the strength of the German
force on the far bank and its own exhaustion, the brigade then had to spend
the better part of the next morning organizing an attack along with infantry
from Colonel Sivakov's 78th Rifle Brigade.
Solomatin faced another problem on the morning of 27 November. The
initial plan called for his mechanized corps to advance in two echelons, with
its tank brigades forward, until it had seized crossing sites over the Nacha
River. Then, and only then, it was to commit its two second echelon mecha-
nized brigades to continue the advance to its deep objectives. Now, however,
Solomatin had lost one mechanized brigade (the 19th) altogether, and the
missing tank brigade was returning to his control later than expected, and
certainly too late to march on the Nacha with the remainder of the corps.
Therefore, of necessity, Solomatin requested Tarasov's permission to employ
all his brigades forward the following day in order to guarantee the corps'
successful and timely arrival at the Nacha River line. Tarasov approved
Solomatin's request but chose to ignore his suggestion that release of the two
controversial reserve mechanized brigades would "certainly facilitate the
corps' advance." Tarasov silently agreed with his corps commander. How-
ever, his targets for the extra two brigades differed sharply from Solomatin's.
Solomatin's brigades began their advance at mid-morning. Lieutenant
Colonel Shanaurin's 37th Mechanized Brigade with Major E. M. Pavlenko's
subordinate 3d Tank Regiment advanced eastward across the Vena River
between the 35th Mechanized and 65th Tank Brigades, using the bridge that
the 65th Brigade had seized the day before. The four brigades then advanced
abreast, fanlike, along an ever-widening front from Sorokino in the north to
Samsonikha in the south. Small bands of German troops evading in the for-
ests looked in awe at the imposing sight, but there was very little they could
The Red God of War Unleashed 129
do about it. As imposing as it was, however, the corps' progress was painfully
slow. Solomatin later wrote:
There were no roads that would permit free movement of transport ve-
hicles. The enemy had destroyed all bridges during his withdrawal. The
deep snow cover and poor visibility in the falling snow strongly inhibited
movement. The corps had no special vehicles for clearing snowdrifts and
constructing column routes. We employed T-34 tanks for that purpose.
They traveled in echelon one after the other so as to blaze a trail for the
infantry vehicles and the towed artillery. In some instances motorized
infantry followed the tanks on foot, which exhausted them and limited
any form of combat maneuver.
The absence of roads, the dense forest, and the poor visibility in the
snowfall made orientation on the ground difficult. The tank subunits,
especially those in the lead, collided with one another. Advancing units
often found themselves on the routes of their neighbor, which made it
exceedingly difficult to control the force and slowed the rate of advance.76
Despite these problems, the corps marched inexorably eastward. Lieu-
tenant Colonel Shanaurin's 37th Mechanized Brigade, with Major Pavlenko's
3d Tank Regiment in the lead, fared especially well. After crossing the Vena
River, it struck southeastward and in mid-afternoon captured Chicherinka
from a detachment of the 1st Panzer Division's reconnaissance battalion
(K-l). The sharp fight for the village took place amid a raging snowstorm.
The Russian tank attack, which emerged suddenly out of a driving snowstorm,
surprised the defending German company, but after a lengthy struggle, the
German company succeeded in recovering its mud-bound vehicles and with-
drawing with only moderate losses. Pavlenko's tank regiment moved on and
seized Gorodnia later in the day. This placed his tanks only five kilometers
from the Nacha River with only weak German reconnaissance forces in its
path. At Gorodnia, the elated Soviet tankers seized a small German supply
and equipment dump.77
Colonel Shevchenko's 65th Tank Brigade emulated the performance of
Shanaurin's brigade. Already across the Vena by midmorm'ng, the brigade
bypassed a small German detachment (from the 41st Motorized Regiment)
at Bykovo and pushed on through the forests to reach the banks of the frozen
Nacha River opposite Klimovo by late afternoon. While the brigade main
force skirmished with German detachments defending the village of Semen-
o o
tsovo on the river's western bank, Shevchenko's 2d Battalion forced its way
across the Nacha River. A small sapper detachment, led by technician 2d Rank
I. A. Leonov, braved heavy German small arms and machine-gun fire to lay
130 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
a crude wooden structure across the ice of the river to permit the tanks to
cross. Once across, Shevchenko's tanks, guns blazing, charged up the open
snow-covered slopes of the valley toward the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road, which
lay less than 500 meters ahead. While the elated Shevchenko reported his
seizure of Nacha River crossings to Solomatin, his lead tanks engaged a small
German motorized column on the road. With losses on both sides mounting,
Shevchenko withdrew from the road and erected defenses to protect his newly
won bridgehead. His elation at having been the first to cross the Nacha River
was tempered by the sobering knowledge that German motorized units, al-
though still weak, had reached the region. Within minutes he again radioed
Solomatin, reporting on the German activity and asking for reinforcements.78
Out of Shevchenko's sight but somewhere in the forests and snow on his
left flank, was Lieutenant Colonel V. I. Kuz'menko's 35th Mechanized Bri-
gade. Kuz'menko's brigade was supposed to advance on Shevchenko's right
flank and reach the Nacha River near Sementsovo. Had it done so, it would
have cleared the German forces from Shevchenko's flank and guaranteed
complete seizure of the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road. As it turned out, however,
Kuz'menko's march column, led by Major Afanas'ev's 4th Tank Regiment,
fell behind, became disoriented in the snowy forests, and crossed to the
north of Shevchenko's path. Without realizing its error, the brigade cap-
tured Zheguny in mid-afternoon and dashed forward to reach the Nacha
River south of Basino shortly before nightfall. Hearing firing from the south,
Afanas'ev organized a hasty assault across the river, but his regiment ran into
German motorized infantry. German engineers accompanying the column
broke up the river ice under the treads of Afanas'ev's tanks with explosive
charges, while German motorized infantry delivered a hail of effective anti-
tank fire down the opposite slope of the valley. Afanas'ev was killed in the
heavy fighting, and having lost several tanks, his regiment withdrew to the
river's west bank under the protective fire of Kuz'menko's brigade. '9 Late in
the evening Kuz'menko established communications with Shevchenko's tank
brigade but could provide him no effective support.
While three of Solomatin's brigades were crossing or approaching the
Nacha River, Colonel Davydov's 219th Tank Brigade on Solomatin's north-
ern flank had virtually no success. Through no real fault of its own, the bri-
gade, together with an attached regiment of the 150th Rifle Division, finally
launched its attack shortly after noon on 27 November. Its mission of the day
was to penetrate German defenses on the east bank of the Vena River at
Mar'ino and then secure crossings over the Nacha River near Basino. Unlike
its neighbors to the south, in addition to getting a late start, the brigade faced
heavy German resistance in Mar'ino (from the German 352d Grenadier Regi-
ment task force). Nevertheless, Davydov attacked and drove the Germans
from Mar'ino by mid-afternoon.80 Rather than withdraw outright, however,
The Red Go d of War Unleashed 131
the Germans conducted a skillful rear guard action, forcing Davydov to de-
ploy repeatedly his tanks and supporting infantry. By nightfall his brigade had
advanced two kilometers and captured Astashevo, but it was still far distant
from the Nacha. Throughout the evening infantry from Colonel Sivakov's 78th
Rifle Brigade moved forward slowly to fill in the yawning gap between the
219th Tank and 35th Mechanized Brigades, but try as they did, the terrain
prevented creation of a continuous front.
To the south Colonel Vinogradov's 75th Rifle Brigade pushed forward to
reinforce Solomatin's mobile brigades along the Nacha and to provide them
the precious infantry support they required. Until that support was available,
neither the 35th Mechanized nor the 65th Tank Brigade could resume ac-
tion with any certainty of success. To the south the gap between the 37th
Mechanized Brigade and riflemen of the 74th Rifle Brigade was so great that
no further infantry was available to support Colonel Shanaurin's advance.
From this point forward, he would have to rely only on the dwindling num-
ber of riflemen in his mechanized brigade. Colonel Repin's 74th Rifle Bri-
gade simply formed a thin screen of infantry extending westward along the
extended right flank of Solomatin's exploiting corps to Demekhi, where the
17th Guards Rifle Division forces still fought in vain to overcome German
defenses. Solomatin appreciated the problem, and he knew that it would get
worse as the exploitation continued. Therefore, in the evening he requested
that Tarasov reinforce that flank protection.
Tarasov understood Solomatin's request but had only limited reserves with
which to respond. He had already decided to commit his reserve 47th Sepa-
rate Mechanized Brigade and the 91st Rifle Brigade to assist Solomatin's
exploitation by conducting a shallow envelopment of the German Belyi de-
fenses and severing German lines of communications running into Belyi from
the east. Late in the evening, he ordered Colonel I. F. Dremov's 47th Mecha-
nized Brigade to attack through the 150th Rifle Division the next morning,
seize Nacha River crossings near Bokachevo, and advance north to the Obsha
o
River to cut the Belyi-Vladimirskoe and the Belyi-Olenino roads. Colonel
Lobanov's 91st Rifle Brigade would support the attack and cover the mecha-
nized force's flank against German attacks from Belyi or further south. By
conducting this shallow enveloping maneuver to the northeast, Tarasov was
convinced he was both supporting Solomatin's exploitation and setting up
German forces in Belyi for destruction. Tarasov chose Dremov for the task
because of his reputation for great audacity.81 He was not very concerned
about Dremov's right flank because he believed that Solomatin's two brigades,
which had already reached the Nacha River, if reinforced with infantry, could
block the road and protect that flank. To insure they could do so, Tarasov
ordered Solomatin to move the entire corps' antitank regiment forward to
support the 65th Tank Brigade's Nacha River bridgehead. Finally, Tarasov
132 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
ordered Colonel Sheshchubakov's 48th Separate Mechanized Brigade to as-
semble overnight south of Bykovo to serve as a reserve for the 74th Rifle Bri-
gade. Secure in the knowledge that he had done all he could to facilitate victory,
Tarasov reported his actions to Pufkaev at front and retired for the night.
Solomatin was upset at Tarasov's decision and convinced that the army
commander did not appreciate the situation. Although two of his brigades
had reached the Nacha, only one was across, and it was in a tenuous position.
The presence of German motorized infantry on the river's east bank indicated
German reinforcement, and hence, reasoned Solomatin, the army's strength
should be concentrated forward if it was to fulfill its mission. Instead, Tarasov
was sending one of his precious reserve mechanized brigades on a fantastic
ride to the northeast into the teeth of German defenses and away from
Solomatin's main axis. He intuitively realized that the last of Tarasov's infan-
try reserves, the 91st Rifle Brigade, would inevitably be drawn into the fight
for Belyi, leaving Dremov's mechanized brigade unsupported. At the same
time, the second precious mechanized brigade would remain immobile, try-
ing to support a single rifle brigade stretched out along a twenty-kilometer
front at a time when army had no idea what German forces would emerge
from the snow to threaten the army's right flank. In frustration, late in the
evening, Solomatin sent a dispatch to army headquarters asking permission
to alter the attack route of his 37th Mechanized Brigade from Vladimirskoe
to the north, where it could support his drive across the Nacha. Army imme-
diately turned down his request, arguing that Vladimirskoe was a key objec-
tive and only the army staff understood the overall situation.
Late on 27 November, at General Purkaev's direction, Tarasov dispatched
his appreciation of the unfolding situation to Kalinin Front headquarters.
Zhukov was due to arrive the following day and would make a decision con-
cerning the fate of the operation. Tarasov felt Zhukov would be pleased by
his army's performance, especially compared with the 20th Army's apparent
problems. Although his army had not yet seized objectives designated for
achievement on the third day of the operation, Tarasov believed his actions
planned for the next day would do the trick.
As angry as Solomatin was over Tarasov's decisions, the German command
was no more certain of success. Late in the evening, General Harpe again
met with General Kruger of the 1st Panzer Division. It was still unclear
whether the important "ifs" upon which victory depended would material-
ize. Kruger's forces had clung successfully to their defenses south of Belyi,
but their attempts to regain the initiative had failed at a cost of considerable
losses. News from the south was even more sobering. The 352d Grenadier
and 41st Motorized Regiments task forces that had struggled throughout the
day along the Vena River had been thrown back from their positions by heavy
Russian armored attacks, and the 41st Regiment reported seemingly endless
The Red God of War Unleashed 133
Russian armored columns crawling eastward through the snow toward the
Nacha River. At least 100 Russian tanks and numerous vehicles were counted
before darkness fell. In accordance with their orders, both task forces then
withdrew in good order to new defense lines forward of Ananino.82
Along the Nacha River front, the 1st Panzer Division's reconnaissance
battalion (K-l), commanded by Captain Freiherr von Freitag, reported in-
creased Russian activity, and one of its companies extricated itself from near
disaster north of Gorodnia.83 By late afternoon the battalion had to relinquish
virtually all of its positions forward of the Nacha, save a small bridgehead
around Sementsovo and Dubki, and now the battalion, which had suffered
severe losses, was hard pressed by two Russian armored forces bearing down
on its flanks. The news that Russian armor was across the Nacha south of
Basino was tempered by the fact that the lead task force of the 1st Panzer
Division's 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment had arrived on the scene in the
nick of time. It drove the Russian tanks back into a small bridgehead in the
river's east bank and repelled another Russian attempt to cross the river far-
ther north.
Unlike his adversaries, however, Harpe knew that this victory was only
temporary, especially if the Russians reinforced their river bridgehead, for
the German force along the Nacha River would remain weak for many
hours. The fact was that Colonel von der Meden's 1st Panzer Grenadier
Regiment had begun its long march to Belyi via Vladimirskoe late on 25
November, and on the 27th its columns stretched for almost fifty kilome-
ters along the snow-bound roads to Vladimirskoe. The regiment's lead bat-
talion, the 1st Battalion commanded by Captain Huppert, struggled forward
along the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road toward its objective near Smoliany just
as K-l was being driven back to the Nacha. The Russian tank attacks across
the Nacha and against the Belyi road ran directly into Huppert's long col-
umn. Fortunately, the battalion reacted well, halted both Russian attacks, and
erected thin defenses covering the vital road. To their rear, the lead elements
of Captain Berndt's 2d Battalion backed up Captain von Freitag's withdraw-
ing reconnaissance battalion by erecting a series of weak strong points west
of the river and south of Tekino. While the 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment's
thin screen covered both the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road and Vladimirskoe
proper, the two battalions deployed along a twenty-five-kilometer front could
not hold out long without reinforcements.84
Despite the precarious situation along the Nacha River, Harpe remained
convinced that victory depended on the course of combat in the Belyi sector.
Therefore, he spent the night insuring the durability of his defenses south of
the city, organizing new counterattacks, and repositioning along his left flank
the two task forces that had withdrawn from the Vena River front. For the
time being, concluded Harpe, the Nacha front could take care of itself.
134 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
28 November
At dawn both Tarasov and Harpe moved to seize the initiative, the former by
initiating his planned envelopment of Belyi from the east and the latter by
renewing attacks southward from Belyi against the Russian penetration's
northern flank (see Map 11). During the night Tarasov had received new
entreaties from Zhukov via the front commander Purkaev to hasten the
advance of Solomatin's mechanized corps deep into the base of the Rzhev
salient in order to assist the 20th Army's advance on Sychevka. Although
Solomatin continued to request reinforcements, Tarasov was convinced his
plan would achieve what Zhukov and Purkaev desired, and at first it seemed
it would indeed.
Shortly after dawn infantry of Colonel Lobanov's 91st Rifle Brigade struck
German defenses at Ananino, ten kilometers southeast of Belyi. The heavy
assault tore a gaping hole in the defenses of the German 352d Regiment's
task force. Colonel Dremov's 47th Mechanized Brigade lunged forward
through the breach, its attack spearheaded by the brigade's tank regiment.
Obscured by driving snow that limited visibility to between ten and twenty
meters, several hours of intense battle ensued as the weak task forces of the
352d Grenadier and 41st Motorized Regiments gave way in front of the new
Russian onslaught. The bad visibility and chaotic fighting delayed the pas-
sage of situation reports back to both Kruger and Tarasov. By late afternoon,
however, it was apparent to both that the Russian attack had succeeded.
Dremov reported his armor was assaulting Shaitrovshchina on the Vladi-
mirskoe road ten kilometers east of Belyi, and the German resistance along
the road was crumbling. An hour later an obviously elated Dremov reported
the town was in his hands, and he was regrouping to continue the attack
northward toward the Obsha River.85
Tarasov, who during the day had met with Zhukov and Purkaev at Kalinin
Front headquarters in Staroe Bochovo, was also elated because he had just
shared with his superiors his optimism over Dremov's advance. Confident
that Dremov would prevail and that German defenses were irrevocably rent,
he immediately ordered Lobanov to wheel his 91st Rifle Brigade to the west
and to prepare for a direct attack on Belyi from the east. He then ordered
Colonel Ershov to move his 19th Mechanized Brigade to Lobanov's support.
This clearly demonstrated Tarasov's excessive optimism. Ershov's brigade had
been supporting the 150th Rifle Division's attacks south of Belyi for three
days and only hours before it had helped repulse yet another German coun-
terattack. Now it was being asked to disengage, march almost ten kilometers
through the driving snow, and hastily coordinate with another rifle brigade
for a new attack on Belyi along a new axis (from the east) and across terrain
that he had not reconnoitered. Nevertheless, Ershov's force began fulfilling
its new mission late in the evening.
Troops
Map 11. Situation from 28 to 30 November 1942: the Belyi Sector
136 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Generals Harpe and Kruger began the new day as they had ended the
old one. Early in the morning their forces repelled yet another series of Rus-
sian assaults south of Belyi, which, as it turned out, were designed to cover
preparations for the larger Russian attack further east. Despite the intensi-
fied Russian artillery fire, the German defenders bloodily repulsed all the
assaults. One Russian attack succeeded in piercing the German 113th Panzer
Grenadier Regiment's defenses at Motshchalniki, south of Baturino. How-
ever, Colonel von Wietersheim was able to assemble an ad hoc group of as-
sault guns and Panzer II tanks from Grossdeutschland Division's Fusilier
Regiment and personally led the group in a counterattack that reoccupied
the village by nightfall.86 Another desperate Russian attack penetrated Ger-
man defenses at Nossovo to the west, but a counterattack by the 1st Battal-
ion, 113th Panzer Grenadiers, and direct fire from regimental artillery also
drove the Russians back.
Meanwhile, shortly after noon, Colonel Kassnitz led two battalions of his
Fusilier Regiment in an attack to firm up the defensive line between his regi-
ment and the single battalion of the 246th Infantry Division still holding out
in Budino at the apex of the German defense southwest of Belyi. His 2d Bat-
talion ran into a hail of Russian fire that, within only twenty minutes, killed all
of its officers and almost destroyed the battalion. Although Kassnitz's 1st Bat-
talion seized part of its objective, the entire force had to limp back to its start-
ing position. The decimated 2d Battalion soon reverted to regimental reserve.87
By day's end a gruesome picture characterized the German situation east
of Belyi. Medical aid and dressing stations and the division hospital at Belyi
were filling with wounded from the fighting south and east of Belyi, and the
stream of casualties increased as survivors of the 352d and 41st Regiments'
task forces arrived. The remnants of these two task forces were withdrawing
through the snow to a bridgehead anchored on Bokachevo, south of the
confluence of the Vena and Nacha rivers. The combined artillery of the 1st
Panzer and Grossdeutschland Divisions delivered withering fire into the
snowy skies over the withdrawing infantrymen's' heads from positions on the
high ground near Totshchino just north of the Nacha River. Only the intense
fire that poured blindly into the unseen mass of advancing Russians permit-
ted the German infantry to hold on to their bridgehead positions.88 Their front
ranks decimated by the German artillery fire, the Russians recoiled and re-
grouped for another attack. But that night the attack did not come.
The news reaching Harpe's and Kruger's headquarters worsened through-
out the day. The 246th Infantry Division reported that Shaitrovshchina had
fallen to Russian armor and with it German control of the Belyi—Vladimirskoe
road. Moreover, more than forty wounded Germans who could not be evacu-
ated in time from a local aid station fell into Russian hands.89 At the same
time, intelligence information extracted by the 1st Panzer Division Ic sec-
The Red God of War Unleashed 13 7
tion from a Russian POW stated that Russian forces would commence a con-
certed attack on Belyi from the southeast on the morning of 29 November.
The two commanders reacted quickly to the new threat. Ordering the 246th
Infantry Division to scrape up forces to block Obsha River crossing sites to
the north, Harpe ordered Kruger to shift all available reserves from the front
south of Belyi in order to erect a new defense east of the city along the road
running to Shaitrovshchina. Kruger complied by abandoning his advanced
positions south of the town while insuring that he still held bridgeheads across
the Vishenka River south of Baturino. He then rushed about two battalions
of infantry northward to the Belyi road. Since this force was likely not enough,
he gathered up spare division artillerymen and signalmen and combined them
with the infantry to form "alarm" units, which he then posted astride the Belyi
road. Most of the troops had neither winter clothing nor heavy weapons.90
However, the drastic situation required drastic countermeasures, and both
Harpe and Kruger agreed on one thing—Belyi had to be held.
The gravity of the situation at Belyi proper did not totally blind the op-
posing commanders to equally important developments taking place to the
south along the Nacha River. Although they differed as to how to proceed,
both Tarasov and Solomatin still agreed the battle would ultimately be
decided in that region. Therefore, in the early morning, Solomatin ordered
his brigades to resume their advance. Colonel Shanaurin's 37th Mechanized
Brigade and Major Pavlenko's 3d Tank Regiment advanced southwest-
ward through the frozen swamps and forests toward its ultimate objectives,
Matrenino on the Vop' River and the German railroad line south of Vladi-
mirskoe. Because the drive was so critical, Solomatin had assigned his deputy
corps commander, Colonel A. M. Goriainov, to command the force and had
reinforced it with additional corps' sapper and artillery units to support and
sustain the advance.
After an all-day march, toward nightfall one of Goriainov's mechanized
battalions and a battalion of the tank regiment defeated a small German secu-
rity force at Nikitinka, captured the railroad station and associated supply
warehouses, and destroyed several locomotives and trains.91 At the same time,
other brigade battalions captured Kubasova, Matrenino, and Levino along the
Vop' River. By day's end Goriainov and Shanaurin could correctly boast that
their brigade task force was the first to achieve its initial objectives. It remained
to be seen whether they could hold them and, more important, whether
Solomatin's other brigades could replicate their feat. Shanaurin's victory, how-,
ever, was costly, for his casualties had been high, and Colonel Goriainov was
severely wounded in the sharp fight for possession of Matrenino.92
While Soviet mobile forces spread southward into the Vladimirskoe re-
gion, further north Colonel Shevchenko's 65th Tank Brigade struggled to
expand its bridgehead over the Nacha River against increasingly heavy Ger-
138 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
man opposition. Reinforced by the antitank regiment sent forward by Solo-
matin, Shevchenko's battalions fanned out along the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road.
The 2d Tank Battalion, with an antitank battalion attached, drove northward
along the road, seized Basino, but then fell victim to repeated German coun-
terattacks aimed at recapturing the key village. At the same time, fresh Ger-
man forces pounded Shevchenko's defenses southward along the road. Losses
on both sides were heavy as Shevchenko's forces hung on to their well-earned
gains. Repeatedly the brigade commander radioed Solomatin for support, but
besides the several battalions of infantry from Colonel Vinogradov's 75th Rifle
Regiment that fought alongside the brigade, no further reinforcements were
to be had. At nightfall, Shevchenko grimly held on to Basino and his posi-
tions further south but could advance no further.
A similar picture took shape to the north, where Lieutenant Colonel
Kuz'menko's 35th Mechanized Brigade and 4th Tank Regiment remained
tantalizingly close to the Nacha River. Despite his best efforts, however, he
could neither cross the river nor reduce stubborn German defenses around
Kushlevo on the river's western bank. Colonel Davydov's 219th Tank Bri-
gade, now reduced to a strength of about twenty tanks, exploited Dremov's
breakthrough further to the north, and he too advanced to the western out-
skirts of Kushlevo, where his advance ground to a halt just three kilometers
short of the Nacha River.
When his advance in the critical central sector stalled, without informing
Tarasov, Solomatin finally took measures of his own to end the stalemate and,
he hoped, to regain the initiative. He ordered Lieutenant Colonel Shanaurin's
successful 37th Mechanized Brigade to revert to the defense in the south and
to send out raiding detachments to do as much damage as possible to dis-
tract German attention from the center. In addition, he ordered Shanaurin
to dispatch a specially formed task force northward to assist corps' forces strug-
gling along the Nacha River. The size of the force, which consisted of a mecha-
nized company, a tank platoon, and an artillery battery, vividly attested to
Solomatin's dwindling resources. Meanwhile, in the north Solomatin ordered
Lieutenant Colonel Kuz'menko to withdraw his 35th Brigade and 4th Tank
Regiment from their positions in front of Kushlevo. Kuz'menko's task force
was to move southward overnight and, after being reinforced by Shanaurin's
small task force, to strike the sagging German defenses near Sementsovo at
dawn on 29 November.93
As pathetic as these measures were, it was all Solomatin could do. Tarasov
remained transfixed by his temporary success east of Belyi and, as a result,
continued to deny Solomatin additional reserves. Worst of all, Tarasov's re-
serve mechanized brigade still rested dormant in the 74th Rifle Brigade's rear
area, where it would have little impact on what Solomatin felt would be the
climactic phase of the operation.
The Red God of War Unleashed 139
Although not totally blinded to events unfolding in the south, Generals
Harpe and Kruger trusted to luck and the remainder of the 1st Panzer Divi-
sion to stabilize the situation along the Nacha River while they dealt with
events at Belyi. By day's end, although the situation had by no means been
stabilized, the newly arriving 1st Panzer Division elements continued to stave
off disaster. After losing Basino to a Russian tank attack, Captain Huppert's
1st Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment, reinforced by a company of
the regiment's 2d Battalion, halted the Russian attack and near midnight
recaptured a small portion of the town. At the same time, Huppert provided
a small number of reinforcements who enabled the remnants of the 41st
Regiment to hold on to their defensive positions at Kushlevo, west of the river.
Meanwhile, Captain Berndt's 2d Battalion reinforced the division reconnais-
sance battalion in its bridgehead at Sernentsovo and established a screening
line west of the river along the approaches to Vladimirskoe.94 Colonel von
der Meden, commander of the overall Germankampfgruppe along the Nacha,
deliberately, if temporarily, ignored the mischief being performed by Rus-
sian units southwest of Vladimirskoe. He did so because he knew, first, that
the Nacha River battle was critical and, second, that somewhere in the dis-
tance the 12th Panzer Division was marching, albeit slowly, toward Vladi-
mirskoe. It could handle what both Harpe and Kruger considered to be
secondary crises in the distant south.
Late on 28 November, Tarasov, who had just flown back fromfront head-
quarters at Staroe Bochovo, dispatched a new situation report to Zhukov and
Purkaev. Reeking with enthusiasm and optimism, it described Dremov's bold
stroke northward toward the Obsha River and the chaos that Tarasov assumed
engulfed German forces defending around Belyi. It also described the sei-
zure of crossings over the Nacha River by Solomatin's corps and the rout of
German forces near Vladimirskoe. In fact, it was a message of glad tidings
and said nothing of the perils Tarasov's decisions entailed. The cryptic mes-
sage Tarasov received in reply was more sobering. It read, "Do not lose your
focus, which should be forward! And be sure to secure your flanks! [signed]
Purkaev."
THE ADVANCE UP THE LUCHESA VALLEY
25 November
Although the 22d Army's assault force was significantly smaller than General
Tarasov's force to the south, Major General V. A. lushkevich regarded his
army's role in Operation Mars as equally critical. Soviet success in the Luchesa
River valley could contribute mightily to the collapse of German defenses
along the western flank of the Rzhev salient and assist materially in the sei-
140 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
zure of both Olenino to the north and Belyi in the south. That was why the
front commander, General Purkaev, had allocated to lushkevich's 22d Army
General Katukov's formidable 3d Mechanized Corps, despite the fact that
front considered his army's attack clearly secondary. The challenge for both
lushkevich and Katukov was to make the mechanized corps' presence felt.
Before dawn on 25 November, lushkevich, his chief of artillery, and a
covey of liaison officers assembled in a forward command bunker located
two kilometers to the rear of the junction of his two assembling forward
divisions. The crude bunker was positioned at the edge of a clearing adja-
cent to an ice-covered track that only remotely passed for a road. To the
front the clearing traversed several hundred meters along the icy track to
the barely discernible ruins of the village of Petrovka. Out of sight just be-
yond the village were the German forward defenses. In the gloom of the
bitterly cold morning, through his binoculars, lushkevich could barely make
out the shadowy forms of infantry occupying their final assault positions
under a blanket of driving snow. lushkevich sensed but could neither see
nor hear the bustle of activity in the forests and swamps to his flanks. There,
under the expert control of his chief of staff, Major General M. A. Shalin,
division second echelons had completed their preparations and waited their
turn to enter battle.95
To the rear, but primarily along the open banks of the Luchesa River about
two kilometers to the north and along the forested track running to Sednevo
o o
to the south, army and divisional artillery were in position preparing to an-
nounce the impending assault with their deafening fires. lushkevich was com-
forted by the fresh news that Katukov's mechanized corps' lead brigades had
completed their forward movement and were also lodged deep in the forests
along his flanks. This maneuver had not been easy. Only hours before, Katukov
himself had doubted whether his brigades could complete their movement
along the snow-filled roads within the requisite time. At nearly superhuman
effort, however, his first echelon had done so. And with German defenses so
weak, the lead brigades, reasoned lushkevich, should be able to do the job.
The rest of Katukov's force, though delayed, could finish the job once they
arrived forward.
lushkevich felt helpless in this forward position, for he was too far for-
ward to supervise many of the last-minute offensive preparations. On the other
hand, his location was the only position along the army front from which he
could view the results of the initial assault. And the ever-competent General
Shalin was capably handling these details from the army main command post
at Tagoshcha. lushkevich hoped that Purkaev appreciated their work and the
exertions that were required to complete the offensive preparations success-
fully. The terrain was simply horrible, and it would continue to pose major
challenges during the assault.
The Red God of War Unleashed 141
Unlike Tarasov's forces, which would attack across the well-marked Belyi
road and several frozen rivers against clear objectives, lushkevich's army
would advance up a narrow, winding river valley flanked on both sides by
heavy forests and frozen swamps. The only track that could be called a road
was confined to the winding valley floor, and there were few tracks along which
to maneuver through the adjacent forests. His army would be confined to
this river corridor and the numerous villages along it until it reached the
Olenino-Belyi road, almost twenty kilometers distant to the front. "That is
why," thought lushkevich, "Katukov's rapid forward progress is so important.
Once he reaches that key road, the flanks of German forces defending at
/ ' o
Olenino and Belyi will be wide open." That was also why, reflected lushkevich,
he had tried to orchestrate the brigade reconnaissance in force earlier in the
night. Momentarily regretting his inability to do so, his optimism soared once
again as he mentally catalogued the weak German forces opposite his assem-
bling army and the likely absence of large German operational reserves. This,
more than anything else, he concluded, should permit Katukov's imposing
force to do its deadly work.
At 0730 hours lushkevich was shaken from his thoughts by the storm of
a growing cannonade whose force shook the snow from the trees on the edge
of the clearing.96 The din continued for less than an hour, and, when it faded
into the distance, the village of Petrovka suddenly burst into activity as the
infantry began their assault. Soon muffled rifle and machine-gun fire and
occasional explosions resounded through the forests along the flanks. As the
firing receded into the distance, lushkevich ordered members of his staff to
move forward and to select a new position from which he could observe the
developing battle. Hours passed before the staff returned to the already im-
patient commander to recommend he remain where he was until Katukov's
armor went into action at the designated hour of noon. Already, lushkevich
was realizing how difficult this assault would be. Although the enemy was
weak, the terrain was formidable. That combination would plague his army
in the days to come.
Shortly before 0900 hours, the riflemen of Colonel I. V. Karpov's 238th
Rifle Division and two regiments of Colonel M. F. Andriushchenko's 185th
Rifle Division rose from their foxholes and trenches and assaulted German
forward positions (see Map 12).9~ The artillery fire, which was largely pre-
planned and could seldom be observed, had nevertheless torn gaping holes
in the German defenses. However, the scattered nature of the German strong-
point defense made it impossible to eliminate every position. Thus, from
the very beginning, lushkevich's assault developed unevenly. Some forward
battalions made good progress, while others were held up by fire from
undestroyed German bunkers. This required almost constant maneuver by
the attackers as they painstakingly fought nasty separate battles to overcome
The Red God of War Unleashed 143
single German positions. Moreover, the tank support provided by Katukov's
corps, which amounted to a tank company per assaulting rifle battalion, was
uneven. Confined to narrow valley approaches and forest tracks, the slow-
moving tanks fell victim to uncleared minefields and infantry ambushes. In
short, the going was painfully slow.
During the first several hours of the assault, Colonel Andriushchenko's
two rifle regiments overcame forward German defenses but became en-
meshed in combat for several villages in open terrain on the south bank of
the Luchesa River. At noon Katukov's lead tank brigade, Colonel V. M.
Gorelov's 1st Guards Tank Brigade, joined the attack on schedule and pro-
pelled the two rifle regiments forward about one kilometer. However, divi-
sional forces north of the Luchesa River were unable to pierce the forward
German defenses and join the attack. By nightfall, Andriushchenko halted
his advance and prepared to force the river with an attack toward Grivo in
the morning. To the south, Karpov's full division experienced similar diffi-
culties. His two first echelon regiments penetrated German defenses in the
forests forward and south of Petrovka, but his progress was slowed in the
forests beyond. Moreover, Katukov's 49th Tank Brigade, which was supposed
to begin supporting the infantry at noon, arrived forward late and was also
slowed by the forest fighting. By day's end, the combined force had reached
German defenses at Tolkachi, only two kilometers from their starting point.
Major General M. E. Katukov, the commander of the 3d Mechanized
Corps, and his chief of staff, Colonel M. T. Nikitin, spent the day in frenzied
activity, encouraging their lead brigades forward and urging their second
echelon brigades on through the forests to the rear. Even with the slow for-
ward movement, it was a major challenge to force forward the requisite am-
munition, fuel, and other critical supplies necessary to sustain combat. More
worrisome still was the fact that the slow forest fighting consumed immense
quantities of fuel, further burdening the supply effort.
Toward evening Katukov joined lushkevich in a field command bunker
just to the rear and north of Tolkachi. There they revised their plans for com-
bat on the next day. With Katukov's two tank brigades in support, lushkevich
ordered attacks both across the frozen Luchesa River to secure Grivo and
also forward through Tolkachi toward a more open stretch of country north
of Karskaia. Once this open country was reached, Katukov's armor could strike
toward the village of Starukhi, whose position astride the single road through
the Luchesa valley seemed to lushkevich to be the key to a further rapid
advance. In the meantime, he ordered his already tired troopers to rest and
regroup for the next morning's combat.
Word of the Russian assault reached General Harpe, the XXXXI Panzer
Corps commander, soon after 0900 hours, at a time when he was already pre-
occupied with the violent attack south of Belyi. Initially, he was more con-
144 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
cerned with the latter because of its rapid initial progress and the vital nature
of the Belyi hub in the Rzhev defenses and because he knew the terrain would
support German defense in the Luchesa River valley. On the other hand, he
could not dismiss the northern threat in too cavalier a fashion, for the Ger-
man defenses there were weak and available reserves were few.98
The initial reports said that the Russian attack had overrun the right flank
battalions of the 216th Grenadier Regiment of General Weidling's 86th
Infantry Division, and the division commander was en route to Karskaia to
supervise the defense. Subsequent reports during the day indicated slow Rus-
sian progress south of the Luchesa. Harpe knew the attack had taken place
near the vulnerable juncture of his and General Hilpert's XXIII Army Corps.
Hilpert's left flank 110th Infantry Division defended along an extended front
almost thirty kilometers long from north of the Velikie Luki—Olenino railroad
line southward to just north of Grivo in the Luchesa River valley. It could
bring only its regimental-size Kampfgruppe Lindemann (the 252d Grenadier
Regiment) to bear on the fighting in the Luchesa valley. This meant that the
several battalions of the 110th Infantry's 252d Grenadier Regiment and the
remnants of the 86th Infantry's 216th Grenadier Regiment would have to
contend with the Russian attack by themselves before reinforcements arrived,
and that would take at least twenty-four hours."
The only reinforcements available for use in the Luchesa valley were from
Grossdeutschland Motorized Division's Grenadier Regiment, then in camp
north of Olenino. The problem was, on this morning, the regiment had to
react to attacks from two directions. In the north Russian forces were pour-
ing across the Molodoi Tud River, and in the south they were advancing up
the Luchesa. General Hilpert settled the dilemma by ordering half of the
regiment south and the other north. In any case, it would take at least a full
day for the Grenadier Regiment's two battalions to reach the Luchesa. The
Grenadier Regiment's 2d Battalion broke camp shortly before midnight and,
early on 26 November, headed south through Olenino toward the Luchesa
River valley. The regiment's 1st Battalion prepared to follow.100
26-27 November
At dawn on 26 November, after another short artillery preparation, lush-
kevich's infantry, still supported by Katukov's two tank brigades deployed in
company teams, resumed their assaults in the gently falling snow. Along the
banks of the Luchesa, the 280th Rifle Regiment of Colonel Andriushchenko's
185th Rifle Division assaulted across the frozen surface of the river and gained
a lodgment on its northern bank. Faced with the successful Soviet assault,
the German defenders abandoned their forward positions north of the river
and withdrew in good order to the fortified town of Grivo.101 The new posi-
The Red God of War Unleashed 145
tion was a strong one nestled along the forward slopes of a ridge between the
Luchesa and a tributary that ran into the Luchesa from the north. As Andriush-
chenko's two regiments pursued toward Grivo, the Germans greeted them
with withering small arms, machine-gun, and mortar fire, while German artil-
lery plowed up the ground and tore holes in the ranks of the Russian infantry
along the approaches to the village. The supporting tanks from 1st Guards
Tank Brigade became separated from the infantry at the river crossing, and
without their support, the Soviet attack faltered at midday before the bris-
tling defenses of the town.
Meanwhile, Colonel Andriushchenko's 1319th Rifle Regiment, supported
by the bulk of the 1st Guards Tank Brigade's tanks, broke through German
positions south of the river and moved slowly forward astride the road to
Starukhi. It was halted halfway to its objective by a violent counterattack by
newly arrived German motorized infantry. The battle raged to and fro all after-
noon with only minimal Soviet progress. The advance of little more than a
kilometer produced heavy Soviet tank losses.102 Therefore, toward evening,
Katukov withdrew his tank brigade to regroup and reinforced it with the bat-
talion from the sector north of the river. That evening, Katukov proposed to
lushkevich that he commit both the reformed 1st Guards Tank Brigade and
elements of his second echelon 3d Mechanized Brigade the next day to finally
smash the German defenses and reach Starukhi. lushkevich agreed.
In the Tolkachi sector, Colonel Karpov launched his 238th Rifle Division
in repeated attacks against the German defenses and, finally, toward night-
fall, captured the German strong point. Here, as well, the casualty toll was
high, and, by late afternoon, Karpov called off further attacks. One of the major
reasons for the failure to take Tolkachi sooner was the late arrival of 1st Mecha-
nized Brigade, which was supposed to envelop the village from the south but
did not succeed. On Katukov and lushkevich's instructions, Karpov recon-
centrated his division and planned a new attack on 27 November. This time
both the 49th Tank and 1st Mechanized Brigade would participate in the
attack.
The difficulties the Soviets encountered on 26 November resulted not
only from stubborn German resistance in heavily fortified positions, poor
coordination of attacking forces, and the terrible terrain but also from the
arrival of the first German reserves. After marching all night, at mid-morning,
the 2d Battalion of Grossdeutschland's Grenadier Regiment reached the
Luchesa valley and went into battle from the march along the Starukhi road.
While its initial attack threw the Russians back, the Russian infantry soon
resumed their attacks. By mid-afternoon, Kampfgruppe Warschauer, consist-
ing of Grossdeutschland's 1st and 2d Combat Engineer Companies, began
reaching the battlefield. Commitment of the 1st Company again stabilized
the German defenses four kilometers -west of Starukhi. At the same time,
146 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Kampfgruppe Lindemann, defending Grivo, dispatched its 1st Battalion, 252d
Grenadier Regiment, on a wide sweeping march across the Luchesa River
through the rear area to reinforce German defenses at Karskaia. Meanwhile,
the German 86th Infantry Division also scraped up a battalion's worth of
reserves and sent them to reinforce its defensive positions at Karskaia.103
Early on 27 November, lushkevich's army finally began experiencing some
success. While resuming its assaults on Grivo, this time with only infantry, its
concentrated tank force made its presence felt in the south. Colonel Gorelov's
1st Guards Tank and Colonel A. Kh. Babadzhanian's 3d Mechanized Brigades
pushed through the pesky panzer grenadiers defending the Starukhi road and
drove on along the south bank of the Luchesa River to the very outskirts of
town. Although halted at the edge of town by heavy enemy resistance, the
follow-on 1319th Rifle Regiment gained a small bridgehead on the river's
northern bank south of Grivo. At the same time, Major V. S. Chernichenko's
49th Tank Brigade, followed by Colonel I. V. Mel'nikov's 1st Mechanized Bri-
gade, enveloped German forces defending north of Karskaia. While infantry
from the 238th Rifle Division pressed the Germans back into the village's
defenses, Chernichenko's tanks raced into the open country south of Starukhi
until they were halted north of Goncharovo by fresh German infantry. It
appeared to lushkevich that the long awaited penetration was finally occur-
ring. However, by nightfall the promising advance once again ground to a
halt against stiffening German resistance.
That resistance was due to the skillful repositioning of German defend-
ing units and the arrival of small numbers of fresh German reserves. After
being attacked in the morning, the 2d Battalion, Grenadier Regiment, had
fallen back in good order to the northern bank of the Luchesa River and had
been able to contain the attacking Russian infantry in a small bridgehead when
Russian armor failed to support the crossing. The remainder of the grena-
dier battalion reached Starukhi, and with the help of both assault engineer
companies of Kampfgruppe Warschauer, it was barely able to hold on to the
town. Just to the south, the 1st Battalion, 252d Infantry, also stopped the
Russians cold at Goncharovo and forced them again to regroup.104 Despite
these local successes, however, a sizable gap now existed between German
forces locked in battle along the Luchesa River and the 86th Infantry Divi-
sion's defense anchored on Karskaia. The trick for the German command was
to prevent the gap from growing larger, which would be difficult at best, since
few reserves were expected other than the remaining two battalions of Gross-
deutschland's Grenadier Regiment. General Harpe had already concluded
that he would address the crisis at Belyi first and only then deal with the
Luchesa matter. He did retire for the night somewhat reassured when word
arrived that the two fresh grenadier battalions were just then closing into the
Luchesa valley.
The Red God of War Unleashed 147
28-30 November
Fortuitously for the Germans, the arrival of the two reinforcing German grena-
dier battalions took place immediately before the Soviets intended to launch
their decisive final attack to clear the valley of the enemy. As a consequence,
what was to be a triumphant deep Soviet thrust to the Olenino-Belyi road
turned into a vicious two-day slugfest, which, although the Soviets emerged
successful, left them in a severely shaken state.
Late on 27 November, lushkevich again regrouped his forces (see Map 12).
This time he intended to throw the bulk of his armor against the German
open flank at Karskaia in order to expand the penetration and then wheel
northward through the German rear to outflank the German defenses at
Starukhi and seize Luchesa River crossings east of the German strong point,
lushkevich ordered Katukov to regroup all of his mobile brigades to the right.
His 49th Tank and 10th Mechanized Brigades, deployed forward from sec-
ond echelon, were to crush German defenses at Karskaia, while the 1st Guards
Tank and 3d Mechanized Brigades were to attack eastward from the salient
in German lines south of Starukhi.105 Once through the German defenses,
all of the brigades would then wheel northward in what lushkevich believed
would be an irresistible flood of armor.
Once again, however, the operation was immediately beset with prob-
lems. First, driving snow hindered the night regrouping, and units became
hopelessly snarled negotiating the snow-covered forest tracts. Therefore the
attack, which had been planned for dawn, could not begin until after noon.
When it finally did commence, the massive tank assault overpowered Ger-
man defenses at Karskaia, and Chernichenko's tanks and mechanized
infantry drove eastward through the forests toward Goncharovo. Then, how-
ever, increased German resistance also threatened the attack's success.
While negotiating the steep banks of a stream just west of Goncharovo, the
assaulting force, which had become overextended during the rapid pursuit,
ran into a hail of fire from German defenders in the village. Ominously, the
defenders included panzer grenadiers in addition to the infantry the Soviets
had already engaged. As the Soviet advance ground to a halt at nightfall,
lushkevich again ordered his forces to regroup before launching a coordi-
nated assault in the morning.
To the north Colonel Gorelov's 1st Tank and Colonel Babadzhanian's 3d
Mechanized Brigades struck at Starukhi and points east shortly after noon.
They too immediately ran into fresh German panzer grenadiers and managed
to advance only a single kilometer in heavy fighting. With both of his forward
thrusts bogged down, lushkevich ordered his reserves forward. His 114th Rifle
Brigade and 39th Separate Tank Regiment with about thirty new tanks moved
forward slowly to reinforce the next day's attack, if required. lushkevich hoped
148 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
they would not be needed, for they were the last reserve he possessed, and it
was still a long way to the Olenino road.
Early in the day, lushkevich had made a short trip to front headquarters
at Staroe Bochovo, where he had briefed Zhukov and Purkaev on his army's
progress and future intent. After returning to his army command post, in mid-
afternoon, a new transmission arrived from front headquarters, where the
Kalinin Front commander, Purkaev, was still meeting with Zhukov. The mes-
sage congratulated lushkevich's forces for their "modest" achievements, or-
dered the attack to continue, and demanded that lushkevich's forces reach
the Olenino road with all speed and "at any cost." The army commander was
glad his reserves were en route forward.
The Germans had only barely avoided disaster in the Luchesa valley on
28 November, and they owed their salvation to the arrival of Kampfgruppe
Kohler, the remaining two battalions of Grossdeutschland Motorized Division's
Grenadier Regiment, commanded by Colonel Kohler. The two battalions
rolled into the Luchesa valley at dawn on that day with the 1st Battalion in
the lead. (The 1st Battalion crossed the river and dispatched company teams
to reinforce the 1st Battalion, 252d Grenadier Regiment's detachments de-
fending along an extended front south of Goncharovo and the 3d Battalion
reinforced the small Kampfgruppe Warschauer in Starukhi.)106 Having ful-
filled his initial mission, Kohler set about reorganizing his forces to perform
his second mission, a full-scale attack designed to close the gaping hole in
German lines and to restore communications with the 86th Infantry Divi-
sion. Before he could do so, however, new Soviet attacks forced his regroup-
ing forces to fight for their lives. When the Soviet assaults trailed off in the
late afternoon after only minimal gains, Kohler resumed his preparations, this
time for an attack the next morning.
Early on 29 November, the Luchesa front erupted in fire as both sides
attacked virtually simultaneously all along the front in a storm of costly com-
bat that endured throughout the day. The armor of Major Chernichenko's
49th Tank Brigade and the infantry of the 10th Mechanized Brigade and
Colonel Karpov's 238th Rifle Division smashed German defenses at Gon-
charovo and drove west through the forests into the teeth of Colonel Kohler's
o
counterattacking 1st Battalion of German grenadier reserves. The Germans
deployed a 50mm antitank battery for direct fire at the advancing T-34
medium and KV-1 heavy tanks, but the shells merely bounced off the iron
monster and the battery was quickly overrun. A vicious hand-to-hand battle
ensued between the advancing Russians and the German infantry during
which the Germans employed 88mm antiaircraft guns in direct fire against
the attacking Russian force. After destroying fifteen Soviet tanks, the Ger-
man force temporarily halted the Russian attack just short of the village of
Smol'kovo in a clearing only eight kilometers from the Olenino road. Although
The Red God of War Unleashed 149
the 1st Battalion of Grossdeutschland's Grenadier Regiment was severely
shaken by the fierce fighting, it managed to hold on to Smol'kovo until fight-
ing waned in the evening.107
Further north the fighting was even more vicious. There, Colonel Gorelov's
and Babadzhanian's remaining forty tanks, supported by motorized infantry
of Babadzhanian's mechanized brigade, struck Kampfgruppe Warschauers
two reinforced engineer companies in Starukhi and the 2d Battalion, Grena-
dier Regiment's, positions along the Luchesa River. Losses on both sides were
appalling, as the Soviets lost half of their tanks and the German 2d Battalion
was reduced in strength to a reinforced platoon. A German participant noted,
"It was indescribable what the infantrymen, engineers, the artillerymen, and
the forward observers had to endure in the snow and ice of the forward com-
bat line. Alert units had to be formed from convoy and supply units to close
some of the developing gaps."108
Both sided were equally exhausted, and at nightfall lushkevich would have
preferred to halt, but Zhukov had said to continue the attack at all costs, and
lushkevich knew what that meant. At midnight he ordered all units to persist
in their attacks over night and to reorganize for another general assault in
the morning. Gorelov, Babadzhanian, Karpov, and Andriushchenko did so
and, at dawn, launched their new assault with a vengeance. Their armor and
O
infantry struck repeatedly along the front from Grivo to Smol'kovo with a
determination that almost defied German comprehension. The entire front
seemed aflame with crashing artillery, exploding shells, growling tanks, and
shouting infantry.
Confronted with the new wave of even heavier Russian attacks, Senior
Lieutenant Warschauer's combat engineers grudgingly gave up Starukhi and
then the village of Bogoroditskoe to the east, only to turn and retake the vil-
lage in a heated charge. The 1st Battalion, Grenadier Regiment, was entirely
encircled in Smol'kovo but in heavy fighting fought its way back to Gorovatka.
The 1st Battalion, 252d Regiment, suffered heavy losses withdrawing through
a hail of fire to new positions east of Galitskina, only four kilometers forward
of the Olenino road. In the eyes of one German participant, "There were at-
tacks everywhere! Crises arose by the hour!"109
Meanwhile, north of the Luchesa River, Soviet infantry from Colonel
Andriushchenko's 185th Rifle Division assaulted but failed to seize the strong
point of Grivo. However, eastward along the Luchesa and along its southern
bank, both the 2d and 3d Battalions, Grenadier Regiment, were forced to
fall back to new defenses along the river east and west of Travino. Their lines
barely held against the ferocious Soviet assaults. Worse for the Germans, the
several kilometer gap between Kampfgruppe Kohler and the 86th Infantry
Division's defenses now became a twelve-kilometer gap as the 216th Grena-
dier Regiment was pushed steadily south from Karskaia, away from its neigh-
150 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
bors to the north. Its 3d Battalion, while trying to retreat under fire south-
ward through the forests, lost all of its officers and many of its remaining
men. The remnants of the smashed regiment formed a weak new defense
west of Ivanovka, which bent six kilometers westward and then southwest-
ward and whose open right flank ended abruptly in the frozen swamps.
The reports of terrible carnage sent by Colonels Lindemann and Kohler
to Generals Harpe and Hilpert at the XXXXI Panzer and XXIII Army Corps
headquarters deeply shocked the two normally unflappable commanders.
Both realized that successful defense at Belyi and Olenino would be futile if
the front along the Luchesa collapsed. Therefore, suddenly the importance
of halting the Soviet onslaught in the Luchesa valley took on an entirely new
meaning. Consequently, both commanders now scraped up whatever rein-
forcements were available wherever they could find them and dispatched
them hastily to the threatened sector. The XXIII Army Corps sent infantry
battalions from the 110th and 253d Infantry Divisions, even though these
formations themselves could be subject to attack at any time. Artillerymen,
engineers, rear service personnel, cooks, and even Russian Hiwis (forHilfs-
williger, willing or volunteer auxiliaries) were rounded up and sent to the now
vital Luchesa sector.110 Now the German command too had concluded that
the Soviet attack there had to be contained at all costs.
Zhukov's threats and entreaties had worked. lushkevich, Purkaev, and
Zhukov were proud of the 22d Army's efforts by nightfall on 30 November.
To Zhukov, the army's performance clearly proved what a bit of "steel in the
pants" could produce. Unlike Zhukov, however, General lushkevich harbored
mixed emotions. It was he who had to read the loss reports, and as he did, he
realized that his army was withering away before his eyes. Almost half of his
original 270 tanks were charred hulks, his mechanized infantry was decimated,
and his rifle division losses exceeded 50 percent.111 He was achieving his
mission, but at what a price. More important, he asked himself, could he con-
tinue the assault in the morning? That question, of course, was irrelevant.
He and his army had to resume the offensive. lushkevich was relieved that
he still had his intact reserve rifle brigade and tank regiment. Their services
would definitely be required in the morning.
THE ASSAULT ACROSS THE MOLODOITUD RIVER
25 November
Unlike his fellow army commanders, Major General A. I. Zygin, the com-
mander of the Soviet 39th Army, waited at his main command post at Krasnaia
Gora, fifteen kilometers distant from the front, for the offensive to commence.
It was not that he disliked the sounds and sights of battle, for he had seen many,
The Red God of War Unleashed 151
and he was as confident as his counterparts that the forthcoming operation
would succeed. The problem was that his army was attacking across an ex-
ceedingly wide front, and his main CP was the best place from which to man-
age the vast battle that would unfold along it. The Kalinin Front commander,
General Purkaev, had reached the same conclusion as Zygin, and joining Zygin
at his CP, he also waited patiently for the initial reports to come in.
Zygin was confident of success because/ront and army intelligence had
indicated that there were few, if any, German operational reserves in his sec-
tor. The German 14th Motorized Division appeared to be backing up Ger-
man defenses near Rzhev and would probably be held in that sector by the
small diversionary assaults that the 30th Army planned in that region. Rumors
that small elements of German Grossdeutschland Motorized Division were
stationed near Olenino were contradicted by other information which showed
that the dangerous German force was scattered further south and east. In
any case, thought Zygin, the larger Soviet attacks elsewhere should attract
German reserves away from the Molodoi Tud River front.112
If the army commander was deprived of the opportunity of observing
the combat scene at first hand, Colonel K. A. Malygin, the commander of the
39th Army's 28th Tank Brigade, would not be. Shortly before 0900 hours, he
was preparingto share the spectacle with Colonel M. M. Busarov, whose 158th
Rifle Division his brigade's tanks would soon support.113 The two command-
ers shared a field bunker located in a small ravine along the forward slope of
a ridge rising northward from the bank of the Molodoi Tud River. Next to
the bunker was Malygin's dug-in command tank. Less than a kilometer to
the west was the small village of Sevost'ianov, also located just south of the
ridgeline's crest. To the bunker's front, the ground slopped gently downward
for less than two kilometers to the forward positions of Busarov's infantry-
men, who were just then forming up in assault positions along the river's north
bank. Up the ravine to the rear were Malygin's fifty camouflaged tanks, silently
waiting to start their motors and join the infantry assault across the river. As
elsewhere around the Rzhev salient, the weather provided a protective veil
over the assembled infantry and tanks. An almost opaque mixture of snow-
fall and fog obscured the river valley and created a feeling of peaceful ano-
nymity that belied the storm and din of combat and death all knew would
follow. Malygin noted the irony that the village along the river to his left front
was named Zhukov.
Promptly at 0900 hours, the artillery began its deadly work as the waiting
soldiers tensed momentarily and then settled down once again to count the
exploding rounds and the few precious minutes remaining before their as-
sault (see Map 13). As the artillery tore into German positions on the far side
of. the river, all hoped that the fire succeeded in finding its elusive targets,
lest their job be more deadly. The artillery had no easy task. A single German
Map 13, Situation from 25 to 27 November 1942: the Molodoi Tud Sector
The Red God of War Unleashed 153
division defended the vast frontage extending over twenty kilometers along
the Molodoi Tud River, and since it lacked sufficient infantry strength to
establish a continuous line of trenches, the division had instead constructed
a hedgehog defense of strong points, which protected each other with inter-
locking fires. Some of the strong points were formed around the sturdy houses
of the numerous valley villages, but more were laced throughout the frozen
forests and fields along the slopes of the river's far bank. A second web of
German strong points and firing positions about a kilometer to the rear sup-
ported the complex first web along the river. The single nodes that formed
these webs were difficult targets to strike with artillery, especially if the fire
could not be observed. And a single undestroyed strong point was a formi-
dable and deadly obstacle. The soldiers' hopes alone, however, could not do
the artillery's work. Only the assault would reveal the artillery's success.
Midway through the artillery preparation, Busarov said his goodbyes to
Malygin, jokingly muttered something about meeting again in the evening in
the liberated streets of Urdom, and disappeared into the communications
trench, which led jaggedly down the ridge slopes toward the river and his
waiting riflemen. A half an hour passed, and as Malygin made his way to his
waiting tank, at 1000 hours the cannonade abruptly stopped and whistles
sounded to mark the beginning of the infantry advance. Led by sappers car-
rying huge pieces of timber and logs, the forward infantry companies rose
and dashed across the frozen surface of the river and up the pockmarked far
bank into the forests beyond. Less than thirty minutes more had passed be-
fore Malygin's radio crackled with the signal to advance, as rifle and machine-
gun fire, punctuated by the thumping sounds of mortar fire, reverberated
through the forest beyond the river. Slowly, Malygin's armor emerged from
the ravine, and in company column the tanks snaked down the slope to the
river just as Busarov's main force battalions rose from their positions to join
the assault.
No sooner had the tank columns reached the river than infantry from the
advanced companies reappeared on the far bank, driven out of the forests by
heavy enemy fire. Malygin's armor disregarded the withdrawing infantry.
Formed into narrow columns of heavy (KV) and medium (T-34) tanks, his
force pushed on across the river with mine-sweeping tanks in the lead. The
heavy tanks made it across the river and smashed a German bunker on the
far bank, while the T-34s moved across the river's icy surface without their
supporting infantry, which was pinned down on the river's near bank by a
torrent of German machine-gun fire. Malygin's tank plunged into the forests
on the river's far bank and was- immediately subjected to heavy fire from
undestroyed German strong points supported by 152mm artillery fire. Know-
ing full well the fate of armor fighting unsupported by infantry, Malygin or-
dered his battalions back to the river to rejoin the infantry. Although he wanted
154 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
to resume the advance, nothing he could do could coax the infantry to follow
the armor into the hail of fire. At this point, General Zygin, upset over his
heavy tank losses, ordered Malygin to withdraw his frustrated tankists back
across the river. They did so at noon, having lost about ten of their fifty tanks.
Now commanders and soldiers alike knew that the artillery had not accom-
plished its lethal task.114
The news Zygin received from his main attack sector along the Molodoi
Tud was universally bad. Not only had Busarov's and Malygin's attacks fal-
tered, but the assaults by Colonel K. I. Sazonov's 373d Rifle Division and
V. G. Kovalenko's 135th Rifle Division further up river had failed for the same
reasons. Despite the support provided by Colonel D. I. Kuz'min's 81st Tank
Brigade, the infantry had withered before intense German fire, and the as-
saults recoiled back across the river. Accordingly, General Zygin reluctantly
ordered his forces to regroup and organize another attack across the river
the next morning. As if the failure of his three-division assault in the center
were not bad enough, it rubbed much of the luster off spectacular Soviet
successes along the army's flank. Even worse, it permitted the German com-
mand to shift forces more effectively to deal with the emerging threats to its
flanks.
The most dramatic although ultimately transitory Soviet success was along
the banks of the upper reaches of the Molodoi Tud River between Molodoi
Tud town and the small tributary Dubenka River, which flowed into the
Molodoi Tud from the east. Here, supported by the 290th Rifle Regiment of
Major General V. K. Urbanovich's 186th Rifle Division, the 100th Rifle Bri-
gade had forced the river at dawn. Having overcome sparse German defenses
at the junction of the defending 253d and 206th Infantry Divisions, they
penetrated five kilometers through the forests north of the Dubenka River
almost to the Molodoi Tud-Olenino road. The German 253d Infantry
Division's 473d Grenadier Regiment clung desperately to scattered positions
north of the Dubenka opposite the Russian-held village of Sharki. Meanwhile
small elements from the 206th Infantry Division's 312th Grenadier Regiment
contained the Soviet's advance at the villages of Plekhanovo and Tat'ianino,
just short of the critical Molodoi Tud-Olenino road.115 The German defend-
ers, however, were uncertain as to whether they could hold the road without
further assistance, even though they knew that Russian possession of it would
render all German defenses along the Molodoi Tud River untenable.
Fortunately for the Germans, by 1800 hours reinforcements began arriv-
ing from Grossdeutschland Motorized Division's Grenadier Regiment, fore-
stalling possible disaster. The first unit to arrive was the division's motorcycle
battalion, which took up reserve positions near Kholmets in 253d Infantry
Division's rear. Soon after, the Grenadier Regiment's 1st Battalion raced
northward along the Olenino road and went into combat through deep snow
The Red God of War Unleashed 155
against Soviet infantry occupying the small hamlet of Knishnikovo, located
east of Sharki in the gap between the 206th and 253d Infantry Divisions. In
heavy house-to-house fighting, the grenadiers cleared Russian forces from
the hamlet and edged painfully forward along the north bank of the Dubenka
River before being halted by Russian fire and heavy snow before the main
Russian defenses at Sharki. As the firing died down, the 3d Battalion, Grena-
dier Regiment, accompanied by the division's 3d Artillery Battalion, drove
up the road and reinforced the beleaguered 206th Infantry Division compa-
nies defending the two villages along the road. The regiment's 4th Battalion
reached the combat area by morning.116
The timely arrival of the panzer grenadiers prevented collapse of the
German defenses, particularly since the Soviet 100th Rifle Brigade had no
armor and little of the artillery support necessary to sustain its drive. None-
theless, it had been a close call, and the defending Germans hastily reorga-
nized to launch a concerted counter thrust the next day to collapse the small
Soviet salient before the 39th Army could reinforce it with more infantry or
armor.
On the 39th Army's left flank, another secondary attack also achieved
considerable success and further distracted German attention from their tem-
porary defensive success along the Molodoi Tud River. In the bridgehead
around Gliadovo, south of the Volga River, Zygin's 136th'Rifle Brigade, sup-
ported by a rifle regiment of Major General A. G. Kudriavtsev's 178th Rifle
Division and two separate tank regiments, attacked westward from the for-
ests between the Urdom road and the Tilitsa River toward Zaitsevo. The heavy
attack overcame German forward defenses and penetrated four kilometers
to the outskirts of Trushkovo, where, at nightfall, reserves from the German
206th Infantry Division's 413th Grenadier Regiment finally halted the thrust.
The penetration also threatened the left flank 451st Grenadier Regiment of
the neighboring 251st Infantry Division, whose parent division had just re-
pulsed heavy attacks by Russian 30th Army elements further east in the Volga
bridgehead.
Although he had repulsed what seemed to be the main Russian effort along
the Molodoi Tud River, General Hilpert of the XXIII Army Corps was forced
by the assaults against his flanks to disperse the bulk of his reserves to those
regions instead of using them to bolster his center. He had employed his ele-
ments of Grossdeutschland's Grenadier Regiment to deal with the threat
on his left flank. However, that night the deteriorating situation to the south
in the Luchesa River valley, where an even larger Russian force was attack-
ing, forced him to release the bulk of the grenadiers for dispatch to that
more threatened sector. In the center, he had committed several artillery
battalions and two companies of his reserve I4th Motorized Division's 53d
Grenadier Regiment, which, together with stubborn defenders of the 206th
156 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Division's 310th Grenadier Regiment, had been able to repulse the Rus-
sian tank attack across the Molodoi Tud. During the evening, he sent the
remainder of the 53d Grenadier Regiment to bolster the 206th Infantry
Division's second defensive line and the 14th Motorized Division's llth
Grenadier Regiment to reinforce the 206th Division's threatened right
flank,117 All the while General Hilpert carefully watched for renewed Rus-
sian attacks further east near Rzhev itself. Hilpert could not commit the
entire 14th Motorized Division to combat along the Molodoi Tud until he
was certain that the 206th Infantry Division's sector was the only focal point
of Russian offensive action along the extended northern rim of the Rzhev
salient. Other than the small force from Grossdeutschland, the 14th was the
only reserve force he had.
Unhappy as he was with his army's poor performance along the Molodoi
Tud River, General Zygin would have liked to have been able to exploit his
local successes along the army's flanks. However, when he reported to Gen-
eral Purkaev on the result of the day's action and asked to shift forces to his
flanks, Purkaev refused and insisted Zygin stick to his original plan. While
Zygin dreamed of bold envelopments, skillful maneuver, and a glorious march
into Olenino, Purkaev understood the 39th Army's real mission, which was
to maintain pressure on German defenses and tie down as many German
reserves as possible to benefit the larger forces attacking to the south. There-
fore, Purkaev insisted Zygin hold back the bulk of his reserves so that he could
sustain his drive in the future. Thus, his reserve 348th Rifle Division, 101st
Rifle Brigade, and 46th Separate Mechanized Brigade would remain in place
until Zygin's army could demonstrate greater offensive progress. In the mean-
time, Zygin concentrated on reforming his forces for a renewed attack the
next day along the Molodoi Tud and left his forces struggling on the flanks to
do the best they could with the resources they had at hand. This time, how-
ever, Zygin moved forward with his staff to a new army command post east
of Troinia and just north of the Molodoi Tud River, where he could better
supervise the next day's operations.
Late in the evening, Zygin received news from his chief of intelligence,
Colonel M. A. Voloshin, that made him less optimistic about his own army's
prospects but indicated that Purkaev's grand design was indeed succeeding.
A deep reconnaissance detachment reported that most of the German 14th
Motorized Division and part of the 5th Panzer Division were advancing into
his sector. Although Zygin rebuked Voloshin, asking, "Where did they come
from? Why are they not on my map?" and despite Voloshin's chagrin, the news
permitted Zygin to make last-minute adjustments in his attack plans to deal
with the potential new threat.118 Early on the morning of 26 November, he
ordered his division commanders along the Molodoi Tud to narrow their at-
tack frontages and to prepare to commit their second echelon regiments as
The Red God of War Unleashed 15 7
soon as their lead regiments were across the river. He also ordered his re-
serve on the left flank, the 101st Rifle and 46th Mechanized Brigades, to begin
to move forward from their reserve assembly areas.
26-27 November
As daylight slowly illuminated the banks of the Molodoi Tud River, the new
Soviet attack commenced at the same time as the day before and was pre-
ceded by a slightly stronger artillery preparation. Unlike the day before,
however, the snowfall had ceased and observation had vastly improved, and
although low clouds blew through the valley, aircraft could participate in the
preparation. The guns roared at 0900 hours, and an hour later the infantry
and tanks began their assault across the river. This time the artillery fire was
far more effective and artillery observers could engage the pesky German
strong points, which had taken such a toll on advancing infantry and tanks
the previous day.
Colonel Malygin's 28th Tank Brigade crossed the river with the massed
infantry of Colonel Busarov's 158th Rifle Division and quickly gained a foot-
hold in the forests on the river's far bank (see Map 13). Despite heavy fire,
the Soviet supporting artillery took its deadly toll on German strong points,
and one by one they fell to the advancing tanks. By nightfall the advancing
Soviet tide had forced the defending Germans back two kilometers to the
rear communications road and the village of Bortniki. Since Malygin and
Busarov planned to assault the village in the morning, they were relieved that
the Molodoi River was, at last, breached and behind them.119
West along the Molodoi Tud, Colonel D. I. Kuz'min's 81st Tank Brigade
charged across the river under heavy German fire near the village of Kazakovo.
Although Kuz'min perished during the assault, his tank a victim of German
antitank fire, the brigade pressed on with the riflemen of Colonel V. G. Kova-
lenko's 135th Rifle Division. By nightfall they too had advanced two kilome-
ters and, after heavy fighting, seized the village of Palatkino. German infantry,
with light tank support, counterattacked repeatedly but could not retake the
village. The second defensive line of the German 206th Division's 301st
Grenadier Regiment had been pierced and could not be re-established.120
Zygin scarcely had time to congratulate himself on the success in the center
when news arrived that the 100th Rifle Brigade on the army left was under
heavy attack and in danger of losing its gains. The brigade had not been able
to renew its attacks on the Olenino road in early morning because of strong
German defenses in the two villages along the road and a continuing absence
of armor support. Soon German tanks and infantry struck the Russian's south
flank north of the Dubenka River, captured Sharki, and pressed on toward
the Molodoi Tud River, threatening the entire brigade with encirclement.
158 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
To the east, another German mobile force raced northward along the road
and deployed for attack in the fields along the brigade's north flank. The
arrival of a single rifle battalion from the 290th Rifle Regiment shortly be-
fore nightfall shored up the brigade's sagging defenses, but it was clear new
German attacks the next morning could not be repulsed. Despite the brigade's
tenuous position, Zygin ordered it to fight on in place.
On the army's left flank, the 136th Rifle Brigade and its supporting ar-
mor thrust westward toward Zaitsevo but were not able to reduce German
defenses around the village of Trushkovo along the main road. By nightfall
German reinforcements assembled to the north and south of the exposed
Soviet positions before Zygin could bring his reserve 101st Rifle Brigade and
46th Mechanized Brigade forward to consolidate the 136th Brigade's gains.
Despite the danger on one flank and the success on the other, Zygin re-
mained focused on the center. At nightfall on 26 November, he ordered all
of his forces, including those in secondary sectors opposite the town of
Molodoi Tud and along the Molodoi Tud and Volga rivers, to resume the
offensive the next morning. Purkaev had wanted maximum pressure applied,
and that was what he would get.
General Hitter, the 206th Infantry Division commander, worked franti-
cally with General Hilpert at corps to stabilize the situation in the German
center, but it was difficult at best, given the demand for reserves elsewhere.
Late on 26 November, Hilpert had already ordered the 1st Battalion, Grena-
dier Regiment, southward toward the Luchesa. Now he alerted the 3d Bat-
talion, together with the antitank battalion, an engineer company, an air
defense company, and the artillery regiment's 3d Battalion, to follow late on
the 27th as part of Kampfgruppe Kohler. That gave the full grenadier force
less than twenty-four hours to eliminate the threat to the 206th Infantry
Division's left flank before the bulk of its strength would have to redeploy
southward.121
Hilpert's orders also meant that the 14th Motorized Division's regiments
would have to deal with all crises elsewhere. Throughout the day the 53d
Grenadier Regiment backed up the 206th Division's defense in the Molodoi
Tud sector, and despite reinforcement toward nightfall by a battalion dis-
patched from the 206th Infantry Division's right flank, the Soviet advance
was
only barely halted.
On the
right
flank,
the
llth
Grenadier Regiment
helped German forces doggedly hold on to Trushkovo, while the regiment
regrouped during the night to launch new counterattacks against the Rus-
sian penetration from the north and south. Just as Zygin was attacking every-
where, Hilpert and Hitter found themselves plugging gaps everywhere. And
given the increasing Soviet strength, it was apparent to the German com-
manders that all the gaps simply could not be plugged. Therefore, late in
the evening, General Hitter ordered his battalions defending the Molodoi
The Red God of War Unleashed 159
Tud bridgehead north of the river to prepare to withdraw the following day.
At the same time, he authorized a general withdrawal of forces along the
o o
Molodoi Tud River only if overwhelming enemy pressure materialized, real-
izing that only by virtue of this line-shortening measure could he generate
forces necessary to prevent collapse of the sector as a whole.
That increased Russian pressure materialized early on 27 November as
the three Soviet rifle division's resumed their general advance with the 81st
and 28th Tank Brigades in support. Division commanders committed their
second echelon regiments late in the afternoon, and the pressure forced Hitter
to order his first series of withdrawals. Immediately, the 875th Rifle Regi-
ment of Colonel Busarov's 158th Rifle Division and the 386th Rifle Regiment
of General Kudriavtsev's 178th Rifle Division, positioned along the hitherto
quiet sector on the lower Molodoi Tud and Volga rivers, crossed the rivers
and joined the advance. The Germans also withdrew from Molodoi Tud,
abandoning the bridgehead to the Soviet 117th Rifle Brigade. Now, the 1235th
Rifle Regiment of Colonel Sazonov's 373d Rifle Division crossed the river as
well and reinforced the division's main thrust, which pushed German forces
from Malye Bredniki.122
Although hard-pressed, by nightfall the Germans had once again stabi-
lized their defenses along a line running eastward from south of Malye
Bredniki. General Hitter hoped, based on their success during the day along
the left flank, that the battalions from Grossdeutschland's Grenadier Regi-
ment could be used in the central sector on 28 November. If so, further
Soviet advance might be thwarted. If not, his defenses would surely crumble.
During the day Grossdeutschland's remaining grenadiers had performed
superbly on the 206th Infantry Division's left flank. While the 4th Battal-
ion struck from the Dubenka valley, the 3d Battalion rolled into the forests
from the north, catching the Russian 100th Rifle Brigade in a pincer that
routed the brigade and sent it reeling back through the forests to the Molodoi
Tud River. By nightfall, although a few Russian stragglers still held out in
the forests east of the river, the panzer grenadiers had restored the original
German defense line in this sector. Hitter's hopes for significant help in
the center were dashed, however, as at nightfall the 3d Battalion began a
hasty march to the south and the Luchesa valley. The best the remaining
4th Battalion could do in the morning was to dispatch several company teams
to reinforce the 301st Grenadier Regiment in the 206th Infantry Division's
center. Meanwhile, on the division's right flank, the 14th Motorized Divi-
o
sion's
llth
Grenadier Regiment counterattacked
and
drove
the
Russian
136th Rifle Brigade from its narrow salient west of Trushkovo. Later in the
evening, it relieved the 206th Infantry Division's 413th Regiment, permit-
ting its use to reinforce German forces in the central sector to protect the
key town of Urdom.123
160 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Ignoring the setbacks on his flanks, General Zygin was elated about the
day's progress, in particular the capture of Molodoi Tud and the general
advance along the army's central front. Late in the evening, he informed
Purkaev that his general advance on Urdom would continue without further
attacks on his flanks. Satisfied, Purkaev longed to be able to inform Zhukov
of the fall of Urdom when he reached/ron£ headquarters the next day.
28-29 November
Quiet reigned along the 39th Army's flanks throughout the morning of 28
November until yet another artillery preparation announced the renewed
Soviet assault in the center (see Map 14). The ensuing fight endured unbro-
ken for two days, but despite the best efforts of Zygin's three rifle divisions
and two tank brigades, by nightfall on 29 November, the 206th Infantry
Division's defenses were still intact, and Urdom was still in German hands.
The advancing Soviet rifle regiments, fighting alongside tank battalions
from the 81st and 28th Tank Brigades, encountered German strong point after
strong point, organized around the network of villages that dotted the par-
tially wooded and rolling terrain. The deep snow made movement and
maneuver even more difficult. German motorized infantry appeared at mid-
day on 28 November and launched incessant counterattacks against the ad-
vancing Soviet infantry and tank teams. Supervising the attack of both his 28th
and the dead Colonel Kuz'min's 81st Tank Brigade, Colonel Malygin sent the
242d Tank Battalion on a wide sweeping march around the German strong
point of Briukhanovo toward the west side of German defenses at Urdom.
However, this battalion was ambushed by a German antitank and artillery
battalion in the forests west of the city and was forced to withdraw with
severe losses. Meanwhile, the 373d Rifle Division's infantry occupied Briu-
khanovo, and Colonel Malygin dispatched the 28th Tank Battalion on a charge
into nearby Lisino, where it repelled another attack by German motorized
infantry and a few tanks.124
The seesaw struggle went on until nightfall on 29 November, and although
small groups of Soviet tanks and infantry approached Urdom, all were re-
pulsed with heavy losses. The bruised Soviet forces withdrew at nightfall to
the southern outskirts of Lisino and Briukhanovo, where Malygin, Colonel
Sazonovof the 373d Rifle Division, and Colonel Kovalenko of the 135th Rifle
Division planned for a concerted attack on Urdom the next morning. The
two days of fighting had cost the two division commanders almost half of their
men and Malygin more than half of the army's initial armor. Worse still, on
28 November Zhukov visited both Purkaev's and Zygin's headquarters to
receive a report on the progress of the 39th Army's operations.125 Although
pleased with Zygin's progress, he urged him to accelerate his attack the next
Map 14. Situation from 29 November to 5 December 1942: the Molodoi Tud Sector
162 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
day. Given the heavy losses that the army had already incurred, with Zhukov's
and Purkaev's approval, Zygin planned to commit Colonel I. A. iPichev's 348th
Rifle Division, the army's principal reserve, during the next day's assault on
Urdom.
General Hilpert of the XXIII Army Corps had committed virtually all of
his reserves to combat by the evening of 27 November, and although they
had done their job well, there was much more to be done. The need to trans-
fer Kampfgruppe Kohler, with all but one of Grossdeutschland's available
combat battalions, southward to the Luchesa River made the situation even
more difficult, for now Hilpert would have to rely on shifting scarce tactical
reserves to and fro between threatened sectors. That is precisely what he did
on 28 November as the Russians resumed their drive against his center. He
dispatched the bulk of Grenadier Regiment Grossdeutschland.'s 4th Battal-
ion, together with the division's engineer battalion, to reinforce the 206th
Infantry Division. The grenadier battalion fought all day around Briukhanovo
and the next day on the approaches to Urdom and held the Russians at bay,
albeit with heavy casualties. As night fell on 29 November and the Russians
regrouped for yet another assault on the town, General Hilpert committed
his last reserves, Grossdeutschland Division's new ski battalion and several
companies of its panzer battalion, for the defense of Urdom the next day. By
this time the remnants of the already battered 413th Regiment were also
available for use in this sector.126
To make the day complete, before midnight General Hilpert received
muffled warnings of heavy Russian troop movements from the 87th Infantry
Division defending west of Rzhev. At this juncture the last thing the XXIII
Corps commander needed were major Russian attacks in yet another sector.
Focusing on the fight for Urdom, he decided he would worry about that only
after the present crisis had passed.
The 29th of November had come and gone. Zhukov had left the Kalinin
Front's headquarters and Urdom was still in German hands. General Purkaev
reminded General Zygin of that fact late in the evening and made it clear
what happened to commanders who promised but did not deliver. Zygin
needed no reminder. Tomorrow he would concentrate all of his forces on
seizing Urdom. As if to emphasize the point, he ordered his chief of staff to
move the army command post to the village of Pozdniakovo, only ten kilo-
meters from the front. There he would make sure the attack succeeded.
Marshal of the Soviet Union G. K. Zhukov, ca. 1941
163
Zhukov during his command of the Western Direction
164
General M. A. Purkaev, Kalinin Front commander, 1942
General I. S. Konev (right), Western Front commander
165
General V. A. lushkevich, 22d Army
commander
General M. D. Solomatin, 1st Mechanized
Corps commander
Colonel I. F. Dremov, 47th Mechanized
Brigade commander
General M. E. Katukov, 3d Mechanized
Corps commander
Attacking Soviet infantry
Automatic weapons men in ambush positions
168
Soviet cavalrymen
Cavalry in the attack
169
Soviet infantry assault a village
An antitank rifle team
170
Soviet infantry assault in the snov
Artillery being hauled forward
171
Soviet tanks attack down a forest road
A combined infantry and tank assault
172
Riflemen dismounting from assaulting tanks
Destroyed German equipment
173
CHAPTER 3
The Red God of War Contained
Zhukov reached the Kalinin Front's forward command post at Staroe Bochovo
late on 27 November.1 Purkaev had moved the CP there a few days before
so that he could keep better track of the action in the 22d and 41st Armies'
sectors. The new CP was nestled in the Obsha River valley, only fifteen kilo-
meters west of the German front lines at Belyi and just over thirty kilometers
southwest of the fighting in the Luchesa River valley. Located astride the main
communications route into the Belyi sector, the CP also offered easy access
to roads into 22d Army's sector, which ran northeast up the Meszha River
valley to its tributary, the Luchesa. The command post complex consisted of
a crude series of bunkers constructed in light forest west of the village of Staroe
Bochovo. Unlike the surrounding swampy country, the bunker complex was
relatively dry and ice free.
Throughout the morning, by wire and radio communications, Zhukov
closely followed the action taking in place in all Western and Kalinin Front
sectors, and a covey of liaison officers swarmed around him bearing mes-
sages to and from various commands. Like Stalin, Zhukov kept close track
of developments and was not reluctant to become involved in tactical mat-
ters. Zhukov well understood that operational and strategic success often
depended on tactical details, and the unfolding operation was no exception.
The bitter struggles taking place around the Rzhev salient were each still
tactical in nature, and Zhukov's immediate task was to convert them into
actions of operational and strategic significance. In fact, that was why Zhukov
was here at this critical juncture. That was why he had called for the after-
noon meeting.
o
The meeting, which lasted over two hours, was attended by the Kalinin
Front commander General Purkaev, his chief of staff, Lieutenant General
M. V. Zakharov, the 41st and 22d Army commanders, Generals Tarasov and
lushkevich, and a representative from General Zygin, the 39th Army com-
mander. Zhukov had summoned them there ostensibly to review the offen-
sive's progress and to plan subsequent actions. In reality, although he did not
reveal this, Zhukov was most concerned with exacting from them whatever
assistance he could for General Kiriukhin's forces struggling along the Vazuza
River. While he was unsure whether Kiriukhin's forces had the strength to
develop their offensive, he was sure the offensive must continue, and he knew
175
176 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
only further success by Purkaev's armies could make that possible. His task
was to insure that Purkaev's armies succeeded.
Zhukov began the meeting by personally describing the operations in the
20th Army sector. Deliberately understating Kiriukhin's difficulties, he em-
phasized the grandiose offensive possibilities should the Kalinin Front's armies
collapse the western flank of the Rzhev salient. He then had Purkaev's army
commanders brief him on the current situation and explain their future in-
tent. General Tarasov, the most optimistic of his commanders, focused on
the success of General Solomatin's mechanized corps and crowed over the
apparent progress made by Colonel Dremov's new thrust east of Belyi.
Tarasov was convinced German forces around Belyi were nearing collapse,
and Solomatin could soon thrust eastward from the Nacha River toward
Sychevka. This, he added, was sure to erode German resistance to the 20th
Army's advance. Zhukov repeatedly interrupted Tarasov with enjoinders that
he must keep his focus on the deep mission. "Moreover," said Zhukov, "be
sure you protect your flanks since German reserves will surely appear in your
sector." To emphasize his point, Zhukov quoted from fresh Stavka intelligence
reports that German road traffic had increased in the German rear area along
the routes running from Smolensk and Dukhovshchina toward the Belyi front.
Nothing Zhukov could say, however, dampened Taräsov's optimism.
General lushkevich of the 22d Army outwardly echoed Tarasov's opti-
mism. He pointed out that although the going had been difficult because of
bad weather and poor terrain, General Katukov was finally making his pres-
ence known in the Luchesa River valley. lushkevich outlined his plans for
overcoming the last major German strong point at Starukhi and said he
"hoped" Katukov could reach the Olenino road within the next forty-eight
hours. The ever skeptical Zhukov bridled at the word "hope" and said it was
essential Katukov reach the road within twenty-four hours. He used the op-
portunity to point out what Katukov's mechanized corps could do once it
reached the road. Reviewing the employment options for Katukov's mecha-
nized corps, Zhukov said a northerly thrust would unhinge German defenses
in Olenino, and a southerly advance would facilitate German collapse at Belyi.
Given the increased importance of General Solomatin's advance, Zhukov
inclined toward ordering the latter. To do so, however, first required that
Katukov's forces reach the Olenino—Belyi road. Once again, Zhukov "encour-
aged" lushkevich to reward him with the road junction within twenty-four
hours.
As Zygin's 39th Army representative briefed Zhukov, Zygin could scarcely
suppress his frustration over the army's inability to exploit its early successes
along its flanks and over the subsequent slow advance on Urdom in the army's
central sector. Purkaev quickly intervened to explain his rationale for empha-
sizing the advance on Urdom at the expense of what he termed "local sue-
The Red God of War Contained 177
cesses" elsewhere, and Zhukov leapt to Purkaev's defense, saying it was he
who had ordered the focus to remain on the main attack sector. Zhukov then
echoed Purkaev's earlier entreaty to Zygin that his army's primary mission
was to attract to it the maximum enemy strength possible, adding that although
the capture of Olenino was desirable, it was not critical. Besides, he added,
should Zygin's attack falter, which he hastened to note he did not expect,
General Kolpakchi's 30th Army facing Rzhev proper could pick up the fight.
A long discussion then ensued on the various options available to each
army commander, and Zhukov took active part, recommending this or that
measure. Throughout, he was careful to reiterate how vital it was to grant
Solomatin and Katukov the full operational freedom they needed to perform
their vital missions. Only full-scale exploitation by the two mechanized corps
deep into the German rear area would yield victory, and that was what Zhukov
demanded be achieved.
At the end of the exchange, Zhukov provided precise guidance to the
assembled officers. Once again, he ordered Tarasov to push Solomatin
forward and reinforce him with whatever forces were necessary to reach
Andreevskoe on the Dnepr River. "Nothing less," he added, "will be satis-
factory." Turning to lushkevich, he said that it was not proper to use a
mechanized corps to reduce a fortified town. Let the infantry do that. In
the meantime, find a way to get Katukov's corps around the obstacle and to
the Olenino—Belyi road. Once the mechanized corps had reached the road,
Zhukov directed that Katukov advance rapidly southeast to link up with
Solomatin, encircle German forces in Belyi, and advance together with
Solomatin on Andreevskoe. As if to justify his earlier decision to deprive
Tarasov of his second mechanized corps, at this juncture Zhukov mentioned
the success Purkaev's 3d Shock Army was having to the west at Velikie Luki.
Finally, Zhukov told Zygin's representative that the 39th Army must acceler-
ate its drive on Urdom and Olenino. It was clear, he said, that the army's
advance was overextending German operational reserves, since intelligence
had identified elements of three German mobile divisions in the region, and
that was more than half of the reserves the Stavka credited the German Ninth
Army with possessing. Therefore, unrelenting 39th Army pressure must pro-
duce a major rupture of German defenses elsewhere.
Satisfied his message to his subordinates was clear, Zhukov adjourned the
meeting in late afternoon. That evening, while his army commanders were
returning to their respective headquarters, Zhukov flew to the 39th Army
headquarters. Despite the positive tone of the just completed meeting, he
was still worried about the critical situation in the 20th Army's sector. In fact,
he already sensed the first stage of the battle along the Vazuza had been lost.
Now victory would emerge only if the Kalinin Front vigorously developed its
success. If it did, he still had additional forces with which he could reinforce
178 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
the 20th Army's advance on Sychevka. If it did not, then all of Operation Mars
was irrelevant. Even worse, Zhukov suddenly thought, then Operation Jupi-
ter would also abort, and General Rybalko's tank army would certainly gravi-
tate southward where success was already assured. Army Group Center would
live on, and Vasilevsky's victory would be forever etched in the annals of Soviet
military history, while Mars and Jupiter would be forgotten. Even worse, early
that very evening Stalin himself had called Zhukov at the Kalinin Front head-
quarters to relate the latest news of the Stalingrad victory.2 Later in the
evening, as Zhukov's aircraft landed on a dirt strip near the 39th Army head-
quarters, he decided General Kolpakchi's 30th Army must also join the So-
viet attack.
THE SYCHEVKA MEAT GRINDER
29 November
Shortly after midnight, General Kiriukhin, the 20th Army commander, re-
ceived Zhukov's message for Colonel Arman's 6th Tank Corps to break out
of encirclement back across the Rzhev-Sychevka road. Although General
Konev had left the Western Front headquarters an hour before and was now
en route to his forward command post, he too had undoubtedly seen the
message. In any case, Kiriukhin expected Konev to join him at his army com-
mand post in the morning. By that time Kiriukhin hoped Colonel Arman
\vould have been able to extract his battered tank corps from the looming
German trap. Kiriukhin had already spoken with General Kriukov of the 2d
Guards Cavalry Corps and told him to do all within his power to help Arman
with his withdrawal. The same message went to Arman's 100th Tank Brigade
o ö
and other forces in the bridgehead that were within supporting range of the
Rzhev-Sychevka road. Within a matter of hours, however, it became clear to
all that Arman's withdrawal would not be an easy task.
After midnight, Colonel Arman gathered up his fewer than fifty remain-
ing tanks and attempted to move through the darkness eastward south of
Lozhki. Behind his small force and west of the road, he left dismounted
motorized riflemen from his corps' motorized rifle brigade and scattered
cavalry detachments of General Kriukov's dismembered cavalry corps to
protect his rear. To his south, and independently of Arman's force, Colonel
Kursakov's 20th Cavalry Division, with the remnants of the 3d Guards Cav-
alry Division, also moved east through the deep snow. The heavy snow, im-
penetrable darkness, and stubborn German strong points along the highway
hindered Arman's movement. Unable to overcome the German defenses and
still out of the range of supporting artillery, Arman's three tank brigades soon
reported they were running short of fuel. As a result, before dawn Arman
The Red God of War Contained 179
aborted his attempt to break out and withdrew into the woods west of the
road.3
At dawn on 29 November, the 6th Tank Corps commissar, P. G. Grishin,
radioed a report on the corps' situation to the Western Front Military Coun-
cil: "On the night of 29 November, the [corps] rear services failed to cross
over [the road]. The troops on tanks crossed over toward their [the rear ser-
vices] positions through the forests southwest of Lozhki. The troops have
consumed all of their food and fuel and ammunition is running out. Request
you speed up the clearing of a corridor for the rear services or supply all
necessities by air. The units have captured many trophies, including aircraft."4
Now there was little that Arman and Grishin could do other than wait until
help reached them.
Help was on the way, and it was General Kriukov of the 2d Guards Cav-
alry Corps who had been tasked with organizing it. After receipt of Kiriukhin's
directive to rescue Arman's corps, Kriukov ordered his corps to reassemble
south of Arestovo and prepare to advance quickly westward at dawn through
a narrow corridor between Maloe Kropotovo and Podosinovka. Soon, how-
ever, Kriukov realized his weakened corps prevented him from doing so. The
3d Guards Cavalry Division in particular and his corps in general, were sim-
ply too weak to sustain a major attack. The corps had lost almost one-third of
its personnel and horses, and now the force numbered scarcely more than
5,000 men.5
Therefore, Kriukov asked Kiriukhin for all possible support and altered
his corps' attack plan accordingly. Now, rather than at night, the assault would
begin at daybreak. Moreover, while the assault would seek to relieve the
beleaguered tank corps, it would also strike most German strong points within
the Vazuza bridgehead. Kriukov's corps was to lead the assault, supported
on the flanks by all available rifle and tank units, while other 20th Army forces
attacked previously designated objectives in their sectors. Kriukov intended,
at least in theory, that his cavalry penetrate German defenses between the
deadly German strong points, while the 20th Army's forces covered his ad-
vance by assaulting the strong points themselves. In essence, the offensive
became one last grand attempt by the 20th Army to explode from the con-
fines of the tenacious German defense, rescue Arman's tank corps, and con-
vert defeat into victory.
Kriukov's cavalry corps, Arman's 100th Tank Brigade, and the 247th, 1st
Guards, and newly arrived 20th Guards Rifle Division were to drive forward
in the central sector. Meanwhile, the 326th, 42d Guards, and 251st Rifle
Divisions were to attack in the VaseFki-Grediakino sector on the right flank,
and the reinforced 8th Guards Rifle Corps (with the 26th Guards and 354th
Rifle Divisions and 148th and 150th Rifle Brigades) was to attack along the
left flank from Zherebtsovo to Khlepen'.6
180 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
At 0625 hours the 20th Army's artillery opened heavy fire on German
positions around Podosinovka. Fifteen minutes later the 16th Guards Cav-
alry Regiment of Colonel G. I. Pankratov's 4th Guards Cavalry Division
charged through the cold ground fog into the teeth of the town's defenses,
followed by infantry from Major General G. D. Mukhin's 247th Rifle Divi-
sion. The latter was making its fifth major assault in as many days (see Map 15).
At 0700 hours Pankratov's llth Guards Cavalry Regiment formed up in the
light woods 500 meters south of Maloe Kropotovo and, under the cover of
artillery fire from the 4th and 5th Guards Separate Cavalry Artillery Rattal-
ions, charged against the village's defenses. Simultaneously, riflemen from
General Reviakhin's 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division assaulted the town
from the east along with tanks from Colonel V. E. Grigor'ev's 31st Tank Bri-
gade. Soon fierce fighting raged along the entire front. Two of Mukhin's 247th
Rifle Division's regiments assaulted German positions at Zherebtsovo, and
the remainder of Reviakhin's 1st Guards Motorized Division struck Nikonovo
from the south. Almost simultaneously, Major General I. F. Dudarev's newly
committed 20th Guards Rifle Division launched two attacks, the first against
Nikonovo from the east and the second against BoFshoe Kropotovo. While
the Germans defending in Bol'shoe Kropotovo were preoccupied with fend-
ing off the Soviet frontal assault, Colonel Ivanov's 100th Tank Brigade lunged
westward south of the town across the wooded terrain still littered with the
corpses of cavalrymen and horses, fallen just days before.
The entire central sector erupted in the sounds and flames of battle, and
the conflagration quickly spread to the flanks as virtually every Soviet unit
went over to the attack. As glorious as the cavalry charges were, the deter-
mined effort faltered from the start. The German defenders clung grimly to
their positions, pouring volley after volley of accurate fire into the ranks of
the attacking cavalry and infantry. German artillery, which had days to pre-
pare, lent its weight to the slaughter, firing at the assaulting masses and de-
livering equally deadly fire on Russian assembly areas around Novaia Grinevka
and Arestovo. The bridgehead was simply too small to offer any protection
to the attacking Russians. Still, the determined Russian assaults continued
all day against the web of seemingly irresistible German barriers.
Pankratov's two cavalry regiments repeatedly attacked Maloe Kropotovo
and Podosinovka, and when their horses died beneath them, the cavalrymen
fought on foot with the infantry. In a single day, 490 cavalrymen and 149 horses
perished, and the infantry suffered even heavier losses.7 At day's end both
villages were still in German hands. The same fate awaited Reviakhin's and
Mukhin's riflemen. Try as they did, they were unable to break the German
grip on their strong points. A 1st Guards Motorized Division history later
graphically described the battle for Maloe Kropotovo: "Again and again the
attacks were unsuccessful. Neither artillery fire from open positions nor di-
Map 15. Situation from 29 November to I December 1942: the Sychevka Sector
182 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
rect fire from regimental guns could suppress the numerous bunkers and dug-
in tanks. Suffering considerable infantry losses and losing eight tanks, the
guardsmen of the regiment dug themselves into the snow."8 During three
days of combat, Reviakhin's division lost over 60 percent of its original 9,000
men. Despite the carnage, however, the division received new orders to con-
tinue the attack the next day.
Elsewhere in the bridgehead, Kiriukhin's 20th Army achieved little suc-
cess. Colonel Ivanov's 100th Tank Brigade, stripped of its infantry support,
fell back to its original jumping-off position with few losses, but General
Zakharov's 8th Guards Rifle Corps lost many men in futile attacks along the
bridgehead's southern flank.9 Along the northern flank, the incessant attacks
by the 42d Guards and 251st Rifle Divisions on the lone German panzer
grenadier battalion at Grediakino completely severed the battalion's rearward
communications and drove back German infantry on its long flank toward
VaseFki. The cost, however, was many more dead infantry and seven destroyed
tanks.10 Here, thought Kiriukhin, the German defenses were certainly about
to collapse. For Kiriukhin, this local success eclipsed the massive failures
elsewhere in the bridgehead. This self-deception on Kiriukhin's part and
Zhukov's menacing threats convinced him to continue the futile attacks.
Stirred by the sounds of battle to their front and by fresh orders and en-
treaties from Konev and Kiriukhin to take more active part in the struggle,
the isolated 6th Tank Corps and 20th Cavalry Division lent their pathetic
strength to the fray. Colonel Arman did so reluctantly. He tentatively tested
German defenses at Lozhki, lost two more tanks, and withdrew again into
the forests, having fulfilled his orders. Colonel Kursakov of the 20th Cavalry
Division acted more resolutely, if less prudently. Early on 29 November, he
joined his weakened division with the 3d Guards Cavalry Division's 12th
Guards Cavalry Regiment. The entire force numbered 8 cavalry squadrons
with 68 light and heavy machine guns, 20 antitank rifles, and 21 field guns
and mortars, for a total of about 4,000 men. This force, which occupied an
eight-kilometer-circumference forest enclave, faced German forces to the
north, east, and south. Kursakov then formed a small combat detachment
around Major S. P. Zhurba's 103d Cavalry Regiment and ordered the group
to assault German positions at Lozhki and Belokhvostovo along the Rzhev-
Sychevka road. Zhurba's attacking cavalry seized both points but shortly
thereafter had to give up Lozhki to counterattacking German infantry. After
Zhurba's depleted force had returned to the forests, Kursakov moved his
cavalry northward in an attempt to join Arman's remaining tanks in the for-
est west of the road and await further orders.11
While the German Vazuza defenses held throughout the day, attrition was
taking its toll on the German defenders, and it was questionable how much
The Red God of War Contained 183
longer some of the strong points could hold out against the incessant Rus-
sian attacks. German troops in Nikonovo and Maloe Kropotovo were particu-
larly hard pressed, and the commanders at these locations, for the first time,
considered abandoning their positions. The situation was most severe at
Grediakino, where Major Steiger's 2d Battalion, 14th Panzer Grenadier Regi-
ment, was now totally encircled and running short of men, food, and ammuni-
tion. Worse, it no longer could communicate with its parent regiment.
During the day and while under constant attack, the German air force
dropped supplies into the town by parachute. While this prevented catastro-
phe, it did not materially improve Steiger's situation. At 1552 hours Steiger
radioed division that "fuel and ammunition stocks are completely exhausted.
Real assistance must be provided."12 At 1625 he added, "A large part of the
men are apathetic, weak, sick, and worn out by the struggle. Request urgent
help."13 The exchanges continued throughout the day as Steiger declared he
lacked the strength to meet either German resupply or relief columns. Never-
theless, his now pitifully understrength battalion held on through the night
and into the next day.
The situation at the nose of the bridgehead was also tenuous as Russian
tanks and then cavalry overcame German security outposts along the Rzhev
Sychevka road and briefly seized Lozhki, threatening the critical Osuga River
bridge. The 2d Battalion, 430th Grenadier Regiment, however, committed
its last reserves and retook the town late in the day in bitter hand-to-hand
fighting. So severe was the fighting here and along the northern flank
of the bridgehead that, after dark, General Metz, the 5th Panzer Division
commander, shifted his division headquarters from the blazing village of
Bol'shoe Kropotovo to the relative safety of Miasishchevo, a small village
on the north bank of the Osuga River opposite Lozhki.14 Although it was
not immediately apparent, this move signaled the beginning of new Ger-
man withdrawals that would take place the next day. Russian assaults were
taking their toll on the defenders, and the climactic stage of the battle was
clearly approaching.
That was so because Generals Konev and Kiriukhin, prodded on by mes-
sages from Zhukov, had decided to continue their attacks the next day in spite
of the staggering losses. Both the Western Front and its 20th Army issued
new orders on the evening of 29 November for all subordinate formations to
intensify their assaults on all previously designated objectives and to over-
come German defenses at all costs. This time they categorically ordered
Colonels Arman and Kursakov to break out east of the Rzhev-Sychevka road
regardless of German resistance and their own casualties. Thus, Zhukov had
concluded that the battle of attrition must play out to its natural, if unpre-
dictable, end.
184 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
30 November
After midnight and without any respite, the Soviet attacks resumed in all
sectors, accompanied by a hail of artillery fire and joined in the morning by
attacking Red aircraft. The beleaguered German strong points in and along
the circumference of the bridgehead were the first to come under renewed
assault. At Grediakino the 42d Guards Rifle Division began its attacks shortly
after 0200 hours, supported by its remaining infantry support tanks. By 0300,
however, the Germans had repulsed the initial attack and had destroyed an-
other six Russian tanks. After dawn German aircraft smashed several new
Russian assaults before the attacking forces had even reached the village's
edge. By 1025 hours the 42d Guards Division was finally able to push tanks
and artillery forward into positions that could fire directly on the village's
perimeter, which, Major Steiger radioed, "can no longer be held."15 Five min-
utes later Steiger added, "The air force must get here, or we are lost." His
regimental headquarters briefly demurred and then, at 1130 hours, ordered
Steiger to break out to the west.1B Since this was clearly impossible in day-
light, Steiger announced he would do so only if German artillery could lay down
required protective fires. Meanwhile, with welcome air support, his battalion
grimly held out through the afternoon as Russian assaults continued.
The situation also reached crisis proportions at Nikonovo, Bol'shoe
Kropotovo, and Maloe Kropotovo. Reviakhin's 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Di-
vision and Dudarev's 20th Guards Rifle Division subjected the former to re-
peated tank and infantry assaults, and in fierce fighting the Soviet riflemen finally
broke into the town. Colonel Hochbaum was severely wounded in the fight-
ing, and German forces abandoned most of the village until a relief force from
2d Battalion, 430th Grenadier Regiment, counterattacked and recaptured the
village in late afternoon. Simultaneously, the bulk of the 20th Guards Rifle
Division, with Colonel Ivanov's 100th Tank Brigade in support, again threw
themselves at German defenses around Bol'shoe Kropotovo. The Russians were
attempting to seize the village and finally link up with the remnants of Arman's
6th Tank Corps, which in the meantime had once again been ordered to break
out past Lozhki to the east. This time, the Soviet force attacked north of the
village and ran into German defenses at Maloe Petrakovo, located on a slight
rise one kilometer from Bol'shoe Kropotovo. Caught in enfilading fire from the
two villages, the Soviet attack again faltered with huge losses.17
Colonel Arman's tank corps encountered similar problems. With little fuel
or ammunition remaining, Arman regrouped his forces and crept past the
German defenses at Lozhki, where he received heavy fire against his flank,
and headed east across the Rzhev-Sychevka road and through the forests
toward Bol'shoe Kropotovo. At dawn he attacked through the gauntlet of fire
that had just chewed up the attacking riflemen and tankists of the 20th Guards
The Red God of War Contained 185
Rifle Division and the 100th Tank Brigade. The results were predictable.
Arman's force suffered huge losses, including virtually all of his remaining
tanks and vehicles, which fuel shortages forced him to abandon during his
bloody withdrawal. The corps' real commander, General Getman, later wrote,
"Tens of our soldiers fell in heroic deaths in this heavy battle, among whom
were the commanders of the 200th Tank Brigade and the 6th Motorized Rifle
Brigade, Heroes of the Soviet Union Lieutenant Colonel V. P. Vinakurov and
Senior Battalion Commissar E. F. Rybalko, who died leading the attack."18
Soon, the pitiful survivors joined the shattered 100th Tank Brigade in new
assembly areas east of the Vazuza River. Incredibly, within two weeks the
corps, reformed and re-equipped, would again go into action across the same
bloody terrain.
Meanwhile, General Kriukov's regrouped remnants of the 2d Guards
Cavalry Corps once again attacked Maloe Kropotovo and Podosinovka along
with the 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division's and 247th Rifle Division's
infantry and a small number of infantry support tanks. This violent assault
seemed to produce initial success. Soviet forces seized all but the northern
section of Maloe Kropotovo, and German 78th Infantry Division's forces
defending to the south reported the village's fall. This was not the case, how-
ever. The 5th Panzer Division's reconnaissance battalion (K-55) and the 430th
Grenadier Regiment staff clung desperately to a foothold in the village and
inflicted heavy losses on the Soviet attackers. A German account related what
then transpired:
On 30 November, after the usual strong fire preparation, the Russians,
with one infantry regiment and about forty-five tanks, penetrated into
Maloe Kropotovo (the right flank of the 5th Panzer Division, directly north
of Lieutenant Colonel Reissinger's sector) and shoved strong forces, in-
cluding tanks, into the valley southwest of the town. In order to eliminate
this threat to their left flank, Reissinger sent Captain Kohler, with his train-
ing company, one panzer company, and four assault guns against the
enemy force. At noon, Kohler took the enemy by surprise, bypassed them
to the left, and, within twenty minutes, the Russians had lost about one
battalion, twenty tanks, seven antitank guns, and two antiaircraft guns.
This success did not allow Kohler to take a rest, for he also had to clear
up the situation in Maloe Kropotovo. This bold operation also involved
the participation of the 2/18th [6th Infantry Division], which was unex-
pectedly attacking from the northwest. The Russians, surprised here as,
well, fled to the west.19
Like the other Soviet thrusts, Kriukov's and Reviakhin's combined assault
collapsed in a bloody welter of dead infantrymen and horses and smashed
186 Zhuköv's Greatest Defeat
tanks. The 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division's supporting 31st Tank Bri-
gade was annihilated in the fighting and virtually disappeared from the So-
viet order of battle.
While the terrible struggle was unfolding, General Kriukov dispatched
his
llth
Guards Cavalry Regiment northward
to
help
the 6th
Tank Corps
reach Soviet lines, but the regiment arrived late, after Arman's corps had been
destroyed. Adding to Kriukov's frustration, his 4th Guards Cavalry Division
and the supporting 247th Rifle Division also suffered heavy losses in another
series of unsuccessful attacks on German positions at Podosinovka.
The remainder of the day's drama played out along the Rzhev-Sychevka
road as Colonel Kursakov's 20th Cavalry Division tried to break out east-
ward to link up with its parent corps. From the start, Kursakov received
contradictory orders. The first orders told him to capture Lozhki and the
key Osuga River bridge. Shortly after, the army ordered his force to cap-
ture Belokhvostovo and State Farm Nikishkino along the Rzhev-Sychevka
road to assist the breakout of the 6th Tank Corps. In the absence of further
instructions, he attempted to do the latter. At 1200 hours his 103d and 124th
Cavalry Regiments took both villages, killing and capturing a reported 200
German soldiers, but were unable to advance further. At 1800 several Ger-
man battalions counterattacked, took the villages back, and blocked Kursakov's
way eastward. Reduced to a strength of 900 sabers, Kursakov's force lingered
for a while in the forests west of the Rzhev—Sychevka road and then marched
westward into the depths of the Rzhev salient to begin a harrowing hegira in
the German rear that would last for several weeks.20
The only Soviet success on 30 November took place on the army's ex-
treme right flank, where late in the day the incessant pressure from the 42d
Guards Rifle Division's assaults forced the Germans to abandon Grediakino.
Try as they did, however, Soviet forces were unable to stop and destroy Major
Steiger's withdrawing German battalion.
The heroic actions of Steiger's small kampjgruppe in Grediakino personi-
fied the tenacity of defending German forces and explained why they were
so successful in holding on to their beleaguered bridgehead positions. Hav-
ing received permission to withdraw after noon on 30 November, Steiger was
hurrying his preparations to break out when, in late afternoon, he received
word that Russian forces had begun a major attack at Kholm-Berezuiskii
further north. This threatened to collapse all remaining German defenses
between the Osuga and Vazuza rivers. Protected by a curtain of artillery fire,
Major Steiger destroyed his remaining damaged tanks and marched westward
through Russian infantry lines. The withdrawal was a dramatic success. By
daybreak on 1 December, Steiger's group reached German lines that had, in
the meantime, reformed along the banks Osuga River to the west. Steiger's
losses during the breakout were one man wounded.21
The Red God of War Contained 187
A German observer of Steiger's withdrawal later described the feat and
the condition of Steiger's group after their harrowing withdrawal:
In the morning hours of 1 December, Major Steiger met with his brave
men at division headquarters. The battalion still had eight officers, twenty-
four NCOs, and eighty-seven men. They were completely exhausted and
apathetic after the difficult days of combat. Many had 2d degree frost-
bite. The strongest among them hauled back their wounded comrades.
The wounded that could not walk lay on the tops of the three surviving
tanks. The division commander expressed great appreciation to Major
Steiger and his men. The exemplary behavior of these men during the
days of severe battle was praised in a division daily order. They were then
transported in division headquarters vehicles to the supply battalion area,
where they had their first hot meal after a week of combat in the frost
and snow, and they fell into a deep, exhausted sleep.22
Other small German bands replicated the performance of Steiger's force
tens of times during the defense of the Vazuza bridgehead. Despite these
strenuous exertions, however, the defense simply could not hold everywhere.
Shortly after giving the order to abandon Grediakino, General Metz also
decided to abandon Nikonovo. When the XXXIX Panzer Corps' headquar-
ters failed to respond to his request to do so, Metz concluded corps was seek-
ing permission from the Fuehrer headquarters. Knowing what that answer
was likely to be, on his own authority, Metz ordered the withdrawal, which
took place without incident that night.23
The withdrawal from Nikonovo was necessary, for despite the day's suc-
cess in repulsing all attacks in the center, heavy fighting still raged along the
flanks. All reserves, and then some, were required to hold the most critical
bridgehead defenses. Therefore, General Metz, this time with corps approval,
withdrew all of his forces from the Vasel'ki-Grediakino sector, and as Rus-
sian forces followed, he established new and shorter defense lines along the
Osuga River and southward to Bol'shoe Kropotovo. Even so, heavy fighting
continued along the corps' right flank anchored on the Vazuza River near
Khlepen'.
Even with the Jine shortening, additional fresh German reserves were
required to deal with new Russian attacks expected on 1 December. A Ger-
man account underscored the threadbare condition of defending German
forces:
Again, a heavy day of fighting had come to an end. All enemy attacks were
repulsed. But there was no doubt that the limits of our soldiers load-
bearing capability had been reached, and, in many cases, it had already
188 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
been exceeded. The Kampfgruppe leaders reported that soon there would
be complete apathy perceptible in soldiers of all ranks because of the
strong overstress due to the lack of sleep, severe cold, insufficient sup-
plies, and incessant combat activity.
Material losses, particularly in antitank weapons, were also high. Only
one 8.8 cm flak troop remained ready for use in the division's sector. The
artillerymen still had at their disposal three heavy howitzers, twelve light
field guns, and three mortar tubes.24
In fact, the total losses of the 5th Panzer Division since the beginning of the
operation exceeded a third of its original strength, and the 78th Infantry
Division had suffered similar losses. Reinforcements were indeed needed,
and they were already arriving.
General von Arnim, the XXXIX Panzer Corps commander, had already
requested assistance from the XXVII Army Corps defending at Rzhev. That
corps had already responded by sending him two infantry battalions of the
129th Infantry Division's 430th Grenadier Regiment. Now, in light of the
fierce fighting on 30 November, von Arnim asked for still more reinforce-
ments. At 0800 hours on 28 November, the XXVII Army Corps received a
cryptic message from the Ninth Army: "New situation! The enemy has crossed
to the west of the railroad near Ossuga [sic]."25 The XXVII Army Corps re-
sponded by creating Kampfgruppe Becker, named after the commander of
the 6th Infantry Division's 18th Grenadier Regiment, then in the XXVII Army
Corps' reserve. Becker's kampfgruppe, which consisted of his regiment and
the 129th Infantry Division's 3d Battalion, 129th Artillery Regiment, was
subordinated to General Praun, the 129th Infantry Division commander, who
had already led the division's 430th Regiment southward to join the XXXIX
Panzer Corps' defense. Becker's mission was simple, "Get to Ossuga [sic] as
soon as possible."26
Struggling to overcome the deep snow, the regiment's foot-bound infan-
try made slow progress on towed sleds, while the motorized antitank com-
pany became immobilized en route by the deep snow. As the crisis south
worsened and it became apparent that the force might not make it on time,
the 2d Battalion, 18th Regiment, entrained on special trains halfway between
Rzhev and Osuga and traveled the remainder of the way by rail. Arriving at
Osuga at 0500 hours on 29 November, the battalion crossed the river just
after Lozhki fell to Russian tanks and cavalry. Ordered by corps to free the
rail line, General Praun immediately committed Kampfgruppe Becker with
an attached tank company to clear the rail line and recapture Lozhki. How-
ever, he had no antitank support. During a two-day struggle, one part of the
group drove Russian forces from Lozhki, while another veered eastward and
helped stop the Russian drive on Maloe Kropotovo.
The Red God of War Contained 189
A particularly violent battle occurred along the railroad line south of
Lozhki when Becker's force, supported by an armored train advancing from
Sychevka, ran into Russian cavalry (Kursakov's 124th Cavalry Regiment),
which was trying to cross the railroad line and road. A German eyewitness
account recorded the frantic action:
The armored train drove through the mass of the enemy cavalry regiment,
splitting the regiment into an eastern and western half, pulverized the
Russian riders attempting to reach the bridge [over the Osuga], and rode
back and forth engaging the enemy with its twenty mortars and twenty-
four machine guns. A quantity of war material, including a German field
howitzer, made up the day's booty. The railroad was freed, and, during
the night, supply trains were already riding on it. Because the stretch of
railroad was still ranged by enemy fire, trains could only travel on it dur-
ing the day when it was snowing and foggy or when the wagons were
painted white.27
The arrival of these precious reserves, together with the tenacity of Ger-
man defenders elsewhere in and around the Vazuza bridgehead, spelled doom
for the Russian offensive. By late night on 30 November, only the dumb and
blind could not recognize that the Russian offensive in this sector had failed
o
at immense human and material cost. The 78th Infantry Division alone re-
ported that during the five-day offensive it had destroyed 169 Russian tanks
and tens of thousands of infantry and cavalry.28 The 5th Panzer placed its count
at 183 tanks destroyed and an estimated 42,000 Russian dead. The 102d In-
fantry Division added thousands of more Russians and tens of tanks to that
ghastly toll. Appalling German losses, however, indicated just how close the
Russian offensive had come to succeeding. The 5th Panzer Division's casu-
alty count amounted to 28 officers and 510 NCOs and men dead or missing
and 38 officers and 1,064 NCOs and men missing. In addition, the panzer
division lost 30 tanks destroyed or damaged.29
Despite the victory, the German command was soon reminded that vic-
tory in one sector did not necessarily mean victory as a whole. On 3 Decem-
ber, after spending days combing the forests southwest of Lozhki in pursuit
of fugitive Russian cavalry in the biting cold, knee-deep snow, and thick under-
brush, Becker's 18th Regiment received a new message from General Praun:
"The Russians broke through north and south of Belyi with masses of tank
forces. Kampfgruppe Praun, with the subordinate 18th Grenadier Regiment,
will travel to Olenino by train. The 1st Battalion of the 18th will remain as
corps reserve and secure the railroad in and south of Lozhki."30 While the
threat along the Vazuza River front seemed to have ended, it was still very
real elsewhere.
190 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
From his vantage point at Konev's Western Front headquarters, to which
he had traveled on 30 November, Zhukov recognized that his premonitions
had been correct. Kiriukhin's army had been defeated and defeated soundly.
In characteristic fashion, however, Zhukov was not yet prepared to throw in
the towel—even in the Vazuza sector.
1-5 December
Although it had been bloodied in heavy combat, Zhukov permitted the 20th
Army to flail and flounder in the Vazuza bridgehead for five more days. He
continued issuing attack orders, sending Soviet infantry into the teeth of the
German defense around the rim of the Vazuza bridgehead as if to punish the
army and its commander for its dismal failure. General Kriukov's cavalry and
Colonel P. la. Tikhonov's, Reviakhin's and Mukhin's infantry of the 20th
Guards, 1st Guards Motorized Rifle, and 247th Rifle Divisions launched at-
tack after futile attack across the fields littered with dead in front of Bol'shoe
Kropotovo, Maloe Kropotovo, and Podosinovka with no more success than
before. Heads rolled as commanders fell at the head of their defeated troops
or were removed from above. General Dudarev of the 20th Guards Rifle
Division went on 30 November and was followed by Colonel V. E. Grigor'ev
of the 31st Tank Brigade on 1 December and General Reviakhin of the 1st
Guards Motorized Rifle Division on 3 December. In addition, Colonel N. P.
Konstantinov fell wounded leading his 20th Tank Brigade on 4 December.31
All the while, General Zakharov led his 8th Guards Rifle Corps with its
fresh 354th Rifle Division in attacks against German defenses from Khlepen'
to Zherebtsovo, which matched in ferocity the heaviest of the earlier Soviet
attacks. The assault around Khlepen', which began on 30 November, per-
sisted for days and for a time threatened the German 2d Battalion, 13th Panzer
Grenadier Regiment, with total envelopment. During the attacks Colonel
D. F. Alekseev's 354th Rifle Division suffered "immense casualties" and had
to be reorganized into "mixed divisional assault detachment."32 Despite these
punishing exertions, however, the 20th Army was done, and Zhukov knew it.
On 5 December he had Konev order General Kriukov to withdraw his shat-
tered cavalry corps to the east bank of the Vazuza River for refitting. The
remnants of the 6th Tank Corps, principally the 100th Tank Brigade, and
survivors of the rest of the corps followed. That night the remainder of the
20th Army went over to the defense, while Colonel Kursakov's 20th Cavalry
Division, still relatively intact west of the Rzhev-Sychevka road, was left to
its own devices.
Zhukov now turned his attention to saving Operation Mars. Salvation could
come, but only if the thrusts at Belyi, Luchesa, and Olenino succeeded. That
The Red God of War Contained 191
night, Zhukov sent word to General Kolpakchi at the 30th Army to ready his
forces for an attack.
As fighting died out along the Vazuza bridgehead, at midday on 4 De-
cember General von Arnim of the XXXIX Panzer Corps concluded the dan-
ger was finally over. He ordered General Metz to pull his 5th Panzer Division
out of line and turn over his bloody sector to the 9th Panzer and 78th Infan-
try Divisions. In addition, he speeded reserves to the assistance of his neigh-
boring corps commander at Belyi. As his forces rested fitfully in their now
secure defensive positions, von Arnim and his division commanders were
certain they had met the best Zhukov could offer and had weathered their
Stalingrad. But they did not know Zhukov well, for they were wrong.
FORMATION OF THE BELYI POCKET
29 November
General Tarasov of the Soviet 41st Army returned from the Kalinin Front
headquarters and his meeting with Zhukov and Purkaev late on 28 Novem-
ber. The following morning, he was still elated over what he had been able to
report to Zhukov, and he anxiously awaited the day's development. In par-
ticular, he remained convinced that Colonel Dremov's 47th Mechanized
Brigade would be able to continue its northward advance into the German
rear east of Belyi without major hindrance. That, he thought, would surely
loosen the Germans' grip on the city and also seriously weaken the already
thin German defenses along the Nacha River in Solomatin's path. Then, he
thought, Solomatin's mobile corps could push deep into the Rzhev salient
and complete its vital mission. Tarasov almost ached to be the one to crack
the German defenses and free Kiriukhin's army, which was locked into the
Vazuza bridgehead.
Early on 29 November, while the left flank forces of General Povetkhin's
6th Rifle Corps' struck once again at German defenses south and southeast
of Belyi, Colonel Dremov's brigade left Shaitrovshchina and fanned out into
the snow-choked forests toward the Obsha River. There were few Germans
in his path, and the brigade, marching in battalion columns, made excellent
progress and by nightfall captured Meshkovo on the Belyi-Olenino road and
two smaller villages to the west along the southern bank of the Obsha River.
All German communications routes into Belyi were now severed. Since only
a handful of German reconnaissance elements had appeared to Dremov's
front, he radioed for additional support necessary to consolidate his positions
along the critical German supply arteries. By midnight, however, that sup-
port had still not arrived, nor would it the next day, for Dremov's follow-on
192 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
units, apparently on Tarasov's orders, had wheeled westward during the day
to engage another lucrative target of opportunity, the eastern approaches to
the city of Belyi itself.
At the time, a multitude of combat indicators convinced General Tarasov
and others directly involved in the fateful decision that an attack on Belyi from
the east was the proper thing to do. Earlier in the day, Colonel Kvashnin's
134th and Colonel Gruz's 150th Rifle Divisions had attacked German posi-
tions south of Belyi to cover Dremov's northward advance. Initially, Gruz's
riflemen drove German forces from Motshchalniki and back toward Baturino,
and only by virtue of a determined counterattack could the Germans regain
their lost positions. The temporary Soviet success at Motshchalniki convinced
Tarasov that German defenses around Belyi were about to crack. Hence, he
immediately diverted both the 91st Rifle and 19th Mechanized Brigades,
which were to follow Dremov's thrust to the north, and instead ordered them
to attack the city's defenses from the east. In addition, Tarasov's intelligence
organs observed and reported a crush of terrified withdrawing German sol-
diers along the road running west from Shaitrovshchina to Belyi and predicted
that panic was about to prevail in the enemy ranks. Based on this informa-
tion, Tarasov decided to exploit the situation before the German command
could deploy fresh troops to the region.
At noon, on Tarasov's command, Colonel F. I. Lobanov halted his 91st
Rifle Brigade east of Bokachevo on the south bank of the Nacha River, turned
his march column ninety degrees, and advanced westward along the south
bank of the Nacha toward the Vena River. Only four kilometers beyond the
Vena River lay the prize city of Belyi. Unknown to Lobanov, also beyond the
Vena, at a distance of less than a kilometer, was the headquarters of German
forces defending Belyi, which was dug in along the ridge line and protected
by a formidable concentration of XXXXI Panzer Corps and 1st Panzer Divi-
sion artillery. As Lobanov would soon learn, Tarasov's opportunity •would be
a costly one to exploit. Although Lobanov's brigade had captured the village
of Bokachevo by nightfall and German infantry had began to falter, his ad-
vancing infantry and tanks ran into a hail of fire from German artillery massed
around Vasnevo on the heights just west of the Vena. There, within a stone's
throw of the river's bank, his attack ground to a halt after the brigade had
suffered considerable losses. Late in the afternoon, Tarasov committed more
of his forces to exploit the apparent opportunity. He diverted Colonel Ershov's
19th Mechanized Brigade, which had also been en route to reinforce Colo-
nel Dremov, and instead sent it to reinforce both Lobanov's force and the
150th Rifle Division, which was still fighting for the village of Motshchalniki,
several kilometers to the south.33
As the struggle raged on along the southeastern approaches to Belyi,
Dremov's exposed brigade was left suspended in mid-air along the Obsha.
The Red God of War Contained 193
He was able to establish a light defensive screen covering the crossing sites
over the Obsha River and he blocked temporarily the main German supply
route from Olenino to Belyi. However, he lacked the force necessary either
to attack across the river and continue his exploitation or to defend the rear area
properly, in particular, his vital communication umbilical astride the Belyi
Vladimirskoe road. Dremov's requested and expected reinforcements never
did arrive.
Meanwhile, to the south Tarasov urged General Solomatin to exploit what
he perceived as an opportunity created by Dremov's success. Solomatin,
however, was not so sure that any such opportunity existed. Being in closer
touch with the situation to his front than his army commander, he felt that
Tarasov failed to appreciate the growing German resistance along the Nacha
River, and he sensed no real diminution in the opposition he faced. In the
morning, despite his reservations, and after they had completed the regroup-
ing he had ordered the night before, his corps resumed its advance along the
Nacha front, while his 37th Mechanized Brigade remained immobile and on
the defense along his distant southern flank. At first light Lieutenant Colonel
Kuz'menko's 35th Mechanized Brigade and 4th Tank Regiment, now rein-
forced by the small task force sent north by the 37th Mechanized Brigade,
struck the German bridgehead around Sementsovo on the west bank of the
Nacha River. The assault, which was preceded by a violent volley ofKatiusha
fire and supported by a battalion of infantry from Colonel Vinogradov's 75th
Rifle Brigade, demoralized the German defenders and forced them to with-
draw grudgingly from the bridgehead. Kuz'menko's troopers then seized the
village and crossed to the river's east bank, where they too cut the Belyi-
Vladimirskoe road. A bitter fight ensued along the road as Kuz'menko's force
advanced both north and south and occupied a two-kilometer stretch of the
road. By nightfall, however, fresh German panzer grenadiers and tanks
launched several heavy counterattacks, which caused heavy casualties among
the brigade's soldiers and destroyed over thirty of its sixty tanks.34
Kuz'menko concluded that his infantry support was simply too weak to
sustain any further assault and to protect his armor properly. Therefore, at
nightfall, he asked Solomatin for reinforcements. Since the corps commander
had none to provide, Kuz'menko ordered his men to erect defenses and pre-
pare to resume the attack the following morning.
To the north, Lieutenant Colonel Shevchenko's 65th Tank Brigade, with
an infantry battalion from Colonel Sivakov's 78th Rifle Brigade, struggled to
enlarge its bridgehead anchored on the village of Basino east of the Nacha.
It was tough going. Shevchenko also had insufficient infantry, and although
his force pressed German forces back northward about a kilometer, he did
not possess the strength necessary to break through to Kuz'menko's brigade
in the bridgehead further south. A small German force was lodged in a virtu-
194 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
ally encircled position between his brigade and Kuz'menko's, and nothing
either brigade could do could dislodge the stubborn German defenders.
Failing to smash the German resistance, Shevchenko's attached platoon of
the 45th Engineer-Mine Company deployed extensive minefields along his
sector of the road-as Shevchenko's brigade also temporarily went on the de-
fense. At the same time, to the north, Colonel Davydov's 219th Tank Bri-
gade repeatedly attacked German forces in Kushlevo, west of the Nacha, while
his reconnaissance elements seeped around the German defenses and located
potential crossing sites over the Nacha River in the Germans' rear. Davydov's
forces finally made enough progress by nightfall to render the German posi-
tion at Kushlevo untenable. As a result, the small German force withdrew
northward during the night to join its comrades east of the Nacha, while
Davydov prepared to continue his advance to the river at dawn the next day.35
Solomatin reported his progress to Tarasov late in the evening. Still smart-
ing over the army commander's failure to reinforce his force sufficiently, he
reiterated his need for both tank and infantry reinforcements, suggesting that
the time might be right to release to him the reserve 48th Mechanized Bri-
gade. Once again Tarasov refused his request, stating that the situation would
improve once the German's Belyi defenses had collapsed, which he assured
Solomatin would happen the next day. "Then," said, Tarasov, "you will get
your precious reinforcements, German forces will also collapse along the
Nacha front, and you will be free to exploit as deep as is required." With no
other choice, Solomatin accepted the army commander's decision. His new
orders to his command required Shanaurin's 37th Mechanized to continue
defending in the south while his other brigades consolidated their positions
beyond the Nacha. "If I cannot advance further," thought Solomatin, "at least
I can hold on to, and perhaps expand, my precious sector of the Belyi-
Vladimirskoe road. Anything more will be up to Tarasov."
For General Harpe, the German XXXXI Panzer Corps commander, 29
November was the most critical day of the operation, for although his de-
fenses at Belyi and along the Nacha were near collapse, the 12th Panzer
Division was within striking distance of the battlefield. As dawn broke, 12th
Panzer's lead elements were less than thirty kilometers distant, and today the
division could begin to bring its forces to bear on the Russians. That meant
Harpe's defenses had to hold out for only twenty-four more hours. In the
meantime, Harpe remained at General Kruger's 1st Panzer Division head-
quarters to supervise the expanding battle around Belyi, while he left the battle
along the Nacha to Colonel von der Meden and his 1st Panzerkampfgruppe.
General Harpe was particularly concerned about the continued Russian
attacks on Belyi from the southeast and the dramatic Russian armored thrust
northward to the Obsha River. Throughout the morning Kampfgruppe Kass-
nitz repelled several Russian attacks in the south, and at midday, after Rus-
The Red God of War Contained 195
sian tanks and infantry had again captured Motshchalniki, a determined coun-
terattack by the 2d Battalion, 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment, Kampf-
gruppe von Wietersheim's last reserve, retook the village.36 The Russian
armored thrust north, however, was far more serious, for it cut all German
communications routes into Belyi and posed the threat of direct Russian as-
sault on the city from Shaitrovshchina to the east. Even worse, Harpe had
few reserves with which to parry the blow. To Harpe's surprise and relief,
however, the anticipated attack along the road did not materialize, nor did
the Russian tank force cross to the north bank of the Obsha. Instead, intense
Russian attacks developed at both Bokachevo and Motshchalniki, where
Harpe was better prepared to deal with them. The grenadiers of the 113th
Panzer Grenadier Regiment and his massed artillery at Vasnevo dealt effec-
tively with the Russian assaults.
At 1330 hours General Model at Ninth Army radioed Harpe, "Corner post
Belyi is to be held at all costs."37 Harpe needed no reminder. Soon he subor-
dinated all of General Siry's 246th Infantry Division under the command of
General Kruger of the 1st Panzer Division, and Kruger made the necessary
adjustments to deal with the crisis. First, he committed his last divisional
reserves, a force of five Mark II tanks and four armored personnel carriers,
to back up the motley force he had earlier deployed to defend along the
Shaitrovshchina road. Then he detached an artillery battalion from von der
Meden's force to defend the south flank of the Russian breech along the road.
Finally, Kruger ordered General Siry to gather up whatever 246th Division
reserves he could find and deploy them north of the Obsha River near the
crossing site at Podvoiskaia, and he requested that Grossdeutschland Divi-
sion deploy its reconnaissance battalion north of the river at Egor'e. Satisfied
that he had done all that he could to block the Russian armored advance north,
Kruger then waited with Harpe for the Russians to attack from their newly
won penetration. The attack never came, however, and at least for that day
Belyi's eastern defenses remained intact.
Further south Kampfgruppe von der Meden also confronted impending
crisis and fought for its life throughout the day. Enemy attacks drove the 1st
Panzer Division's already weakened reconnaissance battalion (K-l) from its
bridgehead at Sementsovo, "tore up" the battalion, cut the Vladimirskoe road,
and encircled the battalion along the road on the river's east bank. Another
Russian tank attack launched southward from Basino drove the 1st Battal-
ion, 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment, back and prevented it from linking up
with K-l. The panzer regiment's 2d Battalion and other remnants of the re-
connaissance battalion clung to the road further south but were also unable
to reach the encircled battalion. In the swirling series of attacks and counter-
attacks, Captain Freiherr von Freitag, K-l's commander, died in heavy com-
bat, along with many of his men. While the Germans failed to overcome the
196 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Russian force dug in along the road, they tallied thirty-one Russian tanks
destroyed in the vicious combat.38 A German participant in the fighting later
recorded the seriousness of the situation: "Additional Russian infantry and
tanks streamed to the east. Infantry, firing their submachine guns, rode on
the tanks. The situation in Kampfgruppe von der Meden on the evening of
29.11 appeared to be extremely dangerous: the I./Panzer Grenadier Regi-
ment, with sections of K-l, was surrounded under Captain Huppert in
Petelino [south of Basino]. Given the weakness of the battalion, we had to
reckon with the possibility of its destruction."39 The main question on von
der Meden's mind late on 29 November was whether his threadbare force
could hold one more day. As proud as he was of his men, von der Meden,
like his commander Harpe, was not sure.
30 November
During the early morning, as heavy snowfall resumed, General Tarasov is-
sued new orders, which he was certain would produce spectacular victory.
Simply stated, he ordered all of his forces to regroup and in the morning
launch full-scale assaults on the German defenses. As before, the two main
attacks would take place toward Belyi from the southeast and from Solomatin's
bridgeheads over the Nacha. In the early morning darkness, Tarasov rein-
forced his assault groups southeast of Belyi with an additional regiment from
the 150th Rifle Division. The German defenses between Motshchalniki and
the Nacha River were attracting Soviet forces like a magnet, as Tarasov threw
all the forces he could muster into one last lunee at the heart of the German
0
defense. Convinced of his correctness, Tarasov was succumbing to the oft-
fatal impulse of letting his heart rule his mind.
At 0900 hours the tanks and infantry of Lobanov's 91st Rifle and Ershov's
19th Mechanized Brigades, along with a regiment of Gruz's 150th Rifle Divi-
sion, charged forward through the snow toward the Vena River and the
heights beyond (Map 11, p. 135). At first, poor visibility protected them from
the fire of German artillery massed along the ridge to their front. However,
as the advancing columns swept across the frozen Vena and up the barren
but slippery far slope of the river valley, the fire intensified and tore gaping
holes through the advancing ranks. The Soviet tanks faltered on the steep
river bank leading up to German defensive positions, but the infantry charged
on, uttering their loud "Urrahs." The onrushing troops captured the village
of Golinovka on the river's west bank and moved on under heavy fire
toward Vasnevo, where, unbeknownst to the advancing Soviets, German
forces were preparing for a final stand in front of the 1st Panzer Division's
headquarters.40
The Red God of War Contained 197
Less than 400 meters from their objective, the Soviet attack faltered,
riddled by small arms and machine-gun fire and tormented by massed artil-
lery firing over open sites directly into the charging infantry. No force could
withstand such a battering. The advance recoiled, and German infantry coun-
terattacked, pursuing the surviving Russian infantrymen through Golinovka
and back into the Vena valley. Tarasov's vaunted attack was broken, and try
as it did, the Soviet infantry could not escape the confines of the Vena valley.
Soviet success at Motshchalniki was also short-lived. Once again they took
the village only to be expelled by counterattacking German panzer grenadiers
later in the afternoon. Although defeated Soviet forces were whipped into
renewed attacks throughout the afternoon, the issue had been settled, and
decisively so, in the morning. By day's end Tarasov's force around Belyi was
broken in strength and in spirit. It could advance no more.
Throughout the day, as the sounds of raging battle could be heard to the
southwest, Colonel Dremov sat with his mechanized brigade astride the
Belyi-Olenino road, passively facing the precious Obsha River crossings.
Despite his frustration he could do little more. He had not been reinforced,
and as the day passed, his reconnaissance elements reported German forces
arriving north of the river and gathering north and south of his narrow corri-
dor along the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road. In late afternoon German panzer
forces crossed the Obsha near Egor'e and drove off Dremov's small security
element. He was unable to respond because his brigade was scattered across
over ten kilometers of front, and some of his motorized infantry were still
protecting the flanks of his narrow corridor across the road to his rear. "The
least Tarasov could have done," thought Dremov, "was defend the vital cor-
ridor, even if he could not send the brigade its necessary reinforcements."
Early in the evening, Dremov had no other choice but to withdraw his forces
from the Obsha. By day's end, he had concentrated his brigade in a semi-
circular defense facing northward about six kilometers from the Belyi
Vladimirskoe road. So positioned, if reinforcements finally arrived, he could
resume his offensive.
Although Harpe and Kruger had survived their day of crisis, the prob-
lems they had faced were daunting. Even before the Soviet attack began corps
and divisional logistical officers sounded the warning the Belyi force could
not survive long with its communications lines severed. With fuel, ammuni-
tion, and foodstuffs dwindling, Harpe ordered aerial resupply of the Belyi
defenders. However, intensified Russian air activity, the smoke generated by
the heavy combat, and driving snow at German airfields made this effort even
more difficult. Nevertheless, by midday five Ju-52 aircraft had made it through
the gauntlet of enemy fire to Belyi and dropped the much-needed supplies,
averting the supply crisis, at least for a day.41 While the situation reached and
198 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
passed crisis near Belyi, Harpe waited anxiously for word from the vital south-
ern sector. Foremost on his mind weighed the question as to whether von
der Meden could hold out before help from the 12th Panzer Division arrived.
It was a close call.
General Solomatin, the 1st Mechanized Corps commander, stoically re-
sumed his offensive at dawn. Overnight, Colonel Davydov's 219th Tank Bri-
gade had pursued German forces withdrawing from Kushlevo, and before
daylight it had pushed its forward reconnaissance detachments across the
Nacha just north of the 65th Tank Brigade's bridgehead. In the blowing snow
of the morning, his main force then crossed the river and finally linked up
with Lieutenant Colonel Shevchenko's tankists. Now the combined forces
of the 219th and 65th Tank Brigades held a bridgehead more than five kilo-
meters wide astride the Vladimirskoe road on the river's far bank. Before
supporting infantry from the 78th Rifle Brigade had time to close into the
bridgehead, the two tank brigades immediately began new attacks north and
south along the road and sent reconnaissance detachments forward toward
Smoliany.42
The heaviest fighting along the critical road ensued when German panzer
grenadiers tried to prevent further Russian advance and Shevchenko's south-
ern force once again tried to crush the encircled German battalion, which
impeded its southward progress toward linkup with Kuz'menko's 35th Bri-
gade. In heavy fighting, Shevchenko's brigade seized several roadside villages
to the north and east but could not dislodge the encircled German bat-
talion.43 Repeatedly, the collective forces of the two Soviet tank brigades and
single rifle brigade struck at German positions around the bridgehead in a
struggle that lasted all day without any appreciable Soviet gains. Meanwhile,
farther south, Lieutenant Colonel Kuz'menko's 35th Mechanized Brigade
and supporting tank regiment, supported by two battalions of Colonel Vino-
gradov's 75th Rifle Brigade, pounded on German defenses along the road south-
east of Sementsovo. However, these attacks were in vain, since Kuz'menko,
too, had to contend with the apparently indestructible encircled German
battalion on his left flank and in his rear.
At mid-afternoon, to the obvious delight of the Germans, whose cheer-
ing could be heard from Soviet forward lines, new reinforcement reached
German lines. Simultaneously, detachments of light German armored vehicles
moved into the forests along Kuz'menko's nearly open left flank. Within an
hour, just as he was reassembling his forces for yet another attack, his units
dug in further north along the road radioed the news that a German armored
column had reached the encircled German battalion. A chagrined Kuz'menko
was not really surprised. For days he had heard about the possible movement
of a fresh German panzer division to the Belyi front. Apparently it was now
arriving. Prudently, he called off his attack and prepared the sector of the
The Red God of War Contained 199
road he occupied for defense. At the same time, his chief of staff passed
Solomatin the disturbing news.
Although General Solomatin was disturbed by the report, he too was not
surprised. He had been warning Tarasov for days that this might occur. How-
ever, Tarasov had not listened. Now Solomatin issued the orders that he had
mentally prepared days before. He ordered his subordinate brigades to with-
draw to the most defensible positions possible and dig in. His corps had seized
the precious Nacha River crossings at considerable price, and he intended
that the Germans pay an equal price to get them back. If Tarasov wanted
him to do more, he could send reinforcements, although at this juncture
Solomatin considered that unlikely. His orders issued, he then radioed Tarasov
the disturbing news. With difficulty, Solomatin refrained from being sarcastic.
Colonel von der Meden, the commander of the 1st Panzer Division's hard-
pressed Kampfgruppe defending along the Nacha front, could not have been
happier to hear of 12th Panzer Division's arrival. He had kept close track of
the division's progress throughout the harrowing day, and even now he real-
ized that only the forward divisional elements were arriving. Therefore, heavy
fighting would likely continue before the Russian force spent its offensive
strength.
As it was, the day had been marked by one crisis after another. The divi-
sion's reconnaissance battalion encircled in Petelino had been subjected to
repeated assaults. The same fate had befallen the 1st Battalion, 1st Panzer
Grenadier Regiment, to the north and the regiment's 2d Battalion, to the
south. Many had fallen in the fighting, including several company com-
manders. At about 1500 hours, however, the lead elements of the 12th Panzer
Division's reconnaissance battalion (K-22) pushed up the road from Vladi-
mirskoe through Komary and linked up with the 1st Panzer Grenadier
Regiment's 2d Battalion. Without halting, the 12th Panzer troops swept
around the grenadier battalion's flank into the forests west of the highway
and struck the Russian forces (the 35th Mechanized Brigade) in the flank.
When the Russians withdrew to occupy new defenses, K-22 pushed on north-
ward and blocked further Russian movement east. Exploiting K-22's arrival,
a small detachment of the 1st Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment's
supply section, under Captain Hasselbuch, which had remained in the re-
gion north of Vladimirskoe, raced north in the path of K-22. It reached its
parent battalion's positions at Basino, bringing with it critical fuel, ammuni-
tion, and food.44
Combat in the sector of the 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment's 1st Battal-
ion remained fierce all day, even after 12th Panzer Division forces began
reaching the field. It was as if the Russians were desperately trying to destroy
the German force before help could arrive. Throughout the struggle the
battalion, together with elements of the 1st Panzer Regiment, fought in total
200 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
isolation from the rest of Kampfgruppe von der Meden. Under the cover of
near constant artillery bombardment, the initial Russian assault took place at
1100 hours when twenty Russian tanks, supported by infantry (from the 65th
Tank Brigade), struck the battalion's 2d Company near Basino. With only one
serviceable Mark IV and eleven Mark III tanks remaining, the company held
out against heavy assaults until a German assault gun detachment arrived to
help. A German participant described the intense action:
Feldwebel [Sgt. Major] Schafer, who had already destroyed ten tanks the
day before, rolled forward quickly from combat base Huppert to Shiliki
[in a Mark IV tank] with a 7.5 cm antitank gun under his command [from
the 1st Company of Tank Destroyer Detachment 37] and immediately
attacked the advancing enemy tanks. These were mostly T-34s, with three
KV-ls among them, all with infantry mounted aboard. Schafer, who still
had a few panzer grenades at his disposal, at first fired at and destroyed
one KV-1 and five T-34s. After his ammunition ran out, he wheeled his
tank and assault gun into the nearest shelter. He then rolled back to the
north through the driving snow and wheeled into the rear of the enemy
tanks. Here, he destroyed nine additional T-34s and one KV-1. He re-
ceived a "gift" from the last KV-1, and his turret was blown off. The blast
threw splinters into his face and blew his radioman's leg off. Although the
Mark IV was nearly blinded from shots into its optics, the commander
and driver returned safely to Basino. Temporarily made combat ready
again, the previously wounded Ofw. Strippe took over these tanks and
destroyed yet another four T-34s at Stepanovo and Basino. The remain-
der of the enemy tanks, which had broken through, were dispatched by
panzer grenadiers, reconnaissance troops, and by assault guns and tank
destroyers.
Therefore, in four days the 2/Pz.l [2d Battalion, 1st Panzer Regiment]
had destroyed over forty enemy tanks, for the most part KV-ls and
T-34s. Two of our Panzer Ills were still combat ready on the evening of
30.11. One of their commanders was Fw. Schafer.45
Before darkness fell on the snowy battlefield, Colonel von Heimendahl's
29th Panzer Grenadier Regiment of the 12th Panzer Division made initial
contact with the isolated 1st Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadiers. Along the snow-
bound roads twenty kilometers to the rear stretched the division's 5th Panzer
Grenadier Regiment. All of the officers and men in Kampfgruppe von der
Meden knew that their ordeal had ended. Much heavy fighting would ensue,
but hereafter it would be on their terms. Their defenses along the Nacha River
had bent but not broken. The question was would the Russians realize the
fact, and when and how would they react? That evening the battered rem-
The Red God of War Contained 201
nant of the 1st Panzer Division's reconnaissance battalion (K-l) was relieved
by the 12th Panzer Division, pulled out of line, and replaced with panzer
grenadiers from the 12th Panzer Division. The decimated battalion was sent
to the rear to perform road bridge security along the "road of salvation" to
Vladimirskoe.
Even as the 12th Panzer Division moved forward, Solomatin's remaining
brigades east of the Nacha River along the Vladimirskoe road launched one
more series of futile attacks, as if to prove to their commander and Tarasov
alike that they had done their best. No sooner had the Germans repulsed the
attacks than the 12th Panzer's lead detachments restored communications
with all German forces east of the Nacha. The Soviet attacks abruptly ceased
before midnight and would not begin again.
General Harpe learned of the 12th Panzer Division's timely arrival in early
afternoon shortly after the Russian attacks in the north had been bloodily re-
pulsed. His relief was measurable and obvious, for two of his "what if's" had
now been answered. Von der Meden had held, and the 12th Panzer had ar-
rived. Hereafter, he harbored no doubts about how the battle would proceed.
Total victory, however, would take time and considerable skill and patience,
for Harpe knew that no operation controlled by Zhukov would end easily.
Zhukov was stubborn and would neither concede defeat nor spare the lives
of his men in search of advantage. Harpe's orders to Kruger and von der
Meden and General Wessel of the 12th Panzer Division emphasized that fact.
While congratulating their officers and men, Harpe reminded them that hard
and bitter fighting would likely ensue before the Russians would acknowl-
edge defeat. First and foremost, they had to formulate and implement a plan
to destroy or expel the nearly 80,000 Russians and hundreds of tanks lodged
deep in the salient into German lines. The outlines of such a plan were al-
ready floating around in Harpe's mind.
In late evening Solomatin followed his earlier message to Tarasov with a
confirmation that German reinforcements had, in fact, arrived, and they ap-
peared to be elements of a full German panzer division. Further, he related
his corps' actions, the nasty repulse, and the fact that his brigades had gone
over to the defense. He added that, for the defense to succeed, many more
tanks and infantry were required. Then Solomatin traveled forward to his
brigades to survey the day's damage and help with the defense.
Tarasov was crushed by the twin failures of the day. The bloody repulse
of his attack on Belyi had been bad enough. Now, Solomatin's cryptic mes-
sages made the situation almost catastrophic. He had already received word
of the 20th Army's defeat along the Vazuza River and dreaded the prospect
of informing Purkaev and Zhukov about his spectacular defeats. Reluctantly,
however, he did so, and then he waited fearfully to receive the likely blister-
ing reply. In the meantime, he did what he could to restore the situation.
202 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Approving Solomatin's decision to defend along the Nacha, still in a state of
shock, he decided to have another go at the German Belyi defenses in the
morning. Despite the bloody defeats, in his heart Tarasov still believed that
Belyi could be taken.
1-4 December
Ignoring the disappointing defeats he had suffered the day before and or-
dered by front to continue his offensive, on 1 December General Tarasov
directed General Povetkhin, the 6th Rifle Corps commander, to continue
attacking the German forces at Belyi from the south with his 150th Rifle
Division (see Map 16). Meanwhile, Tarasov shifted more of Colonel A. P.
Kvashnin's 134th Rifle Division's forces to the south and ordered them to
strike Belyi defenses along the Belyi-Demiakhi road. The ensuing attacks
struck hard at German defenses at Vypolsova, along the road south of Belyi,
and further east against both Grossdeutschland's Grenadier Regiment and
von Wietersheim's 113th Panzer Grenadiers. Although the attacks failed, a
stubborn General Tarasov repeated the assaults on 2 December and 3 Decem-
ber, supported by increasingly heavy artillery fire. A German report noted
wryly, "The Russians obviously did not have a munitions shortage."46 In addi-
tion, for the first time, Soviet/ron£ aviation forces began employing low-flying,
heavily armored 11-2 bomber aircraft to strike German defenses. German air
defense seemed weak because most of the German air defense guns were
being used in a ground support role. Despite the increased fire support, the
Soviet attacks continued to fail to dent the German defenses. Nonetheless,
Tarasov persisted. On 4 December his riflemen finally achieved small pene-
trations near Chirevo and Popovka in the German defense line south of Belyi,
only to be thrown back once again by German counterattacks.
Throughout these prolonged, yet futile battles, Colonel Dremov's 47th
Mechanized Brigade clung to its increasingly tenuous positions north of the
Belyi-Vladimirskoe road. He had finally received some infantry reinforce-
ments from Colonel Lobanov's now shattered 91st Rifle Brigade, and he used
this precious infantry to hold open the narrow corridor along the road to his
rear as he defended his shrinking bridgehead to the north with his remaining
armor. He did, however, have enough strength to hold German troops south
of the Obsha River at bay. By 3 December pressure increased on his right
flank, as a small German force with several assault guns pushed northwestward
along the road toward Shaitrovshchina. Dremov's infantry repulsed the at-
tack and erected a strong network of antitank defenses along the road. He
realized, however, that, sooner or later, the German drive would resume from
Belyi as well as from the southeast, and when it did, he would likely be in
serious danger of encirclement. This is what he informed General Tarasov
on the night of 4 December.
Map 16. Situation from 1 to 6 December 1942: the Belyi Sector
204 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Southward along the Nacha River, Solomatin's 1st Mechanized Corps
clung to its defensive positions east of the river, occasionally launching sor-
ties to keep the Germans off balance. Although Solomatin favored a with-
drawal back across the river to shorten his lines and solidify his defense against
a German attack that he was sure would come, Tarasov refused his request.
Across the river, the Germans continued to reinforce their forces and form
them into a continuous front. Late on 1 December, German forces relieved
a small detachment that earlier had been encircled by Colonel Davydov's
219th Tank Brigade at the village of Shamilovo west of Stepanovo. Under fire,
Davydov then withdrew his brigade to new defenses along the river's bank
while the Germans moved northward along the road toward Shaitrovshchina
to strike Colonel Dremov's defenses. Colonel Davydov was wounded during
the fighting and was replaced by Lieutenant Colonel S. T. Khilobok.47
South of Sementsovo, heavy German attacks also smashed the bridgehead
of Lieutenant Colonel Kuz'menko's 35th Mechanized Brigade and forced
the brigade to retreat across the Nacha River. Before they were halted, the
Germans seized several small villages on the river's western bank opposite
Kuz'menko's new defenses anchored on the village of Dubki.
Far more serious to Solomatin were developments on his far right flank,
where Lieutenant Colonel Shanaurin's 37th Mechanized Brigade and 3d Tank
Regiment had been alternately defending and harassing German forces south-
ward along the Vladimirskoe railroad for several days. Shanaurin's tankists
still held Nikitinka Station along the Vladimirskoe—Safonovo railroad line, and
his infantry stretched westward along the Vop' River, where they tied in only
loosely with the forward outposts of Colonel Repin's 74th Rifle Brigade, which
weakly held the long Soviet right flank. Two new German threats emerged
in this sector during the initial days of December. On 1 December a small
German task force reinforced with a few tanks drove Shanaurin's small force
from Nikitinka Station and the next day began clearing his detachments from
their blocking positions along the rail line. On 3 December, to Shanaurin's
consternation, the German force was reinforced and began a major drive
northwestward against his defensive positions. This threat and the rumored
advance of even larger German forces against his right flank prompted
Shanaurin to seek Solomatin's permission to withdraw northward to more
defensible lines.
The other new German threat was materializing in the swamps and heavy
forests southwest of Shanaurin's positions along the Vop' River. For days
Soviet partisans had been harassing German columns, which reportedly were
moving northward through the frozen forests from the Dukhovshchina and
Smolensk regions. The partisans reported that the force appeared to be the
forward elements of a German panzer division, but they did not know its
designation or ultimate destination. Solomatin was less sanguine and pre-
The Red God of War Contained 205
sumed the force was en route to his and Tarasov's weakly held right flank. It
bore all of the earmarks of the beginning of a carefully planned German
envelopment operation. Late on 3 December, Solomatin sent Tarasov his
assessment of the situation and, in particular, the growing threat to his flank.
Then, without waiting for approval, Solomatin ordered his brigades back into
new defenses running southward along the Nacha River to Dubki and then
westward through Gorodnia to the left flank of the 74th Rifle Brigade, which
soon also received permission to withdraw.48
Tarasov had no choice but to agree with Solomatin's move. Early on 4
December, he sent orders to Colonel Repin's 74th Rifle Brigade and Gen-
eral Dobrovol'sky's 17th Guards Rifle Division to withdraw northward par-
allel with Solomatin but to leave small detachments forward to harass any
subsequent German advance. In fact, that night Tarasov virtually threw in
the towel on his offensive by ordering the entire 41st Army to go over to the
defense. To conceal that fact from the Germans and to protect the withdrawal,
he ordered Povetkhin's 6th Rifle Corps to maintain pressure on German
defenses at Belyi and assigned Povetkhin the newly arrived 154th Tank Bri-
gade. Additionally, he ordered Colonel Dremov to hold his bridgehead north
of Shaitrovshchina. Finally, Tarasov ordered a major force regrouping of the
sort Solomatin had been requesting for days. Beginning on 4 December,
Povetkhin was to shift all of his rifle brigades from the Nacha River south-
ward to new positions along the Belyi salient's southern flank. Within two days
the 74th, 78th, and 75th Rifle Brigades, deployed from left to right, were
to fill in the gap between Solomatin's right flank 37th Mechanized Brigade
and the 17th Guards Rifle Division, still besieging German forces around
Demekhi. Once in position, the brigades would be backed up by Colonel
Sheshchubakov's still uncommitted 48th Separate Mechanized Brigade.49
General Solomatin was not pleased by the loss of all of his infantry sup-
port along the Nacha River, even though Tarasov had allocated him as a re-
serve the newly arrived 104th Tank Brigade. Moreover, the continuing heavy
snowfall would prevent any rapid maneuver in the face of a determined Ger-
man advance. Therefore, also on 4 December, Solomatin ordered most of
his administrative and support vehicles to the rear along with his wounded,
leaving just tanks, mortar and artillery transports, and other key combat sup-
port vehicles forward with his combat elements. Here, Solomatin waited for
the inevitable German attack.
General Povetkhin, the 6th Rifle Corps commander, struggled to keep
track of the fighting around Belyi while trying to regroup the forces along his
long left flank. It was no easy task. By late evening on 4 December, his 75th
and 78th Rifle Brigades began their trek to the southwest. Already, Colonel
Repin reported heavy action against fresh German forces advancing north-
ward through the forests between Samsonikha and Bocharniki. He had es-
206 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
tablished a series of strong points to block the Germans and now ordered the
reserve 48th Mechanized Brigade to provide these strong points with tank
and additional antitank guns. Fortunately, cooperating partisan units, with
which the 41st Army had communications and liaison, were succeeding in
delaying the German advance, and so far the strong points were holding. These
same partisans, however, also reported German armored movements into the
Tereshino region. That meant a sizable force was assembling for an attack
from the south, and Povetkhin doubted his defensive screen would hold. He
too then warned Tarasov and asked for additional reinforcements. Tarasov
responded by ordering him to defend at all costs, stating that yet another rifle
division, the 279th, was en route to his sector. Although Povetkhin did not
know that Tarasov intended to employ the new division to renew his attacks
on Belyi, the news comforted him.
Despite his obvious relief, his soaring expectations, and his enjoinder to
his men the day before to expect more heavy fighting, General Harpe of the
XXXXI Panzer Corps was as surprised as his subordinates when the Russians
continued their violent attacks against the Belyi defenses on 1 December.
Although the Russians did not attack again precisely where they had been
beaten the day before, the new attacks south and southwest of Belyi were
fierce and apparently supported by newly arrived Russian armor formations.
Was there no end, thought Harpe, to the Russian supply of tanks? Surely they
must run out of crews. Although General Kruger handled these new assaults
deftly, they continued several days and even achieved some local success. As
long as they went on, Kruger had to scrape the bottom of the barrel for re-
serves, and the battle sucked up all available reinforcements. Most damag-
ing, as long as the attacks persisted, Harpe could not regroup his forces around
Belyi to create a shock force necessary to regain the initiative.
Harpe was also disturbed by the apparent Russian decision to leave forces
north of the Belyi—Vladimirskoe road at Shaitrovshchina. This meant that he
would also have to devote scarce resources to eliminating that threat. More-
over, the continued presence of the Russians there also hindered von der
Meden's operations along the Nacha River. In fact, on 3 December von der
Meden had advanced on Russian positions at Shaitrovshchina with elements
of the 1st Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment (Kampfgruppe Huppert),
but strong Russian antitank defenses repulsed the attack 800 meters east of
the village. Failing in that attempt to restore communications with division
main forces in Belyi, von der Meden asked that the 246th Infantry Division's
forces attack eastward along the road from Belyi to link up with his stalled
forces and cut off Russian forces north of the road.
Kampfgruppe Huppert resumed its advance against Shaitrovshchina early
on 4 December, this time in conjunction with elements of the 246th Infantry
Division attacking eastward from Belyi. This fighting proved to be as heavy
The Red God of War Contained 207
and costly as the day before, and by midday the group commander, Captain
Huppert, had been severely wounded and his element of 1st Battalion, 1st
Panzer Grenadiers, had been itself cut off and forced to fight its way out of
the Russian positions. By day's end, all but three battalion officers had been
wounded and the grenadier companies had eroded to twenty-five to thirty
men, but the Russian defenses held firm.50
Meanwhile, further south along the Nacha River, on 1 December, von
der Meden's 1st Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment, attacked and
regained the banks of the river north and west of Basino against a strong
Russian "hedgehog" tank defense. At the same time, reconnaissance bat-
talion K-l, reinforced by the 12th Panzer Division's 5th Panzer Grenadier
Regiment, at considerable cost drove Russian forces back across the Nacha
in the Sementsovo sector. During the counterattacks von der Meden's 2d Bat-
talion succeeded in relieving a company of 33d Panzer Regiments troops that
had held out encircled in Shamilovo, west of Stepanovo, for days. The en-
circled force had managed to repel all Russian attacks by incorporating eight
damaged tanks into their defenses.51 The 2d Battalion finally pushed stub-
bornly resisting Russian forces west across the Nacha by the evening of 3
December.
While the tide of battle turned along the Nacha, Colonel Holste, the com-
mander of the 1st Panzer Division's 73d Artillery Regiment, assembled a small
force to deal with the Russians operating against the railroad line southwest
of Vladimirskoe, which the Germans had incorrectly estimated at ä strength
of two brigades. Initially, Holste's force consisted of the 73d Regiment's head-
quarters and the 37th Pioneer (Sapper) Battalion, which had earlier contained
the Russians in Nikitinka Station. Holste reinforced this small force with a
company each from the 25th Panzer Grenadier and 29th Panzer Regiments
(of the 12th Panzer Division). He also added a company from the 514th
Railway Construction Battalion, the 9th Company of Russian soldiers from
the 592d Freiwillig (Volunteer) Battalion, several antiaircraft guns, and two
batteries from his artillery regiment. This larger force drove the Russians from
Nikitinka Station, and on 3 December, reinforced by K-l and a company of
the division's 37th Tank Destroyer Battalion, it began a slow advance to the
north. By evening Holste had linked up with forces of the 2d Battalion, 1st
Panzer Grenadier Regiment, which had just crossed west of the Nacha
River. On 4 December, Russian forces, now correctly identified as elements
of the 37th Mechanized Brigade, struck back at Kampfgruppe Holste south
of Gorodnia. However, Holste's force repelled the attack when several 7.5
cm antitank guns from his 37th Tank Destroyer Battalion destroyed five
T-34 tanks and forced the rest to withdraw.52
The slow advance of the 20th Panzer Division's lead elements through
the forests to the southwest now assisted Holste's progress. However, it was
The Red God of War Contained 209
ties of the previous days. Moreover, he now also knew that the 20th Army's
offensive had failed, and both Zhukov and Purkaev impressed upon him that
further success in Operation Mars now depended on the performance of
Soviet armies fighting west of Rzhev, which, to lushkevich, meant his army.
With no choice but to attack, in the early morning hours of 1 December,
lushkevich issued new orders to his subordinate formations. This time, his
entire army would advance at dawn, simultaneously, after the heaviest prepa-
ration his artillery could fire. Once again, due to the intervention of yet an-
other heavy snowstorm, front aircraft could not join in the preparation.
The 22d Army's dawn assault was to encompass the entire sector from
Grivo, north of the Luchesa, to Galitskina six kilometers south of the river,
and the same distance east of the Olenino—Belyi road (see Map 17). Colonel
Gorelov's 1st Guards Tank Brigade was to spearhead the attack across the
Luchesa toward Vasil'tsovo, supported by infantry from Colonel Babad-
zhanian's 3d Mechanized Brigade. The 1319th Rifle Regiment of Colonel
Andriushchenko's 185th Rifle Division, with a battalion of the 1st Mecha-
nized Brigade, attacked on Gorelov's left and the remainder of the 1st Mecha-
nized Brigade and the 10th Mechanized Brigade attacked on his right. The
entire assault frontage extended in a broad arc along and south of the Luchesa
east and west of the town of Starukhi. lushkevich also ordered the 114th Rifle
Brigade then in reserve to conduct a night march and to be in position by
morning to back up the assault force. Further to the south, a battalion of the
10th Mechanized Brigade and the 49th Tank Brigade were to attack along
with two rifle regiments of Colonel Karpov's 238th Rifle Division to clear
German forces from the region south of the Luchesa River and reach the
Olenino—Belyi road. Overnight, Major Chernichenko's 49th Tank Brigade
regrouped to spearhead the assault, and Major A. F. Burda's fresh 39th Sepa-
rate Tank Regiment fielded forward from army reserve to add further weight
to the attack. lushkevich planned to stagger the timing of the assaults to add
an element of unpredictability to the attack and to prevent the Germans from
repositioning their units in timely fashion throughout the battle.
Although the artillery preparation and assault began as planned heavy new
snowfall and snow-clogged roads delayed the reserve rifle brigade and tank
regiment movement, and they were unable to join battle on 1 December.
Nevertheless, the assaults began at 0900 and rippled across the front as the
Red Army soldiers threw themselves at German positions with new abandon.
In fighting whose intensity exceeded that of the day before, lushkevich's forces
made steady but bloody progress. Soviet infantry and tanks pushed grimly north
out the Luchesa valley, seized Travino, and drove German defenders to a new
defense line running due east from Grivo. South of the river, bitter fighting
raged along the approaches to Gorovatka and in the town itself, where, by
nightfall, Soviet infantry and tanks forced German forces to abandon the village.
Map 17. Situation from 1 to 11 December 1942: the Luchesa River Sector
The Red God of War Contained 211
General Katukov committed Major Chernichenko's 49th Tank Brigade
to action shortly before noon after infantry from the 238th Rifle Division had
seized Galitskina and then pushed the German defenders eastward several
kilometers to within four kilometers of the Olenino road. Although drasti-
cally stretched to the southeast, the thin German defense lines covering the
road still held, thanks to the timely arrival of a few reinforcing antitank
guns. Time and time again, the Germans wavered and gave ground under
lushkevich's merciless attacks, but they did not crack and break. At nightfall,
General lushkevich ordered his reserve forces, which had finally arrived, to
go into battle at dawn in their respective sectors.
In the judgment of the defending Germans, 1 December was the "heavi-
est day of combat" during the Luchesa valley defense, and the defense al-
most succumbed to the incessant and vicious infantry and tank assaults. A
German account accurately captured the grim consequences of the staggered
Russian attacks:
At dawn, after a particularly strong fire preparation, three Russian divi-
sions attacked the entire front from east of Griva [sic] to the southeast
(Bogoroditskoe-Bolshoe Boryatino). The 1st Battalion of the 252d Regi-
ment of the 110th Division arrived and occupied a line south of the 1st
Infantry Battalion, east of Koronevka-Galishkino-Bolshoe Boryatino. The
Russian attack was arranged as follows: 0700 hours [Berlin time] against
Bolshoe Boryatino, 0830 hours against Bogoroditskoe and, to the east, at
the same time against Gorovatka, and at 1000 hours against Bogoroditskoe.
At 1500 hours, two additional attacks followed. The Russians achieved a
penetration and moved forward when friendly antitank guns shot up the
enemy tanks. In spite of bitter close combat, during which Major Lorenz
with his assault engineers particularly distinguished themselves, the en-
emy could not be stopped. The snowstorm was blinding and prevented
the commitment of the requested dive-bombers.34
Colonel Lindemann of the 110th Infantry Division and Colonel Kohler
of Grossdeutschland Division's Grenadier Regiment issued a desperate call
for reinforcements from both Generals Hilpert and Harpe at the XXIII Army
and XXXXI Panzer Corps headquarters. Hilpert responded by sending south
the 2d Battalion of the 253d Infantry Division's 473d Grenadier Regiment
and a company of the corps' 4th Air Defense Regiment. The former, how-
ever, numbered only 5 officers and 127 men. Harpe sent Grossdeutschland
Division's assault gun battalion from the Belyi region.55 Although these rein-
forcements were small, and most would not arrive until the next day, their
presence would prove critical in the operation as both sides fought their way
down to their last battalion.
212 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
At midday, while the Grenadier Regiment's 2d and 3d Battalion gave
ground north of the river, Russian infantry supported by eight tanks pene-
trated into the 1st Battalion's positions west of Gorovatka. They passed
through the town with loud whoops of victory and then assaulted the low hill
beyond where Kampfgruppe Kohler's headquarters was located. During the
ensuing battle for the hill, Colonel Kohler was mortally wounded, and his men,
now led by Major Lorenz, withdrew to new positions anchored on a series of
machine-gun nests east of the fallen hill. Lorenz's staff sent to the rear for
reinforcements and raised several companies of ersatz infantry from convoy
and rear service forces along the road. By nightfall, this motley crew, with
the assault guns sent from Belyi, erected another weak defense line.56
To the south, the 1st and 2d Battalions, 252d Grenadier Regiment, ab-
sorbed an unmerciful beating, withdrew under pressure, but still held on to
an ever extending line west of the Olenino-Belyi road. The gap between them
and the 86th Infantry Division widened still further, but the 86th was able to
hold its positions and its open flank east of Ivanovka.
The following two days, lushkevich barely altered his attack orders.
Soviet objectives remained the same as he sent the 114th Rifle Brigade and
39th Tank Regiment into combat to fill the depleted ranks of the forward
Soviet attacking formations. The Soviet attacks in the central sector between
Vasil'tsovo and Gorovatka pressed deeper into the German defense north
of the river as the 114th Brigade joined the action, and lushkevich now or-
dered Colonel Andriushchenko to throw his entire 185th Rifle Division
against German defenses north and east of Grivo. The pressure was too
much to withstand, and by nightfall on 3 December, German Kampfgruppe
Lindemann abandoned the Grivo "corner post" and withdrew to new and
shorter defensive lines four kilometers to the rear. The situation was even
more desperate on the German's left flank, where the Soviet 49th Tank Bri-
gade and 39th Tank Regiment now concentrated their attacks. Once again,
a German account underscored the severity of the fighting:
The gray morning of 2 December dawned, and at 0700 hours [0900
Moscow time], the Russians began a new attack. Russian tanks rolled
against the-2d Light Infantry Battalion in the direction of Belikovo [near
Gorovatka]. Further to the east, enemy tanks were directed against the
assault engineers and the 1st Light Infantry Battalion in Kuzovlevo. The
weakened strong points, upon which a merciless mortar fire rained down,
defended themselves desperately. The courageous defense did not help;
several tanks, with mounted infantry aboard, broke through. The 1st Light
Infantry Battalion was encircled in Kuzovlevo; it defended itself furiously,
then broke out during the evening by a counterattack led by Major Lorenz.
South of the Luchesa, at 0900 [1100] strong enemy forces, also equipped
The Red God of War Contained 213
with tanks, struck against the 1st Battalion of the 252d in order to force a
breakthrough to the east. In bitter close combat, the enemy pushed the
battalion back to Khudulikha. Already mortars were firing on the Belyi-
Olenino rottbahn, which was only two kilometers away and was urgently
required for the supply of the forces in the south.
The troops, decimated by heavy losses because of combat stress, the
cold and snowstorms and the security and work details, were completely
exhausted, fatigued, and overworked. There was no longer any reserve.57
Despite the unrelenting pressures of combat on both sides, the battle
continued at frenetic pace on 3 December as lushkevich literally willed his
forces forward toward the Belyi—Olenino road. The German withdrawal from
Grivo also provided lushkevich with an opportunity to shift additional forces
to his right flank. No matter how far he extended that flank, however, it
seemed as though fresh German forces arrived in the nick of time to block
his progress. The distance to his initial objective, the Olenino-Belyi German
supply artery, now ranged from five kilometers in the Luchesa valley itself to
less than two kilometers in the south along the open German flank. There-
fore, it was on that flank that lushkevich now concentrated his attention and
forces. At nightfall on 3 December, he ordered Colonel T. F. Eroshin, the
238th Rifle Division commander, along with Katukov's 49th Tank and 10th
Mechanized Brigades and the still fresh 39th Tank Regiment, to regroup south
of the Luchesa and prepare for new assaults within several days. Meanwhile,
he ordered his 155th Rifle Division, then operating on the army's far left flank,
to dispatch two of its rifle regiments to reinforce the new effort. He then
reassigned Colonel Karpov, the commander of the 238th Rifle Division, to
command the 155th Rifle Division in order to provide the latter with more
experienced combat leadership. Colonel Eroshin took Karpov's place as com-
mander of the 238th.58
The German commands struggling to hold the Russian 22d Army at bay
gained a bit from abandoning Grivo, but not much, for Russian attacks on
3 December were as fierce as in previous days. The Russians' "apparently
limitless quantities of men and equipment" were taking a terrible toll, and
even the German new reserves were stretched to the breaking point.59 Near
Kuzovlevo, on the Luchesa's south bank, the defenders from the 3d Battal-
ion, Grenadier Regiment, destroyed thirteen of fourteen assaulting Russian
tanks with antitank guns as they were about to overrun their defensive posi-
tion. Further to the south, the 1st Battalion, 252d Grenadier Regiment, re-
pelled another nearly suicidal enemy attack on Khudulikha, two kilometers
west of Emel'ianki, but had to give way another 500 meters in the process.
Now they could almost feel the road to their rear through the gray fog-filled
skies and forests. The German infantry was relieved to hear that, for the first
214 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
time in the operation, German aircraft were able to pound Russian supply
facilities and assembly areas, though the fog was too thick and the combat
too close for them to provide close air support for the troops in combat. As
night fell, the German positions were bent and battered but still intact. That
evening a rumor spread like wildfire through forward troop positions that
reinforcements were on the way. They had better be, thought the front line
commanders, for the Olenino road was now less than two kilometers to their
rear.
4-6 December
Late on 3 December, General Lindemann received the report he had been
waiting anxiously to hear. General Praun's 18th Grenadier Regiment, said
General Hilpert at XXIII Corps, would be entraining the next morning near
Sychevka and would reach his beleaguered positions within forty-eight
hours.60 All Lindemann and his companions from Grossdeutschland Division
would have to do was hold until help arrived. Although he welcomed the news,
Lindemann was not sure his tired and decimated force could do so. How-
ever, if he had known the condition of lushkevich's forces opposite him he
would have been more encouraged.
In fact, lushkevich's 22d Army was totally burned out and had been for
several days. The incessant combat had ground up more than 200 of the army's
original 270 tanks, and, although some new tanks had arrived, they amounted
to only a dribble. By 3 December only small tank company teams were oper-
ating with the Soviet infantry, and the largest single tank force was the 39th
Tank Regiment's 20 machines. Infantry losses had also been high, amount-
ing to over 60 percent of lushkevich's original force. lushkevich simply lacked
the large forces necessary to sustain yet another major effort and was, there-
fore, forced to transfer forces from his far left flank. This situation was par-
ticularly frustrating and personally perilous for lushkevich, since army forces
were so close to the Olenino road and Zhukov and Purkaev were still demand-
ing maximum efforts and nothing less than total success. lushkevich took
momentary refuge in his belief that the Germans too must be nearing exhaus-
tion. That thought, however, only lent new urgency to the imperative of seiz-
ing the Olenino road before new Germans arrived.
Late on 3 December, lushkevich ordered his subordinate commanders
to conduct active reconnaissance and display offensive aktivnost' (activity)
and intent along their front while he regrouped and rested his forces and
brought up all available reserves (see Map 17). Since there were no fresh for-
mations available on the Luchesa front, lushkevich cannibalized units from
other sectors and dispatched them into the Luchesa cauldron. Following
Purkaev's instructions to a tee, he was attempting to assemble and commit a
The Red God of War Contained 215
force that could break through to the vital road "at all costs." The spot he chose
for the attack was the village of Khudulikha, which was located in the center
of the southern sector less than two kilometers west of the key village of
Emel'ianki on the Olenino road. To launch the assault, lushkevich regrouped
two regiments from his left flank 155th Rifle Division to the Luchesa valley
and deployed these regiments as shock troops. One regiment, the 436th Rifle
Regiment, would attack German defenses north of the Luchesa, while the
second, the 786th, would spearhead the decisive thrust through Khudulikha.
He planned to support the latter with the 39th Tank Regiment, the rem-
nants of two of Katukov's brigades, and two regiments from the 238th Rifle
Division. However, the excessive time required for redeploying and con-
centrating the attacking formations forced lushkevich to delay the planned
time of attack until 0900 hours on 7 December. In the meantime, his forces
in all other sectors conducted active demonstrations. What lushkevich did
not know, however, was that his well-planned final attack was about to be
preempted.
At 0400 hours on 6 December, a long column of trucks, traveling under
blackout conditions, lumbered slowly southward along the snow-packed road
from Olenino and quietly pulled off the road into positions around Kostritsy,
a small roadside village several kilometers north of Emel'ianki. Immediately,
fresh troops climbed from the trucks and quickly disappeared into the dark
to occupy their assigned assembly areas. Fresh was a misnomer, however,
for the troops were tired from the long and cold road march. In fact, it seemed
to them that they had been riding in the trucks for an eternity. Despite their
fatigue they were looking for a scrape. Their parent unit, the 2d Battalion,
18th Grenadier Regiment, had entrained at Osuga two days before. Under
their veteran commander, Colonel Becker, they had just distinguished them-
selves by helping to smash the Russian assaults along the Vazuza. Now, brim-
ming with the pride of an acknowledged and successful "fire brigade," they
were preparing to replicate their performance along the Luchesa. With this
force was the 2d Panzer Division's 2d Motorcycle Battalion, three tanks, and
two assault guns. The 2d Battalion of Grossdeutschland Division's Artillery
Regiment would provide fire support for their attack.61
Only hours remained before their dawn attack, and the soldiers overcame
their weariness with the knowledge that they were here in this God-forsaken
snow-covered forest to fend off genuine disaster for thousand of their com-
rades. The memory of the fate of other German soldiers at Stalingrad was
too vivid to permit it to happen here. They were resolved it would not.
Becker's battalion-size task force was only one part of the larger Kampf-
gruppe Praun, led by General Praun, the commander of the 129th Infantry
Division, whose group had been serving as a "fire brigade" since the begin-
ning of the Russian Rzhev offensive. In addition to Colonel Becker's battal-
The Red God of War Contained 217
still not arrived, the bulk of the battalion, under Hellweg's command,
attacked Galishkino, while the 7th Company, with an assault gun under
Lieutenant Foese, attacked Bolshoe Boryatino. The Russians radioed,
"The enemy is equipped with tanks; request your tanks." The response
was, "You know the situation. Defend with what you have." On both
roads enemy tank after enemy tank was destroyed. All of the [friendly]
tanks and assault guns were shot up until there was only one tank re-
maining, which still had one antitank round. Senior Lieutenant Hellweg,
with a collection of units and his one tank, attacked Galishkino. Galish-
kino hill was swarming with hundreds of Russians. A T-34 approached
the hill from Galishkino (the town no longer existed) and attacked the
battalion. Fortunately, it was hit by the last antitank round and put out
of commission.
Hellweg recognized that to defend the completely open Galishkino hill
during the night was out of the question, especially since the right and
left neighbors had not advanced the same distance, and with the consent
of the regimental commander, he withdrew to the edge of the forest. Here,
the units were deployed for the defense with the 1st Battalion, 252d Regi-
ment, on the right, the 2d Battalion, 18th Regiment, in the center, and
the 2d Motorcycle Battalion on the left. The motorcyclists had to bend
their left flank back and insure the security of their flanks because, on
the left, it was fifteen kilometers to the next German.
The success of the day was great. Both roads were in a state of shambles,
nineteen enemy tanks were shot up, eighteen trucks, fourteen antitank
guns, two tankettes, five heavy machine guns, and a great number of hand
weapons and other equipment were either destroyed or captured. Be-
cause of this counterattack, the enemy was prevented from further pene-
tration and pushed back to a distance of six kilometers from the Belyi-
Olenino rollbahn. In addition to 20 prisoners, the enemy lost a total of
350 dead. Friendly losses consisted of 9 dead and 41 wounded. This rep-
resented the loss of a strong company at the present friendly [German]
combat strength.
At this time, the most important task was the establishment of a de-
fense. Within the main combat line was neither a town nor a deeply
snow-covered forest that would offer the men a place to warm up or
provide shelter. It was bitter cold, and the ground was frozen. Although
the troops were exhausted, because of the danger of freezing, no one
could sleep. Snow huts were feverishly built. To insure camouflage, fires
were not lit. There were no large entrenching tools, and the work was
o O
very difficult with only the short infantry spade. In spite of it all, morale
was excellent because, in a short time, the regiment had achieved a sec-
ond great success.63
218 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
The violent and unexpected German assault threw General lushkevich's
forces totally off balance. It caught his forces in the middle of their final prepa-
rations for the 7 December attack and forced lushkevich to commit his pre-
cious reserves in an attempt to restore the situation. Subsequent Soviet efforts
to recapture their lost positions failed and chewed up the remaining armor
of the 39th Tank Regiment and Katukov's two weak brigades. In short, it was
a disastrous reminder that, for the first time, the 22d Army had lost the ini-
tiative. For lushkevich, the only remaining question was whether or not he
could regain it. Regardless of the answer, lushkevich knew that Purkaev and
Zhukov would demand that he try.
THE STRUGGLE FOR URDOM
30 November to 3 December
Shortly before dawn on 30 November, General Zygin, the 39th Army com-
mander, met with his key subordinates at his new command post in Pozd-
niakovo, less than ten kilometers north of the town of Urdom (Map 14, p. 161).
The capture of Urdom had eluded Zygin's forces for days, and Zhukov's and
Purkaev's enjoinders and threats of the night before still rang in Zygin's ears.
He had to take Urdom and soon. In his CP that morning were Colonels
Sazonov and Il'ichev of his 373d and 348th Rifle Divisions and Colonel
Malygin, who controlled his army's 28th and 81st Tank Brigades.64 Their
collective task was to put the finishing touches on a plan to overcome the
German Urdom defenses that very day. Zygin's plan was simple and made
maximum use of the dwindling armor resources available to the 39th Army.
While the 348th and 135th Rifle Divisions struck German defenses west and
east of the town, a regiment from the 373d Rifle Division and Malygin's re-
maining armor, led by a handful of surviving heavy KV tanks, would attempt
to envelop German defenses.
The ensuing attack lasted all day but, to Zygin's relief, was successful.
Colonel Malygin's KV tanks made it to the outskirts of the town, and despite
heavy German fire, they systematically reduced pillbox after German pillbox.
German armor reserves were sent in but could not hold back the Soviet ad-
vance. At a cost of over half of his remaining armor, by nightfall Malygin's
two brigades and the accompanying infantry had driven the Germans from
the destroyed town. Despite the Soviets' strenuous efforts, however, the
German defenders still held out along the road east and west of the. town.65
The Germans had lost Urdom, but the overall German defense line was still
intact. More important, the violent struggle had so sapped the remaining
strength of the Soviet 39th Army that Zygin was forced to call off any new
attacks until he had a chance to regroup and reinforce his forces.
The Red God of War Contained 219
From the standpoint of General Hilbert, the XXIII Army Corps com-
mander, the loss of Urdom was a foregone conclusion. He had already de-
cided the night before that he would defend in perfunctory fashion but would
not permit his precious forces to be ground up in a house-to-house defense
of the town. Already he had constructed new defense lines along the road
east and west of Urdom. During the fight for Urdom, elements of Gross-
deutschland Division's panzer battalion, engineer battalion, and ski battalion
stoutly resisted and suffered heavy losses but also destroyed twenty-five
enemy tanks in the process. After the battle had ended, on the evening of 30
November, the Grossdeutschland units were relieved by redeployed infan-
try from the 206th Infantry Division, and the panzer grenadiers returned to
their parent division.66 Frankly, General Hilpert was still more concerned with
the situation on his right flank, where heavy Soviet troops movements could
be observed in the Russian bridgeheads west of Rzhev and south of the Volga
River, than he was about the loss of Urdom.
General Hilpert's concerns were well founded, for the day before both
General Purkaev, the Kalinin Front commander, and General Konev, the
Western Front commander, had received orders from Zhukov to activate new
combat sectors west of Rzhev. Specifically, Purkaev was to shift the focus of
his offensive efforts to the Zaitsevo sector on 39th Army's left flank, where
Zygin's forces had achieved temporary success early in the operation. Simul-
taneously, Konev was to regroup the forces of his 30th Army, both to rein-
force Zygin's new attack and to launch a major attack of his own further east
in coordination with Zygin's effort. The only remaining question was when
this regrouping would be complete and when the attacks could be launched.
Obviously, Zhukov wanted the attacks sooner rather than later, but regroup-
ing, nevertheless, would take time.
Because of the regrouping difficulties and Zhukov's impatience, the at-
tacks began in piecemeal fashion as Purkaev and Konev both attempted to
improve their positions prior to the general offensive. This in turn alerted
German defenders and gave them time to adjust their forces in order to meet
the new threats. The complex Soviet regrouping process began on 2 Decem-
ber and accelerated thereafter. Meanwhile, Soviet forces, in the planned at-
tack sectors and elsewhere, continued to launch local assaults.
On 3 December, Zygin's 101st Rifle Brigade, supported by the 46th
Mechanized Brigade, attacked from its salient at Trushkovo westward along
the road toward Zaitsevo. The Germans repulsed the heavy assault, but only
after
the
hard-pressed 14th Motorized Division's
llth
Grenadier Regiment
received reinforcements from the 45lst Infantry Regiment of the adjacent
251st Infantry Division. No sooner had the Germans dealt with this threat
than the Soviet 359th and 380th Rifle Divisions struck German defenses fur-
ther east near Gnezdovo at the juncture of the German 251st and 87th In-
220 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
fantry Divisions. After a brief but violent artillery preparation, Soviet infan-
try penetrated German forward defenses and brought additional artillery into
the bridgehead on the south bank of the Volga. Once the Soviet assault in
the 87th Infantry Division's sector had been contained, the 359th Rifle Divi-
sion attacked the 459th Grenadier Regiment on the 251st Infantry's right
flank. By evening this Soviet attack had also failed.67
To General Hilpert at the XXIII Army Corps' headquarters, a clear pat-
tern was emerging. As the Germans dealt with one assault by shifting reserves
to the threatened sector, the Russians would attack in an adjacent sector, more
often one from which the Germans had just shifted forces. The overall effect
was a weakening of German defenses west of Rzhev. This, therefore, Hilpert
presumed, was the sector against which the Russians would launch their next
major assault.
4-6 December
As Generals Purkaev and Konev planned their new series of attacks, the overall
situation changed drastically and made these attacks considerably more im-
portant. By 4 December, it was clear that both the 20th Army's and the 41st
Army's attacks had stalled. The former could not be resumed without signifi-
cant Soviet reinforcement, and the latter could be resumed only if some means
were found to draw German reinforcing forces away from the Belyi region.
Although the 22d Army had torn a huge hole in the German Rzhev perime-
ter, that gap could not be exploited unless and until German operational
reserves were drawn away from that region as well. As Zhukov closely exam-
ined the extensive German defenses alone the circumference of the Rzhev
o
salient, he determined that the weakest and most vulnerable sector was now
in the north, west of Rzhev. Although the battle there had been one of attri-
tion and the Soviet advance there had been slow, Zygin's 39th Army had made
steady progress and, in doing so, had consumed most of the available Ger-
man reserves in the north. That meant that, while German forces were weak
in the 39th Army's secondary sectors, they were likely even weaker in the
sector of the adjacent 30th Army. Therefore, Zhukov decided that an assault
in those two sectors just might crack German defenses and cause the entire
German "pile of cards" defense to unravel. Most important, if attacks there
did succeed, he could then resume his offensive in other key sectors.
In the midst of this process of rethinking the entire operation, Zhukov
issued new orders to Purkaev and Konev to prepare to initiate their critical
attacks. The offensive was to occur in two phases. During the first, under the
cover of diversionary attacks from the Volga bridgeheads, the 39th Army's
forces and several division from the 30th Army would concentrate in the
Urdom-Zaitsevo sector, from which, on about 7 December, they would at-
The Red God of War Contained 221
tack southward toward the Rzhev—Olenino road. This attack was timed to
coincide with the final lunge by lushkevich's 22d Army toward the Olenino
Belyi road. As this phase neared completion, the second phase would unfold.
In this phase several divisions of the 30th Army, supported by fresh tank
brigades, would burst forth from the Volga River bridgeheads further east
and would join the general offensive to collapse all German defenses along
the northern face of the Rzhev salient.
With the initial orders issued, Zygin's 39th Army began its diversionary
operations by throwing elements of General Kudriavtsev's 178th Rifle Divi-
sion against German defenses south of Gliadovo. At the same time, the 30th
Army's 130th Rifle Brigade and 359th Rifle Division attacked from their
bridgehead south of the Volga. In sunny, eight-degree weather, German
aviation pounded the advancing Soviet troopers and the attacks faltered,
although the Soviets gained some small territory along the road to Chertolino
at a cost of seven tanks lost. Renewed Soviet attacks on 5 and 6 December
pressed the defending Germans back locally but did not threaten a major
penetration.
Although the defending German 251st Infantry Division held its ground
successfully with only minor losses of ground, General Burdach, the division
commander, was increasingly concerned about his right flank, which was
anchored on the banks of the Volga, with the Russians massing beyond. On
the division's right flank, the 87th Infantry Division was successfully contain-
ing Soviet forces in a bridgehead on the south bank of the river from which
the Soviets had already launched several local attacks. The Russians, how-
ever, had reinforced the bridgehead with a significant,quantity of artillery,
and their preparations for a major new assault were becoming more appar-
ent. Therefore, to simplify command and control and better deal with a Rus-
sian offensive in this sector, the XXVIII Army Corps commander, General
Weiss, transferred the left flank elements of the 87th Infantry Division to-
gether with the small but threatening Russian bridgehead to XXIII Corps and
251st Infantry Division control. Now, from 6 December on, General Burdach
would control all fighting south of the Volga from Gliadovo to west of Rzhev.
To back up his threatened forward units, Burdach created a special mobile
battalion made up of infantry on armored personnel carriers and trucks and
several assault guns and placed it in reserve.68
Comfortable with these command adjustments, the German command
waited for the Soviets to resume their general assault.
CHAPTER 4
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat
8 December 1942
Stavka, Moscow Kremlin. Zhukov completed his long hegira throughout the
Kalinin and Western Fronts' area of operations and returned to Moscow on
6 December. It had been an exhausting trip. During the sixteen days between
19 November and 6 December, he had traveled to both front headquarters
and virtually every army headquarters, encouraging, cajoling, and at times
threatening his subordinate commanders.1 Zhukov was convinced that com-
mand presence made a difference, and he could recite the many times when
a field commander's personal involvement had forestalled disaster or con-
verted defeat into victory. Moreover, the Red Army was a young and imma-
ture army. The catastrophic losses of the previous year had torn from its fabric
its most experienced officers and men, and it was a painful, costly, and often
brutal process to correct the trend. It took experienced men to produce vic-
tory, and those men had to survive defeat to emerge with requisite expe-
rience to achieve combat success. The trick was to survive and prevail, and
as the previous weeks had indicated, that was often not easy.
As an experienced combat veteran and self-professed realist, personally
Zhukov had difficulty reconciling his seemingly brutal and callous tenacity
when on the offense, which circumstances compelled him to adopt, with the
soldiers' universal lament over the resulting appalling losses and unprece-
dented human suffering. Yes, losses •were terrible, but they were the price
one had to pay in order to create an army that could win. Zhukov, the realist,
could pay that price. In Stalin's Soviet Union, he had no choice if he himself
was to survive.
Operation Mars was symbolic of both the process of educating an army
and the frustrations and costs ofthat education. According to all of the laws
of military science and the principles of military art, his forces should al-
ready have prevailed. His forces had possessed sizable numerical superiority
over the Germans, in men, in tanks, in artillery, and aircraft. Yet so far that
superiority had made little strategic or operational difference. He also had
good commanders, like the reliable Purkaev, the dogged Konev, the steady
Solomatin, the aggressive Katukov, and hundreds of others. For each of
these, however, the army had legions of inexperienced, timid, and sometimes
223
224 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
incompetent officers. The same applied to a lesser degree to the men. As a
result, a good plan had failed, largely because the Soviet military machine
failed to function as efficiently as the Germans' military machine.
Zhukov evidenced several other marked personal characteristics. He suf-
fered neither fools nor defeat, and he was stubborn. He knew from expe-
rience the truth of the old adage that a plan functions well only until combat
begins. He also knew that a plan was simply a means to an end. The plan was
transitory, but the objective remained. Therefore, if a plan failed, one must
either repeat it correctly or alter it. In either case, the objective remained to
be achieved.
Zhukov's stubbornness was reinforced by more than a little envy. He had
read the dispatches from the south and understood the immense implications
of Vasilevsky's victory at Stalingrad. At Moscow, less than a year before, he
had bruised but failed to destroy either a German Army Group or an army.
Now, on 6 December 1942, Vasilevsky's fronts had encircled almost two
German armies and destroyed the better part of two Rumanian armies. At
that very moment, the Stavka had authorized the conduct of the even larger
Operation Saturn, which had the potential of magnifying the Soviet victory
twofold. And Vasilevsky's success was already having a telling effect on his
operation. Less than a week before, when the 20th Army's initial failure be-
came obvious, Stalin had authorized the release of the 2d Guards Army and
its associated mobile corps for use in Operation Saturn. Stalin even ventured
to suggest that Rybalko's tank army could, perhaps, be put to better use in
the south as well. Zhukov had barely forestalled that decision, and now he
was in Moscow to try to convince Stalin and others in the Stavka that Mars
still had a chance of succeeding.
The fateful meeting with Stalin was scheduled for the next day, 7 Decem-
ber. Zhukov could not refrain from hearkening back to the tense days only a
year before, when on this very day it became clear Red Army forces would
win a substantial victory around Moscow. Zhukov recalled just how difficult
it had been to win at Moscow. It had taken immense force of personality and
doggedness on his part to prevail, first, over his own soldiers and then over
the Germans. An army accustomed to defeat had a hard time either imagin-
ing or achieving victory. At Moscow he had driven his forces unmercifully
and showed his army how to win, but even then, all of his and his men's
exertions had not produced the total victory he had sought. Now he would
have to repeat his performance of the past year to salvage victory from the
wreckage of Operation Mars. He was still convinced he had both the will and
resources to do so.
Prior to his return to Moscow, he had already decided to root out the dead
wood from his front and army commands. He had already punished the 20th
Army for its lackluster performance by ordering it to fight long after it had
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 225
expended its offensive strength. At a minimum, that uneven contest had rid
the force of many of its less competent junior commanders. In his pocket
Zhukov carried recommendations he had already prepared for Stavka ap-
proval for the relief of General Kiriukhin. Lieutenant General M.S. Khozin,
the then commander of the 33d Army, who was a proven fighter, would
replace him. Colonel Arman, the acting commander of the 6th Tank Corps,
would also go, and on the recommendations of the still ill General Getman,
O
he would be replaced by Colonel I. I. lushchuk, who had skillfully and
aggressively led the remnants of the 6th Motorized Rifle Brigade from the
encirclement.2 For the time being, Zhukov refrained from other changes,
preferring to give his other commanders one more chance to redeem them-
selves and their armies in combat.
Zhukov met with other Stavka members and the General Staff all day on
7 December, and the meetings ended with a long evening session in Stalin's
Kremlin office. While he vociferously argued his case for a continuation of
Operation Mars, there were many who questioned the wisdom of reinforc-
ing failure. Throughout the sessions Stalin remained consistently and char-
acteristically noncommittal, preferring instead to question Zhukov closely on
how he intended to revive his armies' fortunes.3
Zhukov argued eloquently that, although his plan had not succeeded,
the German Ninth Army was close to the breaking point. All German opera-
tional reserves were committed, he said, and attrition had eroded divisions
down to battalion strength. It was true that the Germans had contained the
20th Army's forces short of the Rzhev-Sychevka road. Yet many of the
German strong points had been reduced, the armored strength of the two
reinforcing panzer divisions had been severely eroded, and the bridgehead
was sizable enough to serve as the staging area for an even larger-scale at-
tack. While the Germans had no more reinforcements, Konev still had the
fresh 5th Tank Corps, and the General Staff had assured Zhukov it could
restore the strength of the 6th Tank Corps before the new offensive began.
Moreover, he was reinforcing the 20th Army with many fresh rifle divisions
from adjacent armies and could employ the adjacent 29th Army in the new
assault.
Zhukov also pointed out that both the 41st and 22d Army were still lodged
deep in German defenses and were also tying down all available German
reserves. The fact that elements of German Grossdeutschland Division were
struggling in three separate sectors indicated how severely German reserves
were overextended. Finally, the steady progress of the 39th Army and the
new offensives by both the 39th and 30th Armies, planned to begin that very
day, would further impel German collapse. By nightfall, Zhukov was able to
document the early success of the new operation with fresh reports from
the 39th Army about their day's success.
226 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
In the end Zhukov prevailed. Announcing, "Go ahead with your of-
fensive, but you have two days to show success," Stalin approved Zhukov's
plan but added that after the two days were up, if there was no appre-
ciable success, Operation Mars would terminate. Moreover, Stalin showed
Zhukov already prepared orders for Rybalko's 3d Tank Army, which would
send that army south in the event Mars failed and Operation Jupiter was
canceled.
Late on 7 December and early on the 8th, the General Staff, working
closely with Zhukov, prepared a Stavka directive for a resumption of the
offensive:
By 1 January 1943 the combined strength of the Kalinin and Western
Fronts will crush the enemy Rzhev-Sychevka-Olenino-Belyi grouping
and firmly dig in along a line running through larygino, Sychevka,
Andreevskoe, Lenino, Novoe Azhevo, Dentialevo, and Svity.
The Western Front must:
(a) pierce enemy defenses in the Bol'shoe Kropotovo and larygino
sector on 10 and 11 December, take Sychevka no later than 15 Decem-
ber, and move no less than two rifle divisions into the Andreevskoe sec-
tor on 20 December to work with the Kalinin Front's 41st Army to seal
the encirclement of the enemy;
(b) after penetration of the enemy defenses and the emergence of the
main force at the railroad line, turn the front's mobile group and at least
four rifle divisions northward to attack the enemy's Rzhev-Chertolino
grouping in the rear;
(c) use the 30th Army to pierce defenses in the sector extending from
Koshkino to the road junction northeast of Burgovo, and reach the rail-
way line in the vicinity of Chertolino no later than 15 December; upon
reaching the railway line, enter into combined operations with thefront's
mobile force and, striking out along the railway line, advance on Rzhev to
take the city on 23 December.
The Kalinin Front must:
(a) press ahead with its 39th and 22d Armies in the general direction
of Olenino, crush the enemy grouping there by 16 December and emerge
in the vicinity of Olenino; use the 22d Army to mount a secondary attack
in the direction of Egor'e to assist the 41st Army in smashing the enemy's
Belyi grouping;
(b) use the 41st Army to crush by 10 December the enemy grouping
breaking out in the Tsitsino [sic] sector and regain lost positions in the
Okolitsa sector. Part of the force is to reach the Molnia-Vladimirskoe-
Lenino region no later than 20 December in order to seal off the en-
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 227
circled enemy grouping from the south in conjunction with Western
Front units.
Belyi is to be taken no later than 20 December.
For the Supreme Command
I. Stalin, G. Zhukov4
At midday on 8 December, the General Staff dispatched the new direc-
tive to Purkaev's and Konev s fronts. Zhukov spent the remainder of the day
in the General Staff, busily helping staff officers to prepare orders that would
rush new men and equipment to his exhausted armies. In the evening he
received ominous news from Tarasov's 41st Army. German forces were coun-
terattacking in the Belyi sector and threatening Solomatin and Povetkhin's
corps with encirclement. This was not welcome news. The next morning,
Zhukov flew to the Kalinin Front's headquarters. Stopping first to brief Gen-
eral Purkaev, Zhukov at once went on to join General Tarasov and the 41st
Army in the hope his new offensive would not abort before it had a chance to
begin. Events unfolding in the Belyi sector would determine whether or not
the operation would succeed or fail.
German Ninth Army Headquarters, Sychevka. General Model, the Ninth
Army commander, had just finished reading the initial report on the day's
action from General Harpe of the XXXXI Panzer Corps. Model could scarcely
conceal his delight. He too hearkened back to the dark days of winter 1942,
•when German fortunes outside Moscow were at their lowest ebb. Then, his
quick and decisive action had confounded victorious Russian forces as they
advanced from Rzhev deep into the German rear toward Viaz'ma, across this
very same terrain. While many German commanders had urged withdrawal
from the snowy treacherous salient in the face of the fierce Russian attacks,
Hitler had refused and, instead, had appointed Model to deal with the loom-
ing threat. Within a month his audacious counteractions had converted Ger-
man defeat into victory, and the Russians had gone from being encirclers into
being the encircled. "Yes," thought Model, "I have saved the Rzhev salient
once, and I shall do so again."
General Harpe reported to the army the 19th and 20th Panzer Division
attack was proceeding well, and he hoped the jaws of the German pincer
would snap shut around Russian forces in the Belyi pocket within days, if not
hours. Coming on the heels of the crushing defeat meted out to the Russian
20th Army less than a week before, the news was indeed invigorating. Model
felt Russian offensive strength and spirit had been broken, and the continu-
ing Russian attacks in the north represented nothing more than the High
Command venting its frustration over the stinging defeats. Model, however,
228 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
was willing to trade a village here and a village there for retention of the bulk
of the precious salient. To insure he had to give up no more, for days Model's
headquarters had been issuing a steady stream of orders moving reserves to
and fro around the circumference of the Rzhev salient to extinguish the em-
bers of former blazes. "Yes," he thought, "the conflagration will soon be to-
tally out."
Model surveyed the most recent intelligence reports to assess the full
magnitude of his victory. Their content was impressive. He reread passages
from the OKH's 30 November intelligence assessment, focusing, in particu-
lar, on what the enemy hoped to achieve:
The enemy has set for himself a large task. The operational intentions
of the first phase seem to be seizure of the Rzhev-Wjasma road, the
envelopment and seizure of Belyi and the blockading of the Belyi
Wjasma road, and the surrounding of Wei. Luki and blockading of the
railway line from Wei. Luki through Newel to Nowosokolnik. Finally,
[the enemy] intended a main attack by fresh units of the 43d Army on
Smolensk, reinforced by more units from the 4th Shock Army. The pre-
requisites for [achieving] these wider aims is the destruction of the bulk
of the Ninth Army.5
As proud as Model was of his achievement in thwarting the ambitious Rus-
sian aims, even he was unaware how close to the truth this assessment had
come. He did, however, fleetingly imagine Zhukov's likely frustration as he
read on:
The enemy has fought hard and bitterly up to now. His losses are heavy.
However, the combat strength of the enemy is still not broken. Dissen-
sion once again flows through his command leadership. Leaders at lower
echelons sometimes evidence sharp criticism of the measures of their
higher leadership. They have attributed their heavy losses to "new idiotic
attack methods." On the other hand, battalion and regimental com-
manders must listen to harsh words. Especially typical is the following
order directed to the 26th Guards Rifle Division: "Unfortunately, I must
tell you that it is a pity. I had thought that at least part of my healthy force
could break through the German positions and liberate at least some of
our Fatherland. To your shame, I must say that it is infamous that you
have not behaved in the manner of brave guards troops of the Red Army.
I ask you and once again order you to break through." The number of
deserters, which decreased before the attack because of improved sup-
plies and force concentrations, has again increased.6
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 229
Model read on as the report documented the exhaustion of Russian re-
serves and their utter failure along the east flank of the salient. Once again,
he paused to ponder and savor a specific press release, which had been pre-
pared in Moscow and dispatched to London, regarding the operation: "The
new large-scale offensive along the central front will be viewed as the stron-
gest blow against the German front and, to an extent, will surpass the offen-
sive at Stalingrad."7 Relishing the comment, Model flipped through the
remainder of the report, which dealt with technical aspects of the Russian
attack, and turned to the next report, dated 3 December.
Model slowly read the first page of the document, testing its contents and
the contents of its predecessor against what had actually occurred:
The Russian winter offensive is concentrated both on the battle areas lying
along the Volga at Stalingrad and at Rzhev. During the course of battle,
the Reds, who have tried to hold on to and deepen all of their local suc-
cesses, have suffered unusually high losses. Between the Don and the
Volga, enemy combat groups were destroyed by forceful counterattacks.
The defensive strength of the hard-fighting German units is unbroken.
The Moscow information demonstrates the meaning that [the Russians]
attached to the focus of the winter offensive—Stalin has personally taken
over the supreme command in the battle at Stalingrad and at Rzhev.
Bitter combat continues before the 9th Army's front. The Supreme
Commander of the Western and Kalinin Fronts called the situation at the
focal point of the battles critical because of setbacks and the losses of the
attacking enemy units. General Shukov [Zhukov] arrived at the east front,
and General Konev is west of Belyi. Obviously, measures for a stricter and
more uniform leadership are being prepared. Since the end of Novem-
ber, a new command staff, which has connections with the Kalinin Front's
armies and corps and the right flank of the Western Front (the 20th, 31st,
and, presumably, the 30th Armies), has been located in the large region
near Toropets. In this regard, for the first time, direct liaison has been
noticed between the front high command section staffs and the I and III
Mot. Mechanized Shock Corps and, likewise, contact between the II
G. K. K. (east front) and the I and III Mot. Mechanized Shock Corps (west
front).
The further course of the operation confirms the former enemy inten-
tions: the enemy wanted to break through the German front N.E. of
Sychevka and at Belyi, to cut off the bulk of the 9th Army and, by virtue
of simultaneous attacks against the northern front and in the Luchessa
valley, to cut apart and destroy [German forces]. As confirmed by cap-
tured officers, these aims remained predominant throughout the entire
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 231
to Wladimirskoje and then to push through to newly prepared positions
in the direction of Smolensk. Likewise, the underestimation of our forces
was demonstrated and the assumption maintained to a large extent that
new operational forces were not necessary for the achievement of this deep
objective.8
Model silently nodded his agreement with these conclusions. The Rus-
sian attack was largely broken and probably could not regain momentum. As
if to confirm his judgment, the assessment's next sentence recorded its stark
conclusion, "By cautious estimates of documents found on prisoners, it can
be reckoned that all attacking [enemy] units have lost at least half of their
strength. By 7.12, inclusive, 1,056 enemy tanks had been knocked out of
combat."9 The Russian capacity for fielding and losing men and armor was
remarkable, thought Model, but it was not limitless. This time, he concluded,
the limit has been reached. The success of General Harpe's counterattack,
which was just then unfolding at Belyi, •would prove Model either right or
wrong.
THE ENCIRCLEMENT AND DESTRUCTION
OF THE BELYI POCKET
5-6 December
With the new enemy threat looming against his army's right flank, both Gen-
eral Tarasov, the 41st Army commander, and his forces were in a state of
limbo. On the one hand, his earlier optimism had been replaced by bitter
frustration over the utter failure of his offensive, and Generals Zhukov and
Purkaev only exacerbated that frustration by continuing to pressure Tarasov
to take further "decisive" action. On the other hand, his forces were severely
weakened and it was now clear that they were unable to smash the strong
German defenses around Belyi. Worse still, the appearance of fresh German
panzer units on his army's right flank threatened the very survival of his now
woefully overextended forces, in particular, the mechanized and rifle corps
wedged deep into the German defenses. Characteristically, Tarasov reacted
emotionally rather than rationally. To satisfy his angry superiors, he contin-
ued his artillery bombardment of German positions around Belyi and insisted
that Colonel Dremov and his increasingly isolated mechanized brigade hold
their shrinking foothold east of the city and north of the Belyi-Vladimirskoe
road. Elsewhere, Tarasov acknowledged the appeals of his experienced sub-
ordinates and permitted General Solomatin's 1st Mechanized Corps and
General Povetkhin's 6th Rifle Corps to go over to the defense, albeit tempo-
rarily (see Map 16, p. 203).
232 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Supported by waves of low-flying 11-2 aircraft, Tarasov's artillery contin-
ued to pound German defenses around Belyi, but aside from some halfhearted
feeling-out attacks, Tarasov's infantry avoided repeating their major frontal
attacks on German defensive positions that had caused such severe casual-
ties in previous days. In fact, Tarasov had very little choice, for his rifle forces
were at barely 30 percent strength. Nevertheless, his losses continued to
mount and included Colonel Ershov of the 19th Mechanized Brigade, who
was severely wounded in one of the small actions and replaced by Lieuten-
ant Colonel L. V. Dubrovin.
Exploiting the relative calm around Belyi, the German command mustered
forces to attack Shaitrovshchina once again in an attempt to restore their sev-
ered main communications artery with Belyi. Meanwhile, Colonel Dremov's
47th Mechanized Brigade and supporting elements from Colonel Lobanov's
91st Rifle Brigade exploited some of the remnants of the old Belyi fortifica-
tions that Soviet forces had erected during the summer of 1941. He used them
to create a dense new network of antitank obstacles to block any German
armored movement east or west along the road. From time to time, Dremov
was even able to conduct small armor sorties against the growing German
force concentration east of Shaitrovshchina. Mounting tank losses in his bri-
gade, however, soon forced Dremov to abandon this approach and to go over
to a strict defense.
Late on 5 December, German infantry, supported by tanks, unleashed
a strong attack westward along the Belyi road, which tore into and through
many of Dremov's antitank barriers and reached the outer defenses of
Shaitrovshchina. In fierce hand-to-hand fighting, the Germans seized sev-
o Ö'
eral bunkers and house ruins in the southern sector of the village's defense
but could advance no further. In the evening Dremov rushed tank reinforce-
ments from his shrinking perimeter north of the road to bolster his riflemen's
sagging village defenses. Unfortunately for Dremov, late in the day the Ger-
mans were reinforced, and at dawn on 6 December they resumed their at-
tacks, this time in concert with a strong German infantry assault eastward along
the road from Belyi. Under attack from two sides, Dremov's defenses col-
lapsed, and German forces triumphantly entered the town. While part of
Dremov's brigade safely made their way south into the relative security of
the Belyi pocket, most of his armor and many of his infantrymen were en-
circled in a perilously shrinking perimeter north of the road. Under pressure
from German forces advancing slowly southward from the Obsha River and
with their withdrawal southward back across the Belyi road blocked by an-
other German force, the isolated remnants of Dremov's once proud brigade
were left to their own devices. Some infiltrated back across the road that night,
and over the next several days; others perished trying to fight their way out,
joined the partisans, or simply surrendered.10
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 233
Along the banks of the Nacha River further south, General Solomatin
patiently awaited the heavy German assaults that he was sure would come.
All the while enemy reconnaissance elements systematically felt out his for-
ward positions along the river's western bank, presumably to see whether his
forces would fight and, if so, how hard. However, the only serious fighting
occurred in the vicinity of Dubki, where Colonel Shanaurin's 37th and Lieu-
tenant Colonel Kuz'menko's 35th Mechanized Brigades struggled in vain to
repel German forces that had advanced across the river and seized a bridge-
head on the previous day. A particularly sharp engagement took place for
possession of the village of Koniakovo, east of Dubki, where the 37th Brigade's
tanks and infantry recaptured the village but were then halted by heavy Ger-
man antitank fire from a hill overlooking the village from the north. The sharp
fight cost the brigade seven of its remaining twenty tanks and markedly cooled
its ardor for harrying the Germans on the west bank of the river.11
Along the 41st Army's long southern flank, during the day General
Povetkhin's 75th and 78th Rifle Brigades reinforced the precariously thin
defenses of their sister 74th Rifle Brigade. Once on line the three brigades
formed a weak defensive perimeter extending from the southern anchor of
Solomatin's defense at Gorodnia and that of the 17th Guards Rifle Division
at Demekhi. In the frozen swamps to the south and just east of Samsonikha,
fighting raged around the small villages of Syrmatnaia and Turianka between
Povetkhin's security outposts and advanced units of newly arriving but as yet
unidentified German armor formations. Although most of the outposts man-
aged to hold on to their positions, Povetkhin was clearly worried and dis-
patched a stream of increasingly anxious reports to army headquarters about
the ominous German buildup along the entire southern flank of the Belyi
penetration. He too now urgently requested reinforcements. Tarasov, how-
ever, was confident that the three rifle brigades, supported by the armor of
the fresh 48th Separate Mechanized Brigade, could contain any German
advance, in particular, one traversing such heavily forested, swampy, and
trackless terrain.
Late on 6 December, General Harpe of the XXXXI Panzer Corps sur-
veyed the operational situation with his staff. They were all pleased enough
with what they saw to accelerate their planning for a major counterstroke
designed to eliminate the Russian Belyi penetration once and for all. By late
afternoon on 5 December, Kampfgruppe von der Meden had finally rein-
forced his forces east of Belyi with the 1st Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadier
Regiment, which had been containing Russian armor along the Nacha River.
With these reinforcements, the next day von der Meden and troops from the
246th Infantry Division drove the Russians in disorder from Shaitrovshchina,
isolating much of the Russian mechanized force north of the road. During
the final assault, the 2d Battalion, 1st Panzer Regiment, commanded by Lieu-
234 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
tenant von Maltzan, and supporting infantry, destroyed eight Russian T-34
tanks. By day's end the vital Belyi-Vladimirskoe communications route was
back under German control, the flank threat to Group Kruger in Belyi had
been eliminated, and supplies once again flowed freely down the critical lo-
gistical artery into Belyi.12
Further south, the 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment's 6th and 7th Com-
panies abandoned the village of Koniakovo to an attacking force identified as
the Russian 37th Mechanized Brigade, but assisted by the fortuitous arrival
of a battery of 88mm Flak guns, they held off further Russian advance. By
evening these forces were relieved by the 12th Panzer Division's 5th Panzer
Grenadier Regiment, and they rejoined their parent force, Kampfgruppe von
der Meden. With the 12th Panzer Division's main force now deployed along
the Nacha River, the stage was set for a concerted assault by both Kampf-
gruppe von der Meden and the 12th Panzer Division's 5th and 25th Panzer
Grenadier Regiments on Russian positions along the entire expanse of the
Nacha. According to Harpe's new plan, this would occur only when his ma-
jor counterstroke had begun.
Given these combat successes, the obvious inability of Russia forces to
advance further, and the arrival of significant German operational reserves,
General Harpe issued plans for the decisive counterstroke that he had been
working on and dreaming about for days.13 Although rather simple in con-
cept, the plan was more challenging to implement. Basically it involved launch-
ing simultaneous thrusts by Grossdeutschland Division's Kampfgruppe Kassnitz
(Fusilier Regiment) and Kampfgruppe von Wietersheim (the 1st Panzer
Division's 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment) southward from Belyi and by
the 19th and 20th Panzer Divisions and the 1st SS Cavalry Division northward
from Podselitsa and Tereshino toward Belyi. The advancing Kampfgruppen
would slice through the flanks of the Russian penetration and race forward
to link up near Tsitsina, thereby cutting off the withdrawal of all Russian forces
forward of the Vishenka River and trapping them in the "Belyi kessel [caul-
dron]." Thereafter, the kampfgruppen would erect an impenetrable barrier
separating the encircled Russians from the 41st Army's remaining forces,
block the westward withdrawal of Russian troops in the kessel, and destroy
those who attempted to withdraw, while the 12th and 1st Panzer Divisions'
forces attacked the encircled Russian from the east.
Harpe faced two major problems in orchestrating such a complex and
ambitious counterstroke. First, he had to assemble sufficient forces to sus-
tain the northern thrust, since both kampfgruppen positioned south of Belyi
had been severely worn down in heavy fighting. To solve this problem, Harpe
reinforced Group Kruger's two kampfgruppen with as many fresh reserves
as possible. He also assigned the northern group a less distant mission, to seize
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 235
Dubrovka and, if possible, Tsitsina. The southern shock group faced a differ-
ent problem. To reach its more distant objective of Tsitsina, it had to traverse
particularly difficult terrain. Russian partisans and stubborn Russian secu-
rity outposts had already delayed its advance into forward assembly areas.
Thus, the achievement of simultaneity by the two shock groups required
careful planning and crisp operations by both forces. His planning complete
and orders issued, Harpe could hardly control his impatience as German
troops moved into their final assembly areas and jumping-off positions.
The XXX Army Corps, commanded by General Maximilian von Fretter-
Pico, faced the most difficult tasks. A participant in the operation described
his challenge:
General Fretter-Pico decided to conduct his attack, which was designed
to surprise the enemy, from the south in the direction of Belyi, with his
main strength behind the 1st SS Cavalry Division's front, and thereby cut
off the penetration sack. All measures were camouflaged most carefully.
Although snowdrifts delayed preparations, they also concealed the move-
ment's tracks. The 19th Panzer Division, which was reinforced with all of
the tanks, armored infantry, and artillery of the 20th Panzer Division,
formed the attacking wedge. The remainder of the 20th Panzer Division
secured the flank and reconnoitered. On the left, the SS Cavalry Divi-
sion attacked and immediately captured the front to the west in order to
defend against an anticipated Russian relief attack. The 1st Panzer Divi-
sion, with the subordinate Kampfgruppe Kassnitz of the Grossdeutschland
Division, was to attack Dubrovka from the northern edge of the penetra-
tion area and establish contact with the 19th Panzer Division attacking
from the south.14
Late on 6 December, General Harpe was convinced that he had antici-
pated all possible problems and taken necessary measures to remedy them.
Satisfied but still anxious, Harpe notified his two shock groups to begin their
assault as planned the following day.
7-8 December
The tension that prevailed at General Harpe's headquarters on the morning
of 7 December was relieved somewhat by the Russian commander's deci-
sion to launch fresh attacks on Belyi. As irrational as it seemed to Harpe, at
dawn Russian tanks and infantry, under a hail of artillery fire, renewed their
attacks south of Belyi (see Map 18). A participant recorded the unanticipated
Russian actions:
Map 18. Situation from 7 to 10 December 1942: the Belyi Sector
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 237
On 7 December the Russian command undertook a last attempt to smash
the Belyi "corner-pillar" by simultaneous attacks from the south, west, and
southeast against the 9th Army's front. The high losses of the [Russian]
combat groups in the bitter defensive struggle, the deficiencies in Rus-
sian mid-level command leadership, which, as before, was extremely
clumsy, as well as the stubborn defense and keen readiness of all of the
1st Panzer Division's troops, led to the defeat of all of these attack attempts.
Along Group Kruger's western front, the focal point of the defense, the
massive enemy infantry attacks were repulsed after a four-hour battle, and
the front lines held firm.15
The fierce and unexpected Russian assaults delayed but did not halt the at-
tack preparations of the northern German shock group.
Harpe was also distracted by combat east of Belyi, where Russian forces,
cut off from withdrawal the previous day by Kampfgruppe von der Meden's
capture of Shaitrovshchina, fought desperately to regain their front lines
south of the road. Elements identified by the Germans as the Russian 47th
Tank Brigade tried repeatedly to break out across the road east and west of
Shaitrovshchina. They were supported by heavy Russian Katiusha multiple
rocket fire from positions still held by the Russians at Novaia village, just south
of the road. A fierce and bloody struggle ensued as elements of the 1st Bat-
talion, 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment, smashed the small columns of des-
perate Russian troops as they assaulted the road under the covering fire of
tanks. Troops from the 246th Infantry Division joined the struggle and helped
drive the Russian survivors northward from the road, destroying seven Rus-
sian tanks in the process.16 Over the next few days, German forces repelled
several more Russian attempts to cross the fiery gauntlet along the road and
mopped up the fragments of the defeated Russian brigade.
By noon on 7 December, just as reports from Kampfgruppe von der
Meden announced that German forces along the Nacha River had repelled
several local Russian attacks and were in position to advance •westward, the
fighting around Belyi slackened. The relieved Harpe then gave the final sig-
nal for his counterstroke to begin.
Unnoticed by the Soviets, General G. Schmidt's 19th Panzer Division had
begun its northward advance from the Podselitsa region in mid-morning. As
recorded by an observer: "The 19th Panzer Division set out in cloudy weather
and 40 cm deep snow, with about seventy tanks, painted in camouflage white,
without an artillery preparation (the element of surprise). Without regard for
the nests of resistance to the right and left, which had the mission of destroy-
ing follow-on troops, the 19th Panzer Division fought against the tenaciously
defending enemy, whose rocket launchers were unable to halt the attack's
momentum."17
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 239
Tarasov reacted quickly to this clear attempt to encircle the bulk of his
army. He ordered Colonel Vinogradov to wheel the left flank of his 75th Rifle
Brigade back toward Demekhi and join with the 17th Guards Division in
erecting new defenses to prevent any deeper German thrust westward across
the Vishenka River. Colonel Sivakov's 78th Rifle Brigade, which the German
attack had apparently shattered, was to assemble as many troops as possible
and hold on to new defensive positions around Shevnino, along the flank and
front of the German penetration. Colonel Repin's 74th Brigade, which had
been pushed eastward by the German attack, was to withdraw and "find and
fix" the right flank of the German force. As Tarasov soon learned, however,
his rifle brigade commanders were in no position to fulfill these orders. The
Germans seized Shevnino before Sivakov's shattered brigade could halt them,
and Repin's overextended brigade was confronting the bulk of the advanc-
ing German 20th Panzer Division and could do nothing but delay the Ger-
man advance.20
By mid-afternoon it became clear to Tarasov that only General Solomatin's
corps possessed the strength necessary to stave off further disaster. Therefore,
at 1430 hours Tarasov sent a sheath of new orders to Solomatin. Initially, Tarasov
directed Solomatin to withdraw his 65th and 219th Tank Brigades from their
positions along the Nacha River and, by 2000 hours on 7 December, to rede-
ploy them into blocking positions near Tsitsina and Klemiatino to prevent ad-
vancing German armor from encircling the bulk of the 41st Army. Meanwhile
Major A. G. Zubatov's fresh 104th Tank Brigade, still under army control, was
to withdraw to Emel'ianova to constitute a new army reserve. Solomatin cringed
when he received the new mission, for he knew how difficult and dangerous it
would be to disengage from his defensive positions along the Nacha and con-
duct a march during daylight hours through the heavy forests. No sooner had
he read the first order than a second equally disconcerting order arrived that
required him to redeploy his 35th and 19th Mechanized Brigades in order to
fill in the gaps along the river created by the extraction of the two tank brigades.
This meant that the two mechanized brigades would have to conduct exten-
sive lateral movement across the front, also in full daylight, so that they could
tie their flanks together near Zheguny. Solomatin complied with Tarasov's or-
ders and later recorded the results:
The exchange and regrouping of corps forces was immediately discov-
ered by the enemy, and he began new furious tank attacks. As a result, he
succeeded in pushing the 19th Mechanized Brigade forces back across
the Nacha River, seizing crossings, and capturing important points east
of Kushlevo, where with difficulty he was finally halted. . . .
Despite the measures undertaken by the 41st Army commander, he
did not succeed in stopping the enemy tank groups conducting the meet-
240 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
ing strikes, and by 2000 hours, 7 December, they had occupied Shiparevo,
Tsitsina, and Dubrovka, and having linked up in the Tsitsina region, they
cut off those of our forces located southeast of those points.21 [Editor's
note: Solomatin's report was in error; the Germans had not occupied
Dubrovka as yet.]
While the Germans were forestalling Solomatin's attempts to block their
advance, Tarasov radioed a message to Solomatin ordering him to take com-
mand of all forces still located within the threatened pocket and, by 2300 hours,
establish a new and shorter defensive perimeter anchored on the villages of
Syrmatnaia, Bykovo, Tarakanovo, and Mar'ino and the forests south of Tsitsina.
Meanwhile, Solomatin's 65th and 219th Tank Brigades had reached the north-
em outskirts of Shevnino only to find the village in German hands. Cooperat-
ing with remnants of the 78th Rifle Brigade and other Soviet rear service troops,
the two brigades attempted to seize the village but were easily repelled. Since
they had no appreciable infantry support, the two weak brigades (with fewer
than ten tanks apiece) lacked the strength either to recapture the village or to
contest further German advance. Subsequent reports from the two brigades
that they had failed to recapture Shevnino led Solomatin and Tarasov to as-
sume, incorrectly, that their forces in the Belyi pocket were already encircled.
In fact, they may as well have been since organized Soviet opposition to 19th
Panzer Division's advance was, at best, negligible. Given the confused situa-
tion, Solomatin ordered Lieutenant Colonels Shevchenko and Khilobok to
withdraw their tank brigades westward across the Vishenka River. There, they
were to join with the remnants of 6th Rifle Corps' shattered 75th and 78th Rifle
Brigades to erect new defenses along the Vishenka River from •west of Demekhi
through Emel'ianova and Klemiatino and to block any subsequent German
advance west of the Belyi-Demekhi road.22
The impetuous German armored thrust left Solomatin almost totally iso-
lated in the Belyi pocket with his remaining three mobile brigades, the weak-
ened forces of the 48th Mechanized, 74th and 91st Rifle Brigades, and the
right flank forces of the 150th Rifle Division. What Solomatin did not know,
however, was that German forces had not entirely closed the "sack" around
his forces. A narrow corridor still existed around Tsitsina and Dubrovka, which
German forces had not occupied and through which Solomatin's forces could
reach the safety of the Russian rear area if they were permitted to do so.
Despite his perception of encirclement, Solomatin understood the perils of
his position and the fact that early action was critical if he was to extract any
of his forces from the pocket. Therefore, he immediately requested Tarasov's
permission to fight his way out of the pocket. Tarasov, ever optimistic and
still being pressured by Zhukov and Purkaev to maintain positions favorable
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 241
for resumption of his offensive, refused Solomatin's request and ordered him
to hold his positions "at all costs." Once again, the beleaguered corps com-
mander had no choice but to attempt to fulfill the daunting task of holding
on to his precarious positions, all the while hoping that Tarasov was capable
of mounting some sort of relief effort.
At about 1215 hours on 8 December, General Solomatin's assumed en-
circlement became a reality. After regrouping its forces in the morning, Gen-
eral Schmidt's 19th Panzer Division resumed its northward drive, seized the
village of Tsitsina from a weak Russian force, and without halting drove on to
capture its objective on the southern edge of Dubrovka shortly after 1430
hours. After they had received the signal of the 19th Panzer Division's suc-
cess, Kampfgruppen Kassnitz and von Wietersheim, having scraped together
all available reserves, burst forth from their positions south of Belyi and thrust
southward through the positions of the surprised Russians. After a sharp
fight to overcome the main Russian positions, the lead elements of von
Wietersheim's 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment reached the northern edge
of Dubrovka at 1430 hours, only to be greeted by heavy Russian counterat-
tacks and damaging artillery fire. Learning that the southern edge of the town
was safely in the hands of the 19th Panzer Division, the 1st Panzer Division
troopers withdrew to safer positions several hundred meters to the north,
where they dug in for the night. Regardless of the tiny gap separating the 1st
and 19th Panzer Divisions' forward elements, the sack around the Russians
was virtually closed because German artillery dominated the small gap with
raking artillery and heavy weapons fire. This fire and fire from other German
strong points strung out to the south blocked the feeble and disorganized
attempts by Russian forces, which had not received Solomatin's stand fast
order, to break out of encirclement.23
Meanwhile, the infantrymen of Kampfgruppe Kassnitz's Fusilier Regiment
finally took revenge for the pounding they had received at the hands of the
Russians during the previous two weeks. Attacking out of their "cage" south-
west of Baturino, the regiment's 1st Battalion overcame strong Russian re-
sistance and linked up with the 246th Infantry Division's battalion, which had
suffered so severely while being besieged for two weeks in the village of
Budino. At the same time, the Fusilier Regiment's 2d Battalion joined the
1st Panzer Division's triumphant advance on Dubrovka.24 Late in the after-
noon the 1st Panzer Division commander, General Kruger, elatedly radioed
General Harpe at the XXXXI Panzer Corps' headquarters that the sack was
virtually closed around the Russians.
Kruger had more positive news to pass on to corps from Colonel von der
Meden's force along the Nacha River. While the XXX Army Corps and the
1st Panzer Division were closing their pincers, von der Meden's forces
242 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
began to exploit what seemed to be a deliberate Russian withdrawal from their
defensive positions along the western bank of the river. Von der Meden
ordered his forces to pursue and maintain maximum pressure on the col-
lapsing Russians. All along the river front, the Germans encountered little
resistance as elements of the 246th Infantry Division seized Ananino, the
1st Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadiers, pushed westward from Zheguny, and
K-l and the 2d Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadiers, seized the region around
o
and south of Kislovo. Meanwhile, General Wessel's now fully concentrated
12th Panzer Division advanced due west out of Basino, relieved the 1st Panzer
Grenadier's 1st Battalion, and advanced westward toward Tarakanovo in close
pursuit of the withdrawing Russians. The single remaining officer and 117
men of the worn down panzer grenadier battalion then withdrew from com-
bat and rejoined their parent division in Belyi for a well-earned rest.25
Further south, the 1st Panzer Division's small Kampfgruppe Holste pur-
sued Russian forces northward as they tried to avoid being cut off by the 20th
Panzer Division's advance. As Holste pushed the Russians northward, the
German 200th Construction Battalion and K-l wheeled south and captured
Gorodnia and nearby villages, forcing the Russians to veer westward in their
withdrawal.
On a frontage of more than fifty kilometers, for the first time in the op-
eration, the Germans were on the offensive. From their headquarters, an
elated Harpe and Kruger cheered them on.
There was chaos and consternation rather than cheer at General Tarasov's
41st Army headquarters on the evening of 8 December. The day had ended
as it had begun, disastrously. In the relative security of his headquarters out-
side the Belyi pocket, Tarasov could only imagine the situation inside, and
he did not do that well. Most of the many orders he issued in no way related
to real circumstances. In short, he could handle the battle along the Vishenka
River but nothing more, no matter how hard he tried. Inside the pocket
General Solomatin had to fend for himself. Tarasov spent the day alternately
scraping together reserves to block German advance to the west and appeal-
ing to Purkaev at front for help. The only help forthcoming was the 279th
Rifle Division, which front had already assigned him to participate in the
resumed offensive. Fortuitously, since the new division had been delayed in
its arrival, it escaped being encircled with Solomatin and could now be used
to establish the new defense line. Tarasov used the fresh division to anchor
his new defensive line along the Vishenka River and reinforced it with the
remnants of the 6th Rifle Corps' brigades that had escaped encirclement (the
75th and 78th) and with the survivors of Colonel Gruz's worn down 150th
Rifle Division. Interspersed throughout the new defenses were the surviving
tanks of the 65th and 219th Tank Brigades backed up by Major A. G. Zubatov's
relatively intact 104th Tank Brigade.
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 243
After they learned of the German counterthrust and the likelihood of
Soviet encirclement, Generals Zhukov and Purkaev immediately ordered
Tarasov to assemble a relief force and cut through German defenses to res-
cue the estimated 40,000 encircled Soviet troops. Tarasov thought the or-
ders ridiculous, for in his view his force could barely hold the Vishenka River
line. Nonetheless, while he frantically redeployed his forces for defense, he
grimly and rather mechanically put together what was, in reality, a phantom
relief plan.26
Inside the German trap, Solomatin wrestled with twin dilemmas of es-
tablishing an all-round defense on the one hand and preparing a force to
break out to the west on the other. Since Tarasov had ordered he stand fast,
Solomatin first devoted his attentions to the survival of his force. He later
described his initial plan:
In very complex circumstances, the decision was made for the 48th
Mechanized Brigade to defend the Syrmatnaia, Bykovo sector, the 35th
Mechanized Brigade the sector from Sorokino to the eastern edge of the
forests west of Tarakanovo, and the 91st Rifle Brigade, the sector from
Mar'ino to the northwestern slopes of the heights two kilometers from
Mar'ino. Two mechanized brigades (the 19th and 37th) and one rifle
brigade (the 74th of Colonel Repin) were withdrawn from combat and
concentrated in the forests southeast of Tsitsina for an offensive in the
northwest direction on the night of 8 December to link up with the 41st
Army forces.27
Solomatin faced immense problems during the regrouping, not the least
of which was the intensified enemy pressure. In particular, when Solomatin
gave the 91st Rifle Brigade the order to disengage, to his consternation he
learned that Major General I. I. Popov, the army deputy commander, had
already ordered the brigade and one of the 150th Rifle Division's regiments
to withdraw to Tsitsina. Colonel Repin's 91st Rifle Brigade tried to comply
with the army order but was blocked from reaching Tsitsina by advancing
German tanks and infantry. Worse still, the brigade's withdrawal left a gap-
ing eight to ten kilometers between Repin's brigade and Lieutenant Colonel
Kuz'menko's adjacent 35th Mechanized Brigade. The Germans immediately
exploited the error and advanced to occupy Mar'ino, which the 91st Brigade
was supposed to defend. To correct the error, Colonel Lobanov's brigade was
forced to conduct a night attack to recapture the village, which he did by early
morning at heavy cost in lives.28
With his new defensive lines at least temporarily secure, Solomatin then
created a small special corps reserve from the 32d Separate Armored Car
Battalion and the 57th Separate Motorcycle Battalion and positioned it around
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 245
lines. The continuing chaotic situation, the shortage of German infantry in
the corridor, and the increasing Soviet desperation made the operation a series
of loosely connected individual engagements, capped on 15 December by
one final concerted Soviet effort to break out of the pocket.
The first task General Harpe and his division commanders faced on 9
December was finding a way to convert his disjointed corridor defenses, which
initially consisted of a series of small panzer strong points, into a solid barrier
capable of systematically thwarting large-scale Russian breakout efforts. This
required he consolidate the positions of General Kruger's 1st Panzer Divi-
sion and the Grossdeutschland Division's kampfgruppen in the north and
those of the XXX Army Corps' forces spread thinly southward through the
corridor. To do so, at dawn on 9 December, a small shock group from
Kampfgruppe Kassnitz's Fusilier Regiment, consisting of six assault guns and
a company of infantry, attacked into Dubrovka but once there discovered that
lead elements of the 19th Panzer Division were not located in the town proper.
Instead, they had taken and fortified the smaller village of Tscherepy, just to
the south. Once the small Fusilier force had entered Dubrovka, a Russian
force attempting to break out attacked them. After suffering heavy losses, the
small German shock group withdrew one kilometer to the north and asked
for assistance to close the breech in German defenses. To close the gap and
prevent any more Russians from escaping west, the 1st Panzer Division's 73d
Panzer Artillery Regiment lay down heavy fire on Dubrovka and the gap
between the 1st and 19th Panzer Divisions. While Kampfgruppe Kassnitz was
consolidating its positions and regrouping for a stronger assault on Dubrovka,
Kampfgruppe von Wietershiem (the 113th Panzer Grenadier Regiment) at-
tacked southward and seized Vlaznevo, a Russian strong point three kilome-
ters northeast of Dubrovka.31
Late in the evening, assault detachments from the 19th Panzer Division,
advancing from the south, and the Fusilier Regiment Grossdeutschland,
attacking from the north, finally established a tenuous but continuous defen-
sive line just west of Dubrovka, thus sealing off further Russian withdrawals.
As a result, the Germans were now able to evacuate the XXX Army Corps'
wounded northward to hospitals in Belyi.
Further east, Kampfgruppe von der Meden deployed with the K-l bat-
talion on its right flank, the 37th Panzer Engineer Battalion and the 2d
Battalion, 1st Panzer Grenadier Regiment, in its center, and the 208th
Construction Battalion on its left flank. The group swept southwest from
Ananino and west from the Nacha River, delayed as much by heavy snow-
drifts as by enemy resistance. By day's end, the kampfgruppe had reached
halfway from the Nacha River to the Vena River and was approaching Rus-
sian defenses at Marino, Sorokino, and Bykovo, In between the elements of
von der Meden's force, the 12th Panzer Division's forces advanced on
Tarakanovo.
Map 19. Situation from 11 to 16 December 1942: the Belyi Sector
248 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
troops to approach within close range before they opened fire. Besides
the brave reconnaissance and construction engineer troops, the com-
mander of 1st Company, 208th Construction Battalion, Captain Wahn-
schaffe, also fell here. After thoroughly combing these forested lands, this
battalion was also pulled out [for rest and refitting].33
Although German progress was slow, it was sure. So sure, in fact, that, by
the evening of 14 December, General Harpe was already planning to shift
some of his troops northward to assist in eliminating the as yet open gap in
German defenses in the Luchesa valley. That decision, however, had to be
delayed a bit, since on the following day fighting once again flared up as the
encircled Russians made one final lunge for safety.
After his first failure to mount a successful breakout, General Solomatin
once again adjusted his defenses and waited for either relief or a new oppor-
tunity to escape the German trap. He later recorded the nature of the har-
rowing ordeal:
During the course of nine days, from 7 to 15 December, the 1st Mecha-
nized Corps forces and the rifle brigades subordinate to it, weakened from
earlier combat and experiencing severe shortages of ammunition and food,
heroically clung to their occupied positions while in full encirclement.
Immense forces of enemy tank and infantry divisions, supported by artil-
lery and aviation, undertook attacks several times a day, but each was
repulsed.
Failing to achieve success in open battle, the fascist generals resorted
to dirty tricks. Each morning the Hitlerites loudly announced through
powerful loudspeakers that the corps command cadre had flown to the
rear, having left their own forces to their own fate, and proposed that the
soldiers not give up their lives in vain but rather cease their resistance
and surrender. Certainly, no one believed that provocation. In response,
Soviet soldiers threw into the enemy foxholes leaflets with the text of a
message from the defenders of Zaparozh'e to the Turkish sultan.
Soviet forces displayed high morale in heavy combat in the enemy rear.
All corps personnel, following the example of their commanders, com-
missars, Communists, and Komsomol members, struggled heroically with-
out sparing their lives. Courage and bravery became the normal behavior
of every soldier.34
Whether or not these sentiments were correct, it was clear that Solomatin's
force was doomed to either a costly breakout or destruction in place. In the
meantime, for eight days nasty battles flared up along the perimeter but in
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 249
particular along its western edge, as Solomatin's reconnaissance parties at-
tempted to locate weaknesses in the German lines. Finally, by 14 December
it was apparent that all supplies were about to run out. Tanks and mortars
were down to five to six rounds apiece, machine guns and automatic weap-
ons to ten to fifteen rounds, and rifles to five bullets. Although the air force
attempted to supply Solomatin's forces by aerial resupply, the effort made
little difference. Moreover, the steady German artillery fire, which rained
down from all sides, caused heavier casualties and destroyed what few stores
Solomatin's corps had assembled to support the breakout attempt. By this
time it was also abundantly clear that Tarasov's army was too weak to mount
any sort of relief effort. In short, there was no other recourse but to attempt
to break out. Late on 14 December, Zhukov, who had personally taken com-
mand of the 41st Army after relieving General Tarasov of his duties, autho-
rized Solomatin to break out. Solomatin welcomed the order and immediately
made all necessary preparations.35
15-16 December
So weak was General Solomatin's force by 15 December that German
records scarcely mention the concerted breakout attempt, for the action
simply blended into the vast panorama of individual combats that charac-
terized the entire period:
Within the pocket and along the pocket walls, a furious battle raged, dur-
ing which, in spite of the inclement weather and unsuitable terrain, the
German soldiers displayed a remarkable attack momentum, as well as
tenacious and bitter resistance. Crises arose, and often the survival of the
pocket wall stood on a razor's edge. However, together with the two panzer
divisions (the 19th and 20th), the SS [cavalry] Division and the forma-
tions that were fighting further to the north held the weak front when a
Russian unit succeeded in getting through the thinly manned pocket wall
near Ploskaya [between Tsitsina and Shiparevo]. The majority remained
in the pocket; they were attacked from all sides, split into individual groups,
compressed, and destroyed. During the following weeks, the main com-
bat line was improved by local attacks.36
After receiving authorization from Zhukov to break out, Solomatin quickly
formulated a plan to extract his forces, together with the wounded and as
much equipment as possible.37 Initially, he planned for his forces to exit
the pocket on foot through the forests and swamps between Shevnino and
Demekhi, where the terrain facilitated escape and German defenses were
250 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
weakest. However, the presence of the wounded and equipment forced him
to alter his route. He now decided to penetrate westward along the shortest
route between Dubrovka and Shiparevo through the heavier German de-
fenses. Solomatin planned to launch his attack at 2300 hours on 15 Decem-
ber and to complete the withdrawal by the next morning.
To cover the attack and distract German attention, by radio Solomatin
requested that Zhukov at the 41st Army's headquarters fire an artillery prepa-
ration at 2240 hours on German defenses astride his attack route and there-
after during the attack to fire blocking concentrations along his flanks. He
also asked Zhukov to light three large fires in the Klemiatino area, which his
advancing troops could use for orientation purposes.
As far as the assault was concerned, Solomatin placed his 74th Rifle and
19th and 37th Mechanized Brigades in first echelon. Colonel Repin's 74th
Brigade was to bypass Dubrovka from the west, Lieutenant Colonel Dubrovin's
19th Brigade would bypass Tsitsina from the west, and Captain Ugriumov's
37th Brigade was to envelop Shiparevo from the east. Solomatin placed all
remaining artillery, tanks, and antiaircraft machine guns at the disposal of first
echelon assault forces. To the rear, Solomatin left the 91st Rifle and 35th and
48th Mechanized Brigades to hold the shrinking perimeter during the break-
out. After the initial breakout had succeeded, these brigades would rapidly
withdraw through the same corridor, their flanks covered by Captain A. M.
Vlaskov's 32d Separate Armored Car Brigade and Major A. N. Lediuk's 75th
Motorcycle Battalion. The imposing force array belied the fact that each of
the brigades numbered fewer than 2,000 men, supported by only a handful
of combat-capable tanks.38
Throughout the remainder of 15 December and into the evening,
Solomatin's troops attempted to regroup for the attack under nearly constant
German artillery fire, which disrupted movement and made full realization
of the plan virtually impossible. The appointed assault units made it into
position on time, but many of the second echelon forces did not. Regardless,
Solomatin had no choice but to launch his assault at the appointed time with
whatever forces he had at his disposal.
At 2240 hours, Zhukov's artillery commenced its cannonade, drawing the
German's attention to the front along the Vishenka River. Solomatin recorded
the subsequent action:
At 2300 hours the signal was given for the first echelon brigades to open
fire and begin their attack. The enemy fully did not expect a strike from
that direction. When the brigades opened fire and, without ceasing it,
moved into the attack, the Hitlerites began to flee in panic, abandoning
tanks, guns, machine guns, and other equipment. . . .
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 251
The courageous attack of the first echelon brigades cleared a path and,
according to the previously worked out plan, began to withdraw all forces
from the enemy rear.
Thus, the unexpected occurred, which seldom takes place in combat
conditions. In reality, on not just one occasion, the 41st Army had at-
tempted to penetrate from within an encirclement ring with compara-
tively large forces, but every time unsuccessfully. Now it succeeded with
considerably fewer forces in fooling the enemy, and gaining surprise, it
smashed him and achieved success. The 1st Mechanized Corps and 6th
Rifle Corps exited the enemy rear area by first light on 16 December,
almost without losses, and the tanks, vehicles, and heavy weapons, which
fell behind on the march or were not combat ready, were destroyed in
place.. . .
After the withdrawal from encirclement, two brigades of the 1st Mecha-
nized Corps occupied defenses, as follows: the 35th, in the Emel'ianova,
Klemiatino sector; and the 19th, in the Klemiatino sector. The remaining
corps brigades and units, as well as the 48th Separate Mechanized Bri-
gade, withdrew to the Ramenka, Ryzhkovo region, and the 74th and 91st
Rifle Brigades rejoined their parent corps.39
What Solomatin's somewhat apocryphal account failed to report was that
his mechanized corps lost 1,300 killed and missing and 3,500 wounded dur-
ing the bloody breakout, and only about 4,000 of his original 15,200 men made
it back to the 41st Army's lines.40 The casualty toll in Povetkhin's 6th Rifle
Corps was even higher. Moreover, both forces left virtually all of their equip-
ment on the abandoned battlefield. The glorious march of Tarasov's 41st Army
into the German rear area had propelled Soviet forces further forward than
in any other sector around the Rzhev salient. Yet, in the end, the operation
ended in disaster. Rather than assisting the 20th Army in its operation near
Sychevka, it was the 20th Army that had to attack once again in an attempt to
save the 41st Army and Operation Mars as a whole.
German combat reports recorded the grisly toll they exacted from
Solomatin's and Tarasov's forces in the Belyi pocket. After several more days
of scouring the battlefield for Russian survivors and dispatching those who
resisted, the 1st Panzer Division noted the scale of the destruction. A divi-
sional report cryptically listed destroyed Russian forces as follows: "Part of
the 134th Rifle Division, the Novosibirsk Volunteer Stalin Division [the 150th
Rifle Division], the I Motor-Mechanized Shock Corps with the 19th, 35th, 47th,
and part of the 37th Mechanized Brigade, as well as the 65th and 219th Tank
Brigades; further the VI Stalin Corps with the 74th, 75th, and 91st Stalin
Brigades."41 Further, the report said:
252 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Of these forces, Kampfgruppe v. d. Meden and sections of the 12th Panzer
Division had already destroyed the 35th and 47th Mot. Mech. Brigades.
Of the tank forces of the surrounded enemy, which numbered an esti-
mated 300 tanks at the beginning, about 200 were destroyed, reducing
his strength to one-third, and the infantry strength of enemy combat forces
were reduced to about 30 percent. The encirclement, however, did not
weaken his artillery strength much: the large mass of tubes, as before, were
west of the Belyi road; only small sections of artillery were towed into the
breakthrough area. In their place, during the now concluded breakthrough
battle, the strong Red Air Force protected the artillery in the breakthrough
area with great success.42
In total, and including the damage done \yyKampfgruppenvon der Meden
and Holste, the 1st Panzer tallied the following Russian losses during the
period 26 November through 10 December: 121 tanks, 13 assault guns, 23
field guns, 44 grenade launchers, 8 field kitchens, 17 armored cars, 57 anti-
tank rifles, and 488 prisoners. Many other tanks ran out of fuel and fell into
German hands during and after the Russian breakout attempt, and the toll
exacted by the XXX Army Corps was also high.43 The after-action report of
the Soviet 1st Mechanized Corps confirms even higher Soviet losses (see
Appendices).
Even before the encircled Russians began their final breakout from the
Belyi pocket, on the instruction of General Model at the Ninth Army, Gen-
eral Harpe began regrouping his forces to provide much needed assistance
to German forces struggling in other sectors. On 16 December, lead elements
of the 52d Infantry Division arrived in Vladimirskoe, sent to relieve the tired
panzer divisions, and shortly thereafter Kampfgruppe Holste was disbanded.
While the 52d Infantry prepared to clean up the rear area and bolster the
forward defenses, slowly, the panzer divisions reassembled in the rear. At the
same time, the 1st Panzer Division's Kampfgruppe von der Meden raced
northward to the Luchesa valley, followed shortly by Kampf gruppe Kassnitz's
Fusilier Regiment of Grossdeutschland Division. Despite their arduous ef-
fort of the past three weeks, their work was not yet complete.
REINFORCING FAILURE ALONG THE VAZUZA RIVER
5-10 December
Lieutenant General Mikhail Semenovich Khozin, the new 20th Army com-
mander, received his new orders fromfront headquarters on the morning of
8 December. When Zhukov had assigned him command of the army only
days before, he had told Khozin to prepare for action in the near future, but
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 253
the scale of the new effort, the parlous condition of his army, and the short
time remaining before the assault staggered the newly appointed commander.
However, Khozin, who had commanded at all levels from battalion through
front in both the Civil and Great Patriotic wars, had a reputation as a fighter.
As the former commander of the Western Front's 33d Army, Khozin had
expected to lead the 33d Army during Operation Jupiter after the successful
conclusion of Mars. Now, however, he would go into action earlier than ex-
pected and in command of an army that had failed to accomplish its mission
in Operation Mars. Zhukov put it nicely when he said, "You will get your
chance, only now, sooner than you expected." Khozin understood and im-
mediately set about preparing his new assault (see Map 20).
Zhukov's order to Khozin was challenging. First, Khozin's forces were "to
penetrate enemy defenses in the Bol'shoe Kropotovo, larygino sector on 10
and 11 December, take Sychevka no later than 15 December, and move no
fewer than two rifle divisions into the Andreevskoe sector on 20 December
to work with the Kalinin Front's 41st Army to seal the encirclement of the
enemy." Thereafter, once his forces had severed the Rzhev—Sychevka rail-
road line, Khozin was to "turn the front mobile group and at least four rifle
divisions northward to attack the enemy's Rzhev—Chertolino group in the
rear."44 To do so, Zhukov provided Khozin with infantry reinforcements and
the fresh 5th Tank Corps, which, during the November operation, Konev and
Zhukov had held in reserve to exploit the success of the 20th Army's original
mobile group. Zhukov returned to Khozin's control the 1st Guards Motor-
ized and 247th Rifle Divisions, which the/roni command had withdrawn for
rest and refitting after the 20th Army's initial failed offensive. He also assigned
Khozin the 243d, 336th, 415th, and 30th Guards Rifle Divisions from adja-
cent armies for use in the initial assault and the 194th and 319th Rifle Divi-
sions to employ once the operation developed successfully. The reformed
divisions made up their manpower deficiencies in any way possible. For ex-
ample, the smashed 247th Rifle Division received 1,500 replacements from
the 48th Ski Brigade and 500 men from penal battalions.45 These replace-
ments entered battle less than a week after their arrival at the front. The 354th
Rifle Division, decimated in the November operation, consolidated all of its
men into a single assault detachment for the new phase of the operation.
Although Konev and Khozin thought that the available rifle forces were
sufficient to penetrate German tactical defenses, one tank corps was clearly
not strong enough to constitute a credible mobile group capable of deep
exploitation. Moreover, given its bloodying in November, the 2d Guards
Cavalry Corps was in no condition to take part in a new assault without con-
siderable reinforcement. Therefore, with Zhukov's assistance in gaining spe-
cial General Staff attention and support, Konev ordered General Khozin to
reconstitute hurriedly the 6th Tank Corps around the nucleus of tanks and
Map 20. Situation from 2 to 10 December 1942: the Sychevka Sector
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 255
cadre that had survived the earlier bloodletting. Under its new commander,
Colonel I. I. lushchuk, the 6th Tank Corps, which had lost most of its 170
tanks less than two weeks before, received 100 new KV, T-34, and T-60 tanks
directly from the Moscow Repair Base with barely trained new tank crews to
man them. Most of the new tank drivers had received fewer than five hours
of driver training. Either through carelessness or a belief that it did not mat-
ter, the 5th Tank Corps went into combat without camouflaging its tanks
white. Despite these problems, when constituted, the new mobile group
counted a formidable total of 231 tanks.46
With this force Khozin was tasked with attacking directly into the teeth
of the Germans' defense in the well-fought-over Vazuza River bridgehead
O o
sector from Bol'shoe Kropotovo to Zherebtsovo. In addition, Zhukov ordered
Major General E. P. Zhuravlev, the commander of newly beefed-up 29th
Army on the 20th Army's left flank, to attack from his army's bridgehead
west of the Gzhat' River. Zhuravlev's force was to cover preparations for
the new assault on the German's Vazuza defenses and to assist the assault
when it occurred. The 29th Army's initial attacks took place on 5-6 De-
cember against German positions between Popsuevo and larygino. But
when these attacks failed with heavy losses, Zhukov and Konev ordered that
Zhuravlev's army continue to attack for six more days to distract German
attention from offensive preparations in the 20th Army's bridgehead. Of
course, once Khozin's army launched its new offensive, Zhukov expected
the 29th Army to rejoin in the effort. To provide 29th Army with requisite
strength, Zhukov beefed up the force with two new rifle divisions (the 19th
Rifle and 3d Guards Motorized Rifle) and four separate tank brigades (the
20th, 120th, 161st and 175th), which reinforced the army's single division
deployed in the Gzhat' bridgehead.47
The numbers looked good despite the thrashing the 20th Army had re-
ceived during the previous two weeks, and the General Staff bent over back-
ward to provide the men and equipment necessary to make up for the army's
earlier losses. On the eve of the new attack, the army staff calculated a better
than 2.5 to 1 superiority over defending German forces in the Vazuza sector,
less than the over 5 to 1 superiority on 25 November but adequate neverthe-
less.48 However, Khozin was astute enough to understand much depended
on the morale and training of his forces, which frankly bothered him, and on
the enemy's state of morale, which was certainly higher. While undoubtedly
the Germans too had suffered heavy losses in November, he feared the moral
uplift that they surely derived from their earlier victory. He also knew that
elements of not one but two panzer divisions now faced him, and both had a
keen understanding of the terrain.
Hastily, on 8 December Khozin and his staff developed a plan that met
the Stavka's and Zhukov's requirements in as simple a fashion as possible.
256 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
The fact was that Zhukov's directive offered little latitude as to where and
how to conduct the attack. This was so because of the weakness of many of
Khozin's formations and the inexperience of many others. By virtue of their
condition and training, his forces were not able to conduct any complicated
maneuvers. They could, however, attack straight ahead and en mass, and this
is what Zhukov, Konev, and Khozin asked them to do.
Khozin planned to assault German positions along a four-kilometer front
between Bol'shoe Kropotovo and Zherebtsovo with four rifle divisions (the
30th Guards, 415th, 243d, and 247th) abreast in first echelon. He would then
exploit their success with his two tank corps, which would attack side by side
at staggered intervals. Major General K. A. Semenchenko's 5th Tank Corps,
131 tanks strong, would advance from assembly areas west of Prudy on the
heels of the 243d and 247th Rifle Divisions. Advancing in the Podosinovka
and Zherebtsovo sector, it would exploit southwest to cut the Rzhev-Sychevka
railroad line, block the approach of enemy reserves from Sychevka, and wheel
northward with the 6th Tank Corps on its flank to trap German forces south
of Rzhev. Khozin reinforced the corps with the 3d Guards Antitank Artillery
Regiment and the 11th Guards Engineer-Mine Company to improve its tank
killing capability and to improve its ability to overcome obstacles emplaced
by the Germans.49
The 100 tanks of Colonel lushchuk's reformed 6th Tank Corps, organized
into only two tank brigades (the 22d and 100th), would follow the assault of
the 415th Rifle Division in the Maloe Kropotovo and Podosinovka sectors.
The corps would then join the 5th Tank Corps' thrust across the rail line and
to the north. lushchuk's only reserve was his 6th Motorized Rifle Brigade,
with a strength of 170 infantrymen. The planning for the tank assault was so
hasty that Khozin planned to provide additional tanks to the corps while the
attack was under way as they arrived by rail in the army sector.50 Khozin
planned to support his main attack with an artillery preparation by 2,500 guns
and mortars.
While the main assault was taking place, the 336th Rifle and 42d Guards
Rifle Divisions were to attack on the assault group's right flank to the Osuga
River. At the same time, the 8th Guards Rifle Corps, with the 354th Rifle
Division and the 148th and 150th Rifle Brigades, would once again assault
German positions between Zherebtsovo and Khlepen'.51 The battered 1st
Guards Motorized Rifle and 26th Guards Rifle Divisions remained in army
second echelon. These divisions, plus the 319th and 194th Rifle Divisions en
route from the south, would reinforce the attack during its development. Once
Khozin's attack had torn apart German tactical defenses, the forces of Gen-
eral Zhuravlev's 29th Army would again join the attack from their positions
in the Gzhat' bridgehead.
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 257
All corps, divisions, and brigades participating in the assault received their
combat orders early on 9 December, orders went to subordinate rifle regi-
ments on 10 December, and battalions and companies received word of
the attack early on 11 December. By this time the attack had already as-
sumed greater importance, since the bulk of the 41st Army's forces were
encircled and faced with destruction in the Belyi pocket. By 10 December
Konev and Khozin knew well that any hope for success in Operation Mars
now depended solely and directly on their last-ditch offensive. Neither
Konev nor Khozin, however, was optimistic.
General Zhukov, now with General Purkaev at the Kalinin Front head-
quarters, had written off any chance of further offensive success in the 41st
Army's Belyi sector. He did, however, believe that the situation could be made
to work to his advantage and Mars could still be a partial success. The key
was to accept the reality of defeat in the Belyi sector while exploiting that
defeat in the service of victory elsewhere. His assumption was that the
encircled 41st Army would act as a magnet for all German operational re-
serves. Intelligence had already identified the bulk of German panzer reserves,
including the 1st, 12th, 19th, and 20th Panzer Divisions and part of the Gross-
deutschland Motorized Division, in the Belyi battle. This meant that, if the
Belyi struggle could be prolonged, few German reserves would be available
for use elsewhere. In addition, the Germans still had not contained 22d Army's
thrust up the Luchesa valley, and any German reserves not tied down in Belyi
would likely be diverted to close the Luchesa gap. Therefore, it was in the
Soviet's best interests to continue the battle at Belyi and in the Luchesa val-
ley and, simultaneously, to smash German defenses in other sectors. With its
additional armor and infantry reserves, Zhukov was confident that the 20th
Army would be able to cleave German defensive lines near Sychevka and to
turn north toward Rzhev. Then the 30th Army could join the 39th Army's
advance west of Rzhev. Together, the 20th, 30th, and 39th Armies could then
envelop all German forces in the eastern half of the Rzhev salient. Although
the grand envelopment of all German forces in the Rzhev salient was no longer
feasible, the shallower envelopment of the two German corps defending
Rzhev would soon render the entire Rzhev salient untenable, and the Ger-
man Ninth Army would have no choice but to abandon the salient. Or so
Zhukov reasoned.
Further, if he could achieve even modest success at Rzhev, Zhukov still
believed he could implement Operation Jupiter. An assault by the 3d and 4th
Shock and 43d Armies spearheaded by the 2d Mechanized Corps from the
Velikie Luki region southward through Velezh toward Dukhovshchina and
Smolensk was entirely feasible. This attack, plus a simultaneous assault by
the Jupiter shock group (the 5th and 33d Armies, and the 3d Tank Army)
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 259
to transfer several small kampfgruppen to the west to assist German forces
in the Belyi and Luchesa valley regions. Model directed General Harpe at
the XXXXI Panzer Corps, once he had dealt with the Russian forces at Belyi,
to transfer forces northward to help contain the Russian threat along the
Luchesa and west of Rzhev,52 By exploiting his interior lines of communica-
tions, Model was confident that he could shore up his army's defenses. It
seemed to him that the worst of the crisis had passed.
General Martinek was equally confident but also prudent. A veteran of
numerous bitter Eastern Front battles, he did not take victory for granted.
Once the Russian 20th Army offensive had been bloodily repulsed, he im-
mediately strengthened his defenses around Russian troops in their slightly
enlarged Vazuza River bridgehead. After pulling General Metz's 5th Panzer
Division back into assembly areas west of the Rzhev-Sychevka road, he di-
vided responsibility for defense between the 9th Panzer and 78th Infantry
Divisions. General Shiller's 9th Panzer erected strong and deep defenses
between the south bank of the Osuga River and Maloe Kropotovo, anchored
on the fortified villages of Bol'shoe Kropotovo and Maloe Kropotovo. Gen-
eral Volker's 78th Infantry Division defended southward to the middle of the
Russian Gzhat' bridgehead, where the 337th Infantry Division assumed de-
fensive tasks. Volker's defense incorporated and was anchored on the strong
points at Podosinovka, Zherebtsovo, Talitsa, and Khlepen'. In both sectors,
infantry defended an imposing network of interlocking forward defensive
positions, while regimental and division reserves and tank groups backed up
the forward positions. The entire defensive structure was covered by fire from
divisional and corps artillery, which had considerable experience in covering
the entire bridgehead with devastating fire. None of these preparations had
been adversely affected by the futile Russian assaults by the 29th Army's forces
after 5 December from the Gzhat' bridgehead. The German 78th and 337th
O
Infantry Divisions easily repelled all of these attacks and inflicted heavy losses
on assaulting Russian troops. The German commands dismissed these assaults
as additional evidence of Zhukov's stubborn unwillingness to admit defeat.
By the evening of 10 December, the 5th Panzer Division had completed
it withdrawal to new assembly areas, and to the south the 2d Panzer Division
was completing preparations for its movement north. Kampfgruppen Becker
and Praun had departed the area days before, and German security forces
were combing the forests west of the Rzhev road for remnants of the Rus-
sian cavalry force, which was last seen in that region. The German forward
defense lines seemed stable, and although desultory Russian reconnaissance
efforts went on across the front and Soviet attacks sputtered along in the
Gzhat' bridgehead, there was every reason for the XXXI Panzer Corps com-
mand to assume that peace had been restored to the Vazuza front. The peace,
however, did not endure.
260 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
11-14 December
At 0900 hours on the cold and blustery morning of 11 December 1942, the
air was again split by the deafening sounds of a Soviet artillery preparation,
which tore into German defenses around the periphery of the Soviet's Vazuza
bridgehead (see Map 21). Just over an hour later, thousands of white-clad
Soviet infantry rose from their forward trenches and charged German for-
ward positions. Long columns of armor, deployed to the rear behind the
advancing infantry, prepared to provide support and begin the exploitation.
Almost simultaneous with the beginning of the Soviet assault, a rain of shriek-
ing German artillery and mortars shells plowed into the ranks of the advanc-
ing host, tossing men and tanks alike around the battlefield like so many broken
toys. An eyewitness later described the chaotic scene in the Soviet 5th Tank
Corps' main attack sector:
A rocket rising into the air signaled the attack. All those around came to
life. The cries of "Forward!" and "For the Fatherland!" resounded across
the fields. It was at 1010 hours 11 December 1942. The first to rush for-
ward were the regiments of the 20th Army's 243d and 247th Rifle Divi-
sions. Soon, however, their forward ranks were forced to take cover against
the heavy enemy fire. A fierce, bloody battle began that lasted all day.
The attack misfired almost along the entire extent of the penetration front.
Then the brigades of the 5th Tank Corps were introduced into battle.
They began literally to chew their way through the enemy defense. The
tank assaults gave way to furious enemy counterattacks. Individual heights
and the most key positions changed hands several times. The entire battle-
field was covered with destroyed and burning tanks and smashed guns
both sides suffered heavy losses.53
The 5th Tank Corps war diary more cryptically noted, "11.12.42. During the
approach of the corps' combat formation to Podosinovka, the enemy opened
heavy artillery fire."54
Colonel V. V. Sytnik's 24th Tank Brigade and Lieutenant Colonel N. P.
Nikolaev's 41st Tank Brigade, attacking with and through the advancing in-
fantry toward Podosinovka, were met with heavy antitank and machine-gun
fire from a web of enemy pillboxes and bunkers. Heavy German fire forced
the infantry of Major F. la. Gashkov's 2d Battalion, 5th Motorized Rifle Bri-
gade, who were assaulting on board the tanks of the two tank brigades, to
O ' O O
dismount, and Gashkov personally led them in an assault on the bunkers.
When Gashkov and many of his men fell mortally wounded, Senior Lieuten-
ant K. K. Ditiuk took command of the brigade, but regardless of his heroics,
its attack faltered short of its objective. To the right, Lieutenant Colonel
Map 21. Situation from 11 to 14 December 1942: the Sychevka Sector
262 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
K. N. Abramov's 70th Tank Brigade, with infantrymen from Major K. A
Ognevoi's 1st Battalion, 5th Motorized Rifle Brigade, aboard the tanks, as-
saulted the twin villages of Pod'iablon'ka and Zherebtsovo. Having met equally
strong resistance, their assault also faltered with heavy losses.55
After regrouping, the combined force of three tank brigades and infantry
from Major General Mukhin's 247th Rifle Division finally breached German
defenses at Podosinovka. A veteran of the battle described the scene:
The battle for the village of Podosinovka was extremely bitter. It passed
from hand to hand. Neither a single house nor any structure remained
standing. Ourtankists and infantry captured the village only after numer-
ous attacks. However, by the end of the day, the enemy managed to bring
up reserves—forty-six tanks and self-propelled guns and thirty armored
personnel carriers with infantry. After a short artillery preparation, once
again they launched a counterattack. This time they had air support; no
sooner had one group of aircraft, having bombed, flown away over the
smoky horizon than another began its bombing run.
Enemy tanks unexpectedly appeared on the left flank of the 1st Mo-
torized Rifle Battalion. The battalion commander, Major Ognevoi, quickly
assessed the situation and ordered his men to dismount and repel the
enemy charge. Grenades and bottles filled with gasoline flew at the tanks.
Three of them were halted. The remainder swung around and abandoned
the battlefield with the infantry running after them. Then Ognevoi led
the infantry in an attack. "The battalion commander has been wounded!
Revenge the battalion commander," resounded the voice of Captain
P. V. lushkov, the commander of 1st Motorized Rifle Company. He led
the attackers, who penetrated into the Hitlerites' trenches. Hand-to-hand
combat raged. The motorized riflemen of Major S. G. Zirenkov's 3d Bat-
talion then arrived to help. That battalion had been located in reserve,
hidden in a ravine, and having received an order from the brigade com-
mander, Lieutenant Colonel G. G. Skripka, it struck the enemy. The battle
intensified further. . . .
In that terrible battle . . . the brigade commander was wounded. He
was replaced by the brigade chief of staff, Major A. I. Khailenko. The
strengthening attack by the fascist tanks and infantry threw back the in-
fantry of Lieutenant I. D. Zanosov's company, the antitank company of
Senior Lieutenant I. A. Zatanin, and also the submachine gunners of
Senior Lieutenant N. F. Kolbenkov. The artillery batteiy of Captain
M. A. Ochkasov wheeled forward and began direct fire over open gun
sites. Soon the batteiy commander was killed, and Lieutenant B. P.
Kovalev took command. The ranks of the artillerymen melted away with
every minute. One gun remained under Sergeant 1.1. Abramov. The crew
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 263
conducted intense fire. Two enemy tanks were already burning. The gun-
ner, Sergeant T. B. Nikitin, found a third in his periscope's crosshairs. . . .
Abramov commanded, "Fire!" The tank abruptly rocked in place and was
engulfed in black smoke.
Shells exploded in the artillerymen's position. Almost every crewman
was wounded. A shell fragment broke Sergeant Abramov's leg. He tried
to rise up to help the gunner, but could not. "They did not pass! All the
same, they did not pass," shouted Lieutenant Zatanin. After the two ini-
tial counterattacks, fewer than twenty soldiers remained in his company.
But they stood to the death.56
Similar futile struggles raged all along the 5th Tank Corps' front. Nearly
suicidal attacks failed to halt German counterattacks from Zherebtsovo, and
by day's end the desperate battle had yielded the Soviet troops gains mea-
sured only in hundreds of meters. The cost was even more appalling than
that suffered in the 20th Army's previous assault. The 5th Tank Corps war
diary recorded the carnage: "At 1530 hours 11.12.42 the deputy commander
of army armored forces, General Mostovenko, received an order—to dig in
along existing positions and await the arrival of infantry."57 The diary recorded
that the 5th Tank Corps lost seventeen KV tanks, twenty T-34 tanks, and
eleven T-70 tanks on 17 December. In addition, the 5th Motorized Rifle
Brigade lost "50 percent of its personnel, including 95 commanders, 320
NCOs, and 412 men, for a total of 827 men."58
The two supposedly combat-ready brigades of Colonel lushchuk's trun-
cated 6th Tank Corps, attacking on the 5th Tank Corps' right flank, fared little
better. At 1100 hours, Colonel Vedenichev's 22d Tank Brigade, attacking
south of Maloe Kropotovo in the wake of 415th Rifle Division infantry, pene-
trated west of the village. There, it came under heavy German fire, which
stripped away its accompanying infantry and knocked out about half of the
brigade's fifty tanks. At nightfall, under the protective cover of darkness, the
brigade withdrew to its initial jumping-off positions. At the same time, Colo-
nel Ivanov's 100th Tank Brigade, accompanied by an infantry task force of
the 6th Motorized Rifle Brigade, struck north of Podosinovka but was caught
in devastating enfilading fire from Maloe Kropotovo and was likewise forced
to withdraw with heavy losses. Colonel N. A. luplin's 200th Tank Brigade,
whose tankless crews had remained in the rear to await the imminent arrival
of new tanks, received its new tanks at 1500 hours. Then it too, with its twenty-
three new tanks, was sent directly to the front and went into combat in early
evening in support of the floundering 100th Tank Brigade.59
Khozin's rifle forces, like the tank corps, had little success, although not
for want of trying. The German defenses were simply too strong to overcome.
Wave after wave of advancing infantry broke over the German defenses but
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 265
outskirts of Podosinovka, [our] multiple rocket launchers fired two volleys
on the eastern outskirts of Podosinovka and destroyed seven of our tanks."63
As before, however, whatever success the Soviets achieved was only fleeting.
The Germans cut off the penetrating tanks, drove back the accompanying
infantry, and destroyed the tanks piecemeal. Among the many Soviet casual-
ties was the 70th Tank Brigade commander, Lieutenant Colonel Abramov,
and his successor, Lieutenant Colonel F. la. Degtev, both of whom were
wounded severely.64 The two tank corps lost most of their tanks and a large
proportion of their men. The 5th Tank Corps' war diary recorded the grisly
toll, noting that "losses for 12.12.42 were: 24th Tank Brigade, four KVs and
four T-70s; 41st Tank Brigade, nine T-34s; 70th Tank Brigade, six T-34s; and
5th Motorized Rifle Brigade, 395 men."65
The battle's sheer brutality reflected its chaos and utter futility. The 5th
Tank Corps' war diary noted, "Having repelled fifteen enemy attacks, up to
sixty German prisoners were taken—soldiers and officers—which, in light of
the extraordinary tension of heavy battle and the heavy enemy artillery fire,
could not be sent to the rear. Documents were taken from the latter, and
they were shot."66 On 13 and 14 December, the infantry attacks continued,
supported by the pitifully small number of tanks that remained serviceable.
Once again, the 20th Army was a shambles, and it had failed to achieve its
mission.
Despite the fact that the renewed Russian attack had surprised General
Martinek, his XXXIX Panzer Corps was superbly positioned to repel the as-
sault, and repel it it did, without having to employ any operational reserves.
So complete was the victory and so minor the Russian gains that most Ger-
man accounts simply dismiss the attack as a splendid but irrelevant postscript
to the main Russian offensive. The Ninth Army's situation report for 15
December provided a suitable epitaph for the 20th Army's final agony:
In general, the enemy's offensive in front of our forces appears to have
eased off. However, in the meantime, along the eastern front, the enemy
has once again launched a large-scale attack. Disappointed by failure in
all front sectors and with an almost limitless application of force, once more
the enemy wanted to try to find a weakness on the eastern front and force
a decision. This attack was spearheaded by even greater massed use of
tanks. Executed in a narrow area between Sherebzowo and Kropotowo,
he tried to collapse our front with super-human efforts. However, in such
a short period and in such a narrow region, it caused enemy tank losses
that exceeded those of the heavy tank battles at Rzhev in the summer.
Within 48 hours, 300 tanks were shot up in a sector only 4 kilometers wide.
Not only did this defensive battle have only local significance, and not only
did it substantially weaken enemy tank forces, but it also demonstrated
266 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
what the summer tank battle at Rzhev had proven, that the mass use of
tanks could not decide the military fate of their opponent. It showed the
proper triumph of soldierly spirit over materiel. Superior leadership and
superior fighting troops met the tank masses; the confidence, agility, and
toughness of these particular warriors reduced the hopes of the enemy
to naught. But the perception that the flagging fighting spirit of the Red
infantry cannot be repaired by the mass use of tanks must undercut the
determination of enemy commanders.67
In short, Zhukov's gambit had failed and failed spectacularly. No one could
or did dispute that fact. The next day Stalin ordered Rybalko's 3d Tank Army
to prepare to move south. The first trains carrying the 3d Tank Army left
Kaluga on 22 December.68 With its departure, all thought of conducting
Operation Jupiter ended. Now it would be difficult, if not impossible, to sal-
vage any success from the wreckage of Operation Mars. Confronted with
abject failure in the east and west, Zhukov looked north, to the apex of the
Rzhev salient, for any hope, of salvation.
EXHAUSTION IN THE NORTH
8-12 December
While Zhukov personally supervised operations in the Belyi sector and waited
expectantly for the 20th Army to resume its offensive, Generals Zygin and
Kolpakchi prepared their 39th and 30th Armies for an expanded role in
Operation Mars. It was somewhat ironic that these initially secondary sec-
tors would take on such increased significance. Zygin, in particular, reflected
upon his initial limited success and lamented the fact that his forces had been
too weak to exploit the opportunity for enveloping German forward forces in
the Urdom region. By early December, however, that temporary success was
history. Now he had to struggle to generate the forces necessary to sustain
the attack south of Urdom.
Zhukov's 8 December order required his forces to "press ahead ... in
the general direction of Olenino, crush the enemy group there by 16 Decem-
ber, and emerge in the vicinity of Olenino."69 In terms of timing, Zygin, who
had already begun his attacks east of Zaitsevo and in the older Gliadovo sec-
tor, was to continue them, while Major General V. la. Kolpakchi regrouped
his forces and commenced a general assault south of the Volga River on 13
December. Zygin's twin efforts would continue, but on Zhukov's orders he
reinforced his main attack, which was to take place in the Urdom, Trushkovo
sector. Zygin's forces would seek to envelop and destroy German forces de-
fending the pesky German stronghold at Zaitsevo.
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 267
Anticipating Zhukov's instructions, Zygin had already regrouped his army's
135th Rifle Division from the vicinity of Urdom to support the local successes
achieved by the 178th Rifle Division and 46th Mechanized Brigade in the
Trushkovo sector. Then, on 7 December, the reinforced force struck hard at
the German Trushkovo defenses (see Map 22). The assault propelled Soviet
forces through the defenses, and by afternoon they had seized the village of
Gonchuki in the German rear area, three kilometers south of Trushkovo. The
German defenses bent but did not break, and heavy fighting raged through-
out 8 and 9 December as the Germans repulsed repeated Soviet attacks and
withdrew some units from their exposed salients east of Gonchuki in order
to straighten their defensive lines and conserve precious manpower.70
With his forward progress temporarily slowed, on 10 December Zygin
regrouped his remaining armor eastward to sustain the Gonchuki assault. The
remnants of the 81st and 28th Tank Brigades, now re-equipped with some
new tanks and commanded by the former chief of staff of the 3d Mechanized
Corps, Colonel M. T. Nikitin, assembled near Gonchuki. Then, on 11 De-
cember, they suddenly thrust through German defenses into the forests two
kilometers southwest of Gonchuki.71 By virtue of the sudden armored break-
through, Zygin felt he had now created a major threat to the German defend-
ers of Zaitsevo. On the night of 11 December, new reinforcements arrived
from the 30th Army, including the 16th Guards and 220th Rifle Divisions.
These, Zygin ordered to exploit the penetration made by Nikitin's armor.
Ominously, however, the same night Nikitin reported new German reserves
had arrived and were attempting to block his advance and sever his contacts
with the rear.
Meanwhile, to the east General Kolpakchi continued his assaults to carry
out Zhukov's 8 December order. Zhukov had ordered his 30th Army "to pierce
German defenses in the sector extending from Koshkino to the road junc-
tion northeast of Burgovo and reach the railway line in the vicinity of Cherto-
lino no later than 15 December," and then take the city of Rzhev by 23
December. '2 During the preparatory period prior to the joint 13 December
general assault by his and Zygin's armies, Kolpakchi directed his 375th and
380th Rifle Divisions, supported initially by the 220th Rifle Division and 59th
Ski Brigade, to pound German defenses south of the Volga River. On the 13th,
after reinforcing the bridgehead with two tank brigades (the 10th Guards and
196th), he planned to renew the assault in conjunction with Zygin's general
assault on Zaitsevo to the west.
Between 9 and 12 December, Kolpakchi's three divisions launched at-
tack after attack on German bridgehead defenses but failed to crack open
the German front. Because of the failure and Zygin's modest success near
Gonchuki, on 11 December Kolpakchi transferred the 220th and 16th Guards
Rifle Division to the 39th Army's control with orders to reinforce Zygin's
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 269
success, while Kolpakchi reduced the strength of his forces attacking from
the Volga bridgeheads.73
The German command reacted deftly to the renewed Russian attacks.
Once again, it was the arrival of key reserves at the most critical juncture of
the battle that staved off potential disaster. The 7 December Russian assault
at Trushkovo struck the junction of the 251st Infantry and 14th Motorized
Divisions. While the 451st Grenadier Regiment, on the left flank of General
Burdach's 251st Infantry Division, held on to its positions against repeated
Russian assaults, the 14th Motorized gave way as the Russians seized Gon-
chuki and several neighboring villages. Using the reserve 251st Mobile Bat-
talion and two attached assault guns, the 541st Regiment also held out on 8
December, repulsing three major Russian assaults and destroying three
enemy tanks. By nightfall, however, the increasingly threatened position of
14th Motorized Division prompted General Hubert of the XXIII Army Corps
to subordinate the entire 14th Motorized Division to General Burdach's com-
mand.74 In the evening Burdach planned local counterattacks for 9 and 10
December, which were carried out and produced a new and straighter de-
fensive line.
Burdach's success, however, was only temporary, for on 11 December
a large Russian tank force, reportedly under the command of a "Colonel
Nikitin," broke through his defenses opposite Gonchuki and hurled them-
selves into the forests to the southwest. For the third time during the Rzhev
operation, it was Colonel Becker's well-traveled Kampfgruppe that saved the
day. A German account records Becker's feat and reflects the complexity of
the situation facing the XXIII Army Corps:
On deeply snow-covered routes, where the vehicles often had to be shov-
eled free, Colonel Becker, the commander of the 6th Infantry Division's
18th Infantry Regiment, arrived from the Luchesa valley at the command
post of the 14th Motorized Division at Volkovo at 1130 hours on 11 De-
cember. This was the third commitment of the 18th Regiment during the
winter battle for the 9th Army salient. The instructions that Colonel Becker
received read, "The Russians have broken through the old main combat
line and have captured Gonchuki. At this time, the main combat line runs
from Ussovo to the northern edge of the forests east of Gonchuki—to the
edge of the forest to the east, south, west, and northwest of Gonchuki and
then further to the north to Zaitsevo. The enemy has succeeded in attack-
ing from Gonchuki to the southwest into the forested area almost two kilo-
meters deep. The strength of the enemy is several hundred men equipped
with tanks. According to intercepted radio messages, the commander's
name is Nikitin, and he maintains extended radio communications with
"Doroshenko." The enemy group that has broken through is blocked off to
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 271
The committed troops continued to have it very difficult since the men
had to endure heavy mortar fire without being able to take cover in the
frozen ground. Because of recent combat, the main combat line was ex-
o
tremely unsuitable. Forests hindered fields of fire, and projecting forested
areas permitted the enemy to establish attack assembly areas right in front
of our lines. The infantrymen zealously attempted to dig in. Lacking en-
trenching equipment, the 57th Construction Battalion was placed at their
disposal. Chev-de-frise were constructed, and mines were laid along the
main axis of attack.76
Becker's quick reaction to the "Nikitin" breakthrough did not eradicate
the Russian threat. It did, however, shore up sagging German defenses and
better prepare the XXIII Army Corps to cope with the main Russian assault,
which materialized the next day.
Meanwhile, to the east, on the 251st Infantry Division's right flank oppo-
site the Russian Volga bridgehead, Lieutenant Colonel von Recum, the com-
mander of the 251st Division's mobile battalion, took over responsibility for
the defense of the bridgehead from the 87th Infantry Division. His "mixed
hodgepodge of units thrown together as akampfgruppe" included the 187th
and 251st Engineer Battalions, the 87th Ski Battalion, the 72 Infantry Divi-
sion's mobile battalion, the 10th Company of the 129th Infantry Division's
428th Grenadier Regiment, and the 1st Squadron of the 251st Mobile Bat-
talion. This motley force performed superbly, repulsing thirty-seven separate
Russian assaults between 9 and 12 December, inflicting heavy losses on the
attackers, and unbeknownst to von Recum, forcing the Soviet commanders
to alter their attack plans by shifting their main attack into the 39th Army's
sector.77
At nightfall on 12 December, Zygin once again faced crisis. Although his
preliminary attacks southeast of Zaitsevo had produced success, his forward
armored force was isolated in the German rear southwest of Gonchuki. Else-
where along the front, the Germans were holding firm, and intelligence re-
ports indicated that new German reinforcements were arriving. To make
matters worse, Zhukov was demanding the attack be accelerated to ease the
apparent German resistance to the 20th Army, which was then locked in
mortal combat along the Vazuza River. The clear lack of success by the 20th
Army on the first day of its new assault only added to the shrillness of Zhukov's
entreaties for success north of Rzhev. Pressed by Zhukov and concerned about
the fate of his armored shock group, late in the evening Zygin asked Zhukov
to shift more reinforcements to his sector from the 30th Army. Zhukov as-
sented, and within hours the 375th Rifle Division was ordered to move west-
ward to join Zygin's assault. This, however, condemned General Kolpakchi's
planned 13 December attack from the Volga bridgehead to failure, Now, the
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 273
As planned, General Kolpakchi's 30th Army joined the attack on 13 De-
cember but with fewer forces than originally anticipated. His 375th and 380th
Rifle Divisions, supported by the 49th Mechanized Brigade and several tank
brigades and regiments (including the 196th and 10th Guards Tank Brigades),
struck the German 87th Infantry Division's defenses between Koshkino and
Burgovo.79 In places the tank brigades penetrated German forward defenses,
but the heavy fire stripped away the infantry support, and the attacks once
again faltered after only minor gains.
Given the situation to the south and Zhukov's and Konev's insistence that
the assaults continue, Zygin resumed his attacks on 14 December. The ad-
vancing troops performed as heroically as they had the day before, but again
the progress was painfully slow. After a strong mortar and artillery prepara-
tion, the 16th Guards and 220th Rifle Divisions, now supported by the re-
maining tanks of 81st Tank Brigade and the 28th, 29th, and 32d Separate Tank
Regiments, charged into and penetrated the German defenses. A German
account recorded:
Renewed heavy fighting broke out on 14 December. After a very strong
mortar and artillery strike, tanks attacked against the 1st Battalion, 18th
Infantry Regiment, Kampfgruppe Wolperding, and newly formed Kampf-
gruppe Sparrer. The penetration was quickly followed by a counterattack.
As on previous days, the 2d Battalion of the 14th Artillery Regiment sup-
ported the fight exceptionally well with their small amounts of fire as
Colonel Becker instructed their exceptional observers. The troops in the
defensive positions, the 2d Motorcycle Battalion, the tanks and assault
guns, as well as all of the other weapons, ensured, through fierce, deci-
sive combat, that all penetrations were kept to small indentations from
which the enemy was expelled. The final "tumor" was assaulted by Cap-
tain Petri with his last companies, four tanks, and two assault guns at 0700
hours on 15 December. They threw the enemy back to the former main
combat line and reestablished their defense.
The attacks against Wolperding and Sparrer, the latter of which was
wounded, were repulsed by the forces in tenacious combat, just as they
were on the right flank against the 251st Division's 251st Grenadier Regi-
ment. The 251st Division had courageously performed its duty in this
winter battle—as always—and never failed. The steadfastness and perse-
verance in the fiercest combat deserved the highest praise.80
General Zygin, however, was in no position to call off the futile assaults.
The clear defeat of the 20th Army to the south prompted Zhukov and Purkaev
to insist that both Zygin and Kolpakchi continue to batter German defenses
in the north. While Kolpakchi's assaults sputtered on, he shifted his already
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 275
at the Kalinin Front had repeatedly demanded that he exploit the gash, but
try as he did, he simply could not do so. The surprise German counterattack
the day before had thrown his latest attack preparations into a shambles, and
his assembled infantry and precious armored reserves suffered heavy losses
trying to restore their positions. It was now early morning of 7 December,
and despite the thrashing his forces had received the day before, lushkevich
had no choice but to launch his planned attack. This he did, knowing full well
its ultimate outcome and likely cost.82 At 0830 hours all along the front, his
frayed infantry columns once again assaulted German defenses, with penny
packet parcels of tanks in support. Predictably, the attacks all failed as the
tally of losses rose catastrophically high. Yet, on and on went the attacks until
utter exhaustion set in. lushkevich repeatedly asked permission to end the
slaughter, but permission was denied. Finally, long after all prospects for
further advance had evaporated, on 11 December, Zhukov and Purkaev called
a halt to the army's offensive. Either shortly before or shortly thereafter, they
removed General lushkevich from command of the 22d Army and replaced
him with Major General D.M. Seleznev. Characteristically, Seleznev's first
orders from the Kalinin Front were for the 22d Army to "maintain pressure"
on German forces in the Luchesa valley. As ragged as his forces were, about
all they could do was make their presence known. Further attack was out of
the question.
Within days it seemed that the higher command finally agreed. Late on
12 December, Seleznev received orders to withdraw General Katukov's 3d
Mechanized Corps from battle and to assemble its remnants in the rear area
for rest and refitting. Katukov's force assembled in the forests northeast of
Sednevo on 14 and 15 December.83 The corps' withdrawal marked the end
of credible Soviet efforts to crush German defenses in the Luchesa sector.
For the first time since 25 November, the initiative in this sector shifted into
German hands.
Although they had achieved striking success in their 6 December counter-
attack, the defending Germans had not been surprised when the Russians
renewed their attacks on 7 December. The defenders eloquently recorded
the increasing futility of the Russian effort:
On the next day (7/12) at 0630 hours, the enemy attacked the 2d Battal-
ion [18th Infantry] and the motorcyclists [of the 2d Panzer Division]. The
attack was repulsed. A Russian radio message, said, "Why can't you ad-
vance? The new host was due here yesterday. Is he working with you or
not?" To the answer, "They are still not all here yet," he responded, "Tell
him for me, I want to cut his head off."
The Russians followed with additional attacks in spite of their high
losses. Enemy assembly areas were hammered by the Grossdeutschland
276 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
artillery battalion and by infantry guns. Enemy tanks advancing against
the Grossdeutschland Division further to the north were also repulsed.
Here, in the Luchesa valley, the Grossdeutschland Division destroyed 120
enemy tanks. The combat confirmed that the attack strength of the Rus-
sians was broken. Friendly air reconnaissance confirmed the east to west
movement of enemy motorized forces.84
Having repulsed the Russian attacks, the German command readjusted its
defenses, withdrawing Kampfgruppe Lindemann several kilometers to the
west to eliminate a dangerous salient in German lines and to shorten those
lines to free up forces for a counterstroke to close the Luchesa gap.
As if to signify the end of the Russian threat along the Luchesa, at 1645
hours on 10 December, General Praun, the commander of the 129th Infan-
try Division, called Colonel Becker and issued him new instructions:
New situation. Today, the 18th Regiment's headquarters, regimental units
and the 2d Battalion of the 18th will be transported on trucks of the
Grossdeutschland Division to a new commitment in the penetration area
north of Olenino and will be subordinated to the 14th Motorized Divi-
sion (General Krause). The 1st Battalion of the 18th, formerly in the
Ossuga region, will also be transported. The 2d Motorcycle Battalion is
now under the command of the 252d Light Infantry Regiment (Colonel
Huch).85
While Colonel Becker's "fire brigade" raced toward the northern front,
Generals Harpe and Hilpert at the XXXXI Panzer and XXIII Army Corps
began rerouting forces into the Luchesa sector to repair the yawning breach
in German defenses. It was comforting to be able to do so in the full knowl-
edge that the breech would grow no larger. By 15 December the situation
had eased enough in other army sectors for General Model to authorize fur-
ther reinforcement along the Luchesa. In fact, the subsequent Luchesa battles
would become a fitting denouement for Operation Mars as a 'whole.
16-31 December
The 22d Army's new commander, General Seleznev, followed Zhukov's and
Purkaev's instructions. His ragged forces, now deprived of much of their
armor support, launched local attacks on German defensive positions and
conducted active reconnaissance operations but did no more. His greatest
concern, however, was how to maintain the gap in German lines without his
armor and further infantry reinforcements. He knew full well that, inevita-
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 277
bly, German reserves would gravitate to his sector, particularly after the fail-
ure of Soviet attacks in other sectors. In the meantime, all he could do was
make maximum use of the difficult terrain to erect firm defenses and to try
to prevent any German counteraction against his salient from cutting off any
of his dwindling forces.
As Seleznev expected, German reserves soon made their appearance.
Soviet reconnaissance detected movement northward from the Belyi region
as early as late on 16 December, only hours after Soviet forces had broken
out of encirclement. These forces tracked slowly northward across the Obsha
River and along and west of the Belyi—Olenino road. Their progress was slow
because they first had to deal with Soviet forces (primarily from the 47th
Mechanized Brigade), which had been cut off in the region during the Ger-
man Belyi counterattacks. By 20 December the German reinforcements
began to affect Seleznev's forces in the Luchesa salient. That day and the next,
a German armored task force skirmished with forward elements of the 238th
Rifle Division's 830th Rifle Regiment, which had dug in at the village of
Zabolot'e astride a small track leading from Belyi to Ivanovka, ten kilometers
southeast of Ivanovka. This Soviet outpost was located in the rear of German
forces defending at Ivanovka, and, although the German flank was wide open,
the Soviet regiment did not have the strength to attack and roll up the Ger-
man flank. In fact, the force was also too small to be able to interdict the road
successfully. Consequently, at midday on 21 December, the regiment with-
drew northward through the heavy forests and occupied stronger defensive
positions at Malinovka, four kilometers southeast of Karskaia, where other
elements of the 238th Division had formed a strong antitank defense. It was
critical that the division retain Malinovka because its seizure by the Germans
would threaten the entire Soviet force in the Luchesa valley with encircle-
ment. The terrible terrain, however, favored defense.
Late on 21 December, German forces attacked at Malinovka, and in a
heavy two-day battle, the Germans seized the village and advanced on
Karskaia. Reinforced by elements of the 155th Rifle Division, the Soviets
halted the German drive short of Karskaia by 23 December and inflicted
enough damage on the Germans to force them to halt their attacks in that
sector. Now the action shifted eastward and northward to the region along
the Belyi-Olenino road. While the 238th Rifle Division was fencing with
German forces near Malinovka, other German reserves were observed
swinging in a wide arc eastward and then northward along the road toward
Emel'ianki, where the road crossed the Luchesa River north of the village.
The forward elements of these German forces reinforced their comrades,
who on 6 December had conducted the successful spoiling attack on the
Soviet forces who had been massing for an attack to penetrate across the
road.86
278 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
The next day the Germans began probing attacks toward Galitskina but
were halted by forces from the 238th and 155th Rifle Divisions. Fighting then
died down as the Germans continued to reinforce their positions along and
west of the critical road. During this period, Seleznev received formal notice
that Operation Mars had ended. He was not surprised, nor could he take
solace in the news, for his salient in the German's lines, the only positive Soviet
legacy of Operation Mars, now became a prime target for German counter-
attack. Less than a week later, on 30 December, the Germans struck against
his forward positions north and south of the Luchesa River. After three days
of fighting, Seleznev could be justifiably proud of the fact that the bulk of the
salient still remained in his forces' hands.
After the battle for Belyi had ended, on 16 December the XXXXI Panzer
Corps commander, General Harpe, turned elements of his successful force
northward to deal once and for all with the continuing crisis in the Luchesa
valley. He dispatched three Kampfgruppen northward in a fan-like maneu-
ver designed to strike and collapse the entire southern flank of the Russian
salient in conjunction with counterattacks by other German forces defend-
ing along the northern flank of the salient. Now, however, Harpe's forces
would have to contend with the same terrain obstacles that frustrated the
advancing Russians.
Harpe's northward thrust was led by the 1st Panzer Division's Kampf-
gruppe von der Meden, which advanced northward on 21 December along
the road to Ivanovka. Within hours Kampfgruppen Kassnitz (Grossdeutsch-
land Division's Fusilier Regiment) and Praun (129th Infantry Regiment)
joined the march up the Belyi—Olenino road, and elements of the 12th and
20th Panzer Divisions followed the next day. Von der Meden's group suc-
cessfully cleared the road to Ivanovka but ran into difficulty as it plunged
through the forest toward Malinovka. The division's history vividly described
the ensuing two-day battle:
Indeed, the advance of assault group Berndt (the 2d Detachment/lst Panzer
Grenadier Regiment) on Malinovka was hindered by strong minefields. The
2d Battalion, 1st Panzer Regiment (LTC Cramer), with two Mark IV, three
Mark III, and two Mark III T-38 (Skoda, 3.7 cm) tanks, which supported
the numerically weak panzer grenadiers, advanced very slowly along the
heavily mined tracks. The grenadiers, and especially the 7th Company, were
halted by sharpshooters firing from the treetops and suffered considerable
casualties. After the first minefields were cleared, group Berndt joined in
heavy combat, during which Lieutenant Angst, the commander of the lead
5th Company, was severely wounded. . . . Engineers from the 1st Company
of the 37th Panzer Engineer Battalion. . . overcame tree barriers and pene-
trated the 100-meter-wide dense Russian trench network with consid-
erable casualties. The advance then continued. Once again, numerous
280 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Zhukov's fury, and unlike their comrades to the south, they had emerged from
the ordeal bruised but unbowed. German forces had restored contiguous
defenses all around the Rzhev salient save the pesky gap in the line along the
Luchesa River. Elsewhere, Soviet gains consisted of a few meager kilome-
ters south of the Molodoi Tud River and an even smaller piece of blood-soaked
ground west of the Vazuza River. It was clear from field reports that German
forces could hold their new positions, at least for a while, despite the transfer
of some key panzer units south.
Model and his staff perused the most recent operational and intelligence
assessments and marveled at their accomplishment. Not only did the army
operational maps document their feat. So also did the stark words contained
in numerous combat reports arriving at the Ninth Army's headquarters. These
reports and other prepared by Model's staff provided preliminary assessments
of the recent carnage and the supposed impact of the crushing defeat on
Zhukov's shattered armies and future Stavka plans. The words literally leaped
forth from the paper and struck the Germans dumb. Model silently pondered
their meaning as he read: "Since the beginning of the winter offensive up to
14.12 [14 December], the enemy lost 1,655 tanks in front of our army; 4,662
captured and 610 deserters were brought in; and infantry weapons shot down
28 aircraft. 69 guns, 254 antitank and aircraft guns, 183 mortars, 441 machine
guns, and 553 command vehicles were captured."88 Model had already pon-
dered the estimates of over 200,000 Soviet dead passed to him by his subor-
dinate corps and divisions, and he was amazed at how the Russians could suffer
such immense casualties while conducting an equally ambitious offensive in
southern Russia.
Model went on to read the attached foreign news broadcasts that German
intelligence organs had intercepted and appended to the intelligence summary.
These only inflated his pride. From London came the news, "We are informed
from Moscow about the large Russian offensive on the central front that is
viewed as the heaviest blow against the German front and is, to some extent,
surpassing the offensive at Stalingrad."89 Reuters News Service added on 29
November, "The news from the beginning of the Russian offensive in the
center, which has taken a dangerous form, struck Hitler like a blow from a
club. The offensive is in full swing; important results are to be expected in a
few days."90 Another report from London received on 30 November, quali-
fied the expected success, stating, "The course of the Russian offensive in the
central sector is unclear. The battle here has not achieved the dramatic cli-
max that one could observe at Stalingrad. One must also consider that the sector
between Welikije Luki and Rshew is the strongest fortified sector in Russia. "91
Model chuckled to himself over the perceptive comment but went on to
read persistently optimistic reports that so accurately reflected the stubborn-
ness of the Russian assault. Their curious mixture of accuracy and misplaced
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 281
optimism surprised Model. On 2 December London reported: "General
Shukov has now broken through the German main defense line in at least
four places. Russian troops flow continuously through the breach in the first
enemy defense line and drive thousands of Germans in front of them across
the snow-covered, open land. The situation in Rshew is very dangerous. "92
Pravda chimed in, adding, "Courage is not enough. Only inventive spirit can
cause the fall ofRzhew."93
A longer news report from Moscow broadcast on ABC-Sydney speculated
over the intent of the Russian offensive but left no doubt as to its potential
importance. It recognized that the offensive had threefold value: "First, it
hinders Hitler's ability to throw his reserves to Stalingrad and the Caucasus;
second, it deprives him of his attack positions facing Moscow; and third, the
entire German front will be in disorder." The report added, "The Rshew battle
exceeds all previous in violence. Whatever meaning one in Germany attaches
to this battle, the fact remains clear that Hitler himself sent a telegram to the
commander of the Rshew Army, Colonel General Model, in which he stated
that the positions must be held at all costs." The report claimed that Hitler
recognized that "a Russian breakthrough will open the way to Berlin."94 Model
instinctively nodded his approval, appreciating the reporter's perceptiveness.
On and on went the news reports, and their candor and accuracy were
striking to all who read them. An English-language broadcast from Moscow
in early December announced, "On the central front the advance of the Rus-
sian troops was severely slowed. The blame is on the bad winter weather and
the strong German resistance."95 Several days later, on 6 December, Lon-
don announced, "General Shukow reported on the battle in the Smolensk
District, and the front from Rshew to Toropez is a single hell dominated by
an artillery duel."96 The next day, reflecting its increasingly realistic attitude,
Moscow played down its hopes for gaining territory, stating, "On the central
front the Russians depend not so very much on ground victory as on the de-
struction of the enemy. Not much optimism is called for."97
Soon the news reports shifted in tone to catalogue German successes. On
9 December a short and concise radio broadcast from Ankara, Turkey, noted,
"The Russian offensive has come to a standstill. In Berlin one is very confi-
dent about developments in the East. The German attacks in the central front
will become more frequent and stronger."98 The Russian Army newspaper,
Red Star, candidly echoed that sentiment on 13 December, noting, "The
Germans have carried forward heavy attacks west of Rzhev against the Rus-
sian lines. Until now, they have successfully repulsed all German attacks."
The same day the Reuters News Service reported from Moscow, "The Russian
offensive has come to a standstill. The Red Army is securing the conquered
territory against heavy German attacks and is carrying out a reorganization
of their forces before a new offensive can be begun."99
282 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
While reveling in the reports of his recent victories, Model could not,
however, help but note the chilling words, "new offensive." The very men-
tion of the words undermined the temporary rapture of victory that had seized
him and sent a cold chill down his back. Model was a soldier and a good one.
He was also a realist, and he understood that Zhukov and his hosts would
strike back, maybe not tomorrow, but certainly the day after. Anyone who
had fought Zhukov knew how stubborn, tenacious, and ruthless he was. He
had lost this battle and with it the lives of tens of thousands of Red Army
soldiers. But experience had clearly demonstrated that, to Zhukov, lives were
cheap and Russian manpower resources virtually unlimited. Yes, thought
Model, Zhukov will be back and as soon as he can.
The air of optimism that temporarily enveloped Model quickly dissipated
in a sea of realism, the optimistic news reports notwithstanding. As a realist
Model had to admit that the Russians had achieved striking initial success
despite good German intelligence that had predicted the attack with Teu-
tonic accuracy. Despite his skillful reaction to parry the assaults, the battle
had been particularly vicious, and the outcome had often been in doubt. As
a result, his forces had endured unprecedented privations and suffered im-
mense losses, at least by German standards. Now, as the battle ended, many
of his frayed forces were racing south to stave off the disaster that had be-
fallen the German Stalingrad armies. Deprived of his critical reserves, Model
doubted whether he would be able to replicate his success against a future
Russian offensive. Although he did not share these doubts with his staff, within
days Model began mentally working out a plan for abandoning the Rzhev
salient. More important still, he began formulating arguments necessary to
convince Hitler that it was in his best interest to do so.
On 26 January 1943, just over a month after the guns fell silent at Rzhev,
the Army Group Center commander, General von Kluge, recommended to
Hitler that the Rzhev salient be abandoned to shorten the front and forestall
possible future encirclement of the German Ninth and Fourth Armies. As
Model had expected, Hitler resisted bitterly. Nevertheless, Model and von
Kluge's arguments and the chilling realities of the situation on the front ulti-
mately prevailed. On 6 February 1943, Hitler approved the concept of
Operation
Bueffel
(Buffalo),
a
phased
withdrawal
of
German forces
from
the
Rzhev salient. The Germans implemented that plan between 1 and 23 March
1943.100
Headquarters, Kalinin Front, Staroe Bochovo, 20 December 1942
As early as 15 December if not before, Zhukov, Purkaev, and Konev well
understood that Operation Mars had aborted. They also knew that Stalin
realized this fact. Zhukov's decision to continue the assaults in as many sec-
Frustration, Fury, and Defeat 283
tors as possible, however, was born of past experience and the tenacity that
characterized the man. The lessons of the past year clearly indicated that vic-
tory often went to the force that committed its last battalion at a time when
the enemy had no battalions left. Zhukov understood that timidity did not
produce victory, and in the last analysis, the Red Army could use its numbers
to overcome German skill. If numbers did not prevail, then time and attri-
tion would.
Zhukov's rage over the cascading series of failures had abated by the time
he was forced to make the fateful decision to call off the assaults. That time
was 20 December, well after the point when he had squeezed every ounce of
offensive energy from his struggling forces. By then Zhukov's rage had been
replaced by cold calculation and a firm resolution to complete the job of
destroying German Army Group Center in the future. At midday on 20 De-
cember, after consulting with Purkaev and Konev, Zhukov phoned Stalin and
tersely recommended the offensive be formally called off.101 The conversa-
tion was brief and cordial, for Stalin too was a realist. He too could accept
defeat, and he understood that defeat was relative and temporary and had to
be considered within the context of the magnificent victory unfolding in the
south. Stalin listened to Zhukov's recommendations that the offensive be
called off and that Soviet forces be refitted for another attempt against Army
Group Center in the near future. Further, Zhukov advised that the renewed
offensive should involve more than just the Kalinin and Western Fronts.
Specifically, said Zhukov, should Soviet forces continue their advance in south-
ern Russia, the next assault should incorporate those victorious Soviet forces
advancing westward from the Don River.
Stalin approved Zhukov's recommendations without comment. Although
Operation Mars had failed, Stalin could not help but be impressed by Zhukov's
grim determination and irrepressible optimism over future victory. There
would be no recriminations over the Mars defeat, for although lost manpower
could be replaced, fighting generals could not. Stalin well understood that
Zhukov, although ruthless, was his best fighter. Silently, and to himself, Stalin
recognized that it was in his best interests and also the Soviet Union's to have
Zhukov share in the glory of the Stalingrad victory. After all, it was only ap-
propriate for a deputy supreme commander to do so. Later, Zhukov could
have his revenge against German Army Group Center,
On the afternoon of 20 December, Zhukov ordered hisfronts and armies
to cease the offensive and go over to the defense. Operation Mars was over,
and now Zhukov coolly catalogued and weighed the operation's costs and
consequences. As ever, his thoughts were on the future. His own armies had
taken a terrific beating but undoubtedly had exacted a huge toll on the de-
fending Germans, thus reducing their ability to defend the salient against
future assault. Zhukov also clearly understood that events occurring elsewhere
284 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
along the front would further weaken the beleaguered German army group.
Sadly, however, that German weakness could not be exploited in the near
future. Soviet fronts in the central sector were now too weak to attack and
would require several months to reform and refit for new offensive action.
More depressing still, his powerful reserves were now streaming southward
to reinforce and expand Vasilevsky's success. General Malinovsky's 2d Guards
Army with its two associated mechanized corps had already headed south and
so had General Rybalko's 3d Tank Army. Within weeks, these armies would
turn German defeat in the south into a near rout. As deputy supreme high
commander, Zhukov could share with pride in Vasilevsky's victories, for the
victories were Soviet. He would have much preferred, however, to partici-
pate in the triumphal march westward. He was convinced that time would
come.
CHAPTERS
Epilogue
THE ECLIPSE OF MARS AND THE DEMISE OF JUPITER
Tactical Remnants: The Hegira of the 20th Cavalry Division
Although heavy fighting around the Rzhev salient finally ended in late De-
cember, small portions of the once-proud Soviet cavalry-mechanized force
that had penetrated German defenses along the Vazuza River in late Novem-
ber lived on in the German rear area. In a striking instance of tenacity and
daring, the isolated cavalry force survived for more than a month and ulti-
mately made it back into Soviet lines. Its brief story must be mentioned, if
only as a testament to the sacrifice of those struggling at Rzhev and a pale
indication of what the Soviets might have accomplished had the offensive
succeeded.
During the frenetic attempt on 30 and 31 November by General Kriukov's
cavalry corps to extract its forces from encirclement west of the Rzhev-
Sychevka road, a sizable Soviet cavalry force was left in the German rear.
Commanded by Colonel P. T. Kursakov, the force consisted his 20th Cavalry
Division's 103d and 124th Cavalry Regiments, the 14th Cavalry Artillery
Battalion, elements of Colonel M. D. lagodin's shattered 3d Guards Cavalry
Division, and some troopers from the 6th Tank Corps. The isolated force
totaled about 4,000 men.1
With full authorization from front headquarters, which still felt that the
cavalry force could have an impact on ongoing operations, General Kursakov
destroyed his heavy weaponry and planned a thrust deep into the German
rear area, where his force would conduct diversionary actions in cooperating
with local partisans. Specifically, he sought to cross the Karpovo road to his
rear, enter the forests forty kilometers west of Sychevka, and from there
operate with partisan units against German lines of communications running
between Sychevka, Olenino, and Kholm-Zhirkovskii. The latter village was
located astride the key German communications route along the Dnepr River
midway between Sychevka and Belyi.
On 31 November, as fighting waned in the Vazuza bridgehead, Kursakov's
small force cut through the German cordon in its rear and reached the large
swampy forested region of the Pochinki Swamp, midway between Sychevka
285
286 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
and Belyi. From the safety of the swamp, Kursakov sent small detachments
to cooperate with partisans in attacks against German bridges over the Dnepr
and isolated German garrisons along the few trafficable roads in the region.
One such detachment linked up with the People's Avenger Partisan Brigade,
while Kursakov's main bodyjoined the Andreev Partisan Brigade on 6 Decem-
ber. Cooperating with Andreev's Brigade and the 25th Year of the October
Revolution, Sons of Voroshilov, For the Fatherland, and Peoples' Avenger
partisan detachments, Kursakov's cavalry wreaked havoc on German com-
munications, although not without serious losses. On 15 December cavalry-
partisan detachments destroyed two bridges across the Dnepr along the
Kholm—Sychevka road. A subsequent message from front to Kursakov read,
"Bravo, cavalrymen! Mercilessly smash the enemy rear area. Fiercely uphold
the heroic traditions of the First Cavalry Army. Fraternal greetings from all
soldiers, [signed] Konev, Bulganin."2
In late December the Germans responded to this increased Soviet di-
versionary activity in their rear area by tightening the noose around the "in-
fected region." Elements from security divisions and some regular formations
pressed in against the partisan and cavalry positions from the north, east,
and west. On 20 December a cavalry detachment led by Senior Lieutenant
Suchkov was ambushed near Zabolot'e, twenty kilometers west of the Belyi-
Olenino road and along the northern periphery of Kursakov's operating re-
gion, and Suchkov and four troopers perished. Two days later the Soviets
reciprocated by ambushing a German detachment at the nearby village of
Aksenino.3 It was obvious to Kursakov, however, that the cat-and-mouse
game could not go on indefinitely, since both German strength and his
casualties were steadily increasing. Moreover, the bulk of Kursakov's men
were now being used to defend the units' shrinking perimeter, supplies were
dwindling, and the weather worsened as the temperature fell to minus
twenty-five degrees.
On 24 December, four days after Zhukov called off Operation Mars and
just as the Germans were preparing for a final push into the Pochinki forests,
Kursakov received the message he had been awaiting. The Western Front
Military Council ordered him to break out of the forests and link up with the
Kalinin Front's forces. Marching at night in two separate detachments, Kursa-
kov's men were to traverse German defenses along the Olenino-Belyi road
and reach the 22d Army's positions in the Luchesa valley. All heavy weapons
and artillery were to be left behind in the forest. At the same time, the front
ordered the 22d Army to assemble a force to assist the cavalrymen in their
withdrawal. This task fell to Major A. F. Burda's 39th Separate Tank Regi-
ment, which had just been refitted after the heavy December battles along
the Luchesa River. Burda's force, reinforced by a ski detachment and medi-
Epilogue 287
cal personnel, was to exploit the gap in German defenses south of the Luchesa
River, cut the Belyi-Olenino road, and rescue the cavalrymen.4
Assisted by PO-2 reconnaissance aircraft, which flew at treetop level over
their heads to provide proper terrain orientation, Kursakov's cavalry group
moved out of the Pochinki Swamps during the night of 28 December. On
foot, the cavalrymen traversed the remaining forest mass and approached the
Belyi—Olenino road near Zhizderovo, midway between Belyi and the Luchesa
River and just south of the encampments of the German 12th Panzer and
Grossdeutschland Motorized Divisions. There, they ran into German motor-
ized security columns traveling along the road and they were forced to with-
draw into the forest to plan a forced crossing of the treacherous barrier. The
planned attack took place the next evening, and despite heavy losses the bulk
of the cavalrymen succeeded in crossing the road and reaching the region of
Red Forest State Farm, which lay several kilometers beyond. There Kursakov
planned for his final dash to Soviet lines, while light aircraft landed foodstuffs
and supplies for his exhausted men.5
The aircraft landings, however, attracted more German troops to Kursakov's
positions. On 1 January 1943, German forces closed in on his positions and
assaulted the aircraft that had been unable to take off because of heavy fog.
At the last minute, however, the pilot made it into the air, and Kursakov's
group withdrew to the safety of new positions. The fortuitous escape of the
pilot permitted notification of the Kalinin Front's headquarters of Kursakov's
precise location. The front then prepared plans to use Burda's regiment in a
concerted attempt to support final break out of the cavalry force.
On 5 January, Burda's reinforced tank regiment struck German defenses
east of Grivo, created a temporary breech in the German front lines, and
advanced to link up with Kursakov's two cavalry detachments. The first de-
tachment, under Colonel lagodin, penetrated German lines near Boevka and
reached the Soviet 185th Rifle Division positions, while the second detach-
ment, under Colonel Kursakov, reached the safety of Soviet lines shortly there-
after. For their feats, both lagodin and Kursakov were elevated to the rank
of major general, and many of the Tadzhik cavalrymen received high combat
awards. The harrowing forty-day raid remains a heroic footnote to an other-
wise costly and disastrous operation.6
German "Restoration" of the Rzhev Defenses (see Map 23)
With the exception of the "hole" in German defenses along the Luchesa River
valley and the forced withdrawal northwest of Rzhev, the Germans had lost
precious little terrain during the three weeks of heavy fighting. By late De-
cember they had erected new defense lines, straightened the front in several
Epilogue 289
sectors, and strengthened the defenses that had withstood the shock of the
vicious Russian assaults. To all appearances at Army Group headquarters, at
OKH headquarters, and in Berlin, the Rzhev position was once again secure.
Appearances, however, were deceiving. For although the Ninth Army had
absorbed the best the Soviets had to offer and had prevailed, the operation
took a heavy toll on the army's strength. Already smarting from its August
battles, Model's force could not withstand such a war of attrition, especially
at a time when critical panzer reserves were being routed south. The remain-
ing German divisions were •weak, panzer forces were worn down, and artil-
lery ammunition was approaching depletion.
Nevertheless, the Ninth Army heroically proclaimed victory in the fol-
lowing announcement to its men:
In a long and major three-week battle, the Russian assault divisions were
bloodied by [our] unprecedented sacrifice. . . . On 15 December the
Russian offensive collapsed, a major achievement by the German leader-
ship, ground troops, and Luftwaffe. The 9th Army "block," with the
bulwarks of Sychevka, Rzhev, Olenino, and Belyi, remains solidly in Ger-
man hands. On the ground—as always—the stolid infantry carried the
main burden of the battle. By their side stood the versatile, closely knit,
and concentrated artillery, the backbone of the defense. Tanks, assault
guns, antitank guns, and all other weapons contributed to the combined
success.7
A history of the operation later recorded Model's key role in achieving
this success:
This winter battle had made particularly high demands on the German
commander, General Model, because it exploded at four different loca-
tions at the same time. In many cases, he was to blame for the splitting
up of the formations and their piecemeal commitment. Model knew that
the soldier fought best in his group and that the separation of the unity of
the commander and his troops was difficult. However, often the danger-
ousness of the situation compelled the commitment of units where they
happened to be at that time. Intuitively, Model anticipated the enemy's
options and undertook the necessary long-range measures. The skillful,
timely siphoning of troops from non-active sectors—he surveyed all sec-
tors simultaneously—and the insertion of them into favorable strong points
was the secret to his defensive success. The English military historian,
Liddell Hart, wrote, the commander [Model] had "the amazing capabil-
ity to collect a reserve from an almost empty battlefield," and overcome
the situation.8
290 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
The operative words here, however, were "unprecedented sacrifice" and
the "dangerousness of the situation." The sacrifices could be measured by
the appalling casualty reports from German divisions. While giving thanks
to the officers and men of his division for "their great achievements in hold-
ing the Belyi 'corner post,'" General Kruger, the commander of the 1st Panzer
Division, noted wistfully, "The intention of the higher leadership is to pro-
vide us with new tools, to bring us replacements, and by doing so, to again
make us a complete combat instrument."9 He was referring, of course, to the
1,793 officers, NCOs, and men the division had lost in "scarcely four to six
weeks," of which 498 were killed or missing. Losses among the 1st Panzer
Division's command leadership, which included 5 battalion and 23 company
commanders and 8 of the 73d Panzer Artillery Regiment's officers, were
particularly irreplaceable and could not be corrected even by the awarding
to divisional personnel often iron crosses and fifty-six gold crosses.10
Model, of course, thanked the division for its efforts:
To the commander of the 1st Panzer Division!
In the subsequent winter battle at Rzhev, the outstanding offensive
spirit of the division contributed to the destruction of both enemy break-
through armies. After severe defensive battles in the early months of the
year, the division stood again in the fore and was used to destroy the con-
siderable enemy remnants in the forest district between Szytschewka and
Belyj. In the Kessel [cauldron] battle southeast of Rshew, it was the 1st
Panzer Division, which, in cooperation with the 2d Panzer Division, closed
the iron ring around the enemy. They held this line against all assaults
from within and without until the encircled enemy was destroyed.
The trial that the division had to withstand during the great defen-
sive battle at Rzhev and southwest of Kalinin at the crucial point east of
Szytschewka in August and at Belyj in November and December of this
year was hard and difficult. While the enemy breakthrough and renewed
mass use of tanks in the Gshat bend broke out, in the final hours the
division's heroic struggle brought the decisive turn in fortunes in the battle
at Belyj. In cooperation with the 12th Panzer Division, the division freed
the vital supply road at Belyj and later closed the ring of the cauldron and
the destroyed the enemy force which had broken through. . . .
The division will live forever in the history of the army, as the panzer
division which, in the most difficult situations, never failed. With respect
we think of the division's members who sacrificed their lives or health in
this battle.11
Within weeks the 1st Panzer Division was en route to France. It would
not see service in the East again until it once again entered the cauldron of
fire, this time near Kiev in early 1943.
Epilogue 291
The 5th Panzer Division suffered just as severely in the intense combat
as it blunted and repelled the Russians' thrust along the bloody Vazuza River.
In the ten days of heavy fighting after 25 November, the division suffered
1,640 casualties, including 538 killed and missing, and lost 30 tanks, of which
12 were later repaired.12 Losses in German infantry divisions in the sector
of the main Soviet advance and in the Grossdeutchland Motorized Divi-
sion were considerably higher and in other reinforcing panzer divisions
somewhat less. The cold fact was, however, that at this stage of the war these
units could not sustain such losses without severe denigration of their fight-
ing capabilities.
Despite Model's striking victory, by mid-January the handwriting was on
the wall. German defenses would not withstand another such Soviet onslaught.
As the preeminent German military historian, Earl Ziemke, later wrote,
Although the Army Group Center zone was quiet in the early winter of
1942-43 except for partisan activity, its front, in the long run, clearly was
untenable. The army group had no reserves. Its left flank was weak, and,
after the collapse of Second Army [in late January], its right flank was left
dangling in a void. When Army Group North secured permission to evacu-
ate the Demyansk pocket, the great eastward projection of Army Group
Center ceased to serve any purpose. To pinch off the Toropets salient was
no longer possible, and no one was thinking seriously any more of an
advance to Moscow. On January 26 Kluge recommended to Hitler a large-
scale withdrawal that would shorten the front and eliminate the danger
of the Fourth and Ninth Armies being encircled. As was to be expected,
Hitler resisted bitterly, but finally, on 6 February, he yielded to Zeitzler's
and Kluge's arguments.13
In no small measure, it was the damage done to Army Group Center by
Zhukov's furious but futile November and December assault that sealed the
ultimate fate of the German Rzhev position. The Germans abandoned the
Rzhev salient in March, just as Zhukov, unknown to them, was implement-
ing another offensive scheme designed to accomplish what he had failed
to accomplish in Operation Mars. Army Group Center's time would come,
but not until summer 1944, when Stalin and Zhukov would finally gain their
revenge.
The Reasons for the Soviet Defeat
Since few Soviet open sources have revealed the existence of Operation Mars,
few have commented on the reasons for its failure. Zhukov's wholly inaccu-
rate and incomplete account simply stated the following:
Epilogue 293
The offensive was conducted against fortified positions occupied by enemy
tank forces and in swampy-forested terrain in complex and unfavorable
weather conditions. These and other conditions favored the enemy. We
lacked the required cooperation with the infantry and reliable artillery
and aviation support. The organization of the suppression of enemy strong
points and especially his antitank means by means of artillery fire and
aviation strikes was inadequate. This led to the tank brigades suffering
great losses.
The corps, as I have already said, lacked its own artillery, with the ex-
ception of an antitank regiment. Our reconnaissance and communications
were weak, and that had an adverse impact on command and control of
forces. Finally, the demands of the front and army command to employ
the corps several times on this or that axis or with little maneuver often
did not match the existing situation. All of this severely hindered the ful-
fillment of missions.15
In the frankest of all the memoirs, General Solomatin, the 1st Mecha-
nized Corps commander, was even more explicit in his open criticism of his
army commander:
While examining the actions of the 1st Mechanized Corps on the Kalinin
Front, one must bear in mind that the encirclement of the corps and
several rifle brigades of the 6th Rifle Corps need not have occurred.
These forces could still have withdrawn when the clear threat of encircle-
ment arose. However, the 41st Army commander evidently considered
that, without the instructions of the front commander, the secured re-
gion was important to hold on to until the resumption of a new offen-
sive, and he counted on destroying the penetrating enemy and again
uniting with the corps. During the course of an offensive operation, such
a decision was fully permissible if it was advantageous and the com-
mander had sufficient forces and equipment to penetrate the encir-
clement front created by the enemy. However, in this instance, the
commander's concept was not finally realized because of the consider-
able numerical superiority of German forces operating against the 41st
Army. That is why the corps was not given the order to withdraw from
the enemy rear.16
Solomatin thoroughly recounted the errors made by his parent army and
his own corps command. First and foremost, he credited German victory to
the timely arrival of large German panzer reserves, which he erroneously
credited with possessing numerical superiority over the 41st Army's forces.
Furthermore, he pointed out that Soviet forces never had the opportunity to
Epilogue 295
Here, as before, the cooperation of units attacking from the front (the
1st Guards Rifle Division) and operating from the rear (the remains of
the 6th Tank Corps) was not [properly] organized, and units did not op-
erate in concert. The 1st Guards Rifle Division failed to support the 6th
Tank Corps attack, and its [the tank corps'] remnants, pressured by the
numerically superior enemy were, to a large measure, destroyed in Maloe
Kropotovo, lacking even the capability of withdrawing from combat be-
cause of the absence of fuel.19
While labeling the entire operation a failure, the critique candidly and coldly
assessed the causes of the disaster:
The main reasons for the failure of the introduction of the cavalry-
mechanized group into the penetration are as follows:
The blow on the right flank of the Western Front was delivered on a
narrow front. There were no strong supporting strikes in other [adjacent]
sectors. The offensive of the Kalinin Front's left wing also did not achieve
success. All of this provided the enemy with the opportunity to maneu-
ver his reserves freely. The element of surprise was absent because of poor
camouflage discipline, as a consequence of which the enemy knew about
the offensive preparations ahead of time and was able to bring forward
necessary reserves.
The shock group of the 20th Army did not penetrate the tactical depth
of the enemy defense because of the poorly organized cooperation be-
tween infantry, artillery, and aviation. The forward edge [of the defense]
was not determined precisely. As a result, the enemy firing systems were
not suppressed during the artillery preparation. The 20th Army's units
operated sluggishly and indecisively. The 20th Army's offensive and the
cavalry-mechanized group's operations were not supported by aviation
to the necessary degree.
One must note that the introduction of the cavalry-mechanized group,
when the infantry had succeeded in wedging its way into the depth of the
enemy defense a total of 4 kilometers and on a narrow front, was inexpe-
dient. The attempts to introduce the cavalry-mechanized group into an
incomplete penetration of the enemy defense led to considerable losses.
In this operation the tank corps lost around 60 percent of its strength
during attempts to penetrate the enemy defense, and, in reality, the
powerful cavalry-mechanized group was exhausted in futile attacks on an
unsuppressed enemy defense.20
As frank and accurate as the General Staff's critique was, it nevertheless
failed to point out that the premature commitment of the armor into too small
296 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
a bridgehead also prevented the subsequent forward movement of support-
ing artillery. As a result the exploiting forces had to engage a counterattack-
ing enemy without proper artillery support. Moreover, intense pressure from
Zhukov and the front and army commanders to achieve success in this sec-
tor, as in others, resulted in the conduct of repeated, suicidal, and costly frontal
attacks, which quickly led to the combat exhaustion of attacking units. Sadly,
but for obvious reasons, General Staff critiques seldom mentioned per-
sonalities by name. Nor did the General Staff analyze any other aspects of
the operations.
Soviet archival documents confirm these problems and surface many
others as well. Some of these materials highlight training, equipment, and
personnel deficiencies that certainly had an adverse impact on Soviet com-
bat performance. For example, these documents indicate that many Soviet
tank crews, in particular drivers, were inadequately trained, and many Red
Army soldiers lacked requisite cold weather combat garb. On 24 November.
Major General Dobriakov, the Western Front's chief of staff for rear services,
sent a message to the 20th and 31st Armies' chiefs of rear services and the
6th Tank and 2d Guards Cavalry Corps' deputy commanders for rear ser-
vices that acknowledged these problems. It cryptically read, "Comrade
Bulganin, the Western Front Member of the Military Council [commissar]
has ordered that you are personally responsible for issuing felt boots to forces
in forward positions by 2200 24.11.42."21
In addition, the appallingly high Soviet personnel losses forced the Red
Army to employ officers in combat who had earlier been judged as unfit for
such duty because of health or age reasons. For example, on 13 December
the Western Front issued its Order No. 019, which amplified an earlier order
from the People's Commissariat of Defense on this matter. It read:
Order No. 019, dated 13 December 1942, to Western Front field forces.
The front commander orders:
In accordance with NKO Order No. 0882, also reexamine all command
personnel whose state of health has previously marked them as unfit for
line [combat] duty.
Use command personnel who are identified as fit for line duty by the
reexamination to fill vacant positions in army operating units, in accor-
dance with their training.
Western Front chief of staff, Colonel General Sokolovsky22
Red Army combat reporting procedures also appeared to be lax at best.
A 3 December order from the Soviet 8th Guards Rifle Corps to its subordi-
nate formations indicated poor reporting procedures that may have concealed
the true combat readiness of the force from the eyes of senior commanders.
Epilogue 297
The order noted, "In all of their operational documents, the majority of for-
mations do not fully express their losses, trophies [captured equipment], and
enemy losses." "If the required daily reports were not forthcoming," said the
order, "strong measures will be taken for untimely reports or inaccurate
information."23
Apparently the situation did not improve, for on 15 December Lieuten-
ant Colonel Sidorov, the 20th Army's deputy chief of staff, sent the 8th Guards
Rifle Corps another message: "To the chiefs of staff of the 8th Guards Rifle
Corps' divisions, 15.12.42. It has been established that a number of divisions
do not present combat reports, operational summaries, and other operational
documents to the 20th Army headquarters or command posts in timely fash-
ion or at all."24 A week later the 20th Army's chief of staff once again demanded
that the offending rifle corps send a complete report on the operation.25 This
time, the corps finally did so (see Appendices).
Numerous archival documents underscore poor Soviet communications
security throughout the operation. For example, a 10 January 1943 order from
the 41st Army stated:
In spite of continuous orders to the 41st Army's forces regarding the cate-
gorical requirement to fulfill NKO [People's Commissariat of Defense]
order No. 0243 [on communications security] . . . during the operation
commanders at various levels, for example, the 6th Rifle Corps com-
mander, did not observe precautionary measures, and, failing to resort to
enciphered text, they spoke openly over the air, . . . which could not fail
to benefit German radio reconnaissance.
Major General Managarov, 41st Army commander
Major General Semenov, 41st Army member of the Military Council
Major General Kantsel'son, 41st Army chief of staff26
Other documents assert Red Army forces had already lost any effective
operational security because of the long delay in launching the operation. For
example, an after-action report submitted by the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps
noted: "In light of the postponement of the beginning of the operation, as
was determined from POW interrogations, the enemy discovered our prepa-
rations. As a result, he had time to undertake countermeasures beginning with
the strengthening of his minefields and the construction of trenches in the
depths, and, subsequently, the bringing forward of fresh divisions."27
Colonel Novikov, the 20th Army's chief of rear services, criticized the
army's subordinate units for sloppy camouflage and poor light discipline
during their preparations for the attack. Accordingly, Army Order No. 0906,
dated 25 November, stated: "In spite of various orders and directives per-
taining to light discipline and the importance of associated measures, there
298 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
were many instances when light discipline was violated. As noted by our pi-
lots, during daylight hours a large quantity of campfires and warming stoves
revealed the dispositions of our units and installations."28
In customarily thorough fashion, Soviet command echelons, in particu-
lar military commissars, criticized the conduct of their own forces during the
operation. One report by a political officer in the 8th Guards Rifle Corps
highlighted the "careless and irresponsible attitude toward the fulfilling of
combat missions," evidenced in the 150th Rifle Brigade by the brigade engi-
neer, Kremin, who "did not support the timely identification and seizure of
crossings over the Vazuza River." The same critique went on to state:
There were failures during the course of the offensive. A major defi-
ciency in combat procedure was the unsatisfactory organization of re-
connaissance. Reconnaissance was poorly prepared, reconnaissance men
[razvedchiki] were often not provided with concrete missions, and people
moved around carelessly. For example, the headquarters of the 26th
Guards Rifle Division began the offensive on the village of Zherebtsovo
without ascertaining the enemy's strength and his firing points."29
A summary of problems, prepared several weeks later by the same politi-
cal officer, noted other procedural deficiencies:
There were serious deficiencies in the slipshod organization of coopera-
tion with artillery and tanks. On 6.12.42 rifle subunits went over to the
attack and occupied one-third of the village of Zherebtsovo. According
to orders tanks [were supposed] to support the infantry. However, the
tanks appeared only when a strong enemy counterattack had pressed our
infantry back to their jumping-off position.
On 12.12.42, before the attack of our units on Zherebtsovo village, a
strong ninety-minute preparation was fired. It turned out that part of the
subunits of the 148th Rifle Brigade did not succeed in occupying their
jumping-off positions during the period of the artillery preparation. It is
apparent that the Germans had studied our offensive tactics. While the
artillery preparation was under way, they took refuge in their dugouts,
and when the artillery preparation ended, they climbed out of their slit
trenches, opened a hurricane of fire, and repelled the attack.30
Even unpleasant topics such as sub-par performances on the part of in-
dividual commanders and staff officers did not escape the eagle eye of criti-
cal commissars. In a report dated 7 December, one commissar lamented that
"the soldiers received the agreed upon norm of vodka extremely irregularly."31
In fact, the NKO had just increased the Red Army vodka ration on 12 Novem-
ber, effective the very day of Zhukov's offensive.32 Another commissar re-
Epilogue 299
port, dated 21 December, lambasted the 8th Guards Rifle Corps commander:
"The Corps commander, Major General Zakharov, undeservedly, and with-
out any sort of basis, awarded the medals 'For Bravery' and 'For Combat
Merit' to those serving him as driver, cook, adjutant, and his personal medi-
cal attendant."33 The Soviet General Staff later incorporated much of this
criticism, less the personal references, into volumes of processed "combat
experience" designed to improve troop performance throughout the Red
Army.
Numerous combat reports also complained about the spotty and often
poor morale of Soviet troops and their commanders. In an attempt to im-
prove the Russian riflemen's combat ardor and morale, on 27 November a
political officer in the 8th Guards Rifle Corps issued an order to all troops:
"The soldiers of the 148th Brigade were witnesses to the brutal execution by
Hitlerite scoundrels of three wounded Red Army soldiers. . . . During an
examination of the bodies it was established that the soldiers, who had been
wounded by fire, were then burned while still alive. The fascist monsters
wound rags and towels soaked in flammable liquid around the wounded and
threw them into a bonfire."34 While this report no doubt fired the Soviet sol-
diers' hatred of the Germans, it certainly did not reassure the soldiers con-
cerning their own fate.
Soviet commanders had to take special care to clear the battlefield of the
many dead and wounded, lest the carnage affect the morale of the remaining
soldiers. In some instances, this was not done promptly, as illustrated by this
grisly order issued by the commander of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps, Major
General Zakharov, and the Chief of Staff of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps, Colo-
nel Posiakin:
Order No. 0068, dated 2.12.42, to the 8th Guards Rifle Corps' formations.
In spite of my repeated orders and demands, formation commanders
and political deputies up to this time have not devoted attention to the
question of burying soldiers and commanders who have fallen dead he-
roically for our Fatherland. As a result, the bodies of the killed soldiers
and commanders remain unburied on the field of battle. The bodies of
the killed enemy soldiers and officers are not buried.
I order:
In the course of 2 and 3.12.42 bury the bodies of soldiers and com-
manders in their units' combat sectors and regions on the field of battle
and bury the bodies of the enemy by dragging them into shell craters.35
At times stronger measures were required to bolster discipline, if not
morale. For example, on 30 November 1942, the political officer of the 8th
Guards Rifle Corps sent a message to 20th Army headquarters that read, in
Epilogue 301
German intelligence reports amplified the numerous Russian failings. The
Ninth Army intelligence summary of 30 November recognized the poor Rus-
sian artillery support for advancing infantry: "No coordination of movement
and fire could be perceived, and as the attacks progressed the cooperation
between infantry and artillery deteriorated further." However, the same re-
port noted "the striking appearance of tank regiments commanded by [rifle]
divisions and brigades," which the report concluded was designed to remedy
apparent earlier Soviet failures to ensure cooperation between advancing tanks
and infantry.40 German reports also confirmed that the Russians committed
their armor and cavalry prematurely, before the infantry was able to achieve
an adequate penetration. Furthermore, the Germans assessed that the So-
viet consistently underestimated German strength, a tendency that the re-
port termed as congenital. Apparently, this mistake also led to considerable
"dissension" in Russian command channels. Another Ninth Army intelligence
summary, prepared on 3 December, confirmed the Russian underestimation
of German strength and the resultant Russian surprise when the German
commands committed fresh operational reserves at critical points of the opera-
tion. The new summary quoted from captured Russian documents indicating
that Russian formations had lost fully half of their initial combat strength.4!
When the Ninth Army prepared its 15 December intelligence summary,
it concluded that the Russians had already sustained a heavy defeat and "bled
themselves out." Model's intelligence staff attributed the overall failure to poor
enemy leadership:
The enemy leadership, which demonstrated skill and adaptability in the
preparation and initial implementation of the offensive, generally in strict
adherence to Stalin Orders No. 306 and 325 [on the use of assault groups
and concentrated use of tanks], once again displayed its former weaknesses
as the operation progressed. Indeed, the enemy has learned much, but
he has again shown himself to be unable to exploit critical favorable situa-
tions. The picture repeats itself when operations, which began with great
intent and local successes, degenerate into senseless, wild hammering at
fixed-front line positions once they encounter initial heavy losses and
unforeseen situations. This incomprehensible phenomenon appears again
and again. But, even in extremis, the Russian is never logical; he falls back
on his natural instinct, and the nature of the Russian is to use mass, steam-
roller tactics and adhere to given objectives without regard to changing
situations.42
The Ninth Army report noted the Russian tendency to commit entirely
new although poorly trained replacement units to combat and "to patch to-
gether" the remnants of destroyed formations in order to form forces with
302 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
which to launch new assaults.43 Criticizing the excessive rigidity of Russian
tactics, the German critique noted that the 130th Rifle Brigade attacked one
company after the other and "one after the other was destroyed."44 A similar
example occurred in a secondary sector on the Soviet 22d Army's left flank:
"The 262d [should read 362d] Rifle Division attacked on 25 November with
all of its battalions on line in accordance with the Stalin Order [No. 306]." It
then remained in that configuration, "although by evening it had already lost
half of its strength."45 The report failed to add that the ferocious Russian at-
tack forced German forces to withdraw their defenses several kilometers to
the rear.
Commenting on declining Russian morale, the Ninth Army report noted:
The combat worthiness [reliability] of the enemy is, on average, bad. In
November, again half of the replacements were from national minorities.
In many units, poor leadership and bad treatment have again produced
estrangement between officers and their men. A 18.11,42 report from the
262d [sic] Rifle Division referred to twenty-two deaths in a regiment due
to exhaustion and combat fatigue. A 4.11.42 order to the Kalinin Front's
troops pointed to "the indiscriminate shooting of Red Army troops for
insignificant reasons."46
The German critique once again underscored poor coordination between
the Russian infantry and supporting arms. While recognizing Russian attempts
to implement Stalin Order No. 325 regarding the effective joint employment
of tanks and infantry, it stated:
Cooperation between infantry and tanks is still lacking. A special enemy
weakness in tank leadership can be seen from the fact that, once an at-
tack has failed or is beaten back, it is repeated at the same place and at a
predictable interval without a change in tactics. Because of this, the effec-
tiveness of their tank defense weapons does not increase. According to
tank commanders, the order that tank company commanders should no
longer be in the lead, but rather remain in observation posts further to
the rear, has weakened attack momentum. It has [also] aggravated leader-
ship because only the company commander has a radio and there is [then]
no possibility to communicate with the force. Thus, the attacks often broke
up into actions by separate sections.
Insufficient agility was displayed on 25 and 26. 11 at Gredjakino (East
Front), when an entire separate tank brigade with fifty-eight tanks rolled
onto a German minefield and was severely decimated. Material replace-
ments arrived very quickly, especially at the East Front. The personnel
Epilogue 303
replacements, however, have been less good. Replacements arriving at
the 200th Tank Brigade had only five hours of tank driver training before
going into combat.47
On the other hand, the German's recognized and praised new Russian
methods for restoring and repairing tanks on the battlefield through the
employment of new "armored repair vehicles," which accompanied the ad-
vancing tank units. The newly fielded tank-vehicle [support] battalion, said
the report, "served the immediate procurement of munitions and fuel on the
battlefield."48 Regarding artillery support, in addition to noting deficiencies
in fire on the East [Vazuza] Front, the Germans noted that concentrated fire
support in the Belyi sector was nonexistent from the time the exploitation
began until 12 December, when German counterattacks were well underway.
Although operational and tactical shortcomings and leadership deficien-
cies at those levels obviously contributed to ultimate Soviet defeat, the prin-
cipal reasons why Operation Mars failed were strategic. Responsibility for the
defeat rested with Generals Zhukov, Konev, and Purkaev, who planned and
supervised the operation, with the Stavka and General Staff, which approved
Zhukov's plan, and with the army commanders who attempted to carry it out.
However, in a rigid command system such as characterized the Red Army in
late 1942, the principal Stavka strategic planner bore primary responsibility
for victory or defeat. In Operation Mars that commander was General Zhukov,
the overall coordinator of Soviet forces operating along the Western Direction.
Zhukov's preoccupation with the destruction of Army Group Center, born
of his frustration at Moscow in 1941 and 1942 and around Rzhev in August
1942, turned into a near obsession. It made him congenitally overly optimis-
tic and blinded him to both the possibility and strategic consequences of fail-
ure. Simply put, he lost track of the art of the possible and planned an overly
ambitious two-phased operation designed at nothing short of total destruc-
tion of the vaunted German Army Group Center. As planning proceeded.
Zhukov's optimism soared. In the end it was even tinged by self-delusion,
inherent in Zhukov's commitment to what became a self-fulfilling prophecy.
The enticing prospects for a successful larger strategic victory in Operation
Jupiter perverted his planning for Operation Mars and undercut whatever
realistic objectives Mars might have achieved. This was clearly evidenced by
the last-minute changes in force dispositions for Mars (specifically, the de-
tachment of 2d Mechanized Corps to the Velikie Luki sector) and by Zhukov's
persistent quest for even greater victory.
Once Operation Mars commenced, Zhukov was preoccupied with
achieving success, and his own innate stubbornness (tinged with jealousy of
Vasilevsky) prevented him from realistically scaling down his goals and ex-
Epilogue 305
Force
41st Army
1st Mechanized Corps
19th Mechanized Brigade
35th Mechanized Brigade
37th Mechanized Brigade
65th Tank Brigade
219th Tank Brigade
47th Mechanized Brigade
48th Mechanized Brigade
6th Stalin Rifle Corps
74th Rifle Brigade
75th Rifle Brigade
78th Rifle Brigade
91st Rifle Brigade
150th Rifle Division
229th Tank Regiment
22d Army
3d Mechanized Corps
1st Mechanized Brigade
3d Mechanized Brigade
10th Mechanized Brigade
1st Guards Tank Brigade
49th Tank Brigade
104th Tank Brigade
39th Army
28th Tank Brigade
81st Tank Brigade
46th Mechanized Brigade
28th Tank Regiment
29th Tank Regiment
32d Tank Regiment
20th Army
5th Tank Corps
24th Tank Brigade
41st Tank Brigade
70th Tank Brigade
6th Tank Corps
22d Tank Brigade
100th Tank Brigade
200th Tank Brigade
llth Tank Brigade
17th Tank Brigade
18th Tank Brigade
20th Tank Brigade
25th Tank Brigade
31st Tank Brigade
32d Tank Brigade
80th Tank Brigade
93d Tank Brigade
140th Tank Brigade
255th Tank Brigade
Losses
destroyed
destroyed
destroyed
destroyed
destroyed
destroyed
severely damaged
destroyed
80-90%
75%
75%
not shown (est. 60%)
over 50%
(infantry), 75% (tanks)
over 80%
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
not combat ready
50%
30%
5 T-34s and 15 T-60s, 70 left on 14 December out of
over 130 tanks committed
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
reduced to a battalion (21 tanks) by 14 December out
of over 200 committed
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
destroyed
destroyed
destroyed
destroyed
50%
destroyed
severely damaged
severely damaged
severely damaged
306 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Force
31st Army
145th Tank Brigade
332d Tank Brigade
30th Army
10th Guards Tank Brigade
29th Army
20th Tank Brigade
120th Tank Brigade
161st Tank Brigade
Losses
destroyed
destroyed
50%
destroyed (12-14.12)
severely damaged (12-14.12)
severely damaged (12-14.12)
The same German reports estimated personnel and equipment losses in all
committed Soviet rifle formation at between 50 and 80 percent.52
The final, comprehensive German count (estimate) of Russian combat
losses is as follows:
Category
Personnel
POWs
Deserters
Tanks
Field guns
AT/AA guns
Mortars
Grenade launchers
Machine guns
Armored cars
Vehicles
Aircraft
by the Luftwaffe
by the infantry
Losses
200,000
4,662
610
1,847
279
353
264
183
8,718
78
1,247
127
97
30
Understandably, given attempts by the Soviets to conceal the operation
and their general reticence (until recently) to deal candidly with the subject
of combat casualties, comprehensive and precise Soviet loss figures are not
available. However, fragmentary archival evidence and recently released
overall loss figures tend to support the German data. For example, archival
sources indicate that the Soviet 1st Mechanized Corps went into combat with
15,200 men and about 220 tanks (less the 47th and 48th Mechanized Bri-
gades). Of this strength, the corps lost 2,280 killed, 5,900 wounded, and all
of its tanks in the ensuing encirclement. Only 7,000 men emerged from en-
circlement with only their personal weapons, and many of these men were
wounded.53 At the same time, the 6th Stalin Siberian Volunteer Rifle Corps
lost about 22,500 of its initial 30,000 men in the same encirclement. East of
Sychevka, the 6th Tank Corps lost the bulk of its initial 170 tanks in late
November, and after being reinforced to a strength of 170 tanks, it lost most
of these tanks between 12 and 14 December. The rifle divisions of the 20th,
Epilogue 307
31st, and 29th Armies, which participated in the bloody and repeated frontal
assaults in the Vazuza bridgehead and along the Osuga and Gzhat' rivers, lost
up to 80 percent of their initial strength. Specific but fragmentary Soviet ar-
chival references to Red Army personnel and tank losses are as follows (see
Appendices for sources):
Force
20th Army
8th Guards Rifle Corps
26th Guards Rifle Division
148th Rifle Brigade
150th Rifle Brigade
1st Mechanized Corps
5th Tank Corps
5th Motorized Rifle Brigade
(5th Tank Corps)
2d Guards Cavalry Corp
Initial Strength
114,176 men
(24 November)
80,322 men
(11 December)
25,000 men (est.)
7,000 men (est.)
4,000 men (est.)
4,000 men (est.)
15,200 men,
224 tanks
131 tanks
(11 December)
1,650
men
(11 December)
Losses
58,524 men (12 December)
(including 13,929 killed, 41,999
wounded, and 1,596 missing), plus
10,000 men (after 12 December)
6,058- men (25-30 November)
(including 1,116 killed, 4,623
wounded, 197 missing, and 122
ill), plus 8,136 men (5-17
December) (including 1,540
killed, 6,095 wounded, 139
missing, and 398 from other
causes)
497 combat soldiers remaining
27 combat soldiers remaining
495 total men remaining (110 fit for
combat duty)
8,180 men, including 2,280 killed,
900 wounded, and 224 tanks
48 tanks (11 December)
23 tanks (12 December)
26 tanks (13 December)
827 men (11 December)
395 men (12 December)
171 men (13 December)
10,000 men (est.) 6,717 men
3d Guards Cavalry Division 1,600 men
2d Guards Cavalry Corps 1,200 horses
775 men, including 600 killed, 75
wounded, and 100 ill
1,150 horses
Overall, according to recently released Soviet loss data, the Western and
Kalinin Fronts lost 606,171 killed and missing and 1,172,948 wounded dur-
ing all of 1942. Subtracting losses incurred in the earlier Rzhev-Viaz'ma
(January—April) and Rzhev—Sychevka (August) operations and a reasonable
average daily loss rate for the remaining relatively quiet periods, this leaves
308 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
losses of about 100,000 killed and missing and about 235,000 wounded in
Operation Mars (see Appendices for a detailed breakdown of losses).54 This
closely accords with the German estimates. Even more significant, these losses
accord Operation Mars the somewhat dubious honor of being one of the most
costly Soviet offensive failures during the war. Expressed in different terms,
Zhukov lost 335,000 men in Operation Mars, which lasted less than a month,
and Vasilevsky lost 485,000 men in the two and one half months of the Stalin-
grad strategic victory. Furthermore, Vasilevsky's figure included not only
losses in Operation Uranus but also those incurred in Operation Little Sat-
urn, the Kotel'nikovsky Operation, and the operation to reduce the encircled
German Stalingrad force. Zhukov would replicate this bloodletting in strik-
ingly similar fashion when, in April and May 1945, the 1st Belorussian Front,
under his direct command, would lose 37,610 killed and missing and 141,880
wounded in the Berlin operation, about half of the total casualties suffered
by the three participating Soviet fronts.55
The failure of Operation Mars had two immediate consequences and
considerable long-term implications. First, and obviously, the follow-on
operation Jupiter had to be canceled. Stalin did this even before the fighting
died out on 23 December. Second, the Soviet's strategic focus now shifted
inexorably to the south. By the end of December, General Vasilevsky's armies
in the Stalingrad region had tightened the noose around German forces en-
circled in Stalingrad proper, repulsed a German relief attempt toward the
city, and expanded operations by attacking further north along the Don River
front. Thereafter, while Zhukov continued to argued for a resumption of op-
erations along the Western strategic axis, Stalin and the Stavka steadfastly
refused. Instead, they riveted their attention on the south. Accordingly, So-
viet strategic reserves continued to stream into that region. In the end, Stalin
had tired of reinforcing failure west of Moscow and now ordered most of the
larger Soviet formations in the strategic reserves to reinforce Vasilevsky's
efforts. General Malinovsky's 2d Guards Army led the march, followed by
General Rybalko's 3d Tank Army. Soon other reserves gravitated southward,
including the newly formed 70th Army, and the new 2d Tank and 5th Shock
Armies (which had just been formed from reserve armies), several separate
tank and mechanized corps, and masses of RVK (High Command Reserve)
artillery.
In addition, several of the Western and Kalinin Fronts' formations soon
ceased to exist, presumably because of the part they played (or failed to play)
in the Mars defeat. In early January 1943, Zhukov lost several of his more
valuable formations. The Stavka formed a new 1st Tank Army from the 29th
Army headquarters and the Western Direction's 3d Mechanized and 6th Tank
Corps. In February 1943, the new tank army, now commanded by General
Katukov, was assigned to operate under Northwestern Front against German
Epilogue 309
forces west of Demiansk. By April 1943, the 41st Army, now commanded by
Major General I. M. Managarov, who had replaced the unfortunate Tarasov
in late December, was abolished, and its troops were distributed among the
39th and 43d Armies. At the same time, General Solomatin's 1st Mechanized
Corps marched south to enter the fighting that was erupting around Kursk.
Despite this wholesale shift and loss of forces, Zhukov continued to insist
that the Western axis was still the most critical region and urged the Stavka
to include the region in its future expanded offensive plans. Ironically, in
February 1943, it was subsequent Soviet success in the south that, once again,
convinced Stalin that Zhukov might be correct.
THE ACHIEVEMENTS OF URANUS AND THE TRANSFORMATION
OF SATURN
Vasilevsky's Triumph
While Operation Mars was failing and General Zhukov's Western and Kalinin
Front forces were struggling and dying for possession of the Rzhev salient,
General Vasilevsky was presiding over an unbroken string of Red Army victo-
ries in southern Russia. By the time Zhukov's guns were opening fire along
the Vazuza River and near Belyi and Rzhev, the armored spearheads of
Vasilevsky's Southwestern and Stalingrad Fronts had already united near
Kalach on the Don, locking almost 300,000 hapless German and Rumanian
troops in the Stalingrad cauldron. The success of Vasilevsky's Operation Ura-
nus surprised even its planners, and the bag of surrounded enemy troops was
far larger than they had anticipated in their wildest dreams. Within days,
Vasilevsky and \\isfront commanders had to contemplate the imposing twin
tasks of destroying enemy forces encircled at Stalingrad and, simultaneously,
launching Operation Saturn to exploit further their Stalingrad success.
Soviet commanders were unaccustomed to coping •with offensive success.
Only once before, around Moscow in January 1942, had they been presented
with the opportunity to convert operational into strategic success. At Mos-
cow, the Red Army had attempted to build upon the victories they had
achieved during their desperate December counteroffensive. Soviet offen-
sive planning throughout the Moscow counteroffensive had been hasty, and
Soviet offensive techniques had been clumsy. As a result, during the January
counteroffensive, simple combat momentum as much as careful planning had
propelled Soviet forces westward toward Viaz'ma and Smolensk. During the
Battle of Moscow, Zhukov had planned subsequent operations before cur-
rent operations were complete, and the ultimate goals he sought to achieve
proved too ambitious and unattainable. In November 1942, the Rzhev sa-
lient itself bore mute testimony to Zhukov's winter failures. As a result, in fall
310 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
1942 the Stavka, Zhukov, Vasilevsky, and their subordinate commanders
planned Operations Mars, Uranus, Jupiter, and Saturn in far more careful
fashion in order to avoid the pitfalls of the previous winter and provide greater
order to future operations. Nevertheless, the successes they achieved were
new phenomena, and the Stavka and Stavka coordinators still had to learn to
cope with and exploit it. Operation Uranus's success provided that opportu-
nity and challenge (see Map 24).
In close consultation with the Stavka, in early December General Vasilevsky
prepared to reduce the Stalingrad encirclement (in Operation KingfKol'tso])
and, at the same time, planned Operation Saturn.56 For that purpose the
Stavka sent General Malinovsky's 2d Guards Army racing southward from
the Tambov region. The initial mission assigned to Malinovsky's army was
to serve as the exploiting force in Operation Saturn. His army was to drive
deep through German defenses, seize Rostov, and isolate all of German Army
Groups A and B in the Don bend and the Caucasus region. However, no
sooner had Malinovsky's army arrived in the Stalingrad region than the situa-
tion again changed. Vasilevsky's initial attempt to crush the encircled Ger-
mans failed because the encircled force was far larger than anticipated. At
the same time, the Germans complicated Vasilevsky's task by assembling relief
forces to rescue their beleaguered Stalingrad force.
In response to this sharply changing situation Vasilevsky quickly altered
his plans. First, he planned to commit Malinovsky's powerful army in the
effort to reduce the Stalingrad encirclement. Then, when the Germans
began mounting a serious effort to relieve its Stalingrad garrison by a thrust
from the southwest, he turned Malinovsky's army against the advancing Ger-
man force. These decisions deprived Operation Saturn of its most powerful
component and forced Vasilevsky to truncate Operation Saturn into Opera-
tion Little Saturn. While Operation Saturn had envisioned a deep Soviet pene-
tration across the middle Don River to Rostov in an attempt to encircle all
German forces in the Don River bend and the Caucasus, the new Operation
Little Saturn was markedly less ambitious. It entailed a shorter Soviet thrust
across the middle reaches of the Don River designed to envelop and destroy
defending Italian and German forces and to block the second German Stalin-
grad relief effort, which was to take place from the west.
In mid-December, while Zhukov was struggling mightily to revive the fate
of his faltering Operation Mars, Vasilevsky's armies struck southward across
the Don River, smashed Italian Eighth Army, and ended forever German
attempts to relieve their Stalingrad force from the west. Simultaneously,
General Malinovsky's powerful 2d Guards Army joined the Stalingrad Front,
repelled the German relief attempt from the southwest, and opened a drive
of their own toward Rostov. By the end of the month, German forces south
of the Don River and in the Caucasus were streaming westward and north-
ward toward Rostov and the Northern Donets River, with Soviet forces in
Map 24. The Winter Campaign: November 1942 to March 1943
312 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
hot pursuit. More important, the fate of German Sixth Army encircled in
Stalingrad had been sealed. It would finally surrender on 2 February 1943.
As Operation Ring crushed the life from German Sixth Army, Vasilevsky
and the Stavka then orchestrated a series of successive operations that threat-
ened to collapse the entire German defense in the south. The offensives aimed
to rout new German Army Group Don and destroy Army Group A, which
was then conducting a dangerous and precipitous withdrawal from its exposed
positions in the Caucasus. During January 1943 and in rapid succession, the
Soviet Voronezh Front, reinforced by the 3d Tank Army dispatched from the
north and soon joined by the Briansk Front, launched the Ostrogozhsk-
Rossosh' and Voronezh-Kastornoe operations. In these hastily planned opera-
tions, Soviet forces crushed Hungarian Second and German Second Armies,
cleared the western banks of the Don River of Axis forces, and initiated a
rapid Soviet advance westward toward Kursk and Khar'kov. Simultaneously,
the Southwestern and Southern Fronts pushed German forces back toward
Voroshilovgrad on the Northern Donets River and Rostov on the Don, liber-
ated the latter, and prepared for follow-on operations into the Donets Basin
(Donbas).57
At this juncture, Vasilevsky and the Stavka hastily planned two additional
major drives to exploit their January successes. This time the Soviet aim was
to destroy all German forces in the Donbas region, specifically German Army
Group South (the former Army Group Don, now commanded by General
Erich von Manstein). The first of these ambitious operations, code-named
Operation Gallop (Skachok), envisioned a triumphant Soviet march through
the Donbas to the Dnepr River and the Sea of Azov. The second operation,
code-named Operation Star(Zvezda), sought to seize Khar'kov, penetrate to
Zaporozhye on the Dnepr River, and protect Operation Gallop's northern
flank. Taken together, the two operations were to produce a decisive end to
the Soviet Winter Campaign. However, as these new operations developed
successfully during early February, the lost opportunities of Operation Mars
and Zhukov's continued preoccupation with the destruction of German Army
Group Center converged to have a profound effect on Stavka decisionmaking
and the final outcome of the Soviet Winter Campaign.
The Strategic Legacy of Mars
Throughout January and early February 1943, General Zhukov, pointing out
the damage his forces had inflicted on German Army Group Center and the
increased vulnerability of German forces in the Rzhev salient, strenuously
argued that Soviet forces should resume offensive action on the central front.
Although Stalin initially resisted Zhukov's entreaties, in late January General
Vasilevsky's series of unprecedented victories in the south finally provided
Epilogue 313
Zhukov the opportunity he had been waiting for. With the Soviet Briansk and
Voronezh Fronts advancing westward from the Don River against a damaged
and hard-pressed German Second Army, Zhukov argued that, given German
weakness in the region, Kursk should be added to the long list of Soviet win-
ter objectives. With Soviet success seemingly limitless, the Stavka could not
object. On 26 January the Stavka authorized the Voronezh Front to seize
Kursk while it continued its main advance on Khar'kov.
At this juncture, given the success of his armies, Vasilevsky too was af-
fected by Zhukov's optimism. By early February Soviet forces were approach-
ing Kursk and Khar'kov and had torn a huge hole in German defenses in the
Donbas. More important, Stalingrad had fallen on 2 February, and now all
or part of the six armies of Colonel General K. K. Rokossovsky's Don Front,
which had won at Stalingrad, were available for commitment elsewhere.
Zhukov's belief that his Western and Kalinin Fronts still had a vital role to
play in the Winter Campaign, the apparent early success of Vasilevsky's fronts,
and the availability of Rokossovsky's powerful Don Front prompted the Stavka
once again to revise its plans. This time, recalling the missed opportunities of
Operation Mars, Stalin and the Stavka heeded Zhukov's advice, and Vasilevsky
also assented to the new plan, for his fronts would play the principal role.
In brief, the new revised strategic plan involved the addition of a major
three-phased strategic operation (code name unknown) to the existing cam-
paign plan.58 During the first phase, the Briansk Front and the left wing of
the Western Front, soon reinforced by Rokossovsky's Central Front (the re-
named Don Front), would attack from north of Orel and from the Kursk
region to crush German Second and Second Panzer Armies' defenses in the
Orel region. Subsequently, in the second and third phase, Zhukov's Kalinin
and the remainder of his Western Front would advance from the west through
Velizh and from Kirov in the east to encircle the entire German Rzhev-Viaz'ma
grouping and link up with exploiting Central Front forces near Smolensk. The
grand plan, which was to commence on 12 February with the Soviet offen-
sive on Orel and expand on 15 February with the commitment to battle of
Rokossovsky's Central Front, represented the fulfillment of Zhukov's dream
and the satisfaction of his preoccupation. In essence, the operation was to be
a replay of Operations Mars and Jupiter, now writ large, in conjunction with
Vasilevsky's victorious forces.
As had been the case in November and December 1942, however, this
ambitious new attempt to accomplish the unrealized aims of Operations Mars
and Jupiter failed for many of the same reasons. Zhukov's infectious optimism
drove the Stavka, and this time Vasilevsky as well, to attempt to accomplish
too much with too little. The ambitious Soviet advance into the Donbas and
west of Khar'kov bogged down, the Western and Briansk Fronts' attacks
against Orel stalled in bloody fighting, and Rokossovsky's Central Front,
314 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
delayed by transport difficulties, went into action late and in piecemeal fash-
ion. Although Rokossovsky's lead elements pushed deep into the German rear
west of Kursk, they did so just as General von Manstein organized and car-
ried out a brilliant counteroffensive against Vasilevsky's overextended South-
western Front in the Donbas. Soon, while Rokossovsky's lead elements were
reaching the Desna River near Novgorod Severskii, the deepest Soviet pene-
tration during the Winter Campaign, von Manstein turned on the Voronezh
Front and sent it reeling back in defeat through Khar'kov. The Stavka, fright-
ened by von Manstein's triumphant northward march, then transferred criti-
cal armies from Rokossovsky's sector to stem von Manstein's advance, and
Rokossovsky's offensive faltered and collapsed. With it also collapsed the
plans for Zhukov's third operational phase aimed at the seizure of Smolensk
and the destruction of German Army Group Center. It is not coincidental
that this significant Soviet military defeat, nestled within the context of the
more public and notable operations in the Donbas, has also been largely
covered up and forgotten.
The failed February—March 1943 offensive left the geographical legacy
of the imposing Kursk salient at the center of the Eastern Front.59 In no
small measure, this famous salient was also an indirect legacy of Zhukov's
failed Operation Mars. It testified to Zhukov's preoccupations and bore
mute witness to Zhukov's hopes, which had been dashed in Operation Mars.
Zhukov would have to wait several months before he could exact his revenge
against German Army Group Center. He would finally do so at Kursk in
July 1943.
THE REPUTATIONS OF GODS AND MEN
History and the Gods: The Historiography of Mars
For decades after the end of the Great Patriotic War, the most profound,
heartfelt, and pervasive sentiment uttered by surviving generations of Rus-
sians was "No one will forget, nothing will be forgotten." The unprecedented
suffering of the Soviet people at the hands of the Germans and, often, their
own leadership dictated that these words would be more than a simple and
ubiquitous slogan, painted on banners, printed in books, and etched on cere-
monial coins. There were genuine reasons not to forget; foremost among these
were the many calamities suffered by the Red Army. It is therefore ironic
that many military defeats and the tens of thousands of Soviet soldiers who
died in them were, in fact, forgotten. A regime that, in part, was responsible
for the carnage thought it in its own best interest to play down defeat and,
instead, emphasize the historic victory of the Soviet nation and the socialism
that it personified.
Epilogue 315
The Soviet Union had no choice but to admit to the Red Army's mili-
tary catastrophes of 1941 and summer 1942, for these defeats were loudly
proclaimed in German circles and could not be concealed from public view.
After the Stalingrad offensive of November 1942, however, the strategic
balance shifted and with it the fortunes of war and the credibility of Soviet
history. From 1942 until war's end, the Soviets portrayed their military
experience as a continuous march to victory. Misfortunes occurred, opera-
tions ran out of steam, and from time to time the Germans launched counter-
strokes and counterattacks and achieved local successes. Despite these
unpleasant interruptions, however, the inexorable march continued to
Berlin and ended with the Wehrmacht's and Hitler's final destruction. This
military historical mosaic had few blemishes but only because Soviet histo-
rians willed it so.
The public face of Soviet historiography was at best a partially credible
tale and at worst a combination of half-truths and half-lies. As in the history
of any war, in reality, victories are punctuated by frequent and often sharp
defeats. So it was with the Red Army. The costly education that it began in
1941 and continued in 1942 did not end in 1943. This education by defeat
occurred even within the context of the more numerous victories in 1943,
1944, and 1945. During the period from 1943 through 1945, while the pub-
lic rejoiced in the victories at Stalingrad, Kursk, Belorussia, and Berlin and in
hundreds of other major and minor military operations, the Soviet political
and military leadership reported few defeats that the Soviet population could
lament or Soviet historians could analyze. As if to satisfy the morbid curiosity
of the public and the historical community and to maintain a modicum of
credibility, in the 1960s Soviet authorities exposed as a token the military
disaster they suffered at Khar'kov in May 1942. However, they did so only
superficially, so that Khar'kov could serve as a sort of "Potemkin village," or
lightning rod, for the subject of Soviet military defeats.60
However, amid the seemingly inexorable Soviet march to victory from
1943 to 1945, the Red Army suffered many setbacks, many of them signifi-
cant. Those that the Soviets did not totally cover up they usually explained
away as diversions, demonstrations, or actions of far less significance than they
really were. Included among these major failed military operations were the
first "Kursk" offensive of February-March 1943, the "Belorussian" operations
of fall 1943 and winter 1944, the East Prussian operation of October 1944,
and numerous offensive operations of lesser consequence.61 All were prod-
ucts of excessive ambition on the part of the Stavka. The most significant of
these failed military operations, however, were General Zhukov's Operation
Mars and the aborted Operation Jupiter.
The very name "Operation Mars" has lived in obscurity, surfacing only as
an isolated and partially explained name on a map and in the text of a Soviet
316 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
official military history.62 Few other sources, either memoirs or unit histories,
or even the few existing classified Soviet General Staff accounts, repeat the
operation's name. Only the Soviet and German Army archives and isolated
German accounts describe the operation's true nature, scope, and signifi-
cance. The operation that the code name "Mars" describes, formally termed
the Rzhev-Sychevka Offensive Operation, surfaces by name in few Soviet
sources, but never in useful detail.63 A few Soviet sources provide extensive
details about the actions of specific units that took part in the operation.
However, they do so without providing context or referring to the action by
code name or name, as if grudgingly testifying to the courage, skill, and en-
durance of units and commanders who fought in it without revealing the
operation itself.
Zhukov mentions the operation in his memoirs as a passing reference
within the context of the Stalingrad operation but without referring to it by
name. The few paragraphs he devotes to it are only partial in their coverage
and dismiss the operation as a diversion to keep German reserves away from
the larger and more significant Stalingrad operation. The other two Soviet
front commanders say nothing about the operation. General Purkaev wrote
no memoirs, and General Konev, conveniently, began his memoirs with events
in January 1943. Nor did the Soviet army commanders of Mars "write their
memoirs. The only Soviet army-level unit history about an army that partici-
pated in the operation, 31st Army, skips the period entirely. Fragmentary
references to the operation appear only in corps-, division-, and brigade-level
unit histories.
General M. E. Katukov, the future 1st Tank Army commander, and his
associates in that army, Colonels A. Kh. Babadzhanian and D. A. Dragunsky,
mention the operation, but only briefly. Katukov notes cryptically, "On 25
November the Rzhev—Sychevka operation of the Kalinin and Western Fronts
began," but says little more.64 The most thorough of the Soviet accounts were
memoirs written by Generals M. D. Solomatin and A. L. Getman and the
unit history of the 5th Tank Corps. Solomatin reveals the full extent of his 1st
Mechanized Corps' participation in the operation and reflects the Khrush-
chevian spirit of glasnost' that flourished briefly at the time the book was
published. Getman's memoir and the 5th Tank Corps history (a product of
Gorbachev's glasnost') describe the specific actions of 6th and 5th Tank Corps
in the operation but also fail to provide essential operational context. All of
these sources were written either during the period of the Khrushchev "thaw"
or during the late 1980s, when greater historical candor was in vogue. De-
spite the modest efforts of these few authors, the real story of Operation Mars
remains untold in Russian publications.
Despite the Soviet and Russian silence on Operation Mars, many Ger-
man sources vividly reveal the story of the operation, without specifically
Epilogue 317
mentioning the operation's name or revealing its ambitious scale and poten-
tial impact. So do many formerly classified Soviet materials, although most
details of the operation remain locked in the Soviet archives. It is here, in
German divisional histories and operational accounts and in thousands of raw
Soviet archival records and processed studies by the Soviet Army General
Staff, that Operation Mars returns to life. More than fifty years after the three
weeks of unprecedented carnage, the story of Mars and the hundreds of thou-
sands of Soviet and German soldiers who fought and suffered in it can finally
be told.
Mars in the Galaxy of Operations
Within the galaxy of operations that the Stavka launched in late 1942, those
few who have mentioned it have dismissed Operation Mars as a skillful diver-
sionary operation. The official line, as argued by Zhukov and most lower-
level Soviet commanders, is that Operation Mars was launched in late
November or early December to prevent German reserves in the center
from reinforcing German forces in the southern Soviet Union. Therefore,
they argue, Operation Mars contributed to Soviet success in the Stalingrad
victory and, thus, was justified. These arguments are at best disingenuous and
at worst blatant lies. In terms of its timing, scale, scope, expectations, and
consequences, the Stavka intended Operation Mars to be as significant, if
not more so, than Operation Uranus.
Contrary to Zhukov's official explanation, the planning for Operation Mars
was complete by 1 October, and Soviet forces were to begin the operation
on 12 October 1942. Subsequently, bad weather and logistical problems
delayed the operation's commencement until 28 October and, finally, 25
November. As originally planned, Mars was to be complete before the launch
of Uranus, and the latter would prevent the German High Command from
repairing the damage done to German forces along the Moscow—Berlin axis
in the critical central sector. Once the attack date was changed to Novem-
ber, the Stavka believed Mars would benefit directly from the diversionary
value of the southern (Stalingrad) blow, since key German operational re-
serves would likely be drawn away from the center to the threatened regions
in southern Russia.
The aims of Operation Mars were strategic in scope and in no way infe-
rior to those of Operation Uranus. During Operation Mars more than half of
the forces of the Kalinin and Western Fronts were to envelop the Rzhev
salient and destroy a single German army, the Ninth. During follow-on
Operation Jupiter, the two fronts' remaining forces would smash the bulk of
a full German Army Group, Army Group Center. The key objectives in these
two operations were Sychevka, Viaz'ma, and Smolensk, located at tactical,
318 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
operational, and strategic depths in the German rear. The objectives of Opera-
tion Uranus were similar. In Uranus about half of the forces of three smaller
fronts (Southwestern, Don, and Stalingrad) were to envelop German forces
in the Stalingrad region to destroy a single German Army, the Sixth. During
follow-on Operation Saturn, the full forces of the three fronts were to de-
stroy the bulk of a German Army Group, Army Group B. The key objectives
in Uranus and Saturn were Stalingrad, Morozovsk, and Rostov, at tactical,
operational, and strategic depths in the German rear.
The scale and strength of forces operating in the twin offensives were also
similar (see Appendices). In November 1942, the Kalinin and Western Fronts
and the Moscow Defense Region numbered 1,890,000 men, 24,682 guns and
mortars, 3,375 tanks and self-propelled guns, and 1,170 aircraft. The South-
western, Don, and Stalingrad Fronts counted 1,103,000 men, 15,501 guns
and mortars, 1,463 tanks and self-propelled guns, and 1,463 aircraft. In Opera-
tion Mars Zhukov committed about 668,000 men and almost 2,000 tanks to
his main assaults and had another 415,000 men and 1,265 tanks ready for
commitment in Jupiter. In Uranus Vasilevsky initially committed about
700,000 men and 1,400 tanks and, thereafter, another 400,000 and 1,200 tanks
in the altered Saturn phase.
Not counting the offensive at Velikie Luki, which was designed to sup-
port his Mars effort, Zhukov's twofronts employed seven armies in their offen-
sive (the 41st, 22d, 39th, 30th, 31st, 20th, and 29th) and Vasilevsky's three
fronts employed seven (the 5th Tank, 21st, 65th, 24th, 64th, 57th, and 51st).
This amounted to 36.5 Soviet division equivalents participating in Mars and
34.5 in Uranus. Zhukov committed six mobile corps (the 1st and 3d Mecha-
nized, 5th, 6th, and 8th Tank and 2d Guards Cavalry) in support of Opera-
tion Mars (and a seventh at Velikie Luki), while Vasilevsky committed eight
(the 1st, 4th, 13th, 16th, and 26th Tank, 4th Mechanized, and 4th and 8th
Cavalry) in support of Uranus. In terms of mobile brigade equivalents, Zhukov
committed 39 in Mars and Vasilevsky 33 in Uranus. In terms of artillery and
engineer support, Zhukov supported Mars with 48 artillery regiments, 21
antitank regiments, 15 antiaircraft regiments, and 21 engineer battalions, while
Vasilevsky supported Uranus with 54 artillery regiments, 34 antitank regi-
ments, 21 antiaircraft regiments, and 29 engineer battalions. Thus, in terms
of numbers and strength, the two operations were roughly equivalent.
In terms of the relative prestige of commanders who participated in each
operation, Mars had its share of existing and future luminaries, even taking
into account the reputations and careers destroyed in the operation. The most
respected Soviet military leader, General Zhukov, commanded the operation,
and, assisted by the political leadership and Soviet historians, he remained
the most respected Soviet wartime military leader. Generals Purkaev and
Konev were preeminent front commanders and would remain so. Konev's
Epilogue 319
reputation and stature would even improve throughout the remainder of the
war. Although most participating army commanders disappeared into obscu-
rity after the operation, most had been chosen for command because of their
proven worth and audacity. Some of the best of the Red Army's mobile force
commanders served in Mars, including many of the most highly rated tank
commanders, such as Generals Katukov, Getman, and Solomatin, and the
rising cavalry star, General Kriukov.
The potential strategic implications of Operation Mars were of equal or
even greater significance than the strategic implications of Uranus. In Novem-
ber 1942 the Rzhev salient represented the apex of German forward posi-
tions in the East, less than 200 kilometers from Moscow. In the eyes of Stavka
planners, the formidable German forces that occupied the salient posed a
genuine future threat to Moscow. Elimination of the salient and with it the
most powerful of German Army Groups would remove this threat. More
important, victory in Operation Mars would propel Soviet forces westward
in the most critical front sector along the shortest route from Moscow to
Rerlin. On the other hand, the Stalingrad region was far more remote, and
while German success there might facilitate subsequent German advance into
the raw materials-rich Caucasus, it was clear by October 1942 that both the
German Stalingrad drive and their Caucasus thrust had run out of steam.
While Operation Uranus might succeed, subsequent operations to drive
German forces from the vast extent of southern Russia would, of necessity,
be long and time-consuming. Victory in the more vital center, the Stavka
reasoned, would likely hasten German defeat and withdrawal in the south
and, at the same time, spare the time and expense of conducting repeated
large-scale operations at the extremities of an already overstretched Soviet
logistical umbilical. In short, strategic issues could be better resolved in a
sector where Soviet strength could be more easily applied and where strate-
gic benefits would be more quickly realized.
A final yardstick for measuring the significance of Operation Mars with
respect to Operation Uranus is the human and material cost of the operation.
During the three weeks of Operation Mars, Zhukov's forces lost about 100,000
soldiers killed and missing and 235,000 wounded. On the other hand, through-
out the entire duration of his operations (19 November 1942 through 2 Feb-
ruary 1943) Vasilevsky's fronts lost 154,885 killed and missing and 330,892
wounded.65 In addition, Zhukov's forces lost over 1,600 tanks, more than the
total number of 1,400 tanks that Vasilevsky committed in Operation Uranus.
Such catastrophic losses, which were matched by few Soviet offensive opera-
tions in the war, help explain why Soviet forces along the Western axis had
such difficulty resuming successful offensive operations in the future.
Finally, in terms of scale, scope, strategic intent, and consequences, Op-
eration Mars was analogous to the circumstances Allied military leaders would
Epilogue 321
lushkevich fared better. Apparently wounded in December 1942, he
returned to command the 22d Army in April 1943, and commanded that
army and 3d Shock Army until August 1944. In late 1944 he became the
commander of the reformed Odessa Military District and ended the war as
a colonel general.67
N. I. Kiriukhin, the commander of the ill-fated 20th Army, was also rel-
egated to relative obscurity, serving later in the war as deputy commander of
the 38th Army.68 A. I. Zygin served as the 39th Army commander until ap-
pointed commander of the 4th Guards Army in September 1943. He died in
combat along the Dnepr River on 27 September 1943.69 E. P. Zhuravlev of
the neighboring 29th Army relinquished command of his army in January 1943
and, later in the war, commanded in succession the 53d, 68th, 21st, and 18th
Armies. After December 1944 he served in various Red Army staff director-
ates and in the Commissariat of Defense.70
V. la. Kolpakchi commanded the 30th Army until April 1943 and thereaf-
ter commanded the 63d and 69th Armies until war's end. His reputation peaked
in 1945, when he was made Hero of the Soviet Union for his army's perfor-
mance in the Vistula-Oder operation. After participating in the Berlin opera-
tion, Kolpakchi commanded several Soviet military districts during the postwar
years and died in an aviation accident in 1961.71 V. S. Polenov, the 31st Army
commander whose forces barely dented German defenses, took command of
the 5th Army in February 1943 and later commanded the 47th Army during
operations in Poland. He ended the war as a corps commander and, after the
war, commanded several military districts.72 None of Zhukov's army comman-
ders in Operation Mars achieved great notoriety or •wrote significant memoirs.
Compared with Zhukov's commanders at Rzhev, Vasilevsky's front and
army commanders fared far better. N. F. Vatutin, commander of the South-
western Front, commanded the Voronezh and 1st Ukrainian Fronts with
distinction through Kursk and into 1944, when he was killed by Ukrainian
partisans just before launching his decisive offensive to clear German forces
from the Ukraine. After Vatutin's death, Zhukov took command of his front
and led it in the successful operation. K. K. Rokossovsky, commander of the
Don Front at Stalingrad, commanded a succession of fronts thereafter through
the Berlin operation. A. I. Eremenko of Stalingrad Front likewise com-
manded at front level in the Baltic region. Vasilevsky's army commanders
P. L. Romanenko (5th Tank), P. I. Batov (65th), I. M. Chistiakov (21st),
V. I. Chuikov (62d), M. S. Shumilov (64th), and others continued their ser-
vice at army level or above throughout the war, as clear beneficiaries of
Operation Uranus. Most achieved lasting fame, and almost all wrote sig-
nificant memoirs.
The armies of Operation Mars suffered a mixed fate, largely due to the
heavy losses they had suffered in the operation. The two main attack armies,
322 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
the 41st and 20th, never again participated in major offensive operations. In
March 1943 the 41st Army's number disappeared from the Red Army order
of battle. Its forces were redistributed to the 39th and 43d Army, and the
army headquarters provided the manpower for a new Reserve Front. The
20th Army remained in front second echelon or in the Stavka reserve until
April 1944, when it too was abolished. In January 1943 the Stavka allocated
the few surviving troops of the 29th Army to the 5th and 33d Armies, and the
army headquarters provided staff personnel for the newly forming 1st Tank
Army. Soon after Operation Mars, the 22d Army was transferred to North-
western Front control and participated with that front (and the 2d Baltic
Front) in combat in secondary sectors until war's end. The less damaged 30th
Army was reorganized in April 1943 into the new 10th Guards Army. Only
the 31st Army fought until war's end and it did so along the Moscow—Warsaw-
Berlin axis. It was the only Mars army to be the subject of a unit history (al-
though without any reference to Operation Mars).
On the other hand, Vasilevsky's armies were well rewarded for their ser-
vice in Uranus. Six armies (the 63d, 21st, 24th, 66th, 62d, and 64th) were
transformed into guards armies soon after the Stalingrad operation, and a
seventh (the 5th Tank) was belatedly reorganized as the first guards tank
army after its destruction at Khar'kov in March 1943, in part for its perfor-
mance in Uranus. The exploits of all six armies are detailed in substantial
unit histories.
The Soviet corps commanders of Operation Mars fared considerably
better than their army counterparts (particularly, the commanders of mobile
corps). This was so probably because the commanders either performed better
or were shielded from criticism by army commanders, who became the scape-
goats for the operational failures. The commander of the 20th Army's Cav-
alry-Mechanized Group and 2d Guards Cavalry Corps, General V. V. Kriukov,
commanded his cavalry corps through the remainder of the war. He earned
the rank of lieutenant general and title of Hero of the Soviet Union in April
1945 for his actions during operations in Poland.73 General M. E. Katukov
took command of the newly founded 1st Tank Army in January 1943 and led
the army with distinction throughout the remainder of the war. By war's end,
Katukov was one of the Red Army's most distinguished and accomplished
tank army commanders, and his army had been awarded the guards designa-
tion. General A. P. Getman, the commander of the 6th Tank Corps, although
not in command during Operation Mars, rose to become one of the Red
Army's most prominent tank corps commanders. He commanded his corps
(renamed
the
llth
Guards Tank)
in
Katukov's tank army during
the
pivotal
operations later in the war and at Berlin. General M. D. Solomatin also com-
manded the 1st Mechanized Corps throughout the war, first separately and
Epilogue 323
later, at Berlin, subordinate to the 2d Guards Tank Army. Katukov, Getman,
and Solomatin all wrote detailed and accurate histories of their formations'
wartime performances.
Major General K. A. Semenchenko, the commander of the 5th Tank
Corps, who had been awarded the title of Hero of the Soviet Union in 1941
when in command of the 22d Mechanized Corps' 19th Tank Division, lan-
guished during the remainder of the war and entered the reserves in 1947.74
Those division and brigade commanders who survived the ordeal of Mars
fought on, and some of those who survived the war, like Colonels Dremov
and Babadzhanian, achieved lasting fame.
Although the reputations of many Soviet commanders suffered, their
German counterparts continued to thrive until death in combat or defeat
embraced them all. General Model, the Ninth Army commander, rose on
the basis of his reputation as a fighting general to command Army Group
North, South, and, after the collapse of Army Group Center in June and July
1944, that Army Group as well. Model burnished his fame by turning back
Russian forces from the gates of Warsaw in August 1944 and went on to com-
mand the Western Theater until his forces were encircled by American forces
in the Ruhr in spring 1945. Defiant to the end, Model committed suicide to
avoid capture.
The commander of Model's XXXIX Panzer Corps, von Arnim, relin-
quished command of his corps on 1 December 1942, and was assigned to
duty in North Africa. There, he had the dubious distinction of surrendering
the remnants of German and Italian forces in that theater to American and
British forces. General Joseph von Harpe, the commander of the XXXXI
Panzer Corps, rose to the rank of colonel general and commanded Army
Group A. Hitler fired von Harpe as army group commander at the height of
the January 1945 Vistula-Oder operation. General Karl Hilpert of the XXIII
Army Corps ended the war a colonel general in command of Army Group
Courland, which ended the war isolated by the Soviets west of Riga. General
Maxmilian von Fretter-Pico, whose XXX Corps rescued German troops be-
leaguered at Belyi, soon deployed southward to stem the Soviet tide sweep-
ing westward from Stalingrad. By late 1944 he commanded the German Sixth
Army in Hungary.
The history of Operation Mars served its master, the Soviet state, well.
What was important to remember was remembered; what was not was for-
gotten. Stalin saved from disgrace those commanders whom he judged could
still make valuable contributions to the war effort. And, as required, Soviet
historians wrote and rewrote history to preserve their reputations. Unfortu-
nately for many commanders below front level, ideology and necessity did
not require their salvation.
324 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
History and the Fallen
Sadly, but characteristically, Red Army lower-ranking officers, noncom-
missioned officers, and enlisted men who fell or were maimed in Operation
Mars or who survived its conduct suffered the cruelest fate of all. As if the
toll of dead and injured were not enough, the Soviet state committed the
gravest injustice of all by ignoring the personal sacrifice of the tens of thou-
sands who fell in battle and by forgetting those who survived. Neither mark-
ers nor monuments memorialize their struggle and suffering, and history
has expunged their magnificently futile efforts. The silence of the dead could
not challenge this ignominy, and the living lived only with memories that
echoed the silence of the dead. For the ensuing fifty years, a generation of
survivors could neither openly discuss nor read about their operation as they
watched hundreds of thousands of other soldiers lionized for their sacri-
fices at Stalingrad.
History, however, has a long memory and a terrible vengeance. Soviet
authorities could not eradicate the thousands of German accounts and the
treasure trove of archival documents that chronicled the operation. Nor could
the stifling controls of the authoritarian system utterly silence man's inher-
ent yearning for the truth. Despite the system, enough fragments of the truth
leaked out in memoirs and unit histories to substantiate the German infor-
mation. Today, after the Soviet system has perished, the veil of secrecy has
finally been lifted on Operation Mars. Archival evidence clearly indicates the
truth of the German reports and has vindicated those Russian veterans who
strove to expose the truth in spite of the system that suppressed it.
History also rewards the patience of those who wait in silence. Today it
vindicates those who served in Operation Mars by remembering what was
long forgotten and by finally listening to the silent cries of the dead and the
entreaties of the forgotten survivors. At last, Mars has assumed its rightful
place in the galaxy of Soviet military operations.
APPENDIX A
From the Archives: Selective Orders
and Directives from Operation Mars
The 20th, 29th, and 31st Armies and Subordinate Formations
TOP SECRET: SPECIAL IMPORTANCE.
Front Directive No. 0289, 1 October 1942. 0240 hours.
To the Commanders of the 31st and 20th Armies; copy to the chief of the Red Army
General Staff.
For destruction of the enemy Sychevka-Rzhev grouping, I order:
1. To the commander of the 31st [army] grouping, consisting of the 88th, 239th,
336th, and 20th Guards Rifle Divisions, the 32d and 145th Tank Brigades, sevenjRVK
artillery regiments, and six multiple-rocket launcher battalions (including four M-30
battalions). Deliver a blow from the^rorat sector from Staroselovo to Kriukovo (in-
clusive) along the Osuga, Artemovo, and Ligastaevo axis. The immediate mission is
to penetrate the enemy front, secure the railroad in the sector KAZ (four kms north
of Osuga), Osuga Station, and Osuga River with the [army] main force. The subse-
quent mission is to attack with the main grouping west of the railroad in the direc-
tion of Rzhev and, together with the 29th, 30th, and 20th Armies, destroy the enemy
Rzhev grouping.
2. To the commander of the 20th [army] grouping, consisting of the 251st, 331st,
415th, 26th Guards, 42d Guards, 247th and 379th Rifle Divisions, the 148th and 150th
Tank Brigades, the llth, 17th, 25th, 31st, 93d, 255th, 240th, 18th, and 80th Tank
Brigades, eighteen RVK artillery regiments, and sixteen multiple-rocket launcher
battalions (including ten M-30 battalions). Strike a blow from the/ront sector Vasel'ki
to Pechora in the direction of Sychevka. The immediate mission is to penetrate the
enemy front and, with [army] main forces, secure Sychevka and the railroad in the
Osuga River, Sychevka sector. The subsequent mission is to cover firmly the Podsoson'e,
Sychevka, and Marinino sector and along the Vazuza from the west and southwest. . . .
Attack with a main force of not less than four reinforced divisions in a northern
and northwestern direction from a line extending from lakovka through luratino to
Podsoson'e through Karpovo, Osuiskoe, and Afonasovo, and, together with the 30th
and 31st Armies and the Kalinin Front's units, destroy the enemy Rzhev grouping.
3. The boundary line between the 31st and 20th Armies is to Kortnevo, as before;
further along the Osuga River to Kasatino; and further to KuPnevo and Afonasovo; all
points are inclusive for the 20th Army.
4. The armies are to be ready to attack on 12 October.
5. When the enemy front has been penetrated, the mobile group, consisting of
the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps and the 6th Tank Corps, under command of the 2d
Guards Cavalry Corps commander, will be committed along the southern bank of
325
326 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
the Osuga River at the junction of the armies. [Its] mission is to reach the Nashchekino,
Tatarinka, Pribytki, and Aleksandrovka region, from which one cavalry division will
be sent to occupy Andreevskoe and establish communications with the Kalinin Front's
units attacking from the Belyi region.
6. Army commanders will submit plans for Operation Mars by 5 October.
Konev Bulganin Sokolovsky1
TOP SECRET: SPECIAL IMPORTANCE.
11 October 1942. 0230 hours.
To the commanders of the 2d Guards Cavalry and the 6th Tank Corps; copy to the
31st and 20th Army commanders; copy to the chief of the Red Army General Staff.
As an addendum to front Directive No. 0289, of 1 October 1942, I order:
1. When the enemy front has been penetrated by the 31st and 20th Armies,
a mobile group consisting of the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps, the 6th Tank Corps,
and the 1st Motorcycle Brigade, under the command of the 2d Guards Cavalry
Corps commander, will enter the penetration on the right flank of the 20th Army.
[Its] immediate mission is to reach swiftly the Nashchekino, Tatarinka, Pribytka,
and Aleksandrovka region. The subsequent mission of the mobile group is [as
follows]:
The 2d Guards Cavalry Corps—by means of a decisive blow, one cavalry division
will secure the Andreevsko region (thirty kilometers northwest of Sychevka). From
there [it] will establish communications with the Kalinin Front's forces that are op-
erating from the Belyi, Kholm—Zhirkovskii region and will prevent the approach of
enemy reserves to Sychevka from the southwest. While dispatching strong recon-
naissance detachments in the direction of Shizderevo to provide cover from the west,
the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps' main forces will continue resolute operations along
the northern axis to Chertolino in the enemy Rzhev grouping's rear and will conduct
reconnaissance in the direction of Olenino to establish communications and cooper-
ate with the Kalinin Front's units that are advancing on Olenino.
The 6th Tank Corps with the 1st Motorcycle Brigade—will deliver a blow from
the designated region in the direction of Viazovka, Barsuki, and Kholodnia. [Its]
mission is to strike from the southwest in cooperation with the 20th Army, capture
Sychevka, and block the approach to Sychevka by enemy reserves from the south.
2. A day before the penetration the mobile group will occupy jumping-off posi-
tions in the Karganovo, Krasnovo, IFinskoe, Rakovo, and Rovnoe region for commit-
ment into the penetration, and [it] will reach the Vazuza River the night before the
attack.
3. To the commanders of the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps, 6th Tank Corps, and 1st
Motorcycle Brigade: Work out in timely fashion with the commander of the 20th
Army procedures for the commitment of the mobile group into the penetration and
for artillery support.
4. To the commanders of the 31st and 20th Armies: The front chief of artillery
will provide artillery support for the commitment of the mobile group into the
penetration.
From the Archives 327
5. To the commander of the 1st Air Army: Fighter aviation will cover the mobile
group in its jumping-off position and during the period when the mobile group is
being committed into and operating in the penetration; and assault aviation will as-
sist the mobile group in accomplishing its missions.
6. To the commander of the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps: By 14 October plan mea-
sures for the commitment of the mobile group into the penetration and for its op-
erations in the depths in accordance with the actual directive missions assigned by
me at the front auxiliary command post (in the forest 0.5 kilometers southeast of
Ryl'tsevo) to the [respective] groupings.
Konev Bulganin Sokolovsky2
To the commanders of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps' formations, 20 November 1942.
In fulfillment of the 20th Army commander's order, the corps orders:
1. Fully occupy jumping-off positions by dawn on 23 November 1942. . . . Care-
fully mask movement of personnel and material units. . . . [Move] infantry in small
groups and tanks, vehicles, and transport vehicles individually. . . .
3. Eliminate squads and platoons of "nationals" [non-Slavic ethnic groups] by di-
viding them up among subunits. For camouflage purposes, whitewash all guns and
transporters. . . .
4. During the day on 22 November 1942, conduct study of the attack axes with
command personnel. . . .
5
a. Provide personnel with a chance for a good sleep and, without fail, feed [the
troops] with warm food and distribute the required vodka norm before the
attack. . . .
d. Provide all personnel with a bath and with a pair of clean clothes. . . .
e. Obtain white camouflage overalls and felt boots.
8th Guards Rifle Corps chief of staff, Guards Colonel Posiakin
Chief of the corps' operations section, Guards Colonel Andrianov3
Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order No. 0060, 22 November 1942.
1600 hours.
1. Units of the enemy's 78th Infantry Division are defending in the corps' offen-
sive sector with the forward edge along the western bank of the Vazuza River. Re-
serves are in the Kholm-Rogachevskii, Bol'shoe Kropotovo, Arestovo, Sychevka, and
Novo-Dugino regions.
2. The 8th Guards Rifle Corps, with the 18th, 31st, and 25th Tank Brigades, the
998th Gun Artillery Regiment, the 5th and 15th Separate Guards Mortar Battalions,
and the 3d Guards Antitank Artillery Regiment, constitutes the 20th Army's mobile
group. ... I demand from all formation and unit commanders the most energetic
action, forward movement, and fulfillment of the combat missions to secure Sychevka.
8th Guards Rifle Corps commander, Major General Zakharov
8th Guards Rifle Corps chief of staff, Guards Colonel Posiakin4
328 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
From Headquarters, Western Front Mobile Group Combat Order No. 05, Armino
village, 23 November 1942. 1800 hours.
1. The enemy is defending along the front [extending] from Vasel'ki to Grediakino,
and farther to the south along the Vazuza River.
2. On my command and after penetration by the infantry of the forward edge of
the enemy defense along the front from Vasel'ki to Pechora and its arrival at the line
of the immediate mission, from Pashki to Podosinovka, the mobile group, consisting
of the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps, 6th Tank Corps, 1st Motorcycle Brigade, llth Sepa-
rate Heavy Guards Mortar Battalion, and the 6th Antitank Regiment, will enter the
penetration and reach the Nashchekino, Nikiforovka, and Aleksandrovka region for
subsequent actions to destroy the enemy Rzhev grouping. The 20th Army will attack
with its right flank in the Vasel'ki, Pechora sector with the missions of penetrating
the enemy defensive front, and capturing Sychevka and the railroad in the Osuga
River, Sychevka sector.
The 8th Guards Rifle Corps will force the Vazuza River in advance of the mobile
group; and the 1st Motorcycle Brigade is in the 20th Army's second echelon. . . .5
Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order No. 0061,26 November 1942.
0500 hours.
1. The 14th Infantry Regiment, 78th Infantry Division, is defending in the corps'
offensive sector. Enemy reserves are [located] in the following regions: up to a
company—Zherebtsovo, and up to an infantry regiment—Fediaikovo.
2. From the morning of 26 November 1942, the 8th Guards Rifle Corps with the
25th, 18th, and 31st Tank Brigades, the 5th and 15th Separate Guards Mortar Battal-
ions, and the 142d Engineer Battalion will attack in the general direction of Zherebtsovo,
Borodino, and Sychevka. After the capture of Sychevka, occupy and dig in along the
line from Viazovka through Kochergovka and Lomy (incl.) to Berezovka.6
From Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order No. 0063, 28 Novem-
ber
1942.
1. On 28 November 1942, the 8th Guards Rifle Corps is continuing to fulfill ear-
lier assigned missions and is fighting for possession of Zherebtsovo, heights 210.2,
Khlepen', and Staroe Murzino. . . .7
From Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order No. 0065, 30 Novem-
ber
1942.
1. Enemy—the 14th Infantry Regiment, 78th Infantry Division, is continuing to
hold on to the strong points of Zherebtsovo, lurovka, Talitsa, and Khlepen', and, si-
multaneously, fresh reserves approaching these points are trying to halt the advance
of corps' units. . . .8
From the Archives 329
From Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order No. 0066, 1 December
1942.
1. The enemy is stubbornly defending Zherebtsovo, Talitsa, and Novoe and Staroe
Murzino. At first light on 1 December 1942, up to two companies of enemy infantry
with tanks counterattacked and forced the 354th Rifle Division's units to abandon
Staroe Murzino.9
From Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order No. 0067, 2 December
1942. 0100 hours.10
1. The previously designated enemy is striving to hold off our corps' offensive by
stubbornly defending separate strong points.
2. The 8th Guards Rifle Corps is continuing to fulfill its earlier assigned mission
to secure the strongpoints of Zherebtsovo, Staroe Murzino, and the unnamed heights
west of Pugachevo.
To the commanders of 8th Guards Rifle Corps formations, 3 December 1942.
In fulfillment of a 3 December 1942 order of the 20th Army commander, I order:
1. Go over to the offensive on 4 December 1942.
2. During the day of 3 December 1942 and night of 4 December 1942, conduct
combat reconnaissance in division and brigade sectors to determine the enemy group-
ing and unmask enemy firing systems. . . .
6. Reduce rear services and staff security by 30 percent and reinforce combat
subunits. Thoroughly clear all ravines and woods to fish out shirkers and dispatch
them to rifle companies as reinforcements.
8th Guards Rifle Corps chief of staff, Colonel Posiakin
Chief of 8th Guards Rifle Corps operations section, Lieutenant Colonel Andrianov11
From Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order, 7 December 1942. 1800
hours.
1. Approaching fresh units of the 9th Tank [Panzer] Division are defending the
strong points of Podosinovka, Zherebtsovo, lurovka, Talitsa, and Staroe and Novoe
Murzino. Local counterattacks are impeding the further advance of corps' units. . . .
Units will quickly begin engineer work in their regions. In the first place, begin
with individual foxholes, trenches, and blindages and construct obstacles.12
From Headquarters, 8th Guards Rifle Corps Combat Order No. 0076, 8 December
1942. 2400 hours.
1. On the night of 9 and 10 December 1942, the 8th Guards Rifle Corps will con-
duct a regrouping of units for the forthcoming offensive.13
330 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Headquarters, 5th Tank Corps Combat Order No. 013, in the forest 2.4 kilometers
east of Krasnovo, 8 December 1942. 1200 hours.
1. The enemy is continuing to offer strong resistance to the 20th Army's units
along the line from Vasel'ki through Krivisheevo, Bol'shoe and Maloe Kropotovo,
Podosinovka, Zherebtsovo, and Talitsa to Pugachevo, and further to the south. . . .
By means of a night march, by 0800 hours 10 December 1942, the 5th Tank Corps
will relocate to jumping-off positions in the Arestovo, Marker 188.3, Pod'iablon'ka,
Marker 176.0, and Staraia Grinevka areas; and, from the morning of 10 December
1942, be prepared for actions in a southwestern direction in cooperation with the
20th Army units.14
Headquarters, 5th Tank Corps Combat Order No. 010, in the forest 2.4 kilometers
east of Krasnovo, 10 December 1942. 0800 hours.
1. ... Enemy units of the 78th Infantry Division, 430th Infantry Regiment, 129th
Infantry Division, 5th Tank [Panzer] Division and the 9th Tank [Panzer] Division
are defending along the line from Vasel'ki, through Kriboshchekovo, Bol'shoe
Kropotovo, Maloe Kropotovo, Podosinovka, Zherebtsovo, Talitsa, and Staroe Murzino
to Isaevskoe. . . . Infantry are concentrating in the Berezovo region, and up to four-
teen tanks and a regimental headquarters have dug in in the Lopatok region. There
is a communications trench system—blindages and pillboxes—that extends along the
forward edge of the defense to a depth of up to three kilometers. Reserves in the
form of small groups of infantry and tanks are being thrown in, and by means of coun-
terattacks, [the enemy] is attempting to hold on to the railroad line in the Osuga,
Sychevka sector.
On the right, the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps with the 6th Tank Corps will attack
from a jumping-off position in the Nikonovo, Grinevka, Kuznechikha (incl.), and
Kriukovo (incl.) region, with a blow in the direction of... Makrushi ... to secure,
with the 30th [Gds] Rifle Division, the line from Marker 04.8 to Marker 03.7. . . .
3. From jumping-off positions in Arestovo, Pod'iablon'ka, and Bobrovka, the corps,
with the 3d Guards Antitank Artillery Regiment and the 11th Guards Engineer-Miner
Company, will penetrate the defense in the sector from the grove 700 meters north-
west of Podosinovka (incl.) to Zherebtsovo and will advance in the direction of
Podosinovka, Lopatok, and Pomel'nitsy (incl.) to secure Podosinovka and Lopatok.
Further, seize the region of Marker 03.0, Kharino, Borodino, and the railroad hut east
of Pomel'nitsy. Using forward detachments, secure and firmly hold on to Skekrushino,
. . . Bol'shoe Krasnoe, Karavaevo, and the road junction one kilometer south of
Kriukovo. Subsequently, prepare to attack along the Karavaevo, Sychevka and
Kriukovo, Solokino axes. Attack on the signal 222 and a double series of red rockets.
4. Decision: penetrate the enemy defense by means of a blow in the directions
indicated with acorps combat formation of four echelons. . . . Subsequently, be pre-
pared to fulfill the mission of capturing Sychevka and, farther, in the direction of
Kriukovo and Sokolino.
5th Tank Corps commander, Major General of Tank Forces Semenchenko
Corps chief of staff, Colonel Zelensky15
332 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
4. In order to improve tactical positions during the night of 14 December and 15
December 1942, perform the following missions:
a. The commander of the 326th Rifle Division will secure VaseFki and the
heights at Marker 198.0 with assault detachments.
b. The commander of the 251st Rifle Division will clean out the grove "Sapog."
c. The commander of the 42d Guards Rifle Division will secure heights
102.0
To all commanders of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps' divisions: From 0900 to 1200 hours
15 December 1942, destroy enemy defensive positions by methodical aimed fire, and
from 1200 to 1210 hours [deliver] an artillery-mortar barrage on the enemy forward
edge and close tactical depths.
Attack with infantry and tanks at 1210 hours, 15 December 1942.
20th Army Chief of Staff, Major General Vashkevich18
Journal of Combat Operations of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps, May 1942 to January
1943.
25 November 1942—0820 hours—the artillery preparation began. 0950 hours—first
echelon formations went over to the attack. At 1130 hours all of the 8th Guards Rifle
Corps' units assumed the offensive. . . .
The 8th Guards Rifle Corps personnel losses from 25 through 30 November 1942
included 1,116 men killed, 4,623 wounded, 197 missing, and 122 ill, for a total loss
of 6,058 men. Trophies included 10 POWs, 125 rifles, 9 light machine guns, 2 heavy
machine guns, 2 tanks, and 8 mortars captured; 5,405 men and 225 horses killed;
and 557 rifles, 29 light machine guns, 21 heavy machine guns, 18 guns, 17 tanks, and
15 pillboxes destroyed. Three population points, Khlepen', Kholm, and Prudy, were
liberated. . . .
On 7 December 1942, the 26th Guards Rifle Division strength was 118 riflemen
and submachine-gunners, 22 automatic weapons men, 67 heavy machine-gunners,
159 scouts, and 153 antitank riflemen. . . .
On 7 December 1942, 27 riflemen and automatic weapons men remained in the
148th Separate Rifle Brigade. 695 men remained in the 150th Separate Rifle Bri-
gade, including 110 "fighters."19
Journal of Combat Operations of the 5th Tank Corps: May to December 1942.
During the night of 8-9 December 1942, complied with the 20th Army's Combat
Order No. 2, which assigned the 5th Tank Corps the mission to develop the attack
from a jumping-off position in the Arestovo and Podosinovka region in the general
direction of Bol'shaia Mel'nitsa and secure the Kharino, Borodino, Marker 290.7,
and Pomel'nitsy region in order to capture the line through Zherebtsovo. . . .
THE COURSE OF BATTLE ON 11 DECEMBER 1942
During the approach of the corps combat formation to Podosinovka the enemy opened
heavy artillery fire.
At 1530 hours, an order was received from the deputy commander of armored
From the Archives 333
forces, General Mostovenko, to dig in to secured positions until the arrival of the
infantry.
On the night of 12 December 1942, an order was received from the 20th Army
commander to withdraw the tanks to the jumping-off positions. . . . Tank losses dur-
ing the day's battle on 11 December 1942 were seventeen KVS, twenty T-34s, eleven
T-70s, and the 5th Motorized Rifle Brigade lost up to 50 percent of its personnel,
including 95 command personnel, 320 NCOs, and 412 enlisted men, for a total of
827
men.
THE COURSE OF BATTLE ON 12 DECEMBER 1942
At 0830 hours up to a battalion of enemy infantry with eighteen tanks counterattacked
against the 1st Battalion, 5th Motorized Rifle Brigade, and, as a result, two companies
withdrew from Zherebtsevo and occupied a defense 250 meters north of Zherebt-
sovo. ... At 1300 hours our forces took Podosinovka. The 20th Army commander
ordered us to advance further. It was clear that, when our tanks and infantry were on
the eastern outskirts of Podosinovka, [our] multiple-rocket launchers delivered two
volleys on the eastern limits of Podosinovka, and seven of our tanks were destroyed. . . .
Losses for the day's battle were 24th Tank Brigade four KVs, four T-70s, 41st Tank
Brigade nine T-34s, 70th Tank Brigade six T-34s, and 5th Motorized Rifle Brigade
395
men.
THE COURSE OF BATTLE ON 13 DECEMBER 1942
Combat went on in the Podosinovka region. . . . Losses for the day were the 5th
Motorized Rifle Brigade 171 men, the 41st Tank Brigade two T-34s, three T-70s,
four T-60s, the 70th Tank Brigade five T-34s, two T-70s, eight T-60s, and the 24th
Tank Brigade two KVs.
During the day of 14 December 1942, the corps' tanks were located in the initial
region of Arestovo. By evening an order was received on the instructions of the deputy
commander of the/ront for armored forces to form a tank battalion from the remain-
ing tanks of all brigades. The remnants of the 5th Motorized Rifle Brigade's motor-
ized rifle battalions and the tank brigades' motorized rifle battalions were combined
into one motorized rifle battalion. . . .
During the period of combat operations from 11 through 14 December 1942, the
5th Motorized Rifle Brigade units destroyed up to three infantry battalions, up to
fifteen tanks, up to ninety vehicles, and up to four mortar batteries ... in the for-
ward edge up to ten firing positions were suppressed. Up to fifteen enemy attacks
were beaten back.
From 15 through 17 December 1942, the corps was located in its jumping-off
positions. At 0930 hours on 19 December 1942, an enciphered telegram was re-
ceived from the Western Front deputy chief of staff, Major General Pokrovsky,
about the withdrawal of the corps into front reserve from 1000 hours 19 Decem-
ber 1942. On 20 December 1942, Colonel Sakhno took command of the 5th Tank
Corps and Major General Semenchenko left on the instructions of the Western
Front command.20
334 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
To all 20th Army formation commanders, 21 December 1942. 1720 hours.
Instructions on the preparation of forces for the penetration and the method of pene-
trating the enemy defensive belt along the line of the Osuga River, Bol'shoe and Maloe
Kropotovo, Podosinovka, Zherebtsovo, Talitsa, Staroe Murzino, Isaevskoe, and
Stepanovo:
1. Since 25 November 1942, the 20th Army's forces have been conducting sus-
tained battle to the west of the Vazuza River. During this combat period, a penetra-
tion eleven kilometers wide and six kilometers deep was carried out in a well-fortified
enemy defensive belt. We defeated the 78th Infantry and the 9th and 5th Tank
[Panzer] Divisions and inflicted heavy losses on units of the 129th, 216th and 52d
Infantry and 2d Tank [Panzer] Divisions. According to preliminary information, during
the period of battle, the following were captured or destroyed: 271 guns of various
calibers, 186 tanks, 90 aircraft, 646 machine guns, 335 automatic weapons, 4,200 rifles,
6,000 shells, and 500,000 cartridges. More than 10,000 soldiers and officers were
killed and 265 were taken prisoner; moreover, much other military equipment was
captured or destroyed. In spite of the insignificant territorial success, the operational-
strategic significance of these battles is determined by the following factors: the cre-
ation of a direct threat of seizure of the main communications line of the enemy
Rzhev-Olenino-Chertolino grouping; and the pinning down and, to a considerable
degree, the pulverizing of enemy operational reserves—2d, 5th, and 9th Tank [Panzer]
Divisions, which were designated for transfer to Stalingrad.
2. The particularly sharp and prolonged nature of combat took shape when army
forces reached the line of the Osuga River, Bol'shoe and Maloe Kropotovo,
Podosinovka, and Talitsa. The threatened loss of communications forced the enemy
to shift free reserves from other sectors of the front and to sacrifice his operational
reserves to hold on to his occupied positions at any cost.
3. The experience of these battles [demonstrates] that the enemy defensive sys-
tem (a strong well-fortified belt of defensive points that was prepared in advance)
demands that once again we alter our attack methods and restructure our combat
formations.
4. In forthcoming battles to penetrate an enemy defense, we propose the follow-
ing bases for creating divisional combat formations:
a. form forces up into two or three echelons.
b. Place assault detachments in the first echelon of attacking forces. . . . The
approximate composition of a detachment should be one or two infantry
platoons armed with grenades, automatic weapons, and bottles with "KS"
fuel, one or two sapper squads with explosive materials, two to three anti-
tank rifles, an 82mm mortar squad or platoon, and one or two tanks and
accompanying guns towed by the tanks.
c. The mission of the first echelon should be to penetrate to the attack objec-
tive to the entire depth of the first enemy defensive position. . . .
d. The following echelons should . . . defeat the entire tactical depth of the en-
emy defense, while increasing and strengthening the attack of the first ech-
elon of assault groups. Place fortification [consolidation] detachments in the
third echelon.
From the Archives 335
e. Regimental and divisional artillery. . . not assigned to the composition of the
assault groups and detachments support and protect the advance of the as-
sault detachments by direct fire. . . .
f. Reinforcing artillery . . . [should] have direct communications with infantry
commanders.
5. Use the remaining period of time before the offensive [as follows]: 20-21 De-
cember 1942 for organizational deployment and strengthening of units . . . accord-
ing to orders of 19 December 1942 to unit commanders; putting units in order and
the medical processing of units; resting personnel; and 22 and 23 December 1942
for conducting the formation and training of assault detachments.
20th Army commander, Lieutenant General Khozin
Member of the 20th Army Military Council, Major General Lobachev
20th Army chief of staff, Major General Vashkevich21
An account of 20th Army Combat Operations along the line of the Vazuza River,
25 November to 18 December 1942.
On 1 October 1942, the 20th Army commander received Directive No. 0289 from
the Western Front commander, which established the Western Front mission of
destroying the enemy Sychevka—Rzhev grouping with the forces of the 29th, 30th,
31st, and 20th Armies, together with the Kalinin Front's units.
In accordance with the indicated directive, the 20th Army received the mission of
penetrating the enemy defense in the VaseFki, Pechora sector and developing the
attack of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps on Sychevka with the mobile group. By the end
of the first day of the operation [the 20th Army] was to reach the line of the Rzhev-
Sychevka railroad line and capture Sychevka. . . .
Subsequently, while firmly defending along the Vazuza River in the Podosinovka,
Sychevka, and Mar'ino sector and along the line Viazovka, luriantino, and Podsoson'e
to the west and southwest, [the army] was to attack with its main forces in a north-
western direction through Karpovo, Osuiskoe, and Afonasovo. In cooperation with
the 31st Army, [it was to] destroy the enemy Rzhev grouping. . . .
According to Directive No. 0289/OP of the Western Front staff, the army was to
be prepared to attack on 12 October 1942. However, the army was not ready for the
offensive at the designated period, and the time of attack was postponed. . . .
On 25 November 1942, the 20th Army consisted of 114,176 men, 66,103 rifles,
6,986 PPD (machine guns) and PPSh (sub-machine guns), 317 tanks, 979 guns of all
types, 1,331 mortars, 1,942 antitank rifles, and 6,104 vehicles. . . .
The Germans defended obstinately during the course of our offensive. In this re-
spect, a German prisoner [corporal] declared, "It was clear to us that we had to de-
fend at all cost; otherwise the Rzhev railroad would be seized by the Russians, and
the German army would have to withdraw to Smolensk, and then Russian soldiers
will surely be in Berlin. . . ."
According to a report by a captured German soldier, "The enemy prepared more
thoroughly for the winter campaign than in the previous year . . . already in Novem-
ber the soldiers were issued with a second greatcoat and all dugouts and blindages
were provided with stoves."
336 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
CHARACTERISTICS OF THE ENEMY DEFENSIVE LINE
The main features of engineer preparations of the terrain on that line were a system
of strong points anchored on destroyed villages and on heights, which were tied to-
gether by frontal trenches. . . .
The enemy fire system . . . was constructed on a combination of machine-gun,
mortar, and artillery fire in front of the strong points. . . . The firing systems along
the forward edge moved from place to place, and this made it difficult to discover
and destroy them.
On 25 November 1942, the German 78th Infantry and 5th Tank [Panzer] Divi-
sions, which were opposing the 20th Army, numbered 17,820 men.
The correlation of opposing forces on 25 November 1942 was as follows [as a
ratio]:
20th Army Forces German 78th ID and 5th TD
Men 5.4 1
Rifles 6 1
Automatic weapons 6.3 1
Light machine guns 3.3 1
Heavy machine guns 3.6 1
Antitank rifles 17.2 1
Antitank guns 6 1
Field guns 3.4 1
Mortars 10 1
The artillery offensive began at 0750 hours 25 November 1942. At 0920 hours,
after a one-and-one-half-hour artillery preparation, that attack began. . . .
On the first day of the offensive, the left flank units of the 31st Army also had no
success. . . .
The correlation of opposing forces on 11 December 1942 was as follows:
German Forces
20th Army (78th ID and 5th TD) Correlation
Men 80,322 31,651 2.5:1
Men (per km of front) 3,825 1,507
Field guns 866 287 3:1
Guns (per km of front) 41 13.7
The second stage of the operation began at 1010 hours on 11 December 1942 with
a thirty-minute artillery preparation. Under interrogation, a German prisoner cap-
tured in the 20th Army sector said, "It seemed that the world was coming to an end. . . .
When the artillery preparation ended, I wanted to climb out but had to take cover
once again, since tanks were advancing on us. From my foxhole I counted up to forty
heavy tanks. . . . We thought that we would perish, but were saved by long-range
assault guns."
On 12 December 1942 the offensive of the 20th Army's forces continued in a
western and southwestern direction. .
From the Archives 337
Beginning on 18 December, the 20th Army's forces temporarily went over to the
defense. Army losses during the period from 25 November through 12 December
1942 were 13,929 men killed, 41,999 wounded, and 1,596 missing, for total losses of
58,524 men. . . .
The 20th Army's forces destroyed 220 enemy guns of various types and 165 tanks,
shot down 13 aircraft, and destroyed 125 mortars. More than 10,000 enemy officers
and soldiers were killed and 265 men were captured, as well as 1,100 rifles, 180 au-
tomatic weapons, 196 machine guns, 51 guns, 21 tanks, 1 unit banner, 6,000 shells,
and 300 mines.22
Operations of the 29th Army, July-December 1942.
From 5 to 12 December 1942, on the scale of a front operation, the 29th Army
secured the left flank of the 20th Army, which was delivering the main attack on
Sychevka, and widened the penetration front along the Sychevka axis. . . .
CONCLUSION
The preparatory period for the offensive was characterized by a lack of skill on the
part of commanders and their staffs in organizing work in a complex situation and
with limited time. The necessary time was not available for rekognostsirovka (per-
sonal reconnaissance) of the terrain and for organizing cooperation at the level of
battalion-division and tank battalion-company. . . .
The army's December offensive operation along the Sychevka axis totally lacked
aviation support. There was only one instance of assault aviation actions in the inter-
ests of the 29th Army, on 5 December 1942, but in that instance the army staff learned
about the front commander's decision [to provide aviation support] too late and did
not forewarn the forces in timely fashion. . . .
The tank brigades were introduced into battle from the march after completing a
120-kilometer march. There was no time for reconnaissance or for studying combat
courses of action. The [tank] crews were not acquainted with the enemy system for
antitank defense at the forward edge and in the depth, they did not know the terrain
of the forthcoming battle, and they went off their combat course and lost their ori-
entation.
On 5 and 6 December 1942, during the initial days of the combat operation, ob-
servation on the field of battle was hindered by poor visibility (dense fog), and com-
munications with infantry observation posts, artillery, and the tanks was absent.23
Report Concerning the Combat Operations and Reports of the 2d Guards Cavalry
Corps, 25 November 1942 to 4 January 1943.
To the General-Inspector of Red Army Cavalry, Colonel General Comrade Gorodovi-
kov, report about the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps combat operations from 25 Novem-
ber through 18 December 1942, dated 20 December 1942:
1. The overall aim of the operation was the liquidation of the Rzhev bulge in or-
der to place the armies of the Western and Kalinin Fronts in a favorable flank posi-
tion for subsequent attacks along the southern and southwestern axes. . . .
338 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
2. Specific army missions. The 20th Army was assigned the mission of penetrating
the enemy front a width often kilometers in the Vasel'ki, Pechora sector. While deliv-
ering its main attack on the right flank, [it was] to destroy the enemy west of the Vazuza
River and capture the Osuga Sychevka railroad line and the city of Sychevka. Subse-
quently, [it was] to prevent the approach of enemy reserves from the south and enemy
counterattacks from the southeast. Then, with four infantry divisions and the mobile
group (the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps and the 6th Tank Corps), [it was] to operate in a
northern and northeastern direction to destroy the enemy Rzhev grouping, while link-
ing up with the armies of the Kalinin Front. On the right, the 31st Army was to deliver
its main attack in the direction of Osuga station and, further, turn abruptly to the north
to attack along the railroad line toward Rzhev in cooperation with the 20th Army. On
the left, the 29th Army was to deliver a secondary attack with its right flank.
In light of the postponement of the time the operation was to begin, POW inter-
rogations indicated that the enemy had discovered our preparations. As a result, he
[the enemy] had time to undertake countermeasures, at first strengthening minefields
and doing fortification work in the depth and susequently bringing up a series of fresh
divisions. . . .
The 6th Tank Corps, operating along the southeastern direction, was supposed to
capture Sychevka.
After a strong artillery preparation but in weather with poor visibility and firing
only area fire, at 1000 hours 25 November the offensive began. During the course of
the day, the 20th Army advanced only one to two kilometers, overcoming enemy re-
sistance only along the forward edge of the defense. ...
The neighboring 31st and 29th Armies also advanced forward somewhat in indi-
vidual sectors, but were halted. The operation is considered incomplete. . . .
From 25 November 1942 through 18 December 1942, the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps
lost 6,717 men killed, wounded, and missing in action. Losses in horses amounted to
6,141.
2d Guards Cavalry Corps commander Major General Kriukov24
Combat reports and operational summaries of the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps, dated
26 November 1942 to 11 February 1943.
From a report by the cavalry group commander, Colonel Kursakov, dated 12 Janu-
ary
1943:
1. ... The commitment into the penetration of the 3d Guards Cavalry Division:
At 2400 hours 25 November 1942, the 3d Guards Cavalry Division received an order
to enter the penetration in open formation to secure State Farm A. M. Nikishkino
and Belokhvostovo and to control the Sychevka-Rzhev railroad line. . . .
Conclusion: Divisional units did not enter the penetration, they did not prepare
themselves, and they prematurely suffered heavy losses. . . .
During the period from 27 November 1942 through 2 December 1942, the group
conducted fierce battle in the Belokhvostovo, Lozhki, and Karpovskii Bol'shak
region. . . .
By 18 December 1942 the salt was gone, and people ate without salt; there were
From the Archives 339
no bandages or forage for the livestock and horses. . . . There were a massive num-
ber of cases of shortages of cavalry fodder. . . .
5. Cavalry group losses were as follows: 1,600 men, 1,200 horses (up to 400 tro-
phy), 9 heavy machine guns, and 9 guns entered the penetration. Around 1,000 men,
50 horses, and 5 heavy machine guns exited from the penetration. . . . Included in
this number were 75 wounded and around 100 sick. We destroyed 4 heavy machine
guns and 4 guns. We hid 7 cargo vehicles of various types, 3 antiaircraft guns . . . and
5 120mm mortars in the forest.
6. Of the 600 men lost, 132 wounded and sick men remained with the partisans in
the Ushinskii Swamp, and 75 sick men remained with the Sychevka partisan detach-
ment; 128 wounded men perished in the Kortutavsldi forest; 66 men did not penetrate
and remained with the partisans (including the medical squadron); up to 20 men died
from exhaustion, 15 men were shot for violating orders, and 10 men were taken pris-
oner; in total, 430 men; 170 men were killed in action, for a grand total of 600 men.
7. Up to 600 horses were killed or died of wounds, 550 fell from exhaustion, 300
were killed to feed the troops (from the exhausted), and several tens remained with
the partisans.
8. According to preliminary data, enemy losses were 300 men killed and up to 300
men captured or eliminated. . . . [We] shot down six aircraft and burned two on the
ground, and [we] destroyed or burned up to thirty-six tanks.
Commander of the Cavalry Group, Colonel Kursakov
Commander of 3d Guards Cavalry Division, Colonel lagodin25
The 41st, 22d, and 39th Armies and Subordinate Formations
Report by the 3d Air Army Representative with the 1st Mechanized Corps during
Operation Mars.
On 25 November 1942, the 1st Mechanized Corps (the 219th and 65th Tank Bri-
gades, and the 19th, 35th, and 37th Mechanized Brigades) attacked in the Maloe
Klemiatino—Emel'ianova sector with the mission of capturing the Belyi—Vladimirskoe
road. Advancing successfully, on 25 November the corps reached Gromovo, Tara-
kanovo, Prokudino, and Sorokino. The 35th and 37th Mechanized Brigades moved
south from the Sorokino area and by the end of 26 November had captured Skolitsa,
Shalokhostovo, Bocharniki, and Matrenino station. The 35th Mechanized Brigade
took up defensive positions in the Syrmatnaia region. The 19th Mechanized Brigade
and the 219th and 65th Tank Brigades reached the Koniakovo, Klimovo, Azarovo,
and Kushlevo areas. Forward units severed the Belyi-Vladimirskoe road and captured
Bulygino, Petelino, and Dudino. The 65th Tank Brigade seized Bulygino, Gorodnia,
Komary, and Tserkovishche. The 37th Mechanized Brigade occupied Nikitinka sta-
tion. On 28 November 1942, heavy fighting took place in the Basino and Sheverdino
regions. The 219th Tank Brigade suffered heavy losses and was pulled out of line for
regrouping. Our units captured Basino and Sheverdino. The enemy counterattacked
from the east to free the road. From 28 November through 2 December the corps
fought to hold on to its positions. The enemy brought up the 12th Tank [Panzer]
340 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Division (eighty tanks and three motorized infantry battalions) from the Leningrad
region.
On 2 December the 41st Army commander ordered the 1st Mechanized Corps to
take up defensive positions along the Nacha River. The enemy managed to recap-
ture the road and transfer forces to Belyi. From 3 December the enemy began con-
centrating forces to the south in the Volynovo (sixty tanks from the 20th Tank [Panzer]
Division). On 12 December the enemy attacked and by the end of 7 December had
captured Oleshkovo, Ramanovo, Shiparevo, and, to the north, Dubrovka, Novye
Tscherepy, and Tsitsina and surrounded the 1st Mechanized Corps. From 8 Decem-
ber the corps fought in encirclement in the forest east of Shiparevo.
During the night of 15 to 16 December, the corps, in accordance with orders of
the 41st Army commander, broke out between Shiparevo and Tsitsina. Four thou-
sand men made it out, but without tanks and artillery.26
Combat reports and operational summaries of the 1st Mechanized Corps
Headquarters.
The corps participated in combat from 25 November through 16 December
1942
The 1st Mechanized Corps' combat operations from 25 November through 15 De-
cember 1942.
Before the operation, the corps' strength was 15,200 men, 10 KV, 119 T-34, and
95 T-70 tanks, 44 76mm guns, 56 45mm guns, 102 82mm mortars, 10 120mm mor-
tars, 309 Degtiareva machine guns, 252 antitank rifles, 3,890 automatic weapons, and
8 M-13 firing systems [multiple-rocket launchers]. . . .
For a month and a half before the operation, the corps conducted training exer-
cises with its units. . . . Material support of corps units was raised to full norms, with
the exception of benzene, second type. Corps units were prepared to fulfill their
assigned missions. . . .
CHARACTERISTICS OF THE ENEMY [DEFENSE]
During the course often months, opposite the corps' penetration sector, the enemy
defended and improved his positions along the line Shiparevo, Tsitsina, and Novaia
Dubrovka and had a strong antitank center south of Belyi. By 20 November 1942,
the corps' units had concentrated in the Seichastnoe, Ramenka, and Sluzhbino re-
gion. [The corps] had the mission of entering the penetration along the front [ex-
tending from] Shiparevo to Dubrovka. While developing the success of the 6th Rifle
Corps, by the end of the 3d day, [it was] to capture Matrenino, Vladimirskoe, and
Shapkovo, establish a grip on the Belyi-Kholm-Zhirkovskii road, and block the ap-
proach of enemy reserves to Belyi. Hereafter, [it was] to reach the banks of the Dnepr
[River], where, in coordination with Western Front units, [it would] complete the
encirclement of the enemy Olenino-Rzhev grouping. . . .
According to the army operational plan . . . the 6th Rifle Corps' units would carry
out the penetration, and the 1st Mechanized Corps would be used as an echelon to
develop the penetration. . . . Fulfilling the order of the 41st Army commander, from
1800 hours on 24 November, corps' units began reaching their jumping-off positions,
From the Archives 341
and by the morning of 25 November 1942 . . . [they] were concentrated ... in Vydra,
Lomzimino, and Ramenka. . . .
After the artillery offensive, at 1500 hours on 25 November 1942, the 6th Rifle
Corps' units were approaching . . . Podiasen'e and Dubrovka, [but] their further
advance was halted. At 1500 hours, by order of the army commander, the corps was
introduced into the penetration, although the enemy defensive belt was not fully
penetrated. . . .
By morning on 27 November 1942, corps' units, having penetrated the forward
edge of the enemy defense, entered the operational depths. . . .
From 30 November to 4 December 1942, corps' units waged heavy battle with
approaching large enemy reserves (1st and 12th Tank [Panzer] Divisions). . . . By
5 December 1942 the corps' units occupied positions along the line Gorodnia, Svetloe,
Koniakovo, Ivashkino, Klimovo, Zheguny, Tikhonovo, Azarova, and Zhukovo. . . .
In accordance with an order from the 41st Army commander, the corps went over
to the defense along the Nacha River line, and during the period 5 to 7 December
1942, corps' units repelled numerous enemy infantry and tank attacks. . . . During
the course of 8 to 15 December 1942, the corps' units fought in full encirclement
along the line Sviriukovo, Vena River, and Marino.
Corps' units and units attached to it that had suffered heavy attrition in previous
offensive combat, that possessed limited quantities of ammunition (up to one com-
bat load) and no foodstuffs, and that were being attacked by superior enemy forces
(the 12th, 19th, and 20th Tank [Panzer] Divisions), stubbornly held on to their
defensive positions. ... By 15 December 1942 corps' units had no fuel or ammuni-
tion. . . . The 41st Army commander and the deputy people's commissar of defense,
Comrade Zhukov, were notified about this. Army General Comrade Zhukov ordered,
"On the night of 15—16 December 1942, having destroyed [your] equipment, break
through with your troops to our [army] units by means of an attack on Tsitsina." At
2000 hours 15 December 1942, the brigade commanders were issued with orders
o
concerning the breakthrough. The breakthrough plan was as follows: Begin the with-
drawal of units at 2300 hours under artillery support and attack Tsitsina with all re-
maining tanks. . . . The infantry will attack between Tsitsina and Shiparevo toward
Ploskoe. The withdrawal will be conducted in three echelons. The 18th Mechanized
and 74th Rifle Brigade will attack in first echelon, the 91st Rifle Brigade and 37th
Mechanized Brigade with corps' units and corps' headquarters in second echelon,
and the 35th and 48th Mechanized Brigades in third echelon. The 32d Separate Ar-
mored Car Battalion will cover unit operations and the withdrawal from the east.. . .
The attack by corps' units caught the enemy by surprise, and by first light on
16 December 1942, all corps' units had reached the Bol'shoe and Maloe Klemiatino
region. . . .
During the twenty days of combat, [we] inflicted the following casualites on the
enemy. Up to 8,900 soldiers and officers were eliminated; 184 tanks, up to 100 guns
of various caliber, more than 100 machine guns, and up to 100 pillboxes were elimi-
nated or destroyed; the 9th and 12th Tank [Panzer] Divisions were routed; and the
1st, 19th, and 20th Tank [Panzer] Divisions were battered. Two separate battalions
and two battalions of the 246th Division were defeated. The headquarters of two
battalions and two regiments were smashed.
342 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
The corps' losses during the twenty days of battle were 2,280 killed and 5,900
wounded (of these, 1,300 men were killed while in encirclement and around 3,500
were wounded).
Fifteen personnel were awarded with the order of the "Fatherland War," 133 with
the order "Red Banner," 218 with the medal "For Bravery," 207 with the medal "For
Meritorious Combat," for a total of 573 men.
1st Mechanized Corps chief of staff, Colonel Dubovoi
Chief of 1st Mechanized Corps Operations Section, Lieutenant Colonel Lebedev2'
Journal of the 22d Army Combat Operations, November—December 1942.
In combat operations during the period from 25 through 30 November 1942, the
22d Army eliminated 4,363 enemy soldiers and officers, seven guns, three tanks, etc.
From 20 through 30 November 1942, the army lost eight guns, fifteen tanks were
destroyed, and seventy-six tanks were burned.
During November and December, the army primarily conducted combat opera-
tions with the aim of ascertaining enemy strength in the Olenino region [sic] ,28
Notes
1. "Sychevsko-Rzhevskaia oper. 31 A" [The Sychevka-Rzhev operation of the 31st Army],
TsAMO, f. 386, op. 8583, ed. khr. 144, 11. 7-8.
2. Ibid., 1. 10.
3. "Prikazy 8Gv SK, sentiabr'-dekabr' 42g." [Orders of 8th Guards Rifle Corps,
September-December 1942], TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 11,11. 98, 99-100, 106, 112, 121, 122,
125, 127, 141-142, 148.
4. TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 11, 11. 99-100.
5. "Delo No. 3 s rukovodiashchimi materialami i ukazaniiami vysshikh shtabov po sluzhbe
tyla 2Gv KK" [File No. 3 with directive materials and instructions of higher staffs on the rear
services of 2d Guards Cavalry Corps], TsAMO, f. 3467, op. 1, d. 417, 1. 50.
6. TsAMO, {. 825, op. 1, d. 11, 1. 106.
7. Ibid., 1. 112.
8. Ibid., 1. 121.
9. Ibid., 1. 122.
10. Ibid., 1. 125.
11. Ibid., 1. 127.
12. Ibid., 11. 141-142.
13. Ibid., 1. 148.
14. "Prikazy po tylu 5TK" [Orders on the 5th Tank Corps Rear Services], TsAMO, f. 3404,
op. 1, d.
260,
1. 13.
15. Ibid., 1. 15.
16. TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 11, 1. 156.
17. "Boevye prikazy i rasporiazheniia vyshestoiashchikh instantsii" [Combat orders and
instructions of higher-level commands], TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 10,1. 17.
18. Ibid., d. 259, 1. 19.
19. TsAMO, {. 825, op. 1, d. 32, 11. 63-73.
20. "Boevye prikazi i rasporiazheniia" [Combat orders and instructions], TsAMO, f. 3404,
op. 1, d. 12, 11. 53-59.
From the Archives 343
21. "Direktivy, prikazaniia vyshestoiashchikh instantsii chastiam 8SK" [Directives and orders
of higher commands to 8th Guards Rifle Corps units], TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 7, 1. 298.
22. TsAMO, f. 373, op. 6631, d. 56, 11. 3-54.
23. TsAMO, f. 284, op. 8529, ed. khr. 130.
24. TsAMO, f. 3467, op. 1, d. 81, 11. 1-6.
25. Ibid., d. 79, 11. 27-35.
26. TsAMO, f. 311, op. 4495, d. 24, 11. 86-87.
27. TsAMO, f. 3424, op. 1, d. 2, 11. 2-36.
28. TsAMO, {. 376, op. 10803, d. 97, 11. 82-84.
APPENDIX B
Red Army Command Personnel
in Operation Mars
(25 November to 14 December 1942)
STAVKA Coordinator and Deputy Supreme High Commander: Army General G. K. Zhukov
Main Attack Armies
KALININ FRONT
41st Army
6th Siberian Volunteer Rifle Corps
150th Siberian Volunteer Rifle Division
74th Siberian Volunteer Rifle Brigade
75th Siberian Volunteer Rifle Brigade
78th Siberian Volunteer Rifle Brigade
91st Rifle Brigade
17th Guards Rifle Division
93d Rifle Division
134th Rifle Division
234th Rifle Division
262d Rifle Division
1st Mechanized Corps
19th Mechanized Brigade
35th Mechanized Brigade
4th Tank Regiment
37th Mechanized Brigade
3d Tank Regiment
65th Tank Brigade
219th Tank Brigade
Commander—Army General M. A. Purkaev
Commissar—Lieutenant General D. S. Leonov
Chief of Staff—Lieutenant General M. V. Zakharov
Commander—Major General G. F, Tarasov
Major General I. M. Managarov (December 1942)
Assistant Commander—Major General I. I. Popov
Major General S. I. Povetkhin
Colonel N. O. Gruz
Colonel I. P. Repin
Colonel A. E. Vinogradov
Colonel I. P. Sivakov
Colonel F. I. Lobanov (WIA on 13.12)
Colonel E. V. Dobrovol'sky (Major General on
27.11)
Colonel S. E. Iseev (to 1.12)
Major General G. A. Latyshev (from 2.12)
Colonel A. P. Kvashnin
Colonel S. I. Tur'ev
Major General V. K. Gorbachev
Commander—Major General M. D. Solomatin
Commissar—Colonel G. I. Kuparev
Deputy Commander—Colonel A. M. Goriainov
(mortally wounded on 28.11)
Chief of Staff^Colonel I. V. Dubovoi
Artillery Commander—Colonel B. S. Trakhtenberg
(KIA
on
5.12)
Deputy Commander for Rear Services—Major
General I. N. Shevchenko (WIA on 14.12)
Colonel V. V. Ershov (WIA on 5.12)
Lieutenant Colonel L. V. Dubrovin (from 5.12)
Lieutenant Colonel V. L. Kuz'menko
Major M. N. Afanas'ev (KIA on 27.11)
Lieutenant Colonel N. M. Shanaurin (KIA on 8.12)
Captain P. R. Ugriumov (from 8.12)
Major E. M. Pavlenko
Lieutenant Colonel A. I. Shevchenko
Colonel la. A. Davydov (WIA on 2.12)
Lieutenant Colonel S. T. Khilobok (from 2.12)
Abbreviations; KIA = killed in action; WIA = wounded in action; and MIA = missing in action.
345
346 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Main Attack Armies, Kalinin Front, continued
47th Mechanized Brigade
48th Mechanized Brigade
104th Tank Brigade (from 22A by 1.12)
154th Tank Brigade (from 43A by 1.12)
40th Separate Tank Regiment (by 1.12)
229th Separate Tank Regiment (by 1.12)
22d Army
155th Rifle Division
185th Rifle Division
238th Rifle Division
362d Rifle Division
114th Rifle Brigade
3d Mechanized Corps
1st Mechanized Brigade
3d Mechanized Brigade
10th Mechanized Brigade
1st Guards Tank Brigade
49th Tank Brigade
104th Tank Brigade (to 41A by 1.12)
39th Separate Tank Regiment
39th Arr
>y
135th Rifle Division
158th Rifle Division
178th Rifle Division
186th Rifle Division
348th Rifle Division
373d Rifle Division
100th Rifle Brigade
101st Rifle Brigade
117th Rifle Brigade
136th Rifle Brigade
28th Tank Brigade
81st Tank Brigade
46th Mechanized Brigade
28th Tank Regiment
29th Tank Regiment
32d Tank Regiment
Colonel I. F. Dremov
Colonel Sheshchubakov
Major A. G. Zubatov
Lieutenant Colonel F. V. Artamonov
Major Shmelev
Commander—Major General V. A. lushkevich
Major General D. M. Seleznev (December 1942)
Chief of Staff—Major General M. A. Shalin
Colonel A. P. Blinov (to 5.12)
Colonel I. V. Karpov (from 6.12)
Colonel M. F. Andriushchenko
Colonel I. V. Karpov (to 3.12)
Colonel T. F. Eroshin (from 4.12)
Major General V. N. Dalmatov (to 10.12)
Colonel N. F. Pukhovsky (from 13.13)
Commander—Major General M. E. Katukov
Commissar—Brigade Commissar N. K. Popel'
Chief of Staff—Colonel M. T. Nikitin
Colonel I. V. Mel'nikov
Colonel A. Kh. Babadzhanian
Colonel V. M. Gorelov
Major V. S. Chernichenko
Major A. G. Zubatov
Major A. F. Burda
Commander—Major General A. I. Zygin
Commissar—Brigade Commissar V. R. Boiko
Colonel V. G. Kovalenko
Colonel M. M. Busarov
Major General A. G. Kudriavtsev
Major General V. K. Urbanovich
Colonel I. A. Il'ichev
Colonel K.I. Sazonov
Colonel K. A. Malygin(7.12, commander of 3d Shock
Army armored forces)
Lieutenant Colonel E. M. Kovalev (from 8.12)
Colonel D. I. Kuz'min (KIA on 26.11)
Colonel A. S. Nikolaev (from 13.12)
Lieutenant Colonel Menshurin
WESTERN FRONTCommander—Colonel General I. S. Konev
Commissar—Lieutenant General N. A. Bulganin
Chief of Staff—Colonel General V. D. Sokolovsky
Red Army Command Personnel in Operation Mars 347
20th Army
8th Guards Rifle Corps
26th Guards Rifle Division
148th Rifle Brigade
150th Rifle Brigade
1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division
20th Guards Rifle Division (from 31A by 1.12)
30th Guards Rifle Division (from 5A by 11.12)
42d Guards Rifle Division
243d Rifle Division (from RVGK by 12.12)
247th Rifle Division
251st Rifle Division
326th Rifle Division
331st Rifle Division
354th Rifle Division (from 31A by 1.12)
48th Ski Brigade
5th Tank Corps
24th Tank Brigade
41st Tank Brigade
70th Tank Brigade
5th Motorized Rifle Brigade
6th Tank Corps
22d Tank Brigade
100th Tank Brigade
200th Tank Brigade
6th Motorized Rifle Brigade
llth Tank Brigade
17th Tank Brigade (to 29A by 1.12)
18th Tank Brigade
20th Tank Brigade (to 29A by 1.12)
25th Tank Brigade
31st Tank Brigade
32d Tank Brigade (by 1.12)
80th Tank Brigade
93d Tank Brigade
Commander—Major General N. I. Kiriukhin
(to 8 December 1942)
Lieutenant General M. S. Khozin (from
8 December 1942)
Commissar—Division Commissar A. A. Lobachev
Major General F. D. Zakharov (to 23.12)
Major General A. S. Ksenofontov (from 24.12)
Major General I. I. Korzhenevsky
Major General V. A. Reviakhin (to 3.12)
Colonel N. A. Kropotin (from 4.12)
Major General I. F. Dudarev (to 30.11)
Colonel P. la. Tikhonov (from 3.12)
Major General A. D. Kuleshov
Major General F. A. Bobrov
Colonel A. A. Kutsenko
Major General G. D. Mukhin
Colonel B. B. Gorodovikov
Colonel G. P. Karamyshev (to 12.12)
Lieutenant Colonel I. I. laremenko (from 13.12)
Colonel P. F. Berestov
Colonel D. F. Alekseev
Major General K. A. Semenchenko (to 20.12)
Colonel M. G. Sakhno (from 20.12)
Colonel V. V. Sytnik
Lieutenant Colonel N. P. Nikolaev
Lieutenant Colonel K. N. Abramov (WIA on 12.12)
Lieutenant Colonel F. la. Degtev (WIA on 13.12)
Senior Lieutenant Ehmulov
Lieutenant Colonel G. G. Skripka (WIA on 12.12)
Major A. I. Khailenko (from 12.12)
Commander—Major General A. L. Getman (ill)
Colonel P. M. Arman (to 11.12)
Colonel I. I. lushchuk (from 11.12)
Commissar—Brigade Commissar P. G. Grishin
Colonel N. G. Vedenichev
Colonel I. M. Ivanov
Colonel V. P. Vinakurov (KIA on 31.11)
Colonel N, A. luplin (from 31.11)
Colonel I. T. Esipenko (to 26.11)
Senior Battalion Commissar E. F. Rybalko (from
26.11, KIA on 31.11)
Colonel I. I. lushchuk (1.12 to 11.12)
Lieutenant Colonel I. I. Savransky (from 11.12)
Colonel M. M. Balykov
Lieutenant Colonel I. D. Beloglazov
Lieutenant Colonel V. F. Kotov
Colonel N. P. Konstantinov (KIA on 4.12)
Colonel N. K. Volodin
Colonel V. E. Grigor'ev (KIA on 1.12)
Lieutenant Colonel V. F. Orlov (from 2.12)
Lieutenant Colonel P. I. Chepiakin
Colonel V. N. Buslaev
Major Tchipkov
348 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Main Attack Armies, Western Front, continued
145th Tank Brigade (to 31A by 1.12)
240th Tank Brigade
255th Tank Brigade
2d Guards Cavalry Corps
3d Guards Cavalry Division
4th Guards Cavalry Division
20th Cavalry Division
Supporting Armies
30th Army
16th Guards Rifle Division
52d Rifle Division
215th Rifle Division
220th Rifle Division
274th Rifle Division
359th Rifle Division
369th Rifle Division
375th Rifle Division
380th
Rifle
Division
(from
39A by
15.11)
130th Rifle Brigade
49th Ski Brigade
35th Tank Brigade (10th Guards on 19.11)
196th Tank Brigade
238th Tank Brigade (to RVGK by 1.12)
31st Army
20th Guards Rifle Division (to 20A by 1.12)
88th Rifle Division
118th Rifle Division
133d Rifle Division
139th Rifle Division
239th Rifle Division
246th Rifle Division
336th Rifle Division
354th Rifle Division (to 20A by 1.12)
371st Rifle Division
32d Tank Brigade
92d Tank Brigade
145th Tank Brigade
29th Army
3d Guards Motorized Rifle Division (1.12)
19th Rifle Division (from 5A by 1.12)
82d Rifle Division
312th Rifle Division
415th Rifle Division (to 20A by 10.12)
28th Rifle Brigade
35th Rifle Brigade
40th Rifle Brigade
49th Rifle Brigade
Colonel S. S. Sergeevka
Lieutenant Colonel I. D. Ivliev
Lieutenant Colonel I. F. Ivanov (to 9.12)
Major A. I. Litovka (from 10.12)
Major General V. V. Kriukov
Colonel M. D. lagodin
Colonel G. I. Pankratov
Colonel P. T. Kursakov
Commander—Major General V. la. Kolpakchi
Major General (on 27.11) P. G. Shafronov
Colonel L. I. Vagin
Major General A. F. Kupriianov
Colonel S. G. Poplavsky
Colonel V. P. Shul'ga
Colonel V. K. Guriashin
Colonel M. Z. Kazishvili
Colonel P. D. Govorunenko
Colonel M. N. Smirnov
Major A. R. Burlyga
Lieutenant Colonel E. E. Dukhovny
Major V. I. Evsiukov
Commander—Major General V. S. Polenov
see 20th Army
Colonel A. F. Bolotov
Colonel A. la. Vedenin
Colonel N. A. Krymsky
Lieutenant Colonel I. I. laremenko (to 25.11)
Lieutenant Colonel N. Sukharev (from 25.11)
Major General P. N. Chernyshev
Major M. G. Fedorenko (to 7.12)
Colonel P. L. Mishchenko (from 8.12 to 22.12)
Colonel E. G. Ushakov (from 22.12)
Major General V. S. Kuznetsov
Colonel D. F. Alekseev
Colonel N. N. Oleshev
Lieutenant Colonel P. I. Chepiakin
Lieutenant Colonel N. B. Martynov
Colonel S. S. Sergeevka
Commander—Major General E. P. Zhuravlev
Colonel A. I. Akimov
Colonel G. A. Gogolitsyn
Colonel I. V. Pisarev
Colonel A. G. Moiseevsky
Colonel V. F. Samoilenko (to 11.12)
Colonel
A. I.
Golovanov
(from
11.12)
Red Army Command Personnel in Operation Mars 349
9th Guards Tank Brigade
20th Tank Brigade (from 20A by 1.12)
120th Tank Brigade (from 5A by 1.12)
161st Tank Brigade (from 5A by 1.12)
175th Tank Brigade
213th Tank Brigade (from 33A by 10.12)
256th Tank Brigade (from 33A by 10.12)
Colonel I. D. Beloglazov
Colonel N. P. Konstantinov
Colonel N. I. Bukov
Colonel S.I. Alaev
Lieutenant Colonel K. K. Stepanov
Lieutenant Colonel Z. S. Gaev
Lieutenant Colonel A. N. Pavliuk-Moroz
APPENDIX C
Orders of Battle
Operations Mars and Jupiter: Combat Support
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
1st Mechanized Corps
47th Mechanized Brigade
48th Mechanized Brigade
104th Tank Brigade"
154th Tank Brigade"
40th Separate Tank Regiment"
229th Separate Tank
Regiment"
Main Attack Armies
41st Army
83d Corps Artillery Regiment
64th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
440th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
1224th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
1098th Gun Artillery Regiment
455th Army Artillery Regiment
75th Antitank Regiment
232d Antitank Regiment
301st Antitank Regiment
437th Antitank Regiment
483d Antitank Regiment
592d Antitank Regiment
16th Guards Mortar Regiment
24th Guards Mortar Regiment
34th Guards Mortar Regiment
(-123d Battalion)
38th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
109th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
545th Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
546th Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
547th Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
548th Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
549th Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
550th Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
551st Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
552d Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
18th Separate Sapper Battalion
107th Separate Sapper Battalion
110th Separate Engineer Battalion
292d Separate Engineer Battalion
903d Separate Engineer
60th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
737th Separate Mine-Sapper
Battalion
"By 1 December
351
Orders of Battle 353
Combat Support, continued
Armor
ArtilleryEngineer
llth Tank Brigade
17th (9th Guards) Tank Brigade
(to
29A, 1.12)
18th Tank Brigade
20th Tank Brigade
(to 29A,1.12)
25th Tank Brigade t
31st Tank Brigade!
32d Tank Brigade}
80th Tank Brigade
93d Tank Brigade!
240th Tank Brigade
145th Tank Brigade!
255th Tank Brigade
2d Guards Cavalry Corps"
112th Tank Brigade
120th Tank Brigade
153d Tank Brigade
161th Tank Brigade
186th Tank Brigade
16th Guards Howitzer Artillery
Regiment
296th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
17th Guards Army Artillery Regiment
56th Corps Artillery Regiment
528th Gun Artillery Regiment
3d Guards Antitank Regiment
169th Mortar Regiment
59th Guards Mortar Regiment
2d Separate Guards Mortar Battalion
5th Separate Guards Mortar Battalion
87th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
98th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
99th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
14th Antiaircraft Division
1265th Antiaircraft Regiment
1271st Antiaircraft Regiment
50th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
64th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
525th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
5th Army
6th Artillery Division
66th Guards Gun Artillery Regiment
517th Gun Artillery Regiment
554th Gun Artillery Regiment
360th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
590th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
(High-Power)
5th Guards Antitank Regiment
696th Antitank Regiment
135th Mortar Regiment
54th Guards Mortar Regiment
(-286th Battalion)
60th Guards Mortar Regiment
(-34th Battalion)
41st Separate Guards Mortar Battalion
65th Separate Heavy Guards
Mortar Battalion
69th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
70th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
89th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
92d Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
301st Separate Engineer
Battalion
302d Separate Engineer
Battalion
296th Separate Engineer Battalion
297th Separate Engineer Battalion
"Front subordination.
t Detached from the 8th Tank Corps.
}By 1 December 1942.
354 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Operations Mars and Jupiter: Combat Support
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
9th Tank Corps"
10th Tank Corps"
213th Tank Brigade
248th Tank Brigade
256th Tank Brigade
520th Separate Tank Battalion
1st Guards Cavalry Corps"
42d Separate Engineer Battalion
298th Separate Engineer Battalion
321st Separate Engineer Battalion
96th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
100th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
504th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
505th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
506th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
1267th Antiaircraft Regiment
1272d Antiaircraft Regiment
1276th Antiaircraft Regiment
1279th Antiaircraft Regiment
33d Army
2d Guards Army Artillery Regiment
995th Army Artillery Regiment
55th Corps Artillery Regiment
128th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
364th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
557th Gun Artillery Regiment
564th Gun Artillery Regiment
570th Gun Artillery Regiment
572d Gun Artillery Regiment
1099th Gun Artillery Regiment
2d Guards Antitank Regiment
868th Antitank Regiment
1171st Antitank Regiment
113th Mortar Regiment
37th Guards Mortar Regiment
3d Separate Guards Mortar Battalion
1266th Antiaircraft Regiment
1278th Antiaircraft Regiment
3d Tank Army
1172d Antitank Regiment
1245th Antitank Regiment
62d Guards Mortar Regiment
71st Antiaircraft Regiment
319th Antiaircraft Regiment
470th Antiaircraft Regiment
Supporting Armies
30th Army
542d Gun Artillery Regiment 51st Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
544th High-Power Howitzer Artillery 133d Separate Engineer Battalion
Regiment
1221st High-Power Howitzer Artillery 263d Separate Engineer Battalion
Regiment
3d Tank Corps
12th Tank Corps
15th Tank Corps
179th Tank Brigade
10th Guards Tank Brigade
196th Tank Brigade
238th Tank Brigade
(toRGVKby 1.12)
182d Separate Engineer Battalion
"Front subordination.
Orders of Batde 355
Combat Support, continued
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
32d Tank Brigade
145th Tank Brigade
(from 20A by 1.12)
20th Tank Brigade
(from 20A by 1.12)
9th Guards Tank Brigade
120th Tank Brigade
(from 5A by 1.12)
161st Tank Brigade
(from 5A by 1.12)
213d Tank Brigade
(from 33A by 10.12)
256th Tank Brigade
(from 33A by 10.12)
175th Tank Brigade
646th Army Artillery Regiment
758th Antitank Regiment
1179th Antitank Regiment
171st Mortar Regiment
68th Heavy Guards Mortar Regiment
31st Separate Guards Mortar Battalion
308th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
348th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
240th Antiaircraft Regiment
341st Antiaircraft Regiment
245th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
500th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
31st Army
74th Guards Army Artillery Regiment
75th Guards Army Artillery Regiment
392d Gun Artillery Regiment
644th Gun Artillery Regiment
1165th Gun Artillery Regiment
6th Guards Antitank Regiment
680th Antitank Regiment
869th Antitank Regiment
873d Antitank Regiment
213th Separate Antitank Battalion
112th Mortar Regiment
40th Guards Mortar Regiment
13th Separate Guards Mortar Battalion
67th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
1269th Antiaircraft Regiment
1270th Antiaircraft Regiment
614th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
29th Army
39th Gun Artillery Regiment
1093d Gun Artillery Regiment
537th Army Artillery Regiment
1st Guards Antitank Regiment
992d Antitank Regiment
1170th Antitank Regiment
34th Guards Mortar Regiment
28th Separate Guards Mortar Battalion
716th Antiaircraft Regiment
72d Separate Engineer Battalion
113th Separate Engineer
Battalion
738th Separate Mine-Sapper
Battalion
71st Separate Engineer Battalion
267th Separate Engineer Battalion
356 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Operations Mars and Jupiter: Combat Support
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
215th Separate Tank Regiment
238th Tank Brigade
Front Reserves
Kalinin Front
85th Corps Artillery Regiment
12th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
221st Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
622d Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
Western Front
761st Army Artillery Regiment
1222d High Power Howitzer Artillery
Regiment
150th Mortar Regiment
151st Mortar Regiment
17th Guards Mortar Battalion
97th Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Batallion
502d Separate Heavy Guards Mortar
Battalion
17th Antiaircraft Division
739th Antiaircraft Regiment
1281st Antiaircraft Regiment
24th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
5th Engineer Brigade
(Spetznaz)
7th Sapper Brigade
56th Engineer-Sapper Brigade
22d Separate Engineer Battalion
210th Separate Engineer
Battalion
245th Separate Engineer
Battalion
28th Separate Sapper Battalion
57th Pontoon-B ridge Battalion
63d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
93d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
106th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
122d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
10th Engineer-Mine Brigade
llth
Engineer-Mine Brigade
12th Engineer-Mine Brigade
33d Engineer Brigade
(Spetznaz)
llth
Guards Miners Battalion
6th Separate Engineer Battalion
84th Separate Engineer
Battalion
122d Separate Engineer Battalion
129th Separate Engineer
Battalion
229th Separate Engineer
Battalion
230th Separate Engineer
Battalion
61st Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
62d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
88th Pontoon-B ridge Battalion
89th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
90th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
91st Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
537th Separate Mine-Sapper
Battalion
538th Separate Mine-Sapper
Battalion
Orders of Battle 357
Operations Mars and Jupiter: Combat Forces
Infantry
Armored/Mechanized
Main Attack Armies
41st Army
6th Rifle Corps
150th Rifle Division
74th Rifle Brigade
75th Rifle Brigade
78th Rifle Brigade
91st Rifle Brigade
17th Guards Rifle Division
93d Rifle Division
134th Rifle Division
234th Rifle Division
262d Rifle Division
155th Rifle Division
185th Rifle Division
238th Rifle Division
362d Rifle Division
114th Rifle Brigade
1st Mechanized Corps
19th Mechanized Brigade
35th Mechanized Brigade
37th Mechanized Brigade
65th Tank Brigade
219th Tank Brigade
47th Mechanized Brigade
48th Mechanized Brigade
104th Tank Brigade (from 22A hy 1.12)
154th Tank Brigade (from 43A by 1.12)
40th Separate Tank Regiment (by 1.12)
229th Separate Tank Regiment (by 1.12)
' 22d Army
3d Mechanized Corps
1st Mechanized Brigade
3d Mechanized Brigade
10th Mechanized Brigade
1st Guards Tank Brigade
49th Tank Brigade
104th Tank Brigade (to 41A by 1.12)
39th Separate Tank Regiment
39th Army
135th Rifle Division
158th Rifle Division
178th Rifle Division
186th Rifle Division
348th Rifle Division
373d Rifle Division
100th Rifle Brigade
101st Rifle Brigade
117th Rifle Brigade
136th Rifle Brigade
20th Ar
8th Guards Rifle Corps
26th Guards Rifle Division
148th Rifle Brigade
150th Rifle Brigade
1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division
20th Guards Rifle Division (from 31A by 1.12)
42d Guards Rifle Division
243d Rifle Division (from RVGK by 12.12)
247th Rifle Division
251st Rifle Division
28th Tank Brigade
81st Tank Brigade
46th Mechanized Brigade
28th Tank Regiment
29th Tank Regiment
32d Tank Regiment
ly
5th Tank Corps
24th Tank Brigade
41st Tank Brigade
70th Tank Brigade
5th Motorized Rifle Brigade
6th Tank Corps
22d Tank Brigade
100th Tank Brigade
200th Tank Brigade
6th Motorized Rifle Brigade
358 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Operations Mars and Jupiter: Combat Forces
Infantry
Armored/Mechanized
326th Rifle Division
331st Rifle Division
354th Rifle Division (from 31A 1
48th Ski Brigade
llth Tank Brigade
17th Tank Brigade (to 29A by 1.12)
1.12) 18th Tank Brigade
20th Tank Brigade (to 29A by 1.12)
25th Tank Brigade
31st Tank Brigade
32d Tank Brigade (by 1.12)
80th Tank Brigade
93d Tank Brigade
145th Tank Brigade (to 31A by 1.12)
240th Tank Brigade
255th Tank Brigade
2d Guards Cavalry Corps
3d Guards Cavalry Division
4th Guards Cavalry Division
20th Cavalry Division
33d Army
7th Guards Rifle Corps
5th Guards Rifle Division
112th Rifle Brigade
125th Rifle Brigade
128th Rifle Brigade
17th Rifle Division
50th Rifle Division
53d Rifle Division
110th Rifle Division
113th Rifle Division
160th Rifle Division
222d Rifle Division
30th Rifle Brigade
50th Ski Brigade
9th Tank Corps
23d Tank Brigade
95th Tank Brigade
187th Tank Brigade
6th Guards Motorized Rifle Brigade
10th Tank Corps
178th Tank Brigade
183d Tank Brigade
llth
Motorized
Rifle
Brigade
213th Tank Brigade
248th Tank Brigade
256th Tank Brigade
520th Separate Tank Battalion
1st Guards Cavalry Corps
1st Guards Cavalry Division
2d Guards Cavalry Division
7th Guards Cavalry Division
5th Army
19th Rifle Division (to 29A by 1.12)
29th Guards Rifle Division
30th Guards Rifle Division (from RVGK by 1.12)
78th Rifle Division
108th Rifle Division
144th Rifle Division
194th Rifle Division (from RVGK by 1.12)
352d Rifle Division
379th Rifle Division (from RVGK by 1.12)
112th Tank Brigade
120th Tank Brigade
153d Tank Brigade
161st Tank Brigade
186th Tank Brigade
3d Tank Arr
48th Guards Rifle Division
399th Rifle Division3d Tank Corps
50th Tank Brigade
Orders of Bälde 359
Combat Forces, continued
Infantry
Armored/Mechanized
51st Tank Brigade
103d Tank Brigade
12th Tank Corps
30th Tank Brigade
97th Tank Brigade
106th Tank Brigade
13th Motorized Rifle Brigade
15th Tank Corps
88th Tank Brigade
113th Tank Brigade
195th Tank Brigade
179th Tank Brigade
Supporting Armies
30th Army
16th Guards Rifle Division 10th Guards Tank Brigade
52d Rifle Division 196th Tank Brigade
215th Rifle Division 238th Tank Brigade (to RVGK by 1.12)
220th Rifle Division
274th Rifle Division
359th Rifle Division
369th Rifle Division
375th Rifle Division
380th Rifle Division
130th Rifle Brigade
49th Ski Brigade
31st Army
20th Guards Rifle Division (to 20A by 1.12) 32d Tank Brigade
88th Rifle Division 145th Tank Brigade (from 20A by 1.12)
118th Rifle Division
133d Rifle Division
139th Rifle Division
239th Rifle Division
246th Rifle Division
336th Rifle Division
354th Rifle Division (to 20A by 1.12)
371st Rifle Division
29th Army
3d Guards Motorized Rifle Division (1.12)
19th Rifle Division (from 5A by 1.12)
82d Rifle Division
312th Rifle Division
415th Rifle Division
28th Rifle Brigade
35th Rifle Brigade
40th Rifle Brigade
49th Rifle Brigade
20th Tank Brigade (from 20A by 1.12)
9th Guards Tank Brigade
120th Tank Brigade (from 5A by 1.12)
161st Tank Brigade (from 5A by 1.12)
175th Tank Brigade
213th Tank Brigade (from 33A by 10.12)
256th Tank Brigade (from 33A by 10.12)
360 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Operations Mars and Jupiter: Combat Forces
Infantry
Armored/Mechanized
Front Reserves
Kalinin Front
8th Rifle Corps
19th Guards Rifle Division
7th Rifle Division
249th Rifle Division
215th Tank Regiment
Western Front
243d Rifle Division (to 20 A by 12.12) 238th Tank Brigade
Summary data. Kalinin and Western Front Strength (by percentage of total Soviet forces in
the Soviet-German front): Sector width (kms) 1,050 (17.0%); personnel 1,890,000 (31.4%);
guns/mortars 24,682 (32.0%); tanks 3,375 (45.9 %); aircraft 1,170 (38.6%).
Operations Uranus and Saturn: Combat Support
Armor
Artillery
Enginee
17th Tank Corps
25th Tank Corps
115th Tank Rrigade
82d Separate Tank Regiment
212th Separate Tank Regiment
18th Tank Corps
24th Tank Corps
15th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
23d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
123d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
370th Engineer Battalion
Main Attack Armies
6th Army (Saturn) (as of 12.12)
8th Artillery Division
875th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
1109th Gun Artillery Regiment
462d Antitank Regiment
1176th Antitank Regiment
45th Guards Mortar Regiment
87th Guards Mortar Regiment
97th Guards Mortar Regiment
219th Antiaircraft Regiment
241st Antiaircraft Regiment
1290th Antiaircraft Regiment
626th Separate Antiaircraft Artillery
Battalion
1st Guards Army (Saturn) (as of 12.12)
9th Artillery Division 62d Separate Engineer-Sapper
Brigade
40th Guards Corps Artillery
Regiment
42d Guards Corps Artillery 26th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
Regiment
Note. When conducted, Operation Saturn was truncated into Operation "Little Saturn."
Orders of Battle 361
Combat Support, continued
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
126th Separate Tank Regiment
127th Separate Tank Regiment
141st Separate Tank Regiment
67th Separate Motorcycle
Battalion
1st Guards Mechanized Corps
22d Motorized Rifle Brigade
114th Separate Tank Regiment
119th Separate Tank Regiment
243d Separate Tank Regiment
50th Separate Motorcycle
Battalion
54th Separate Motorcycle
Battalion
1st Tank Corps
26th Tank Corps
8th Guards Tank Brigade
8th Motorcycle Regiment
56th Separate Motorcycle
8th Cavalry Corps
302d Guards Mortar Regiment
(Heavy)
303d Guards Mortar Regiment
(Heavy)
115th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
4th Antiaircraft Division
126th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
139th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
3d Guards Army (Saturn) (as of 12.12)
7th Artillery Division
1110th Gun Artillery Regiment
426th Antitank Regiment
532d Antitank Regiment
1243d Antitank Regiment
1249th Antitank Regiment
58th Guards Mortar Regiment
100th Guards Mortar Regiment
301st Guards Mortar Regiment (Heavy)
303d Antiaircraft Regiment
579th Antiaircraft Regiment
580th Antiaircraft Regiment
626th Antiaircraft Regiment
1257th Antiaircraft Regiment
60th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
5th Tank Army (Uranus)
124th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
(7th Artillery Division [AD])
213th Gun Artillery Regiment (7th AD)
152d Howitzer Artillery Regiment
396th Army Artillery Regiment
312th Gun Artillery Regiment
518th Gun Artillery Regiment
33d Antitank Regiment
150th Antitank Regiment
174th Antitank Regiment
179th Antitank Regiment
210th Antitank Regiment (7th AD)
481st Antitank Regiment
525th Antitank Regiment (7th AD)
534th Antitank Regiment
1241st Antitank Regiment
1243d Antitank Regiment
107th Mortar Regiment
148th Mortar Regiment
152d Mortar Regiment
21st Guards Mortar Regiment
35th Guards Mortar Regiment
28th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
100th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
350th Separate Engineer
Battalion
358th Separate Engineer
Battalion
37th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
102d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
322d Separate Engineer
Battalion
44th Engineer Brigade
(Spetznaz)
181st Separate Engineer Battalion
246th Separate Engineer Battalion
247th Separate Engineer Battalion
269th Separate Engineer Battalion
26th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
100th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
101st Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
102d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
130th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
362 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Operations Uranus and Saturn: Combat Support
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
4th Tank Corps
1st Guards Separate Tank
Regiment
2d Guards Separate Tank
Regiment
4th Guards Separate Tank
Regiment
3d Guards Cavalry Corps
205th Separate Engineer Battalion
540th Separate Engineer Battalion
75th Guards Mortar Regiment
3d Antiaircraft Division
27th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
21st Army (Uranus)
1st Artillery Division
648th Army Artillery Regiment
1162d Howitzer Artillery Regiment
383d Antitank Regiment
535th Antitank Regiment
764th Antitank Regiment
1180th Antitank Regiment
1184th Antitank Regiment
1250th Antitank Regiment
108th Mortar Regiment
114th Mortar Regiment
129th Mortar Regiment
85th Guards Mortar Regiment
86th Guards Mortar Regiment
88th Guards Mortar Regiment
1st Antiaircraft Division
580th Antiaircraft Regiment
581st Antiaircraft Regiment
878th Antiaircraft Regiment
1259th Antiaircraft Regiment
1263d Antiaircraft Regiment
27th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
24th Army (Uranus)
5th Guards Army Artillery Regiment 48th Separate Engineer Battalion
(4th
AD)
135th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
(4th
AD)
391st Antitank Regiment (4th AD)
101st Howitzer Artillery Regiment
1100th Gun Artillery Regiment
1101st Gun Artillery Regiment
1158th Gun Artillery Regiment
435th Antitank Regiment
23d Guards Mortar Regiment
57th Guards Mortar Regiment
94th Guards Mortar Regiment
281st Antiaircraft Regiment
297th Antiaircraft Regiment
65th Army (Uranus)
4th Artillery Division (-5 regiments) 9th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
99th Army Artillery Regiment
156th Army Artillery Regiment 321st Separate Engineer Battalion
5th Guards Mortar Regiment
48th Guards Mortar Regiment
16th Tank Corps
10th Tank Brigade
8th Guards Separate Tank
Regiment
10th Guards Separate Tank
Regiment
91st Tank Brigade
121st Tank Brigade
Combat Support, continued
Orders of Battle 363
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
84th Guards Mortar Regiment
93d Guards Mortar Regiment
15th Antiaircraft Regiment
13th Tank Corps
90th Tank Brigade
35th Separate Tank Regiment
57th Army (Uranus)
70th Guards Army Artillery
Regiment (19th AD)
1159th Gun Artillery Regiment
(19th
AD)
85th Guards Howitzer Artillery
Regiment
1168th Gun Artillery Regiment
184th Antitank Regiment
482d Antitank Regiment
565th Antitank Regiment
762d Antitank Regiment
1188th Antitank Regiment
140th Mortar Regiment
18th Guards Mortar Regiment
90th Guards Mortar Regiment
334th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
603d Antiaircraft Regiment
726th Antiaircraft Regiment
122d Separate Engineer
Battalion
175th Separate Engineer
Battalion
4th Mechanized Corps
85th Tank Brigade
254th Tank Brigade
51st Army (Uranus)
1105th Gun Artillery Regiment
149th Antitank Regiment
491st Antitank Regiment
492d Antitank Regiment
1246th Antitank Regiment
125th Mortar Regiment
3d Bn, 141st Mortar Regiment
47th Guards Mortar Regiment
80th Guards Mortar Regiment
2d Antiaircraft Regiment
205th Separate Engineer Battalion
275th Separate Sapper Battalion
742d Separate Mine-Sapper
Battalion
6th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
58th Tank Brigade
7th Guards Separate Tank
Regiment
Supporting Armies
66th Army (Uranus)
7th Guards Army Artillery Regiment
(4th
AD)
1102d Gun Artillery Regiment
381st Antitank Regiment (4th AD)
136th Mortar Regiment
143d Mortar Regiment
1st Heavy Guards Mortar Regiment
56th Guards Mortar Regiment
72d Guards Mortar Regiment
278th Antiaircraft Regiment
722d Antiaircraft Regiment
1st Separate Engineer Battalion
34th Separate Engineer Battalion
432d Separate Engineer
Battalion
364 Zhukov's Creates t Defeat
Operations Uranus and Saturn: Combat Support
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
84th Tank Brigade
56th Tank Brigade
235th Tank Brigade
38th Motorized Rifle Brigade
166th Separate Tank Regiment
62d Army (Uranus)
457th Gun Artillery Regiment
(19th
AD)
266th Gun Artillery Regiment
1103d Gun Artillery Regiment
397th Antitank Regiment
499th Antitank Regiment
502d Antitank Regiment
141st Mortar Regiment (-3
battalions)
19th Guards Mortar Regiment
51st Guards Mortar Regiment
89th Guards Mortar Regiment
92d Guards Mortar Regiment
223d Antiaircraft Regiment
242d Antiaircraft Regiment
64th Army (Uranus)
llllth
Gun
Artillery Regiment
186th Antitank Regiment
500th Antitank Regiment
507th Antitank Regiment
665th Antitank Regiment
3d Heavy Guards Mortar Regiment
4th Guards Mortar Regiment
91st Guards Mortar Regiment
622d Antiaircraft Regiment
1261st Antiaircraft Regiment
326th Separate Engineer
Battalion
327th Separate Engineer
Battalion
175th Separate Engineer Battalion
328th Separate Engineer Battalion
329th Separate Engineer Battalion
330th Separate Engineer Battalion
5th Mechanized Corps
Front Reserves
Southwestern Front
124th Gun Artillery Regiment
(7th
AD)
210th Antitank Regiment (7th AD)
468th Antitank Regiment
307th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
309th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
406th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
303d Antiaircraft Regiment
581st Antiaircraft Regiment
31st Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
126th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
139th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
15th Engineer-Mine Brigade
62d Separate Sapper Brigade
8th Heavy Pontoon-Bridge
Regiment
351st Separate Engineer Battalion
Orders of Battle 365
Combat Support, continued
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
64th Tank Brigade
148th Tank Brigade
5th Guards Tank Regiment
6th Guards Tank Regiment
41st Separate Tank Regiment
234th Separate Tank Regiment
Don Front
79th Guards Mortar Regiment
18th Antiaircraft Regiment
67th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
141st Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
307th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
436th Separate Antiaircraft Battalion
Stalingrad Front
19th Artillery Division (4 regiments)
498th Howitzer Artillery Regiment
1104th Gun Artillery Regiment
2d Guards Mortar Regiment
83d Guards Mortar Regiment
5th Engineer-Mine Brigade
16th Engineer Brigade
(Spetznaz)
20th Sapper Brigade
6th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
7th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
20th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
104th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
120th Separate Engineer
Battalion
257th Separate Engineer
Battalion
258th Separate Engineer
Battalion
741st Separate Mine-Sapper
Battalion
1st Pontoon-Bridge Brigade
2d Pontoon-Bridge Brigade
7th Engineer-Mine Brigade
43d Engineer Brigade
(Spetznaz)
21st Sapper Brigade
1st Pontoon-Bridge Regiment
17th Guards Miner Battalion
6th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
44th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
47th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
103d Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
107th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
119th Separate Engineer Battalion
240th Separate Engineer Battalion
1504th Separate Mine-Sapper
Battalion
2d Guards Mechanized Corps
Stavka Reserves
2d Guards Army (Saturn)
117th Guards Corps Artillery
Regiment
54th Guards Separate Antitank
Battalion
408th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
355th Separate Engineer
Battalion
366 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Operations Uranus and Saturn: Combat Forces
Infantry
Armored/Mechanized
Main Attack Armies
6th Army (Saturn) (as of 12.12)
15th Rifle Corps
172d Rifle Division
267th Rifle Division
350th Rifle Division
127th Rifle Division
17th Tank Corps
66th Tank Rrigade
67th Tank Rrigade
174th Tank Rrigade
31st Motorized Rifle Brigade
25th Tank Corps
lllth
Tank Brigade
162d Tank Brigade
175th Tank Brigade
16th Motorized Rifle Brigade
115th Tank Brigade
82d Separate Tank Regiment
212th Separate Tank Regiment
1st Guards Army (Saturn) (as of 12.12)
4th Guards Rifle Corps
35th Guards Rifle Division
41st Guards Rifle Division
195th Rifle Division
6th Guards Rifle Corps
38th Guards Rifle Division
44th Guards Rifle Division
1st Rifle Division
153d Rifle Division
1st Destruction Brigade
3d
14th Rifle Corps
14th Guards Rifle Division
50th Guards Rifle Division
159th Rifle Division
203d Rifle Division
197th Rifle Division
266th Rifle Division
278th Rifle Division
90th Rifle Brigade
94th Rifle Brigade
40th Guards Rifle Division
47th Guards Rifle Division
50th Guards Rifle Division
18th Tank Corps
110th Tank Brigade
170th Tank Brigade
181st Tank Brigade
32d Motorized Rifle Brigade
24th Tank Corps
4th Guards Tank Brigade
54th Tank Brigade
130th Tank Brigade
24th Motorized Rifle Brigade
126th Separate Tank Regiment
127th Separate Tank Regiment
141st Separate Tank Regiment
67th Separate Motorcycle Battalion
Guards Army (Saturn) (as of 12.12)
1st Guards Mechanized Corps
1st Guards Mechanized Brigade
2d Guards Mechanized Brigade
3d Guards Mechanized Brigade
16th Guards Tank Regiment
17th Guards Tank Regiment
22d Motorized Rifle Brigade
114th Separate Tank Regiment
119th Separate Tank Regiment
243d Separate Tank Regiment
50th Separate Motorcycle Battalion
54th Separate Motorcycle Battalion
5th Tank Army (Uranus)
1st Tank Corps
89th Tank Brigade
117th Tank Brigade
Orders of Battle 367
Combat Forces, continued
Infantry
Armored/Mechanized
119th Rifle Division
159th Rifle Division
258th Rifle Division
321st Rifle Division
346th Rifle Division
5th Separate Destruction Brigade
51st Guards Rifle Division
52d Guards Rifle Division
51st Rifle Division
96th Rifle Division
277th Rifle Division
293d Rifle Division
49th Rifle Division
84th Rifle Division
120th Rifle Division
173d Rifle Division
214th Rifle Division
233d Rifle Division
260th Rifle Division
260th Rifle Division
273d Rifle Division
298th Rifle Division
54th Fortified Region
27th Guards Rifle Division
23d Rifle Division
24th Rifle Division
252d Rifle Division
304th Rifle Division
159th Tank Rrigade
44th Motorized Rifle Brigade
26th Tank Corps
19th Tank Brigade
157th Tank Brigade
216th Tank Brigade
14th Motorized Rifle Brigade
8th Guards Tank Brigade
510th Separate Tank Battalion
511th Separate Tank Battalion
8th Motorcycle Regiment
56th Separate Motorcycle Battalion
45th Separate Armored Car Battalion
8th Cavalry Corps
21st Cavalry Division
55th Cavalry Division
112th Cavalry Division
21st Army (Uranus)
4th Tank Corps
45th Tank Brigade
69th Tank Brigade
102d Tank Brigade
4th Motorized Rifle Brigade
1st Guards Separate Tank Regiment
2d Guards Separate Tank Regiment
4th Guards Separate Tank Regiment
3d Guards Cavalry Corps
5th Guards Cavalry Division
6th Guards Cavalry Division
32d Cavalry Division
24th Army (Uranus)
16th Tank Corps
107th Tank Brigade
109th Tank Brigade
164th Tank Brigade
15th Motorized Rifle Brigade
10th Tank Brigade
8th Guards Separate Tank Regiment
9th Guards Separate Tank Regiment
65th Army (Uranus)
91st Tank Brigade
121st Tank Brigade
368 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Operations Uranus and Saturn: Combat Forces
Infantry
Armored/M echanized
57th Army (Uranus)
15th Guards Rifle Division
36th Guards Rifle Division
169th Rifle Division
422d Rifle Division
143d Rifle Brigade
45th Separate Machine-Gun Artillery Battalion
172d Separate. Machine-Gun Artilllery Battalion
177th Separate Machine-Gun Artillery Battalion
13th Tank Corps
13th Tank Brigade
17th Mechanized Brigade
61st Mechanized Brigade
62d Mechanized Brigade
90th Tank Brigade
35th Separate Tank Regiment
44th Separate Armored Car Battalion
51st Army (Uranus)
91st Rifle Division
126th Rifle Division
300th Rifle Division
315th Rifle Division
76th Fortified Region
4th Mechanized Corps
36th Mechanized Brigade
59th Mechanized Brigade
60th Mechanized Brigade
55th Separate Tank Regiment
158th Separate Tank Regiment
61st Separate Motorcycle Battalion
85th Tank Brigade
254th Tank Brigade
4th Cavalry Corps
61st Cavalry Division
81st Cavalry Division
64th Rifle Division
99th Rifle Division
116th Rifle Division
226th Rifle Division
299th Rifle Division
343d Rifle Division
13th Guards Rifle Division
37th Guards Rifle Division
39th Guards Rifle Division
45th Rifle Division
95th Rifle Division
112th Rifle Division
138th Rifle Division
193d Rifle Division
284th Rifle Division
308th Rifle Division
42d Rifle Brigade
92d Rifle Brigade
115th Rifle Brigade
124th Rifle Brigade
149th Rifle Brigade
160th Rifle Bigade
Supporting Armies
66th Army (Uranus)
91st Tank Brigade
121st Tank Brigade
62d Army (Uranus)
84th Tank Brigade
Orders of Battle 369
Combat Forces, continued
InfantryArmored/Mechanized
64th Army (Uranus)
7th Rifle Corps
93d Rifle Brigade
96th Rifle Brigade
97th Rifle Brigade
29th Rifle Division
38th Rifle Division
157th Rifle Division
204th Rifle Division
66th Naval Rifle Brigade
154th Naval Rifle Brigade
20th Separate Destruction Brigade
118th Fortified Region
56th Tank Brigade
235th Tank Brigade
38th Separate Motorized Rifle Brigade
166th Separate Tank Regiment
Front Reserves
Southwestern Front
94th Rifle Brigade
4th Guards Rifle Division
333d Rifle Division
159th Fortified Region
87th Rifle Division
77th Fortified Region
115th Fortified Region
156th Fortified Region
1st Guards Rifle Corps
24th Guards Rifle Division
33d Guards Rifle Division
98th Rifle Division
13th Guards Rifle Corps
3d Guards Rifle Division
49th Guards Rifle Division
387th Rifle Division
5th Mechanized Corps
45th Mechanized Brigade
49th Mechanized Brigade
50th Mechanized Brigade
168th Separate Tank Regiment
188th Separate Tank Regiment
Don Front
64th Tank Brigade
148th Tank Brigade
5th Guards Tank Regiment
6th Guards Tank Regiment
Stalingrad Front
41st Separate Tank Regiment
234th Separate Tank Regiment
Stavka Reserves
2d Guards Army (Saturn)
2d Guards Mechanized Corps
4th Guards Mechanized Brigade
5th Guards Mechanized Brigade
6th Guards Mechanized Brigade
22d Guards Separate Tank Regiment
Summary data. Southwestern, Don, and Stalingrad Front strength (by percentage of Soviet strength on the
entire Soviet-German front): sector width (kms) 850 (14.0%); personnel 1,103,000 (18.4%); guns/mortars
15,501 (20.1%); tanks 1,463 (19.9%); aircraft 928 (30.6%).
370 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Velikie Luki Operation: Combat Support
Armor
Artillery
Engineer
Main Attack Army
3d Shock Army
2d Mechanized Corps
184th Tank Brigade
27th Separate Tank Regiment
34th Separate Tank Regiment
36th Separate Tank Regiment
37th Separate Tank Regiment
38th Separate Tank Regiment
45th Separate Tank Regiment
146th Separate Tank Battalion
170th Separate Tank Battalion
78th Tank Brigade
236th Tank Brigade
171st Separate Tank Battalion
38th Guards Corps Artillery
Regiment
41st Guards Corps Artillery
Regiment
270th Army Artillery Regiment
613th Army Artillery Regiment
385th Howitzer Artillery
1094th Gun Artillery Regiment
1190th Gun Artillery Regiment
79th Antitank Regiment
171st Antitank Regiment
316th Antitank Regiment
389th Antitank Regiment
699th Antitank Regiment
603d Mortar Regiment
61st Guards Mortar Regiment
304th Guards Mortar Regiment
43d Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
106th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
107th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
205th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
240th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
410th Separate Guards Mortar
Battalion
582d Antiaircraft Regiment
609th Antiaircraft Regiment
Supporting Army
4th Shock Army
488th Army Artillery Regiment
569th Antitank Regiment
759th Antitank Regiment
765th Antitank Regiment
408th Mortar Regiment
17th Guards Mortar Regiment
(-219th Battalion)
617th Antiaircraft Regiment
225th Separate Engineer
Battalion
289th Separate Engineer
Battalion
293d Separate Engineer
Battalion
94th Pontoon-Bridge Battalion
290th SeparateEngineer
Battalion
348th Separate Engineer
Battalion
Orders of Battle 371
Velikie Luki Operation: Combat Forces
Infantry
Armored/Mechanized
Main Attack Army
3d Shock Army
2d Guards Rifle Corps
8th Guards Rifle Division
26th Rifle Brigade
5th Guards Rifle Corps
9th Guards Rifle Division
46th Guards Rifle Division
357th Rifle Division
21st Guards Rifle Division
28th Rifle Division
33d Rifle Division
117th Rifle Division
257th Rifle Division
381st Rifle Division
31st Rifle Brigade
54th Rifle Brigade
44th Ski Brigade
Supporting Army
4th Shock Army
47th Rifle Division
332d Rifle Division
334th Rifle Division
358th Rifle Division
360th Rifle Division
26th Separate Destruction Brigade
45th Ski Brigade
2d Mechanized Corps
18th Mechanized Brigade
34th Mechanized Brigade
43d Mechanized Brigade
33d Tank Brigade
36th Tank Brigade
184th Tank Brigade
27th Separate Tank Regiment
34th Separate Tank Regiment
36th Separate Tank Regiment
37th Separate Tank Regiment
38th Separate Tank Regiment
45th Separate Tank Regiment
146th Separate Tank Battalion
170th Separate Tank Battalion
78th Tank Brigade
236th Tank Brigade
171st Separate Tank Battalion
APPENDIX D
Comparative Data on Operations
(November-December 1942)
Red Army Force Concentration along Selected Axes
Rifle
Mars
Velikie Luki
Belyi
Luchesa
Olenino
Sychevka
Total
Jupiter
Viaz'ma
Total
Grand Total
Uranus
Serafimovich
Kletskaia
Kachalinsldi
South of Stalingrad
Total
Saturn
Verkhnii Mamon
Bokovskaia
Total
Grand Total
Army
3SA
41 A
22 A
39 A
30 A
20 A
31 A
33 A
5A
3TA
5TA
21 A
65 A
24 A
64 A
57 A
51 A
6A
1GA
3GA
RD
7
4
3
6
5
10
2
37
8
9
2
19
56
8
6
5
4
4
3
4
34
4
7
7
18
52
RB
0
4
1
4
1
3
0
13
5
0
0
5
18
0
0
0
0
0
1
0
1
0
0
2
2
3
TC/MC
1
1
1
0
0
3
0
6
1
1
3
5
11
2
1
0
1
0
1
1
6
2
2
1
5
11
Tank/Mech
TB
3
4
2
2
1
18
1
31
5
7
10
22
53
7
3
2
4
2
1
2
21
7
6
0
13
34
MB
3
5
3
1
0
0
0
12
0
0
0
0
12
0
0
0
0
0
4
3
7
0
0
3
3
10
MRB
0
0
0
0
0
2
0
2
1
1
1
3
5
2
1
0
1
1
0
0
5
2
2
1
5
10
Total Mobile
Brigades TR
6
9
5
3
1
20
1
45
6
8
11
25
70
9
4
2
5
3
5
5
33
9
8
4
21
52
6
2
1
3
0
0
0
12
0
0
0
0
12
0
3
0
2
1
1
2
9
2
3
3
8
17
CD
0
0
0
0
0
3
0
3
3
0
0
3
6
3
3
0
0
0
0
2
8
0
0
0
0
8
Abbreviations: A—-Army, CD—cavalry division, MB—mechanized brigade, MC—mechanized corps, MRB—motorized
rifle brigade, RB—rifle brigade, RD—rifle division, SA—shock army, T A—tank army, TC—tank corps, TB—tank brigade,
and TR—tank regiment.
373
Comparative Data on Operations 3 75
Weighted Allocation of Forces in Selected Operations
Mars
Velikie Luki
Belyi
Luchesa
Olenino
Sychevka
Total
Jupiter
Viaz'ma
Total
Grand Total
Uranus
Serfimovich
Kletskaia
Kachalinskii
South of Stalingrad
Total
Saturn
Verkhnii Mamon
Bokovskaia
Total
Grand Total
Army
3 SA
41 A
22 A
39 A
30 A
20 A
31 A
33 A
5 A
3TA
5TA
21 A
65 A
24 A
64 A
57 A
51 A
6 A
1 GA
3GA
Rifle
Divisions
7
6
3.5
8
5.5
11.5
2
43.5
10.5
9
2
21.5
65
8
6
5
4
4
3.5
4
34.5
4
7
8
19
53.5
Mobile
Brigades
9
10
5.5
4.5
1
20
1
51
6
8
11
25
76
9
5.5
2
6
3.5
5.5
6
37.5
10
9.5
5.5
25
62.5
Artillery
Regiments
11
12
8
7
3
13
5
59
13
15
1
29
88
11
12
7
9
4
7
4
54
13
12
13
38
92
Antitank
Regiments
5
6
3
4
2
4
2
26
3
5
2
10
36
9
9
1
2
4
5
4
34
2
0
4
6
40
Antiaircraft
Regiments
2
2
3
1
1
7
1
17
2
4
3
9
26
4
9
1
2
2
2
1
21
3
4
5
12
33
Engineer
Battalions
4
7
3
4
2
4
1
25
3
2
1
6
31
13
2
2'
2
4
2
4
29
4
9
3
16
45
Red Army Armor Strength in Selected Operations
Tank Strength
Mars
Jupiter
Uranus
Saturn
Strategic Reserves
Tambov
Moscow
South
South
South
Grand Total
Force
1st MC
2dMC
3d MC
5th TC
6th TC
8th TC
20 separate tank brigades
1 separate mechanized brigade
10 separate tank regiments
6 separate tank battalions
Total"
9th TC
10th
TC
3dTA
3dTC
12th
TC
15th
TC
10 separate tank brigades
1 separate tank battalion
Total
Grand Total
IstTC
26th TC
4th TC
16th
TC
13th
TC
4th MC
13 separate tank brigades
111 separate tank regiments
Total
17th
TC
18th
TC
24th TC
25th TC
1st Guards MC
5th MC
1 separate tank brigade
8 separate tank regiments
Total
Grand Total
2d Guards MC
6th MC
2dTC
7th TC
23d TC
Operational
306
215
232
131
170
123
1,177
168
168
168
168
168
840
2,072
136
161
143
103
113
109
765
168
160
159
160
163
183
993
1,758
215
215
168
168
168
734
Tactical
820
35
230
90
1,175
410
15
425
1,600
540
255
795
41
184
225
1,020
Total committed in the South
Total
2,352
1,265
3,672
1,560
1,218
2,778
734
3,512
Average strengths. Tank brigades—41; tank regiments—23; tank battalions—15.
"Approximately 207 tanks in seven tank brigades of the 43d, 49th, 50th, 10th, 16th, and 61st Armies.
APPENDIX E
Postscript on Losses
A preeminent Russian military historian recently released unprecedented data on
Operation Mars in a letter he wrote to a Western publisher. Written by Colonel
General G. F. Krivosheev, the letter responded to a review of a book edited by him
on combat losses suffered by the Red Army since its inception. The review had la-
mented the fact that the book failed to address some lesser known but nevertheless
significant operations, including Operation Mars. General Krivosheev responded posi-
tively, writing:
[We] described in our book only strategic operations of Soviet forces during the
Great Patriotic War. We also included 43 of the 73 large independent operations.
The total number of such operations, including those that were a part of the stra-
tegic ones was about 250. . . . The lack of [the] description of such operations did
not materially affect the authenticity of the total figures of losses suffered by the
USSR's Armed Forces.
As far as Operation Mars was concerned, we believe [this was the] Rzhev-Sychevka
offensive operation, which according to the plan Mars [was] conducted from
25 November till 20 December 1942 by part of [the] Kalinin and Western Front's
forces. It had as its aim to paralyze the enemy forces on [the] Central (Western)
direction and interfere with Germans troops' transference to Stalingrad, where
since 18 November 1942 the Soviet forces had launched an offensive.
[The] Rzhev-Sychevka operation was not mentioned in the book, but [the]
losses suffered by [the] troops (total 215,674 casualties, from which KIA 70,374
and WIA 145,300) were put into the total figures of losses. . . . These figures
were also put into the total number of losses suffered by [the] Western and Kalinin
Fronts. . . .
We would like to inform you that all 73 of the above-mentioned independent
Front operations, which were not put into the book, would be described in its
second edition. We are working hard on it, taking into account all the reviews and
comments of Russian and foreign readers.
Although General Krivosheev's loss figures are about 120,000 fewer than mine and
260,000 fewer than those estimated in German records, I compliment General
Krivosheev for his candor and hard work. Given the poor state of Red Army per-
sonnel accounting procedures, Krivosheev and his team of researchers are doing
yeomanry work in ferreting out the truth. It is a lengthy, time-consuming, and often
frustrating process that may never be complete. I look forward to his book's expanded
second edition.
379
380 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
I also compliment him for being the first Russian historian to acknowledge openly
and accurately the name, code name, and dates of this operation. In the same spirit,
I ask him to examine and critique this book's contents so that it adequately and accu-
rately memorializes the sacrifices of the many Red Army soldiers who suffered and
perhaps perished in this neglected operation.
Notes
1. Prelude
1. For details on the German strategic discussions, see Earle F. Ziemke and
Magna E. Bauer, Moscow to Stalingrad: Decision in the East. (Washington, D.C.:
United States
Army
Center
of
Military History, 1987),
321-365;
Franz
Haider, "War
Journal of Franz Haider, VII." Translated typescript. (Carlisle, PA: U.S. Army War
College, n.d.), 1433-1450.
2. See David M. Glantz, Kharkov 1942: The Anatomy of a Military Disaster Through
Soviet Eyes (London: Ian Allan, 1998). This detailed account of the unprecedented
Soviet military defeat is based on both German and Soviet archival materials and is the
only thorough account in English, Russian, or German.
3. Details of the various stages of Operation Blau are found in Ziemke and Bauer,
Moscow
to
Stalingrad,
351-397,
and A. M.
Samsonov,
Stalingradskaia
bitva:
ot
oborony
i otstuplenii k velikoi pobede na Volge [The Battle of Stalingrad: From defense and
withdrawal to the great victory on the Volga] (Moscow: Akademii nauk SSSR, 1960),
13-197.
4. Ziemke and Bauer, Moscow to Stalingrad, 351.
5. Ibid., 358.
6. Ibid., 360.
7. For the precise contents of this famous order, see "Prikaz narodnogo komissara
oborony Soiuza SSR No. 227, 28 iiulia 1942 g." [Order No. 227 of the People's Com-
missar of Defense, dated 28 July 1942], in "Dokumenty i materialy" [Documents and
materials], Voenno-istoricheskii zhurnal [Military-historical journal] 8 (August 1988):
73-75.
Hereafter cited
as
VIZh
with appropriate citation
and
date.
For
associated
documents and the order's implications, see P. N. Lashchenko, "Prodiktovan surovoi
neobkhodimost'iu" [Dictated by harsh necessity], VIZh 8 (August 1988): 76-80.
8. Since December 1941, Zhukov had urged the Stavka to focus on the defeat of
German forces along the Moscow-Smolensk-Minsk axis. Decisive victory here,
Zhukov believed, would remove the German threat to Moscow, weaken or destroy
the strongest of the German army groups, Army Group Center, and pave the way
for victory in other front sectors. Zhukov consistently advanced this view throughout
the strategic debates of fall and summer 1942. Curiously, Soviet historians have ig-
nored most Soviet offensive actions along the "Western direction [axis]" during this
period. For example, Soviet offensive action near Bolkhov has been revealed only in
formerly classified Soviet sources. Because of its larger scale and greater success, the
August 1942 Rzhev-Sychevka offensive (which the Soviets called the Pogoreloe-
Gorodishche operation) has received greater attention in Soviet memoirs and unit
381
382 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
histories. For a single-volume study of the operation, see L. M. Sandalov, Pogorelo-
Gorodishchenskaia operatsiia [The Pogoroloe-Gorodishche operation] (Moscow:
Voenizdat, 1960).
9. Among the many German accounts of the intense fighting around Rzhev, see
Ziemke and Bauer, Moscow to Stalingrad, 398-408, and Anton Detlev von Plato, Die
Geschichte der 5. Panzerdivision, 1938 bis 1945 [The History of the 5th Panzer Di-
vision, 1938-1945] (Regensberg, Germany: Walhalla u. Praetoria, 1978), 230-242.
10. Ziemke and Bauer, Moscow to Stalingrad, 405.
11. Fighting and decisionmaking during this period is covered by Ziemke and
Bauer, Moscow to Stalingrad, 391-397, and Walter Goerlitz, Paulus and Stalingrad
(New York: Citadel Press, 1963), 204-215.
12. Details on Paulus's victorious but premature announcement is found in Ziemke
and Bauer, Moscow to Stalingrad, 396.
13. The diary of Sixth Army prefaced its remark with the words, "The army's at-
tack into the city had to be temporarily suspended [today] because of the exception-
ally low infantry combat strengths." Ibid., 397.
14. The 1st Women's Rifle Brigade, forming during fall 1942, is finally listed in
the official Red Army order of battle on 1 December 1942. See Boevoi sostav Sovetskoi
armii, chast' 2 [Combat composition of the Red Army, part 2] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1966), 249. This classified volume was prepared for publication by the General Staffs
Military-Scientific Directorate. The women's rifle brigade was apparently a special
sniper formation.
15. Biographical materials on Zhukov are found in many sources, including sev-
eral editions of his memoirs, G. Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, 2 vols. (Mos-
cow: Progress, 1985), and Viktor Anfilov, "Georgy Konstantinovich Zhukov," in Harold
Shukman, ed., Stalin's Generals (London: Weidenfeld and Nicolson, 1993), 343-
360. In recent years many articles have appeared that correct aspects of Zhukov's
biography. That revisionist effort, however, is hardly complete.
16. For biographical material on Vasilevsky, see his memoir, A. M. Vasilevsky, Delo
vsei zhizni [Life's work] (Moscow: Politizdat, 1983), and Goeffrey Jukes, "Aleksander
Mikhailovich Vasilevsky" in Shukman, ed., Stalin's Generals, 275—285.
17. Vatutin perished before he could write his memoirs. The best biographies are
lu. D. Zakharov, General armii N. F. Vatutin [Army General N. F. Vatutin] (Mos-
cow: Voenizdat, 1983), and David M. Glantz, "Nikolai Fedorovich Vatutin," in
Shukman, ed., Stalin's Generals, 287—298.
18. Vasilevsky, Delo vsei zhizni, 194.
19. Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, II: 121-129.
20. For Zhukov's complete itinerary during the war, including the vital period of
fall 1942, see S. I. Isaev, "Vekhi frontovogo puti" [Landmarks of a front path], VIZh
10 (October 1991): 22-25. This calender of Zhukov's travels shows that he spent the
bulk of this critical fall period with the Western and Kalinin Fronts. All subsequent
references to Zhukov's activities accord with this calendar.
21. These Soviet strength figures appear in A. A. Grechko, ed., Istoriia vtoroi
mirovoi voiny 1939-1945 [A history of the Second World War], 6 (Moscow:
Voenizdat, 1976), 34-35. German intelligence records generally substantiate the
relative strengths.
Notes to Pages 11-24 383
22. For the dispositions of Soviet strategic reserves, see Bocvoi sostav, 202.
Documents show that Rybalko's 3d Tank Army was resubordinated to Western
Front by mid-October for participation in Zhukov's operation. For example, see
"Prikazanie shtaba zapadnogo fronta No. 02213 ot 20.10.1942g. po organizatsii sviazi
vzaimosdeistviia" [Western Front Order No. 02213, dated 20.10.1942, concerning
the organization of cooperative communications], in Sbornik boevykh dokumentov
Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny, vypusk 19 [Collection of combat documents of the
Great Patriotic War, issue 19] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1953), 71. This collection was
assembled and prepared for publication by the Military-Scientific Directorate of the
Soviet Army General Staff, and was classified sekretno (secret). Hereafter cited as
SBDVOV with appropriate issue and pages.
23. For the contents of the Western Front directive, see Tsentral'nyi arkhiv
ministerstva oborony (Central Archives of the Ministry of Defense), abbreviated
TsAMO, fond 386, opis' 8583, ed khr. (individual custody) 144, list (page) 8. Full
contents in appendices. All archival references hereafter cited as TsAMO, with
appropriate fond (f.), opis' (op.), delo (d.), and list (1.).
24. For a full explanation of the operational concept, see "Vvod v proryv
konnomekhanizirovannykh grupp" [Introduction into the penetration of cavalry-
mechanized groups], in Sbornik materialov po izucheniiu opijta voimj, No. 9 (noiabr-
dekabr' 1943 g.) [Collections of materials for the study of war experience, No. 9
(November-December 1943)] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1944), 135-139. This classified
study of the operations of 20th Army's mobile group was prepared by the Red Army
General Staff's Section for the Exploitation of War Experience. Hereafter cited as
SMPIOV, with appropriate page.
25. For a description of 41st Army's mission within the context of Kalinin Front
operations, see M. D. Solomatin, Krasnogrädtsy [The men of Krasnograd] (Mos-
cow: Voenizdat, 1963),
11-13,
and
"Boevye donoseniia
i
operativnye svodki shtaba
1 mekhkorpusa" [Combat reports and operational summaries of the 1st Mechanized
Corps], TsAMO, f. 3424, op. 1. d. 2,1. 31. Solomatin's work contains a thorough and
generally accurate account of the 1st Mechanized and 6th Rifle Corps' operations.
Extracts of the corps reports are found in the Appendices. Less detailed descriptions
of the 22dand 39th Annies' missions are found in M. E. Katukov, Na ostrie glavnogo
udara [On the point of the main attack] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1976), 182-183, and
K. A. Malygin, V tsentre boevogo poriadka [In the center of the combat formation]
(Moscow: Voenizdat, 1986), 69-70.
26. No Soviet sources, open or classified, mention specific plans for Operation
Jupiter. The German Ninth Army records, however, document a major buildup in
the 5th and 33d Army sectors during October and November 1942. Soviet archival
sources confirm this buildup. In addition to the resubordination of the 3d Tank Army
to the Western Front in October and its positioning east of Viaz'ma, the 9th and 10th
Tank Corps were positioned to the rear of the 5th and 33d Armies. According to
"Prikazy 10-mu TK s 13.5 po 27.12.42" [Orders to the 10th Tank Corps from 13.5
through 27.12.42], TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 1,1. 225, at 1800 hours on 13 Novem-
ber 1942, the 10th Tank Corps was shifted from Stavka reserve to the Western Front.
Subsequent reports document its deployment in the 5th Army's sector. Boevoi sostav,
190-191,211-212,235-236
records
the
reinforcement
of the 5th
Army with
the
30th
384 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Guards, 78th, 194th, and 379th Rifle Divisions, and both the 5th and 33d Armies
with heavy amounts of supporting artillery (see the Appendices for the scope of this
buildup).
27. For biographical details on Konev, see his memoirs, I. S. Konev, Zapiski
komanduiushchego frontom [Notes of a front commander] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1981); P. M. Portugal'sky, Marshal I. S. Konev. (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1985); and Oleg
Rzheshevsky, "Ivan Stepanovich Konev," in Shukman, ed., Stalin's Generals, 91-107.
None mention his role in Operation Mars.
28. See "Vvod v proryv," 139, for contents of Western Front Directive No. 0305,
which created the cavalry-mechanized group, and for the precise composition and
strength of the group.
29. See, for example, the Western Front's "Ukazaniia po bor'be so shturmovymi
orudiiami protivm'ka" [Order concerning struggle with enemy assault weapons],
SBDVOV, issue 9 (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1949), 78-81.
30. During October, 8th Tank Corps' headquarters was abolished, and through-
out Operation Mars the corps' brigades were employed separately in an infantry sup-
port role.
31.
"Vvod
v
proryv,"
137-139.
32. The only extensive biography of Purkaev is A. A. D'iakonov, General Purkaev
(Saransk, Mordovskaia SSR: Knizhnoe, 1971). It makes no mention of Operation
Mars.
33. Information on the intended use of 2d Mechanized Corps in Operation Mars
is found in O. A. Orekhov, "Maloizvestnye stranitsy Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny:
Velikolukskaia nastupatel'naia operatsiia" [A little known page from the Great Patri-
otic War: The Velikie Luki operation], undated manuscript, 5, which states: "Some-
what earlier [than 24 November] the corps [2d Mechanized] was taken from 3d Shock
Army and concentrated in the Belyi region to participate in Operation 'Mars.'" By 24
November, however, it was diverted to join 3d Shock Army in the Velikie Luki op-
eration. Archival citation is TsAMO, f. 213, op. 2002, d. 126,1. 1.
34. Ziemke and Bauer, Moscow to Stalingrad, 167.
35. Earl F Ziemke, Stalingrad to Berlin: The German Defeat in the East (Washing-
ton, D.C.: United States Army Office of the Chief of Military History, 1968), 47.
36. Ibid., 48.
37. For an excellent review of German intelligence analysis during this period,
see David Kahn, "An Intelligence Case History: The Defense of Osuga, 1942,"
Aerospace Historian 28, no. 4 (December 1981): 243-252.
38. Ibid., 243.
39. Ibid., 245.
40. Ibid.
41. Ibid.
42. For the precise German order of battle and combat dispositions, see
"Tätigkeitsbericht der Abteilung Ic/A.O.," AOK 9, 27970/5, Ft. IV, dated 1 July-
31 December 1942, in National Archives Microfilm [NAM] series T-312, Roll 304.
This series contains the daily intelligence maps of Ninth Army throughout fall 1942
together with German dispositions.
Notes to Pages 24-52 385
43. Kahn, "An Intelligence Case History," 246.
44. Ibid., 247.
45. Ibid.
46. Ibid.
47. Ibid., 248. A map accompanying a 6 November report prepared by Gehlen's
organization accurately predicted the main thrusts of both Operations Mars and Ju-
piter. See "Möglichkeiten vor H. Gr. Mitte" [Possibilities for Army Group Center],
Anlage 2 zu Abt. Frd. H. Ost (I) vom 6.11.42, in NAM series T-78.
48. Kahn, "An Intelligence Case History," 248.
49. Ibid., 249.
50. Tätigkeitsbericht maps dated 1-15 November 1942.
51. The precise location of Soviet headquarters and command posts is derived, in
part, from German intelligence maps in the Tätigkeitsbericht series. Presumably, the
locations were determined by radio intercepts or aerial observation. Soviet sources
confirm some, but not all, of these locations.
52. These and other references to weather conditions are based on entries in Ger-
man unit daily records and occasional references to weather conditions in Soviet sources.
53. These included 31st Army's 88th, 239th, 336th, and 20th Guards Rifle Divi-
sion, the latter in second echelon, attacking in a six-kilometer sector north of Vasil'ki,
20th Army's 326th, 42d Guards, and 251st Rifle Divisions, attacking between Vasel'ki
and Grediakino, and 20th Army's 247th and 331st Rifle Divisions, attacking between
Trostino and Pechora. See Appendices for precise attack dispositions and objectives.
54. By late 1942 deception plans were required in all operations. For a detailed
survey of Soviet wartime deception, see David M. Glantz, Soviet Military Deception
in the Second World War (London: Frank Cass, 1989).
55. For specific Soviet command changes at/ront and army level, see the short army
histories and personnel biographical data contained in the eight-volume Sovetskaia
Voennaia Entsiklopediia [Soviet Military Encyclopedia] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1976-
1980). Hereafter cited as SVE. Personnel changes at corps, division, and brigade level
are found in the formerly classified and newly released Komandovanie korpusnogo i
divizionnogo zvena sovetskikh vooruzhennykh sil perioda Velikoi Otechestvennoi
voiny 1941—194,5 gg. [Corps and division commanders of the Soviet Armed Forces
during the Great Patriotic War 1941-1945] (Moscow: Frunze Academy, 1964).
56. Like Operation Mars, the only Soviet information on the Bolkhov operation
is found in classified and archival sources.
57. For the exact strength of 20th Army on the eve of the operation, see "Opisanie
boevykh deistvii 20A na rubezhe r. Vazuza, 25 noiabria-18 dekabria 1942g." [Account
of 20th Army operations along the Vazuza River, 25 November-18 December 1942],
TsAMO, f. 373, op. 6631, d. 56,1. 14. See Appendices for excerpts from the account.
58. A full description of German defenses is contained in "Vvod v proryv," 137. The
tactical dispositions of German forces is described in appropriate Tätigkeitsbericht map
pages and in von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 243-244.
59. The precise 20th Army attack plan is found in "Vvod v proryv," 138-139.
60. For information on penal battalions and companies, see S. Khomenko, "Disci-
plinary Battalion Joins Battle," Soviet Soldier, no. 11 (November 1990): 36-38.
386 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
61. Full 20th Army order of battle is found in Boevoi sostav, 211, and the Appendices.
62. For details on 8th Guards Rifle Corps' mission, among many documents, see
"Boevoi prikaz No. 0060, 22.11.42 16.00 Shtakor 8 gvsk." [Headquarters 8th Guards
Rifle Corps combat order No. 0060, dated 1600 hours, 22.11.42], in "Prikazy 8gv rk,
sentiabr'-dekabr' 42 g." [Orders of 8th Guards Rifle Corps, September-December
1942], TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 11,1. 100.
63. See the excellent account of 6th Tank Corps operations in A. L. Getman, Tanki
iclut na Berlin (1941-1945) [Tanks advance on Berlin (1941-1945)] (Moscow: Nauka,
1973), 66-75.
64. For the cavalry-mechanized group strength, see "Vvod v proryv," 139. Ger-
man records confirm the presence of British tanks.
65. Cavalry-mechanized group planned deployment is described in "Vvod v
proryv," 141-142.
66. Getman, Tanki, 70-71.
67. 41st Army's composition in Boevoi sostav, 210.
68. The daily intelligence maps of the German Ninth Army Tätigkeitsbericht con-
firm Soviet force concentrations in these regions.
69. 41st Army plan outlined in Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 11—12, and "Boevye
doneseniia i operativnye svodki shtaba 1 mekhkorpusa," 11. 31-32.
70.
Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy,
11-13.
71. Ibid., 13.
72. Ibid., 13-14.
73. The best English-language biography of Katukov and other key Red Army tank
commanders is found in Richard N. Armstrong, Red Army Tank Commanders: The
Armored- Guards (Atglen, PA: Schiffer Military/Aviation History, 1994).
74. For the precise composition of 22d Army, see Boevoi sostav, 210, and
Appendices.
75. Soviet regimental designations are derived from the German Tatigkeisbericht
intelligence maps, other Fremde Heere Ost (Foreign Armies East) documents, and
occasional references in Soviet sources.
76. The general parameters of 22d Army's attack plan are found in Katukov, Na
ostrie, 182—183. Very little has been written about the army's role in the operation.
German sources, however, permit detailed reconstruction of the operation's day-to-
day progress.
77. The details of this curious incident are related in A. Kh. Babadzhanian,
Dorogi pobedij [Roads of victory] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1981), 97-99. Babadzhanian
commanded 3d Mechanized Corps' 3d Mechanized Brigade.
78. Ibid., 97.
79. Ibid.
80. Ibid., 98.
81. Ibid., 99.
82. Ibid.
83. 39th Army's order of battle in found in Boevoi sostav, 210. Also see Appendices.
84. The mission of 39th Army appears in Malygin, V taentre boevogo poriadka,
70. Malygin was the commander of the 28th Tank Brigade during the operation.
Notes to Pages 53-89 387
85. The intelligence estimate is from M. A. Voloshin, Razvedchiki vsegda vperedi
[The reconnaissance men are always forward] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1977), 46.
Voloshin's account deals with intelligence operations in 39th Army's sector.
86. Kahn, "An Intelligence Case History," 250.
87. Ibid.
88. Ibid.
89. Ibid. This refers to a common Soviet practice of imitating new division des-
ignations by radio or by planting information to contradict the assessments of Ger-
man intelligence regarding precise unit designations.
90. Ibid.
91. Ibid.
92. These intelligence assessments are from Ninth Army daily intelligence maps
contained in the Tätigkeitsbericht.
93. Kahn, "An Intelligence Case History," 250.
94. Ibid., 250-251.
2. The Red God of War Unleashed
1. For details of the relief process, see Anton Detlev von Plato, Die Geschichte
der 5 Panzerdivision, 1938 bis 1945 [The history of the 5th Panzer Division, 1938-
1945] (Regensberg: Walhalla u. Praetoria, 1978), 243-244.
2. David Kahn, "An Intelligence Case History: The Defense of Osuga, 1942,"
Aerospace Historian 28, no. 4 (December 1981): 251. In all of their operational ac-
counts, German sources use Berlin time, while Soviet accounts use Moscow time.
This study converts all timing to local, or Moscow, time.
3. For details on the 20th Army attack, see "Opisanie boevykh deistvii 20A,"
TsAMO, f. 373, op. 6631, d. 56,1. 25-27.
4. Kahn, "An Intelligence Case History," 251.
5. "Opisanie boevykh deistvii 20A," 1. 27.
6. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 244.
7.
"Vvod
v
proryv,"
SMPIOV,
no. 9,
141-142.
8. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 244-245.
9. Ibid., 245-246.
10. Rolf Stoves, Die 1. Panzer-Division 1935-1945 [The 1st Panzer Division] (Bad
Nauheim: Hans-Henning Podzun, 1961), 374.
11. "Vvod v proryv," 141-142.
12. "Iz boevogo prikaza No. 05, shtab podvizhnoi gruppy Zap. Fronta. D. Annino,
23.11.42g. 18ch. 00 min." [From combat order No. 05 of the headquarters of the
Western Front mobile group. Annino village, 23.11.42. 1800 hours], TsAMO, f. 3467,
op. 1, d. 417,1. 50.
13. "Vvod v proryv," 142.
14. Ibid., 142-143. See also A. N. Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia postup' [Guards gait]
(Dushanbe: Donish, 1985), 35.
15. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 245-246.
16. Ibid., 246.
388 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
17. Ibid., 247.
18. Ibid. See also Horst Grossman, Rzhev: Cornerstone of the Eastern Front, 44,
translated from the German. Eckpfeiler der Ostfront (Freiberg, 1980).
19.
Subsequent
6th
Tank Corps actions
from
"Vvod
v
proryv,"
142-143,
and A. L.
Getman, Tanki idut na Berlin (1941-1945) [Tanks advance on Berlin (1941-1945)]
(Moscow: Nauka, 1973), 71-72.
20. Getman, Tanki, 72-73.
21. Ibid., 72.
22. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 247.
23. Ibid.
24. Ibid.
25. Grossman, Rzhev, 44.
26. A critique of 6th Tank Corps' operations on the first two days of the operation
is found in "Vvod v proryv," 142—143.
27. Ibid., 143, and Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia postup', 35-36.
28. For 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division deployment difficulties, see P. G.
Kuznetsov, Gvardeitsy-inoskvichi [Guards-Muscovites]. (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1962),
186-187.
29. Getman, Tanki, 72-73.
30. The cavalry corps' actions on 27 November are covered in detail in "Vvod v
proryv," 143-144.
31. Ibid., 144.
32. Ibid. These criticisms are echoed by the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps' operational
and after-action reports.
33. Kuznetsov, Gvardeitsy-moskvichi, 187.
34. von Plato 5. Panzerdivision, 248.
35. Ibid.
36. Ibid.
37. Ibid., 249.
38. "Vvod v proryv," 145.
39. Getman, Tanki, 73.
40. Ibid.
41. "Vvod v proryv," 145-146.
42. For 20th Cavalry Division actions, see Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia postup', 36-37.
43. "Vvod v proryv," 145.
44. Grossman, Rzhev, 45.
45. "Vvod v proryv," SMPIOV, No. 9, 146, assesses the cavalry corps operations
harshly:
As a result of the unskillful offensive, by the morning of 28 November 2d Guards
Cavalry Corps had been broken up into two parts: two regiments of the 20th
Cavalry Division and one half regiment of the 4th Guards Cavalry Division had
penetrated to the line of the railroad, and 4th Guards Cavalry Division and the
remaining units of the 3d Guard and 20th Cavalry Divisions, having suffered
heavy losses, remained in their jumping-off positions. Although communica-
tions existed between both of these groups, nevertheless the 2d Guards Cav-
Notes to Pages 90-120 389
airy Corps and the entire cavalry-mechanized group had ceased to exist as a
unified operational-tactical formation.
46. Getman, Tanki, 73.
47. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 249.
48. Ibid., 250. Von Plato recorded General Metz's performance:
General Metz, whose birthday it was, stood by the antitank barrier of the pio-
neers [engineers] with the mortars. For him the mortars were not firing rapidly
enough. He argued with the mortar commander, a NCO, about the proper range.
As the mortars fired and the black smoke flew over the impact points, General
Metz roared at the NCO in his coarse Bavarian manner: "You horned cattle, you
have, of course, fired too short, don't you see the many horses which are still
running around there?" "Yes, of course, Herr General," he replied, "but no one
is riding on the horses any more!" General Metz also convinced himself of this
after a short glance through the telescope. He then sent for a bottle of cognac
out of his "special use" stock for the NCO and his troops.
49. Ibid.
50. Ibid.
51. Ibid.
52. The 5th Tank Corps had moved from the 33d to 5th Army's sector on
1 October and, in early December, shifted northward into the 20th Army's sector.
Apparently, had 20th Army's offensive succeeded, the corps could have been em-
ployed either in its sector or in support of the 5th Army. See the 5th Tank Corps'
orders, which track these movements, including "Prikazy po tylu 5TC," TsAMO,
f. 3404, op. 1, d. 260, 1. 12.
53. Details of the 1st Mechanized Corps' missions and operations within
the context of the 41st Army plan are found in M. D. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy [The
men of Krasnograd] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1963), 14-27, and "Boevye doneseniia i
operativnye
svodki
shtaba
1
mekhkorpusa," TsAMO,
f.
3424,
op. 1, d. 2, 11.
31-36.
54. The brigade commanders of the 6th Rifle Corps are not named in any available
Soviet source. Names are listed together with detailed order of battle data in German
archival sources, in particular, the thorough and accurate "Übersicht über die vor der
9. Armee neu aufgetretenen Korps, Stand vom 24.12.42" [Survey of new composition
of corps in front of 9th Army on 24.12.42], Anlage 2 zu Feindnahrichtenblatt Nr. 141,
A.O.K. 9, Ic/A.O., in NAM series T-312, roll 304.
55. Precise Soviet unit locations during the attack based on Solomatin,
Krasnogradtsy, and appropriate German daily intelligence maps in Ninth Army's
Tätigkeitsbericht, which show Soviet dispositions down to regimental and brigade level.
56.
Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy,
16-18.
57. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 375—376.
58. Ibid., 375.
59. Grossman, Rzhev, 53-54.
60. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 376.
61.
Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy,
18-19.
62. Ibid., 18.
390 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
63. Ibid. According to Solomatin, German losses at Spas were 4 medium tanks,
3 mortar batteries, 12 machine guns, and up to 100 officers and men killed, wounded,
or captured.
64. According to Solomatin, 19, the battles for Mar'ino and Dubrovka cost the
Germans 7 pillboxes, 11 tanks, and 8 field guns destroyed and up to 250 personnel
losses.
65. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 376.
66. Grossman, Rzhev, 59. The role of the Grossdeutschland Motorized Division's
Fusilier Regiment in the Belyi battles is described in Horst Scheibert, Panzer Grena-
dier Division Grossdeutschland (Warren, MI: Squadron/Signal, 1977), 75-76, and
in many archival report and maps prepared by Grossdeutschland Infantry Division,
including "Kartenanlagen 13-25," la, Anlage 22 zum Kriegstagebuch Nr. 2. Nov,
1942, InfDiv Grossdeutcshland 30924/23, in NAM series T-315, roll 2288, and
"Tatigskeitbericht der Abt. Anlagen," Ic, Anlage 32 zum Kriegstagebuch Nr. 2, Nov
25~Dec 21, 1942, InfDiv Grossdeutschland 30924/33, in NAM series T-315, roll
2289.
67. Stoves, I. Panzer-Division, 376.
68. Ibid.
69. Grossman, Rzhev, 59.
70. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 379.
71. Ibid.
72. Ibid., 381.
73. Ibid., and Grossman, Rzhev, 59.
74. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 281. The villages were Osinovka and Ogibalevo.
75. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 21.
76. Ibid., 22-23.
77. Ibid., 23.
78. Ibid., 24.
79. Ibid. In the fighting for Zhiguny, Solomatin claims German losses of four
tanks, five antitank guns, five mortars, twenty-three vehicles, and up to a battalion
of infantry.
80. Ibid. German losses were said to be seven pillboxes, eight antitank guns, and
ten tanks.
81. In his memoirs, Dremov also avoids any details about Operation Mars. See,
I. F. Dremov, Nastupala groznaia bronia [Threatening armor advanced] (Kiev:
Politicheskoi literatury Ukrainy, 1981), 38-39, in which Dremov writes, "In Octo-
ber 1942 I was appointed commander of the 47th Mechanized Corps, which, after
an unsuccessful operation near Belyi, was subordinated to the commander of 3d
Shock Army, General K. N. Galitsky, and was concentrated in the Velikie Luki
region."
82. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 382.
83. Ibid., 386.
84. Ibid.
85. The movements of Dremov's brigade can be tracked only through the Ninth
Army Tätigkeitsbericht and the 1st Panzer Division account.
86. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 382.
Notes to Pages 120-149 391
87. Grossman, Rzhev, 59.
88. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 383.
89. Ibid.
90. Ibid., 384.
91. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 25. German losses in the battle for Nikitinka were
assessed as 10 tanks and an artillery battery destroyed and 300 soldiers killed, wounded,
or captured.
92. Ibid.
93. Ibid., 27.
94. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 387.
95. The location of the 22d Army forward command post reflects German in-
telligence assessments. The terrain descriptions, as elsewhere, are from period maps
at 1:200,000 and 1:50,000 scale obtained from the German archives.
96. The only Soviet sources that mention the 22d Army's assault are M. E. Katukov,
No. ostrie glavnogo udara [On the point of the main attack] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1976), 182-184; A. Kh. Babadzhonian, Dorogy pobedy [Roads of victory] (Moscow:
Voenizdat,
1981),
99-101;
and D. D.
Dragunsky, Gody
v
brone
[Years
in
armor]
(Moscow: Voenizdat, 1973),
83-85.
All of
these
works, however,
provide
little
useful
detail. Cryptic archival entries for the 22d Army state: "During the period from 25
through 30.11.42, in local operations, 22A destroyed 4,363 enemy officers and
soldiers, 7 guns, 3 tanks, etc. From 20 through 30.11.42 the army lost 8 guns, and
15 tanks were destroyed and 76 burned. ... In November-December the army
conducted combat operations primarily with the aim of reconnoitering opposing
enemy forces in the Olenino region." See "Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 22 armii,
noiabr'-dekabr' 1942g." [22d Army Journal of Combat Operations, November-
December 1942], TsAMO, f. 376, op. 10803, d. 97, 11. 82-84. German sources,
however, provide considerable details of the heavy fighting. These include the
records of the German 86th Infantry Division contained in NAM series T-315, rolls
1138
and
1257.
97. Exact Soviet unit positions on each day of the operation are taken from Ger-
man Ninth Army Tätigkeitsbericht daily operational and intelligence maps, which show
Soviet unit locations down to regimental and brigade level. See also "Tatigskeitbericht
der Abt. Anlagen," InfDiv Grossdeutschland 30924/33, and associated daily intelligence
maps.
98. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 375.
99. Grossman, Rzhev, 53-54.
100. Ibid., and Scheibert, Grossdeutschland, 71-72.
101. Grossman, Rzhev, 54. See also Ninth Army daily Tätigkeitsbericht maps for
the period.
102. Katukov, Na ostrie, 183.
103. Grossman, Rzhev, 54.
104. Ibid.
105. German Ninth Army Tatgikeitsbericht daily maps clearly show this Soviet
regrouping effort.
106. Scheibert, Grossdeutschland, 72-73, and Grossman, Rzhev, 54.
107. Grossman, Rzhev, 53.
392 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
108. Ibid., 54.
109. Ibid.
110. Ibid.
111. German estimates of Soviet tank losses in the Luchesa valley far exceed the
ninety-one tanks tallied in 22d Army's records.
112. For the 39th Army's intelligence appraisal on the eve of the attack and
subsequent changes in that assessment, see M. A. Voloshin, Razvedchiki vsegda
vperedi [The reconnaissance men are always forward] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1977),
45-49.
113. For a detailed account of 28th Tank Brigade's role in Operation Mars, see
K. A. Malygin, V tsentre boevogo poriadka [In the center of the combat formation]
(Moscow: Voenizdat, 1986), 6-72.
114. Ibid., 70.
115. Grossman, Rzhev, 47. See also Ninth Army Tätigkeitsbericht daily maps. No
Soviet accounts document the struggle on the 39th Army's flanks, but the identity
and progress of Soviet units involved can be reconstructed from German intelligence
reports, particularly from German Ninth Army and Grossdeutschland's records.
116. Grossman, Rzhev, 47-48, and Scheibert, Grossdeutschland, 76.
117. Grossman, Rzhev, 48.
118. Voloshin, Razvedchiki, 46-47.
119. Malygin, V tsentre, 71.
120. Ibid.
121. Grossman, Rzhev, 48.
122. See Ninth Army Tätigkeitsbericht maps for 26 and 27 November.
123. Grossman, Rzhev, 48.
124. Malygin, V tsentre, 71.
125. An account of Zhukov's visit to 39th Army is found in V. P. Boiko, S dumoi o
rodine [With thoughts about the homeland] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1982), 46. Boiko also
provides sketchy details about the 158th Rifle Division's participation in the operation.
126. Grossman, Rzhev, 48.
3. The Red God of War Contained
1. G. Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, vol. 2. (Moscow: Progress, 1985),
128, records the meeting but provides no details about it. See also, V. P. Boiko, S dumoi
o rodine [With thoughts about the Homeland] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1982), 46.
2. Ibid.
3. A. L. Getman, Tanki idut na Berline (1941-1945) [Tanks are advancing on
Berlin (1941-1945)] (Moscow: Nauka, 1973), 73, and A. I. Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia
postup' [Guard's gait] (Dushanbe: Donish, 1985), 39.
4. Getman, Tanki, 73-74.
5. "Vvod v proryv," SMPIOV, No 9. 146-147.
6. Ibid. Accordins to these archival materials:
o
The corps commander summoned the commanders of the 4th Guards Cavalry
Division and the llth and 16th Guards Cavalry Regiments to his command post
Notes to Pages 149-188 393
(300 meters northwest of Bobrovka) and assigned them the following missions:
the 2d Guards Cavalry Corps, with the forces of its 4th Guards Cavalry Division,
together with the 247th Rifle Division and the 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Divi-
sion, will capture Maloe Kropotovo and Podosinovka for the purpose of advanc-
ing all remaining units and rear service organs west of the Osuga Station-Sychevka
railroad. At 0800 hours on 29 November, the 4th Guards Cavalry Division will
attack Maloe Kropotovo from the south and, in cooperation with the actions of
the 1st Guards Motorized Rifle Division's units, seize that strong point. Dur-
ing the night of 29 November, the 16th Guards Cavalry Regiment will attack
Podosinovka from the north and, together with operations by the 247th Rifle
Division's units, will capture it. Subsequently, the corps commander proposed to
pass the rear service organs of the 3d Guard Cavalry Division, the 20th Cavalry
Division, and the 4th Guards Cavalry Division and the corps headquarters to
Nikishkino State Farm.
7. Ibid., 147-148.
8. P G. Kuznetsov,Gvardeitsy-moskvichi [Guards-Muscavites] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1962), 188.
9. See, "Iz boevogo prikaza No. 0065 shtaba 8GVSK. 30.11.42" [From the 8th
Guards Rifle Corps' combat order No. 0065, dated 30.11.42], in "Prikazy 8GVSK,
sentiabr'-dekabr' 42g." [Orders of the 8th Guards Rifle Corps, September-December
1942], TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 11,1. 121, which stated, "The enemy—the 14th In-
fantry Regiment of the 78th Infantry Division continue to hold on to the strong
points at Zherebtsovo, lurovka, Talitsa, and Khlepen'. Simultaneously, fresh units
are approaching these points in an attempt to halt the advance of corps units."
10. Anton Detlev von Plato, Die Geschichte der S. Panzerdivision 1938 bis 1945
[History of the 5th Panzer Division, 1938-1945] (Regensberg: Walhalla u. Praetoria,
1978), 254. According to the radio message log of the 5th Panzer Division, the Rus-
sian tank losses included an American-model heavy tank.
11.
Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia postup',
39^0.
12. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 254.
13. Ibid.
14. Ibid. 250-251.
15. Ibid., 254.
16. Ibid.
17. Getman, Tanki, 74, and "Vvod v proryv," 148.
18. Getman, Tanki, 74.
19. H. Grossman, Rzhev: The Cornerstone of the Eastern Front, 45, translated
from the German Eckpfeiler der Ostfront (Freidberg, 1980).
20. Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia postup', 40-41.
21. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 254-255.
22. Ibid., 255.
23. Ibid., 251.
24. Ibid.
25. Grossman, Rzhev, 46.
26. Ibid.
394 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
27. Ibid., 47.
28. Ibid., 46.
29. von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 256.
30. Grossman, Rzhev, 47.
31. Command changes from Komandovanie korpusnogo i divizionnogo zvena
Sovetskikh vooruzhennykh silperioda Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny 1941—1945 gg.
[Corps and division commanders of the Soviet Armed Forces during the Great Pa-
triotic War 1941-1945] (Moscow: Frunze Academy, 1964). N. P. Konstantinov sur-
vived the operation to lead the 20th Tank Brigade (of the llth Tank Corps)
throughout the remainder of the war. He was made a Hero of the Soviet Union in
April 1945 for his brigade's role in the January 1945 Vistula-Oder operation. See
Geroi sovetskogo soiuza, t. 1 [Heroes of the Soviet Union, vol. 1] (Moscow:
Voenizdat, 1987), 719.
32. I N. Pavlov, Ot Moskvy do Shtral'zynda [From Moscow to Straslund] (Mos-
cow: Voenizdat, 1985), 44.
33. The Soviet 6th Rifle Corps operations were recorded in German Ninth Army's
daily Tätigkeitsbericht maps and associated written reports.
34. M. D. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy [The men of Krasnograd] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1963), 27-28.
35. Ibid., 28.
36. Rolf Stoves, Die 1. Panzer-Division 1935-1945 [The 1st Panzer Division
1935-1945] (Bad Nauheim: Hans-Henning Podzun, 1961), 383.
37. Ibid., 385.
38. Ibid., 387.
39. Ibid.
40. Ibid., 383.
41. Ibid., 386.
42. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 28.
43. Ibid., places German losses on 30 November at 10 tanks, 6 antitank guns,
6 guns with tractors and 20 vehicles destroyed, 200 German casualties, and several
captured German warehouses.
44. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 389.
45. Ibid.
46. Ibid., 395.
47. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 28—29.
48. Ibid., 29.
49. Ibid. See also "Boevye doneseniia 1 mekhkorpusa," TsAMO, f. 3424, op. 1,
d. 2, 11. 34-35.
50. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 394.
51. Ibid., 392-393.
52. Ibid., 393.
53. Grossman, Rzhev, 59-60.
54. Grossman, Rzhev, 54.
55. Ibid.
56. Ibid., 54-55.
57. Ibid., 55.
Notes to Pages 189-234 395
58. See German Ninth Army Tätigkeitsbericht maps and summaries for details
on the repositioning of Soviet units throughout this period.
59. Grossman, Rzhev, 55.
60. Ibid., 56.
61. Ibid.
62. Ibid.
63. Ibid., 56-57.
64. K. A. Malygin, V tsentre boevogo poriadka [In the center of the combat for-
mation] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1986), 72.
65. Ibid.
66. Grossman, Rzhev, 49.
67. Ibid. For a sketchy version of 30th Army's role in the operation, see A. V.
Kazar'ian, Prisiaga na vsiu zhizn' [An oath for life] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1988), 125
129. Kazar'ian commanded the 196th Tank Brigade.
68. Grossman, Rzhev, 49-50.
4. Frustration, Fury, and Defeat
1. S. I. Isaev, "Vekhi frontovogo puti [Landmarks of a front path]," VIZh 10
(October 1991): 25.
2. See "Khozin, Mikhail Semenovich," in SVE, vol. 8 (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1980), 383, signed orders in the 20th Army's archival records (see Appendices),
and Komandovanie korpusnogo i divizionnogo zvena sovetskikh vooruzhennykh sil
perioda Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny 1941-1945 gg. [Corps and division command-
ers of the Soviet Armed Forces during the Great Patriotic War 1941-1945] (Mos-
cow: Frunze Academy, 1964).
3. For details on the 8 December directive, see N. M. Khlebnikov, Pod grokhot
soten batarei [Under the din of hundreds of batteries] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1979), 196.
4. G. Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, vol. 2 (Moscow: Progress, 1985),
129—130. This is the only direct reference in Zhukov's memoir to the operations
around Rzhev, but it is incorrect and wholly lacks context.
5. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 138" [Enemy intelligence log], Armeeoberkommando
9, IC/A.O., 3134/42 geh., A.H. Qu., den 30.11.42, 4, in NAM T-312, roll 304.
6. Ibid., 4-5.
7. Ibid., 5.
8. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 139" [Enemy intelligence log], Armeeoberkom-
mando 9, Ic/A.O., Nr. 3229/42 geh., A.H. Qu., den 8.12.42, 1-2, in Nam T-312, roll
304.
9. Ibid., 3.
10. Rolf Stoves, Die 1. Panzer-Division 1935-1945 [The 1st Panzer Division
1935-1945] (Bad Nauheim: Hans-Henning Podzun, 1961), 395.
11. M. D. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy [The men of Krasnograd] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1963), 29. Confirmed by Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 395.
12. Stoves, 1 Panzer-Division, 394.
13. Ibid., 397, and H. Grossman, Rzhev: The Cornerstone of the Eastern Front,
translated from the German Rshew: Eckpfeiler der Ostfront (Freidberg, 1980), 60.
396 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
14. Grossman, Rzhev, 60.
15. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 396.
16. Ibid.
17. Grossman, Rzhev, 61.
18. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 397.
19. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 29—30.
20. Ibid., 30. See also 1st Mechanized Corps after-action report in the Appendices.
21. Ibid., 30-31.
22. Ibid., 31.
23. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 399, and Grossman, Rzhev, 61.
24. Grossman, Rzhev, 61.
25.
Stoves,
1.
Panzer-Division,
399^00.
26. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 33.
27. Ibid., 31-32.
28. Ibid., 32.
29. Ibid., 32-33.
30. Ibid., 4L
31. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 400-401.
32. Ibid., 401. See also 1st Mechanized Corps after-action report in the
Appendices.
33. Ibid., 402.
34. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 33.
35. Ibid., 36. Solomatin's account accords with his corps' after-action report (see
Appendices).
36. Grossman, Rzhev, 61.
37. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy, 36-37, and 1st Mechanized Corps after-action
report.
38. Ibid., 37-38.
39. Ibid., 38-39.
40. "Boevye doneseniia 1 mekhkorpusa" [Combat reports of the 1st Mechanized
Corps], TsAMO, f. 3424, op. 1, d. 2, 1. 36.
41. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 402^103.
42. Ibid., 403.
43. Ibid.
44. Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, 130. See also the 20th Army, 29th
Army, and 5th Tank Corps orders in the Appendices.
45. See "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 140" [Enemy intelligence sheet Nr. 140],
Armeeoberkommando 9, Ic/A.O., Nr. 3291/geh., A.H. Qu., den 15 Dezember 1942,
in NAM T-312, roll 304.
46. A. L. Getman, Tanki idut na Berlin (1941-1945) [Tanks are advancing on Berlin
(1941-1945)] (Moscow: Nauka, 1973), 74-75; A. D. Kochetkov, Dvinshii tankovyi:
boevoi put' 5-go tankovogo dvinskogo korpusa [Dvina tank: the combat path of the
5th
Tank Corps] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1989),
10-11,
and
"Feindnachrichtenblatt
No.
140,"
4.
47. "Operatsii 29 armii, iiul'-dekabr' 1942g." [29th Army operations, July-Decem-
ber 1942], TsAMO, f. 384, op. 8529, ed. khr. 130, 11. 32-67.
Notes to Pages 235-271 397
48. "Opisanie boevykh deistvii 20A na rubezhe r. Vazuza," 11.25,47. See appendices
for details.
49. "Boevoi prikaz No. 010, shtab 5TK, les 2,4 km vostochnee Krasnogo, 10.12.42.
8 00" [5th Tank Corps combat order No. 010, dated 0800 10.12.42, in the forests
2.4 kilometers east of Krasnyi], TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 260, 1. 15.
50. Getman, Tanki, 74-75.
51. Kochetkov, Dvinskii tankovyi, 11.
52. Anton Detlev von Plato, Die Geschichte der 5. Panzerdivision 1938 bis 1945
[The history of the 5th Panzer Division 1938-1945] (Regensberg: Walhalla u. Praetoria,
1978), 256. See also German Ninth Army Tätigkeitsbericht maps for the period.
53.
Kochetkov, Dvinskii tankovyi,
11-12.
54. "Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 5TK: mai-dekabr' 1942g." [Journal of 5th Tank Corps
combat operations: May-December 1942], TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 12, 1. 55.
55. Ibid., and Kochetnikov, Dvinskii tankovyi, 12.
56. Kochetnikov, Dvinskii tankovyi, 13-14.
57. "Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 5TK," 1. 56.
58. Ibid.
59. Getman, Tanki, 75.
60. "Politdoneseniia SGvSK" [Political report of 8th Guards Rifle Corps],
TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 411. 1. 227. Extract from a 31.12.42 political report from
Mikhail Pasha.
61. Ibid.
62. Ibid.
63. "Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 5TK," 1. 56.
64. Kochetkov, Dvinskii tankovyi, 15.
65. "Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 5TK," 1. 57.
66. Ibid., 58.
67. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 140," 2-3.
68. A. M. Zvartsev, 3-ia Gvardeiskaia tankovaia: boevoi put' 3-i gvardeiskoi
tankovoi armii [3d Guards Tank: The combat path of 3d Guards Tank Army] (Mos-
cow: Voenizdat, 1982). This account is also silent about Operation Mars and its follow-
on operation.
69. Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, 130—131.
70. For changing Soviet dispositions in this and other action, see German Ninth
Army Tätigkeitsbericht daily situation maps for the period.
71. Presumably, the "Nikitin" referred to in German reports is the former chief
of staff of the 3d Mechanized Corps, who was sent to assist the 39th Army after
Colonel Malygin left the army to assume command of the 3d Shock Army's armored
forces. See K. A. Malygin, Vtsentre boevogo poriadka [In the center of the combat
formation] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1986), 72.
72.
Zhukov, Reminiscences
and
Reflections,
130-131.
73. A. V. Kazar'ian, Prisiaga na vsiu zhizn' [An oath for life] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1988), 125-127.
74. Grossman, Rzhev, 50.
75. Ibid., 50-51.
76. Ibid., 51-52.
398 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
77. Ibid., 50. According to this account, during attacks by the Russian 375th and
380th Rifle Divisions and the 58th Ski Brigade, in addition to a heavy death toll, the
Russians lost 3 officers and 118 men, 41 submachine guns, 11 light and 2 heavy
machine guns, and 6 bazookas captured.
78. Ibid., 52. Soviet dispositions are from the Ninth Army's daily Tätigkeitsbericht
maps and reports.
79. Confirmed by Kazar'ian, Prisiaga, 125-126.
80. Grossman, Rzhev, 52.
81. Ibid., 52-53.
82. See the German Ninth Army's Tätigkeitsbericht daily maps and reports for
Soviet unit dispositions. Few details on the waning stages of operations in the Luchesa
valley appear in Soviet sources.
83. As indicated on Tätigkeitsbericht maps and confirmed in M. E. Katukov, No.
ostrie glavnogo udara [On the point of the main attack] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1976).
184.
84. Grossman, Rzhev, 57-58.
85. Ibid., 58.
86. Ibid., and Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 406.
87. Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division, 406.
88. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 140," 3.
89. "Auslandsnachrichten über den kämpf der 9. Armee" [Foreign news about
the battle of the 9th Army], an attachment to "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 140," 1.
90. Ibid.
91. Ibid.
92. Ibid.
93. Ibid.
94. Ibid., 2.
95. Ibid.
96. Ibid.
97. Ibid.
98. Ibid.
99. Ibid., 3.
100. For details on these decisions, see Earl F. Ziemke, Stalingrad to Berlin: The
German Defeat in the East (Washington, D.C.: United States Army Office of the Chief
of Military History, 1968), 116-117.
101. See Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, 131, for comments on the deci-
sion to end the operation. Archival documents from the files of the 20th, 41st, and
22d Armies state that offensive operations terminated on 20 December. Although
the 30th and 39th Armies continued operations for several days, V. P. Boiko, S dumoi
o rodine [With thoughts about the Homeland] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1979), 48, claims
that the Kalinin Front also ordered the offensive to cease on 20 December.
5. Epilogue
1. A. I. Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia postup' [Guards gait] (Dushanbe: Donish, 1985), 40.
Notes to Pages 271-297 399
2. Ibid., 41-42. See also documents in TsAMO, f. 17 Gv. K, op. 53318, d. l, 1. 164.
3. Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia post-up', 42-43.
4. Ibid., 45-46, and M. E. Katukov, Na ostrie glavnogo udara [At the point of
the
main attack] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1976),
184-186.
5. Sekretov, Gvardeiskaia post-up', 45-46.
6. Ibid., 46-47, and Katukov, Na ostrie, 186.
7. H. Grossman, Rzhev: The Cornerstone of the Eastern Front, translated from
the German Rshew: Eckpfeiler der Ostfront (Freidberg, 1980), 62.
8. Ibid.
9. Rolf Stoves, 1. Panzer-Division 1935-1945 [The 1st Panzer Division 1935-
1945] (Bad Nauheim: Hans-Henning Podzun, 1961), 407.
10. Ibid., 408-409.
11. Ibid., 409.
12. Anton Detlev von Plato, Die Geschichte der S Panzerdivision 1938 bis 1945
[The
history
of the 5th
Panzer Division
1935-1945]
(Regensberg: Walhalla
u.
Praetoria, 1978), 256.
13. Earle F. Ziemke, Stalingrad to Berlin: The German Defeat in the East (Wash-
ington, D.C.: United States Army Office of the Chief of Military History, 1968), 115-
116.
14. G. Zhukov, Reminiscences and Reflections, vol. 2 (Moscow: Progress, 1985),
131-132.
15. A. L. Getman, Tanki idut na Berlin (1941-1945) [Tanks are advancing on Berlin
(1941-1945)] (Moscow: Nauka, 1973), 76-77.
16. M. D. Solomatin, Krasnogradtsy [The men of Krasnograd] (Moscow: Voenizdat,
1963), 39-40.
17. Ibid., 42-43.
18. D. A. Dragunsky, Gody v brone [Years in armor] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1973),
85.
19. "Vvod v proryv konno-mekhanizirovannykh grupp" [Introduction into the
penetration of cavalry-mechanized groups], SMPIOV, No. 9 (November-December
1943)] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1944), 149.
20. Ibid., 150.
21. "Nachal'nikam tyla 20 i 31 armii, zamestiteliam komandirov 6 TK i 2 Gv KK
po tylu. 24 noiabr' 1942g. 2 ch. 30 min." [To the chiefs of rear services of the 20th
and 31st Armies and the deputy commanders of the 6th Tank and 2d Guards Cav-
alry Corps, 0200 hours, 24 November 1942], from "Delo No. 3 s rukovodiashchimi
materialami i ukazaniiami vysshikh shtabovpo sluzhbe tyla2Gv KK" [File No. 3 con-
taining directive materials and orders of higher staffs on the rear services of the 2d
Guards Cavalry Corps], TsAMO, f. 3467, op. 1, d. 417,1. 52.
22. Ibid., 1.58.
23. "Direktivy, prikazaniia vyshestoiashchikh instantsii chastiam 8SK" [Directives
and orders of higher commands to 8th Rifle Corps units], TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 7,
1. 273. Addressed to the chiefs of staff of all subordinate formations.
24. Ibid., 1.284.
25. Ibid., I. 287.
400 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
26. "Prikaz voiskam 41 armii Kalininskogo Fronta. 10 ianvaria 1943g." [Order to
the 41st Army of the Kalinin Front, dated 10 January 1943], in "Direktivy, ukazaniia,
prikazy vyshestoiashchikh shtabov 1-mu mekhkorpusu. 25.12.42-3.7.43" [Directives,
instructions,
and
orders
of
higher
staffs
to the 1st
Mechanized Corps,
25.11.42-
3.7.43], TsAMO, f. 3423, op. 1, d. 3,1. 11.
27. "Doklad o boevykh deistviiakh i doneseniia 2Gv KK, 25.11.42-4.1.43" [Re-
port about the combat operations and dispatches of the 2d Gds Cavalry Corps,
25.11.42-4.1.43], TsAMO, f. 3467, op. 1, d. 81, 1. 1.
28. "Delo No 3," 1. 60.
29. "Pohtdoneseniia SGvSK," 11. 188-189.
30. Ibid., 227.
31. Ibid., 206.
32. The new vodka ration was specified by GKO Decree No. 2507, dated 12
November 1942, which read as follows:
1. Beginning from 25 November 1942 the field armies' combat forces' combat
ration is as follows: (a) 100 grams per person per day to subunits of units that are
conducting immediate combat operations and are located in trenches in forward
positions; to subunits conducting reconnaissance; to artillery and mortar units that
are attached and supporting infantry and are located in firing positions; and to com-
bat aircraft crews upon the fulfillment of their combat missions, (b) 50 grams per
person per day to regimental and division reserves; to combat security subunits
and units that are working in forward positions; to units that are fulfilling respon-
sible missions in special instances; and to wounded who are located in medical
service field installations on the instructions of the doctors.
2. A ration of 100 grams of vodka per person per day to all servicemen of field
forces on revolutionary or people's holidays designated by NKO Directive
No. 1889 of 6 June 1942.
3. In the Transcausasus Front, issue 200 grams of "strong" wine or 300 grams
of table wine instead of the 100 grams of vodka. . . .
4. Front and army military councils will establish the monthly limit of vodka
rations.
See V. V. Veniaminov/"Narkotovskie' grammy" ['narcotics' grams], VIZh 5 (Sep-
tember-October 1995): 96. The same article provided the vodka ration, by liters,
for individual/rcmfa from 25 November through 31 December 1942, the period of
Operation Mars: Karelian, 364,000; Leningrad, 533,000; Northwestern, 407,000;
Kalinin, 690,000; Western, 980,000; Briansk, 414,000; Voronezh, 381,000; South-
western, 407,000; Don, 544,000; Stalingrad, 407,000; 7th Separate Army, 69,000;
Transcaucasus, 1,200,000 (wine). In terms of vodka ration and consumption, the
Western and Kalinin Front also outstripped the three Stalingrad/ronfe. This unusual
indicator also clearly demonstrates the relative importance of Operation Mars.
33. "Pohtdoneseniia SGvSK," 1. 208.
34. "Iz politdoneseniia Mikhailova Pasha, ot 27.11.42" [From a political report of
Mikhailov Pasha, dated 27.11.42], in "Papka iskhodiashchikh politdonesenii 8Gv SK
v vyshestoiashchie politorgany" [Folder of outgoing political reports of the 8th Guards
Notes to Pages 297-313 401
Rifle Corps to higher-level political organs], TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 411,1. 187. No
other information is available to validate the accuracy of this report.
35. "Prikaz soedineniiam SGvSK No. 0068.12.12.42g." [8th Gds Rifle Corps' order
No. 0068 to formations], TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 11, 1. 126.
36. "Politdoneseniia 8Gv SK," 11. 185-186.
37. Ibid., L 219.
38. TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 7,1. 302.
39. "Prikazy 8Gv SK," 1. 156.
40. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 138," 3.
41. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 139," 3.
42. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 140," 3-4.
43. Ibid., 4.
44. Ibid., 5.
45. Ibid.
46. Ibid.
47. Ibid., 6.
48. Ibid.
49. Grossman, Rzhev, 61, places Russian losses at over 200,000 men, 1,847 tanks,
279 guns, 353 antitank and antiaircraft guns, 264 mortars, 8,718 machine guns, 78
armored reconnaissance vehicles, 1,247 vehicles, and 107 aircraft. "Feindnach-
richtenblatt Nr. 140" cites losses of 1,655 tanks, 4,442 POWs, and 610 deserters but
does not provide an estimate of total Russian personnel casualties.
50. Von Plato, 5. Panzerdivision, 256.
51. "Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 140," 3.
52. "Übersicht über die vor der 9. Armee," These four "Anlage" detail the com-
position, strength, and combat losses of all armored and mechanized corps and bri-
gades opposite the Ninth Army's Rzhev positions on 24 December 1942.
53. "Boevye doneseniia i operativnye svodki shtaba 1 mekhkorpusa," 1. 36.
54. See G. F. Krivosheev, ed., Grif sekretnosti sniat: poteri vooruzhennykh sil SSSR
v voinakh, boevykh deistviiakh i voennykh konfliktakh [Classification secret removed:
losses of the armed forces of the USSR in wars, combat operations, and military con-
flicts]
(Moscow: Voenizdat, 1993),
176-177,
225, 236, 252.
55. Ibid., 219-220. In fall 1943, Soviet armies would lose over a half million men
in another failed offensive operation aimed at seizing Belorussia. This operation too
would go unreported but will be the subject of a future volume.
56. For details on the planning and conduct of Operation Saturn and Little Sat-
urn, see David M. Glantz, From the Don to the Dnepr: Soviet Offensive Operations,
December 1942-August 1943 (London: Frank Cass, 1991). The Russians have writ-
ten extensively on the planning and conduct of these operations.
57. Ibid. Russian historians have written extensively about the successful
Ostrogozhsk—Rossosh' and Voronezh—Kastornoe operations, but considerably less
about the failed Khar'kov and Donbas operations.
58. For details of this plan and the ensuing February-March operations (formal
name unknown), see David M. Glantz, "Prelude to Kursk: Soviet Strategic Opera-
tions, February-March 1943," Journal of Slavic Military Studies 8, no. 1 (March
402 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
1995): 1-35; and David M. Glantz, Atlas and Survey, Prelude to Kursk: The Soviet
Central Front Offensive, February-March 1943 (Carlisle, PA: Self-published, 1998).
Russian historians have almost totally ignored this spectacular, but failed, Central
and Kursk Fronts operation. However, adequate sources are now available to recon-
struct the operation in considerable detail.
59. This linkage between Operation Mars and the failed February attempt to
destroy German Army Group Center is important for two reasons. First, it had a di-
rect influence on how the Soviets conducted their Kursk defense and the massive
Soviet July counteroffensive that followed. Second, it prompted Zhukov to launch
yet another attempt to destroy German Army Group Center in fall 1943, this time
using enveloping attacks by the Soviet 1st Baltic (Kalinin), Western, and Belorussian
Fronts into Belorussia. This first Belorussian offensive, which was begun in Novem-
ber 1943 and resumed again February 1944, also failed with heavy Soviet losses. As
a result, until very recently, Russian historians have written virtually nothing about
it. For a brief account of the failed operation and the new Russian materials about it,
see David M. Glantz and Jonathan M. House, When Titans Clashed: How the Red
Army Stopped Hitler (Lawrence: University Press of Kansas, 1995).
60. For details on the May 1942 Soviet Khar'kov debacle, see David M. Glantz,
Kharkov, May 1942: The Anatomy of a Military Disaster Through Soviet Eyes (Lon-
don: Ian Allen, 1998); and Glantz, Atlas and Survey.
61. For details on these and other Soviet defeats that require public exposure,
see David M. Glantz, "Nedostatld istoriografii: zabytye bitvy Germano-Sovetskoi voiny
(1941-1945gg.)" [The failures of historiography: forgotten battles of the German-
Soviet war (1941-1945)], in O. A, Rzheshevsky, Vtoraia mirovaia voina: Aktual'nye
problemy [The Second World War: Actual problems] (Moscow: Nauka, 1995), 339-
362.
62. See A. A. Grechko, ed., Istoriia vtoroi mirovoi voiny, T. shestoi [A history of
the Second World War, vol. 6] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1976), 29-30, which states:
In October-November 1942 the Northwestern, Kalinin, and Western Fronts were
to conduct a combined offensive operation along the Moscow axis to destroy the
enemy in the Rzhev and Novo-Sokol'nikov regions. The operation was code-named
"Mars." The initial period for its readiness was designated as 21 October, but the
beginning of operations was 23 October. ... Its aim was not only to tie down enemy
forces and defeat him in the region of the Rzhev-Viaz'ma bulge, but also to at-
tract additional enemy reserves to that region.
This volume, and others, provide no further details.
63. For example, M. E. Katukov, Na ostrie glavnogo udara [On the point of the
main attack] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1976), 182, provides the formal name.
64. Ibid.
65. Krivosheev, Grif sekretnosti, 181-182.
66. S. D. Andreeva, "Otdali zhizn' za rodinu" [They gave their life for the Home-
land], VIZh 1 (January 1994): 11.
67. "lushkevich, Vasilii Aleksandrovich," SVE, vol. 8 (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1980),
645.
Notes to Pages 314-323 403
68. S K. Moskalenko, Na iugo-zapadnom napravlenii 1943-1945 [On the south-
western axis 1943-1945] (Moscow: Nauka, 1972), 503, 505, 524. Kiriukhin merited
no official encyclopedia entry.
69. A. D. Sidorov, "Otdali zhizn' za rodinu," V/Z/i 1 (January 1993): 24.
70. "Zhuravlev, Evgenii Petrovich," SVE, vol. 3 (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1977), 347-
348.
71. "Kolpakchi, Vladimir lakovlevich," SVE, vol. 4 (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1977),
244-245.
72. "Polenov, Vitalii Sergeevich," SVE, vol. 6 (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1978), 407.
73. "Kriukov, Vladimir Viktorovich/'Geroz Sovetskogo soiuza, T. l [Heroes of the
Soviet Union, vol. 1] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1987), 788.
74. "Semenchenko, Kuz'ma Aleksandrovich," Geroi Sovetskogo soiuza, T. 2 [He-
roes of the Soviet Union, vol. 2] (Moscow: Voenizdat, 1988), 438.
Selective Bibliography
National Archives Microfilm series, abbreviated as NAM
Tsentral'nyi arkhw ministerstva oborony [Central Archives of the Ministry of
Defense], abbreviated as TsAMO
Voenno-istoricheskii zhurnal [Military-historical journal], abbreviated as VIZh
Voennoe izdatel'stvo [Military publishing house of the Soviet Ministry of De-
fense], abbreviated as Voenizdat
Primary Sources
"Anlage l zum Tätigkeitsbericht der Abteilung Ic/A.O., l Jul-31 Dec 1942." AOK 9,
27970/2. In NAM T-312, roll 303.
Boevoi sostav Sovetskoi armii, chast' 2. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1966. Classified secret.
"Boevye doneseniia i operativnye svodki shtaba l mekhkorpusa," TsAMO, f. 3424,
op. l, d. 2.
"Boevye doneseniia i operativnye svodki 2Gv KK." TsAMO, f. 3467, op. l, d. 79.
"Boevye donoseniia i operativnye svodki shtaba 5TK s 30.7 po 31.12.42." TsAMO,
f. 3404, op. l, d. 11.
"Boevye prikazy i rasporiazheniia komandira i shtaba 5TK." TsAMO, f. 3404, op. l, d. 9.
"Boevye prikazy i rasporiazheniia vyshestoiashchikh instantsii 5TK." TsAMO, f. 3404,
op. l, d. 10.
"Doklad o boevykh deistviiakh i doneseniia 2Gv KK, 25.11.42-4.1.43." TsAMO,
f. 3467, op. l, d. 81.
"Delo No. 3 s rukovodiashchimi materialami i ukazaniiami vysshikh shtabov po sluzhbe
tyla 2Gv KK." TsAMO, f. 3467, op. l, d. 417.
"Direktivy i prikazy voiskam 41 armii, mart-dekabr 1942g." TsAMO, f. 396, op. 9208,
ed.
khr.
1.
"Direktivy, prikazaniia vyshstoiashchikh instantsii chastiam 8SK." TsAMO, f. 825,
op. l, d. 7.
"Direktivy, ukazaniia, prikazy vyshestoiashchikh shtabov l-my mekhkorpusy,
25.12.42-3.7.43." TsAMO, f. 3423, op. l, d. 3.
"Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 138."Armeeoberkommando 9, Ic/A.O., 3134/42geh., A.H.
Qu., den 30.11.42. In NAM T-312, roll 304.
"Feindnachrichtenblatt Nr. 139."Armeeoberkommando 9, Ic/A.O., 3229/42 geh., A.H.
Qu., den 8.12.42. In NAM T-312, roll 304.
"Feindnachtrichtenblatt Nr. 140." Armeeoberkommando 9, Ic/A.O., Nr. 3291/geh.,
A.H. Qu., den 15 Dezember 1942. In NAM T-312, roll 304.
405
406 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
"Feindnachtrichtenblatt Nr. 141."Armeeoberkommando 9, lc/A.O., Nr. 3391/42geh.,
A.H. Qu., den 30.12.1942. In NAM T-312, roll 304.
"Gefechtsbericht der 86. Inf. Div. fur die Zeit vom 25-28.11." 86 Inf. Division Abt.
la, Div. Gef. Std., 14.12.42. In NAM T-314, roll 985.
Komandovanie korpusnogo i divizionnogo zvena sovetskikh vooruzhennykh sil perioda
Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny 1941—1945 gg. Moscow: Frunze Academy, 1964.
Classified secret.
"Möglichkeiten vor H. Gr. Mitte." Anlage 2 zu Abt. Frd. H. Ost (1) vom 6.11.42. In
NAM
T-78.
Obshchevoiskovye armii za 1942g.: boevoi sostav, chast' 2 i 3. Inv. no. 0286 and
no. 46/5469.
"Operatsii 29 armii, iul'-dekabr' 1942g." TsAMO, f. 384, op. 8529, ed. khr. 130.
"Opisanie boevykh deistvii 20A na rubezhe r. Vazuza, 25 noiabria-18 dekabria 1942g."
TsAMO, f. 373, op. 6631, d. 56.
"Papka iskhodiashchikh politdonesenii 8Gv S K v vyshestoiashchie politorgany."
TsAMO, f. 825, op. l, d. 411.
"Prikaz narodnogo komissara oborony Soiuza SSR No. 227, 28 iiulia 1942 g." VIZh 8
(August 1988): 76-80.
"Prikazanie shtaba zapadnogo fronta No. 02213 ot 20.10.1942g. po organizatsii sviazi
vzaimodeistviia." In Sbornik boevykh dokumentov Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny,
vypusk 19. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1953. Classified secret and prepared by the
Military-historical section of the General Staffs Military-scientific Directorate.
"Prikazy 8Gv SK, sentiabr'-dekabr' 42g." TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1, d. 11.
"Prikazy po tylu 5TK." TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 259.
"Prikazy po tylu 5TK." TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 260.
"Prikazy 10-mu TK s 13.5 po 27.12.42." TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 1.
"Report by the 3d Air Army Representative with the 1st Mechanized Corps During
Operation Mars [English translation]." TsAMO, f. 311, op. 4495, d. 24.
"Sychevsko-Rzhevskaia operatsiia 31 A." TsAMO, f. 386, op. 8583, ed. khr. 144.
"Tätigkeitsbericht der Abteilung lc/A.O." AOK 9, 27970/5, dated 1 July-31 Decem-
ber 1942. In NAM T-312, roll 304.
"Tätigkeitsbericht der Abt. Mit Anlagen, Ic, Anlage 32 u. 22 zum Kriegstagebuch
Nr. 2." InfDiv Grossdeutschalnd 30924/33-33, Nov 25-Dec 21, 1942. In NAM
T-315, rolls 2288-2289.
"Übersicht über die vor der 9. Armee neu aufgetretenen Korps, Stand vom 24.12.42."
Anlage 2 zu Feindnachrichtenblatt nr. 141, A. O. K. 9, lc/A.O. In NAM T-312,
roll 304.
"Ukazaniia po bor'be so shturmovymi orudiiami protivnika." Sbornik boevykh
dokumentov Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny, vypusk 9. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1949.
Classified secret and prepared for publication by the Directorate for the Study
of War Experience of the Soviet Armed Forces General Staff.
"Vvod v proryv konno-mekhanizirovannykh grupp." Sbornik materialov po izucheniiu
opyta voiny, no. 9 (noiabr'—dekabr' 1943 g.). Moscow: Voenizdat, 1944. Classi-
fied secret and prepared for publication by the Red Army General Staff's Sec-
tion for the Use of War Experience.
Selective Bibliography 407
"Zhurnal boevykh deistvii artillerii 8Gv SK, 1942-1944gg." TsAMO, f. 825, op. 1,
d.
293.
"Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 5TK: mai-dekabr' 1942g." TsAMO, f. 3404, op. 1, d. 12.
"Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 8Gv SK, 7 mai 1942-ianvar' 1943gg." TsAMO, f. 825,
op. 1, d. 32.
"Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 22 armii, 22 noiabr'-dekabr' 1942g." TsAMO, f. 376,
op. 10803, d. 97.
"Zhurnal boevykh deistvii 31 armii, mart-dekabr' 1942g." TsAMO, f. 386, op. 8583,
ed.
khr. 153.
Secondary Sources
Anishchenkov, P. S., and Shurinov, V. E. Tret'ia vozdushnaia: Voenno-istoricheskii
ocherk o boevom puti WS Kalininskogo fronta i 3-i vozdushnoi armii v gody
Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1984.
Babadzhonian, A. Kh. Dorogi pobedy. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1981.
Boiko, V. R. S dumoi o rodine. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1982.
Dragunsky, D. A. Gody v brone. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1973.
Dremov, I. F.Nastupalagroznaiabronia. Kiev: Politicheskoi literatury Ukrainy, 1981.
Galitsky,
K.
"Shturm
velikikh luk." VIZh (January
1977):
53-58.
Getman, A. L. Tanki idut na Berlin (1941-1945). Moscow: Nauka, 1973.
Glantz, David M. Atlas and Survey, Operation "Mars" (November-December 1942:
Marshal Zhukov's Greatest Defeat). Carlisle, PA: Self-published, 1998.
Goerlitz, Walter. Paulus and Stalingrad. New York: Citadel Press, 1963.
Grechko, A. A., ed. Istoriia vtoroi mirovoi voiny 1939-1945. Vol. 6. Moscow: Voenizdat,
1976.
Grossman, Horst. Rzhev: Cornerstone of the Eastern Front. Unpublished trans-
lation by Joseph Welch from the German, Rshew: Eckpfeiler der Ostfront (unter-
veranderter Nachdruck). Friedberg, 1980.
Halder, Franz, "War Journal of Franz Halder, VII." Translated typescript. Carlisle,
PA: U.S. Army War College, n.d.
Isaev, S. I. "Vekhi frontovogo puti." VIZh 10 (October 1991): 22-26.
Kahn, David. "An Intelligence Case History: The Defense of Osuga, 1942." Aero-
space Historian 28, no. 4 (December 1981): 242-252.
Katukov, M. E. Na ostrie glavnogo udara. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1976.
Kazar'ian, A. V. Prisiapa na vsiu zhizn'. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1988.
' o '
Khlebnikov, N. M. Pod grokhot soten batarei. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1979.
Kochetkov, A. D. Dvinskii tankovyi: boevoi put' 5-go tankovogo dvinskogo korpusa.
Moscow: Voenizdat, 1989.
Kolesnik, A. D., ed. Opolchenskie formirovaniia Rossiiskoi Federatsii v gody Velikoi
Otechestvennoi voiny. Moscow: Nauka, 1988.
Kostenko, F. A. Korpus krylatoi gvardii: boevoi put' 1-go gvardeiskogo istrebitel'nogo
auiatsionnogo minskogo krasnoznamennogo korpusa. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1974.
Kuznetsov, P. G. Gvardeitsy-moskvichi. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1962.
. Proletarskaia moskovsko-minskaia. Voenizdat, 1975.
408 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Malygin, K. A. V tsentre boevogo poriadka. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1986.
Nikiforov, A. P. V ogne rozhdennaia. Moscow: DOSAAF USSR, 1981.
Orekhov, O. A. "Maloizvestnye stranitsy Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny: Velikolukskaia
nastupatel'naia operatsiia." Unpublished manuscript, n.d.
Plato, Anton Detlev von. Die Geschichte der 5. Panzerdivision 1938 bis 1945:
Herausgegeben von der Gemeinschaft der Angehörigen der ehemaligen S. Pan-
zerdivision. Regensberg: Walhalla u. Praetoria, 1978.
Samsonov, A. M. Stalingradskaia bitva: ot oborony i otstuplenü k velikoi pobede na
Volge. Moscow: Akademüa nauk SSSR, 1960.
Sandalov, L. M. Pogorelo-Gorodishchenskaia operatsiia. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1960.
Scheibert, Horst. Panzer Grenadier Division Grossdeutschland. Translated by Gisele
Hockenberry. Warren, MI: Squadron/Signal, 1977.
Sekretov, A. N. Gvardeiskaia postup' (boevoi put' 17-i mozyrskoi krasnoznamennoi
ordenov Lenina, Suvorova i Kutuzova kavaleriiskoi divizii, podshefnoi tadzhiki-
stanu v gody Velikoi Otechestvennoi voiny 1941-1954 gg.). Dushanbe: Donish,
1985.
Shilov, K. K. Rechitskaia krasnoznamennaia. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1984.
Shukman, Harold, ed. Stalin's Generals. London: Weidenfeld and Nicolson, 1993.
Solomatin, M. D. Krasnogradtsy. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1963.
Sovetskaia Voennaia Entsiklopedüa. 8 vols. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1976-1980.
Sovetskaia kavaleriia: voenno-istoricheskii ocherk. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1984.
Stoves, Rolf. Die 1. Panzer-Division 1935-1945: Chronik einer der drei Stamm-
Divisionen der deutschen Panzerwaffe. Bad Nauheim: Hans-Henning Podzun,
1961.
Vasilevsky, A. M. Delo vsei zhizni. Moscow: Politizdat, 1983.
Voloshin, M. A. Razvedchiki vsegda vperedi. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1977.
Zhukov, G. Reminiscences and Reflections. Vol. 2. Moscow: Progress, 1985.
Ziemke, Earl. Stalingrad to Berlin: The German Defeat in the East. Washington, D.C.:
United States Army Office of the Chief of Military History, 1968.
Ziemke, Earl F., and Bauer, Magna E. Moscow to Stalingrad: Decision in the East.
Washington, DC: United States Army Center of Military History, 1987.
Zvartsev, A. M. 3-ia Gvardeiskaia tankovaia: boevoi put' 3-i gvardeiskoi tankovoi
armii. Moscow: Voenizdat, 1982.
Index
A list of commanders can be found in Appendix B
Abramov, Lieutenant Colonel K. N., 262,
265
Afanas'ev, Major M. N., 113, 117, 120
killed in action, 130
Alekseev, Colonel D. F.
division decimated, 190, 253
Ananino, 133, 134, 242, 245
Andreevskoe, 26, 29, 96, 177, 226, 253
Andrianov, Colonel, 300
Andriushchenko, Colonel M. F., 62-63,
141-143, 144-145, 149, 209, 212
Arestovo, 54, 86, 88, 92, 93, 98, 100, 104
Arman, Colonel P. M., 109
attack orders, 54, 87-88, 95, 102
commanding engagement,
90-91,
102
104, 106, 182, 184-186
ordered to break out of encirclement,
110, 178,
183
permitted to halt attack, 95
relieved of command, 225
Armies, German
-First Panzer, 42
-Fourth Panzer, 6
encircled, 70
enters Stalingrad, 12
-Sixth, 10, 12-13, 41
decimation at Stalingrad, 1, 312
encircled, 70
flanks vulnerable, 13
targeted by Operation Uranus, 20
-Ninth, 108, 115, 126, 188, 195
defensive dispositions, 34—35, 41
destruction sought by Operation Mars,
20, 24, 225, 228, 229, 257-258,
317
intelligence reports for, 32-38, 40-41,
301-303
proclaims victory, 289
and Rzhev-Sychevka offensive, 10—12
weakened by Operation Mars, 289,
920
Armies, Hungarian, 19
Armies, Italian, 13, 19, 310
Armies, Rumanian, 13,19, 41-42, 44, 70
Armies, Soviet
-1st Tank, 308, 322
-2d Guards, 19, 20, 40
joins Stalingrad Front, 310
moves south, 308, 310
released to Vasilevsky, 224
retained at Tambov by Stalin, 38-39, 75
-2d Reserve, 19
-2d Tank, 308
-3d Reserve, 19
-3d Shock, 30, 39, 44, 177, 257
-3d Tank, 40
assigned to Operation Jupiter, 24, 25, 49,
257, 383n22
assignment reconsidered, 178, 224, 226
reassigned to Operation Saturn, 258, 308
in southern operations, 312
-4th Shock, 228, 257
-5th,
24, 48, 257
-5th Shock, 308
-5th Tank, 43
-10th Reserve, 20
-20th, 11, 40, 58, 127, 134, 177, 201, 224,
225, 227,
295
abolished, 322
attack orders for, 22, 26-27, 46, 48, 190,
226, 252-257
final preparations and plans, 49-55
losses, 189-190, 263, 305(table), 306,
307(table)
numerical superiority, 255
offensive
at
Vazuza,
77-110,
178-191,
252-266
reconstituted, and new commanders,
190, 252-257
-21st, 43
-22d, 257,
225
attack orders, 22, 29, 176-177, 209, 226
defending the Luchesa gap, 274—279
final
preparations,
60-63
losses, 149, 150, 214, 275, 305(table)
offensive in Luchesa, 139-150, 208-218
slow progress
nullifies
mission,
141-143
transferred north, 322
409
410 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Armies, Soviet (continued]
-29th, 11, 40, 225
attack orders, 22, 43, 255, 256
dissolved, 322
engaged, 255, 259
losses, 306(table)
-30th, 11, 151, 177, 178, 191, 225
attack orders, 48, 69, 219-221, 226, 257-
258
diversionary maneuver, 155
engaged, 266-274
losses, 306(table)
reorganized into 10th Guards Army, 322
-31st, 11, 322
attack orders, 22, 46, 48
disastrous opening attack, 82-83
losses, 82, 306(table)
-33d,
24, 48, 257
-39th, 225
attack orders, 22, 29-30, 176-177, 219,
226,
257
diversionary role of, 177
engaged in Molodoi Tud, 150-162, 218-
221, 266-274
final preparations, 66-69
losses, 305(table)
-list,
225, 227, 253, 258, 293,
297
abolished, 309, 322
attack
orders,
22, 29,
110-111,
176-177,
226-227
deception maneuver, 55—57, 73
defensive regrouping, 205-206
encircled and destroyed, 231-252
final preparations, 55-60
insufficient
forces,
39,
57-58, 112,
119-120
losses, 251-252, 305(table), 306,
307(table)
offensive
in
Belyi sector,
110-139, 191-208
-43d,
73,
228,
257
-62d, 12-13
-See also individual commanders
Army Group A (German), 8, 311(map), 312
Soviet intent to isolate, 20, 310
Army Group B (German), 8, 37, 71,
311(map)
target of Operation Saturn, 20, 318
Army Group Center (German), 37-38, 44-
45, 311(map), 314
dispatches reserves to Belyi, 126
fates of commanders, 323
final
defensive orders,
73-74
intelligence of impending attack, 71-74
ultimate target of Operations Mars and
Jupiter, 19-20, 258, 317
Zhukov's focus on, 11, 16, 19, 75, 178,
283, 303, 312, 381n8
Army Group Don (German), 311(map),
312
Army Group South (German), 44,
311(map)
Artamonov, Lieutenant Colonel F. V., 205
Artillery, Soviet, 53
buildup of, 24, 36, 72
delayed by bottleneck at Vazuza, 95,
102-104, 106, 109, 296
lack of, 94, 98
predictability and ineffectiveness of, 80,
83, 154
weather obscures targets of, 53, 78, 94
Azov, Sea of, 20
Babadzhanian, Colonel A. Kb.., 63-65, 147,
149, 167(photo), 209, 316, 323
Barbarossa offensive, 6, 9
Basino, 138, 139, 193, 195, 199-200, 207,
242
Batov, P. I., 321
Baturino, 116, 121, 122-123, 124, 126, 136,
137, 192,
241
Belorussian offensive, failure and cover-up,
315, 402n59
Belyi (town), 63, 119, 121, 125, 127, 131,
134, 139, 140, 176, 177, 191-192, 195,
196-197, 202, 206, 227, 228, 231-232,
234,
238
importance of, 115, 123, 137, 294
Belyi sector, 108, 109, 189
attack orders for, 22, 29, 31, 176-177,
257-259
Belyi (town) engagements,
127, 134-137,
191-193, 196-197, 202, 206, 235-237
41st Army encircled and destroyed in,
231-252
German defense of, 115-117, 122-126,
194-196, 199-201, 206-208, 233-234,
237
German pincer maneuver in, 204-205,
227, 230, 234-242
German preparations in, 34, 58, 73
German reinforcements for, 117, 125-
126, 133, 176, 198-201, 204-205
maps of, 56, 118, 135, 203, 236, 247
Nacha River engagements, 119-121,
128-131, 133, 137-138, 193-194, 198-
201, 204-205, 206-207, 233, 241-242
offensive
in,
110-139, 191-208
preparations for, 44, 55—60
See also individual commanders
Belyi-Demekhi Road, 58, 110, 111, 113,
202, 238, 240,
246
Belyi-Olenino Road, 131, 191, 193, 197,
277-279
Index 411
Belyi-Vladimirskoe Road
German relief arriving on, 125, 133, 199,
201
key target of Soviets, 59, 119, 130, 131,
228
retaken by Germans, 231—232, 234
taken
and
held
by
Soviets, 134,
136-138,
193-195, 197, 198, 202, 206
Berestov, Colonel P. F.
attack orders, 52
engaged, 84, 85, 88, 94
Bobrov, Major General F. A.
attack orders, 52, 256
engaged, 83, 94, 182-184
Bobrovka, 54, 84, 88, 92
Bocharniki, 205, 238
Bogoroditskoe, 149, 211
Bokachevo, 131, 136, 192, 195
Bol'shoe Kropotovo, 51, 85, 90, 91, 93, 100,
104, 107,
226
Brigades, Soviet. See individual
commanders
Briukhanovo, 160, 162
Budino, 119, 121, 124, 136, 136, 241
Buntrock, Colonel Georg (Ninth Army
intelligence), reports impending
offensive,
33-34,
36,
72-73
Burda, Major A. F., 147, 167(photo), 209,
212, 215, 218,
286
Burdach, General, 221, 269
Busarov, Colonel
M. M.,
68-69,
151-154,
157,
159
Bykovo, 120, 129, 132, 240, 245-246
Caucasus, the, 6-8, 10, 20, 32, 310, 319
Cavalry-mechanized forces (Soviet)
premature commitment of, 96-97, 295-
296,
301
proper deployment of, 55
Cavalry-Mechanized Group, Kriukov's
attack orders for,
46, 52,
53-55,
87-88,
95
delayed by inadequate infantry
penetration, 84
formed and assembled, 25, 54
lack of infantry and artillery support for,
109
separated
by
traffic
bottleneck,
94-97
shattered and weakened, 106, 109
See also Arman, Colonel P. M.; Kriukov,
Major General V. V.
Central Front offensive, 311(map), 312-
314
defeat ignored in Soviet accounts, 315,
402n58
Kursk salient results from, 314
relation to Operation Mars, 402n59
Cherednichenko, Colonel General la. T..
48
Chernichenko, Major V. S., 145-146, 147,
148, 209,
211
Chertolino, 27, 30, 34, 48, 55, 221, 226
Chirevo, 123, 124, 127, 202
Chistiakov, I. M., 321
Chiukov, General V. I., 13, 321
Corps, German
-II Luftwaffe Field, 35, 111, 115, 117, 125
-VI Army, 35
-XXIII Army, 34, 62, 258
and Luchesa sector, 144, 150, 211
and Molodoi Tud sector, 155, 221, 269
-XXVII Army, 188, 258
-XXVIII Army, 221
-XXX Army
assigned to Belyi, 125-126
delayed by partisans, 208
and pincer maneuver, 235, 238, 241, 245,
252
-XXXIX Panzer, 34, 39, 71, 109, 187
defensive preparations, 35—37, 72—73, 77.
258-259
engaged, 85-86, 90, 101, 106, 265
-XLI Panzer, 62
-XXXXI Panzer, 34, 41, 108, 258-259
and Belyi sector, 192, 194, 206, 233
and Luchesa sector, 115, 117, 122, 125-
126, 143, 150,
211
-XXXXVIII Panzer, 12
-LI Army, 12
Corps, Soviet
-1st Mechanized, 109, 204
attack orders, 22, 55, 110-112
defensive regrouping, 205-206, 231
final
preparations,
113-114
losses, 251-252
-1st Tank, 43
-2d Guards Cavalry, 11, 253
attack orders, 22, 26-27, 54, 88, 95, 98,
99, 101, 178-179
delayed by inadequate infantry-
penetration, 84
delayed by traffic bottleneck, 94-96
engaged, 96-97, 104-106, 180, 182, 186,
189
losses, 96-97, 104, 105, 179
part of cavalry-mechanized group, 25
withdrawal, 190
—2d Guards Mechanized, 19
reserved by Stalin, 38-39
—2d Mechanized, 44, 257
attack orders, 22, 29
transferred from Belyi to Velikie Luki,
.38-39, 44, 57-58, 112
412 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Corps, Soviet (continued)
-3d Mechanized, 140
attack orders, 22, 29, 63
engaged, 143
final
preparations,
60-65
formed, 60
-3d Tank, 41
-5th Tank
attack orders, 22, 256
committed, 253, 255
engaged, 260-263, 264-265
held in reserve, 109, 225
losses, 263, 265
-6th Mechanized, 20
-6th (Stalin) Siberian Volunteer Rifle, 40
attack
orders
for,
22, 29, 57, 59,
110-111,
122,
126
engaged, 114, 117, 119, 191, 202
defensive regrouping, 205-206, 231
impending encirclement, 230
losses, 232, 251-252
-6th Tank, 11,25, 72
attack orders, 22,26, 54,87-88,95,102,256
engaged, 90-95, 101-104, 106, 182, 184-
185, 263,
264
losses, 92, 185
ordered to break out of encirclement,
110, 178,
183
reconstituted, and new commander, 225,
253-255
support for delayed, 94-97, 102, 106
withdrawal of, 190
-7th Tank, 20
-8th Guards Rifle
attack orders, 26, 46, 53, 87-88, 179, 256
delayed by bottleneck, 95
engaged, 93, 95, 97-98, 190, 264
-8th Tank, 11, 52
-24th Tank, 20
-26th Tank, 43
Crimean Peninsula, 6
Dalmatov, Major General V. N., 63
Davydov, Colonel la. A., 114, 119, 121,
128, 130-131, 138, 194, 198, 204
Deception measures, Soviet, 46^18, 55-57,
62-63, 72, 73, 387n89
Demekhi, 59, 114, 115, 117, 120, 131, 205,
233, 238, 239-240, 249
Dentialevo, 226
Divisions, German
-1st Panzer, 34, 47, 132, 257, 290
defensive engagement, 125, 139, 192,
194-195, 196, 199, 207, 237
defensive positioning, 41, 73, 89-90,
115-116, 122
losses, 290
and Luchesa sector, 278
and pincer maneuver, 234-235, 238, 241,
242, 245-246
-1st SS Cavalry, 117, 126
in pincer maneuver, 234-235, 238,
249
-2d Luftwaffe Field, 59, 111, 115, 117
-2d Panzer, 290
defensive positioning, 258—259
and Luchesa sector, 215, 272
-5th Panzer, 27, 36, 47, 71-72, 183
defensive positioning, 34, 41, 52, 73,
77
engaged, 85, 86, 90, 93, 100, 107
losses, 93, 101, 108, 188, 291
and Molodoi Tud sector, 156
put in reserve, 191, 258-259
reinforcements for, 101, 188
-9th Panzer, 34, 86, 99
defensive positioning, 89-90, 191, 258-
259
engaged, 93, 100, 107
Kampfgruppen formed within, 89
-12th Panzer, 34, 257, 290
arrival at Belyi, 198-201
engaged, 199, 207, 245-246, 252
and Luchesa sector, 278
marches to Belyi, 117, 126, 139, 194
and pincer maneuver, 234, 242, 245-246,
252
-14th Motorized
in Molodoi Tud sector, 151, 155-156,
158, 159, 269-270, 272
-19th Panzer, 34, 227, 257
marches to Belyi, 117, 126, 208
in pincer maneuver, 234-238, 241, 245-
246,
249
-20th Panzer, 34, 227, 257
and Luchesa sector, 278
marches to Belyi, 117, 126, 208
in pincer maneuver, 230, 234-235, 238-
239, 241, 246,
249
-52d Infantry, 252
-78th Infantry
defensive positioning, 34, 41, 51, 73, 77,
191, 258-259
engaged, 85-86, 90, 93, 259, 264
losses, 93-94, 188
reinforcements for, 101, 188
-86th Infantry
defensive position, 62
engaged in Belyi, 115
engaged in Luchesa, 144, 146, 148, 149,
212,
279
-87th
Infantry, 221, 271,
273
Index
413
-102d Infantry, 71-72, 99
defensive positioning, 34, 41, 51, 77
intelligence, 36, 40
repels opening attack, 82-84
-110th Infantry
defensive position, 62
in Luchesa sector, 144, 150
-206th Infantry
in Molodoi Tud sector, 154-156, 158,
219,
272
partial withdrawal, 159
-246th Infantry, 122
engaged, 115, 136-137, 195, 206, 233,
237,
242
-251st Infantry
in Molodoi Tud sector, 155, 220-221,
269,
271
-253d Infantry
in Molodoi Tud sector, 154-155
relief for Luchesa sector, 150, 211
-337th Infantry, 34, 259
-Grossdeutchland Motorized, 34, 52, 68,
195,
225
and Belyi pincer maneuver, 238, 245
defensive positioning, 62, 73, 116, 123-
125,
151
engaged in Belyi, 136, 202, 234-235,
245,
257
engaged in Luchesa, 144, 146, 148, 211,
215,
278
losses, 291
in Molodoi Tud sector, 154, 162, 219
Divisions, Soviet. See individual
commanders
Dnepr River, 177
Dobriakov, Major General, 296
Dohrovol'sky, Colonel E. V., 59, 114, 120,
131, 233, 238-239
Donbas (Donets Basin), 312
German advance across, 6, 10
Operation Gallop defeated in, 312-314
Operation Gallop ignored in Soviet
accounts, 314, 401n57
Don River, 6, 10, 12-13
Dragunsky, Colonel D. A., 316
analysis of defeat, 294
Dremov, Colonel I. F., 166(photo), 277,
323
deep northerly thrust, 131, 134, 138, 139,
176
encircled and decimated, 202, 205, 231-
232,
237
relief
for
diverted
to
Belyi,
132, 191-193,
197
Dubenka River, 69, 154-155, 159
Dubki, 133, 204, 205, 233
Dubrovin, Lieutenant Colonel L. V., 232,
239, 243, 250-251
Dubrovka, 114, 121, 127, 235, 238, 240-
241, 245-246, 250
Dudarev, Major General I. F.
command removed, 190
engaged, 180, 184
Dukhovshchina, 57, 58, 73, 74, 176, 204,
208,
257
Egor'e, 195, 197, 226
Emel'ianki, 213, 215
Emel'ianova, 239-240, 251
Eremenko, A. I., 15, 38, 321
offensive planning in memoir, 17
Eroshin, Colonel T. F., 213
Ershov, Colonel V. V., 119, 121, 126, 134,
192, 196,
232
Esipenko, Colonel I. T., 88, 92
Fremde Heere Ost (Foreign Armies East).
See Gehlen, Colonel Reinhardt
Galitskina, 149, 209, 211, 278
Galitsky, K. N., 44
Gehlen, Colonel Reinhardt, 70-71
reports Soviet build-up, 32-33, 37-38
German Army High Command (OKH), 5,
15
and Stalingrad, 12-13
Getman, General A. P., 54, 225, 319, 347
analysis of defeat, 292-293
later prominence, 322
memoir, 316, 323
Gliadovo, 155, 221, 266
Golinovka, 196-197
Goncharovo, 146, 147-148
Gonchuki, 267-272
Gordov, Colonel General V. N., 48
Gorelov, Colonel V. M., 143, 145-146, 147,
149,
209
Goriainov, Colonel A. M., 137
Gorodnia, 129, 133, 205, 207, 233, 242
Gorodovikov, Colonel B. B.
attack orders, 52
engaged, 83, 94, 182
Gorovatka, 149, 209, 211-212
Grediakino, 26, 51-52, 71, 84-86, 89, 90,
93, 94, 97, 99, 108, 109, 179, 182-184,
186-187
Grigor'ev, Colonel V. E.
brigade decimated, 186
command removed, 190
engaged, 180
Grishin, Commissar P. G., 179
Grivo, 143-146, 149, 209, 212-213
414 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Group Kruger, 116
Gruz, Colonel N. O., 59, 114, 119, 121,
126, 127, 192, 196, 202, 240,
242
Gzhat River, 41, 48, 255, 256, 258-259
Haider, Franz, 5-8, 70
Harpe, Colonel General Joseph
allocating reserves to sectors, 146, 246,
248, 252, 258-259, 276
and Belyi pincer maneuver, 234-238,
241,
245
commands at Belyi sector, 115—117, 122,
125-126, 132-137, 139, 194-196, 197,
201, 206, 208, 227, 233-238, 241,
245-248, 252
emphasis on Belyi (town), 123, 133, 137,
195
and Luchesa sector, 143-144, 150, 211
Hilpert, General Karl, 323
and Luchesa sector, 144, 150, 211, 214,
216
and
Molodoi
Tud
sector,
155-156,
158,
162, 219-220, 269, 274
Historiography, Soviet military, 178, 323,
381n8, 401n57
coverup of Operation Mars, 18, SIS-
SI?
heroic version of German-Soviet war, 1,
314-315
later admission of 1942 Khar'kov defeat,
315
Hitler, Adolf, 5-6, 12, 227, 323
approves withdrawal from Rzhev salient,
282
Directive 43, 6
Directive 45, 8
Directive 45 revision, 12
headquarters at Vinnitsa, 5-8
moves to East Prussia, 70
Hitter, General, authorizes strategic
withdrawal in Molodoi Tud, 158-
159
lagodin, Colonel M. D.
behind German lines, 230, 285-287
delayed by bottleneck, 96
engaged, 96, 105, 182
losses, 96, 105, 179
Il'ichev, Colonel I. A., 69, 156, 162, 218
believes only one major Soviet operation
possible, 32, 37, 70
of
impending
offensive,
32-38,
40-41,
71-74
intelligence, German, 301-303
See also Gehlen, Colonel Reinhardt
luplin, Colonel N. A., 263
lushchuk, Colonel I. I.
attack orders, 256
engaged, 263
given command of 6th Tank Corps, 225,
255
lushkevich, Major General V. A.,
166(photo), 321
attack orders for, 29, 176-177, 209
commands offensive in Luchesa, 139-
150, 208-215, 218, 274-275
early attack aborted, 63-65
final preparations, 60-63, 140
permission to halt attacks denied, 275
personal sketch of, 62
removed from command, 275, 320
targets gap between corps, 62, 144, 146,
149,
212
Ivanov, Colonel I. M., engaged, 88, 92,
102-104, 180, 182, 184, 263
Ivanov, S. P., 15, 19, 39
Ivanovka, 150, 277
Jodl, General Alfred, 33
Kaeter, Lieutenant Colonel, 88-89
Kalinin Front, 10-11, 132, 191
attack orders and preparations, 22, 27
30, 43^14, 55-69, 226, 257
Kampfgruppen (combat groups)
Becker, 188-189, 215, 259, 269-271,
276
Buschen, 89-90
Getto, 106, 107
Hochbaum, 93, 100, 184
Holste, 207, 242, 252
Huppert, 196, 206-207
Kassnitz, 116, 123-124, 127, 136, 194,
234-235, 241, 245-246, 252, 278
Kohler, 148-150, 211-212, 158, 162
Lindemann, 144, 146, 150, 211, 212, 214,
276
Praun, 188-189, 214-216, 259, 276, 278-
279
Remont, 89-90, 93
Scheller, 100
Steiger, 94, 97, 99, 183-184, 186-187
von Bodenhausen, 88-89, 100, 106
von der Meden, 133, 139, 194, 196,
199-201, 206-207, 233-234, 237, 241-
242, 245-246, 252, 278-279
von Wietersheim, 116, 123-124,
127, 136, 202, 234, 241,
245-246
von Zettwitz, 89-90
Warschauer, 145-146, 148-149
Kantscl'son, Major General, 297
Index 415
Karamyshev, Colonel G. P.
attack orders, 52
engaged, 83, 94
Karpov, Colonel I. V., 62-63, 141-142,
145-146, 148, 149, 209, 211, 213, 215,
277
Karskaia, 143, 144, 146, 147, 149, 277
Katukov, Major General, 166(photo), 215,
218, 223, 294,
319
assigned new 1st Tank Army, 308, 322
attack orders, 29, 63, 141, 176-177
commands engagement, 143, 145, 147,
211
final preparations, 60-65, 140
memoir, 316, 323
personal sketch of, 60—62
withdrawal order, 275
Khar'kov offensive, 5-6, 16, 315
Khar'kov operation, 312—314
ignored by Soviet accounts, 314, 401n57
Khilobok, 204
Khilobok, Lieutenant Colonel S. T., 239-
240,
242
Khlepen', 51-52, 84, 85, 86, 89, 90, 93, 95,
97,
179, 187, 190, 256,
259
Kholmets, 154
Khozin, Lieutenant General Mikhail
Semenovich, 300
attack orders, 252-257
given command of 20th Army, 225, 252
Khrushchev, 320
Khudlikha, 213, 215, 216
Kiev, 15
Kiriukin,
Major
General
N. I., 46,
175-176,
191,
321
commanding first Vazuza offensive, 79
87, 94-95, 99, 101, 108-110, 178, 182,
183,
190
final preparations, 49—55
relieved of command, 225, 320
Kislovo, 242
Klemiatino, 113, 114, 115, 239-240, 250-
251
Knishnikovo, 155
Kobylino, 54, 90, 92
Kolpakchi, Major General V. la., 177, 321
attack orders, 48, 178, 191, 266
engaged, 267, 271, 273-274
Konev, General Ivan Stepanovich, 15, 24
25, 165(photo), 223, 225, 229, 282-
283,
318
commanding at Vazuza, 79, 81—84, 87,
94-95, 98-99, 101, 108-110, 178, 183,
190, 253, 256, 257,
264
memoirs ignore Operation Mars, 316
and Molodoi Tud sector, 219-221
orders futile attacks, 98, 183, 264
personal sketch of, 24-25
preparations for Operation Mars, 25-27,
45-49
prestige survives Operation Mars, 320
responsibility for defeat, 303
in Rzhev-Sychevka offensive, 10-11
Koniakovo, 233-234
Konstantinov, Colonel N. P., 190
Korchagin, Major General I. P.
attack orders, 29, 39
Korzhenevsky, Major General I. I., 98
Koshkino, 226
Kovalenko, Colonel V. G., 68-69, 154, 157,
159, 160,
218
Kriukov, Major General V. V., 109, 285,
319,
322
attack orders for, 46, 52-54, 87-88, 95,
98, 99, 178-179
and cavalry-mechanized group, 25
commands engagement, 96-97, 104-106,
186
delayed by traffic bottleneck, 94-96
inadequate bridgehead for, 84
reproached by Konev, 98
withdrawal orders, 190
Kruger, Lieutenant General Walter, 208,
234
and Belyi pincer, 234, 241, 245-246
commands engagement, 123-125, 127,
132, 134-137, 139, 194-196, 197, 201,
206, 234, 245-246, 290
defensive positioning,
115-116
Ksenofontov, Major General, 300
Kudriavtsev, Major General A. G., 69, 155,
159,
221
Kursakov, Colonel P. T., 109
behind German lines, 186, 190, 230,
285-287
delayed by bottleneck, 95-96
engaged, 96-97, 104, 182, 186, 189
Kursk, 312-314
formation of Kursk salient, 314
Kushlevo,
138-139,
194, 198,
239
Kuz'menko, Lieutenant Colonel V. I., 113,
114, 117, 120, 128, 130-131, 138,
193-194, 198, 204, 233, 239, 243,
250-251
Kuz'min, Colonel D. I., 68-69, 154, 157
Kuznechikha, 84, 88, 97
Kuzovlevo, 213
Kvashnin, Colonel A. P., 126, 192, 202
Lange, Captain Dr. Friedrich, 36, 40
Lebastino river, 58
Leningrad, 9
416 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Lenino, 226
Lisino, 160
Lobachev, A. A., 49, 55
Lobanov, Colonel F. I., 59, 126, 131, 134,
192, 196, 202, 232, 240, 243, 250-251
Losses (Soviet), 82-83, 92, 94, 231
Lozhki, 87, 92, 96, 102, 106, 107
Luchesa River sector, 60-65, 125, 248,
257-259
attack orders for, 22, 29, 176-177, 209
difficult
terrain
in,
140-141, 277-278
German counterattacks at, 215—218,
276-279
German defense of, 143-144, 146, 148,
150
German forces in, 34, 62
German reinforcements for, 144-148,
150, 211, 213-215, 252, 276
maps of, 61, 142, 210
offensive in, 139-150, 208-218, 274-276
preparations for, 60-63, 140
Soviet defense of, 276-279
See also individual commanders
Malinovka, 277-279
Malinovsky, Lieutenant General R. la., 20,
75, 308
in Operation Little Saturn, 310
Maloe Kropotovo, 51, 91, 98, 104, 105,
106,
107
Malygin, Colonel
K. A.,
68-69,
151-154,
157, 159, 160,
218
Managarov, Major General, 297, 309
Mar'ino, 119, 121, 123, 128, 130, 240, 243,
245
Martinek, General Robert, 258-259, 265
MAX (German agent), 37, 40
Mel'nikov, Colonel Ivan Vasil'evich, 145-
146,
294
Menshurin, Lieutenant Colonel, 156
Metz, General, 90, 92, 93, 99, 107, 183,
187, 191,
259
Model, General Walter, 25, 31, 86, 108, 279
and apparent victory (Dec.), 227-231
and Belyi sector, 115, 117, 126, 195, 227
congratulates Kruger, 290
defensive preparations, 34-35, 72-73
defensive reorganization, 252, 258-259
intelligence of Operation Mars build-up,
32-34
later prominence, 323
personal sketch of, 31
role in victory, 289
and Rzhev salient, 227-228
and Rzhev-Sychevka offensive, 11-12
suicide at the Ruhr, 323
Molodoi Tud (town), 66, 69, 154, 160
Molodoi Tud-Olenino road, 69, 154
Molodoi Tud River, 22, 30, 68, 144, 151-
154
Molodoi Tud sector, 22, 30
attack orders for, 22, 29-30, 176-177,
257
diversionary role of, 29, 156, 177
emphasis shifts toward Zaitsevo, 219-221
final
preparations
in,
66-69
first
offensive
in,
150-162, 218-221
German defense of, 153, 155-156, 158-
159, 162, 220, 221, 269-273
German reinforcements for, 154, 156,
162
maps of, 67, 152, 161, 268
second offensive in, 266-274
See also individual commanders
Morozovsk, 318
Moscow, 9, 15
Moscow axis, 11, 16, 381n8
Moscow counteroffensive, 16
Moscow Defense Zone, 10, 19
Moscow-Rzhev railroad, 45
Motshchalniki, 136, 192, 195, 196-197
Mukhin, Major General G. D.
attack orders, 52, 82, 180, 256
division reconstituted, 253
engaged, 84-85, 88, 91-92, 100, 104,
180, 185, 190, 260-262
losses, 186
Nacha River, 58, 59, 114-116, 119, 122,
125,
196
front along,
127-131, 133,
137-139,
176,
191, 193-194, 198-201, 204-205, 239,
241-242
Nelidovo-Olenino road, 62-63
Nikitin, Colonel M. T., 143, 267-271
Nikitinka Station, 137, 204, 207
Nikolaev, Colonel N. P., 260
Nikonovo, 85, 86, 88, 89, 90, 92, 96, 98,
100, 104, 106, 180, 183, 184,
187
Novikov, Colonel, 297
Novoe Azhevo, 226
Obsha River, 131, 134, 137, 139, 191-192,
194-195, 197, 202, 232
Okolitsa, 226
Olenino, 22, 29, 30, 34, 62, 63, 66-69, 140,
144, 151, 176-177, 189, 193, 226
Olenino-Belyi Road, 141, 147-149, 176-
177, 209, 211-213, 215-216
Operation Blau, 6-8, 7(map)
damaged by Hitler's directives, 8
Operation Bluecher, 6
Index 417
Operation Edelweiss, 8
Operation Gallop, 312-314
Operation Jupiter, 3, 23(map), 25, 48^49,
178, 257,
303
aborted, 266, 308
approved and named, 20
documentation for, 383n26
plan outline, 24
Rzhev-Sychevka Operation map, 23
Operation Kotel'nikovsky, 308
Operation Little Saturn, 310
Operation Mars, 23(map), 127, 178, 209,
266, 288(map)
approved and named, 20
attack orders, 22-24
consequences of defeat, 308-309
covered up in official histories, 2, 315
317,
323
delays, 20, 22, 25, 28, 30
described as diversionary, 17—18, 317
documentation for, 2, 316-317, 324
fates of armies following, 322
fates of commanders following, 320-321,
322
final
plan
for
approved,
38-39
final preparations for, 45—75
General Staff critique of, 295-296
genesis of, 12^45
German losses in, 289-291
planning for, 317
prestige of commanders in, 318-319
reasons for defeat, 291-304
Rzhev-Sychevka Operation, 21(map)
significance compared to Operation
Uranus, 2, 229, 317-320
Soviet losses in, 231, 304-308
Soviet numerical superiority in, 223
summary map, 288
support and provisions for, 24, 30
Zhukov's plan for resuscitation of, 225-
227, 257-258
Operation Ostrogozhsk-Rossosh, 312,
401n57
Operation Ring, 310, 312
Operation Saturn, 38, 224, 308, 309
approved and named, 20
truncated into Little Saturn, 310
Operation Star, 312-314
Operation Uranus, 2, 41-42
anticipated diversionary effect of, 28, 30,
38, 42, 46
approved and named, 20
compared with Operation Mars, 2, 317-
319
fates of armies following, 322
final
plan
for
approved,
38-39
genesis of, 12-43
objectives of, 318
offensive begins, 43
prestige of commanders following, 321
Soviet losses in, 308, 319
success of, 309
Operation Voronezh-Kastornoe, 312,
401n57
Osuga (town), 188
Osuga River, 22, 34, 48, 73, 99
narrow sector between Vazuza River and,
27, 36, 46, 51, 52, 83, 84, 86, 87, 97
and Osuga bridgehead sector, 46, 77, 82,
92
and Vazuza bridgehead, 102, 106, 107,
183, 187,
259
Palatkino, 157
Panfilov, Lieutenant Colonel I. A., 244
Pankratov, Colonel G. I.
delayed by bottleneck, 96
engaged, 97, 180
losses, 97, 180, 186
Partisan units (Soviet)
and Belyi sector, 204-206, 208
joined by cavalry, 286
Paulus, General Friedrich, 12-13
Pavlenko, Major E. M., 128-129, 137
Petelino, 196, 199
Petrovka, 141, 143
Pinsky, Captain M. S., 92, 95-96, 102
Plekhanovo, 154
Ploskoe, 238
Podosinovka, 26, 51, 90, 92, 93, 95, 96,
98,
100, 101, 104, 105, 106, 107,
180, 185, 186, 190, 256, 259,
260-265
Podselitsa, 234, 237
Pogoroloe-Gorodishche offensive. See
Rzhev-Sychevka offensive
Polenov, Major General V. S., 321
attack orders, 46, 48
opening attack a disaster, 82-83
Popel, N. I., 62
Popov, Major General I. I., 243
Popovka, 202
Posiakin, Colonel, 299
Poskrebyshev, 10
Povetkhin, Major General S. I.
attack orders, 59, 110-111, 114, 122, 126
commanding engagement, 117, 119, 191,
202
defensive regrouping, 205-206, 231
final preparations, 57-60
Pozdniakovo, 162, 218
Prudy, 26, 52, 54, 84, 85, 86, 88, 89, 96
418 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Purkaev, General Maksim Alekseevich, 39,
73, 109, 165(photo), 175, 223, 257,
282-283, 316, 318
and Belyi sector, 127, 132, 134, 139, 191,
201, 231, 238, 240, 242-244
and Luchesa sector, 140, 148, 150, 208-
209, 214, 218, 274-275, 276
and Molodoi Tud sector, 151, 160-162,
176-177, 219-221
personal sketch of, 28
preparations for Operation Mars, 27-30,
43-44, 57
prestige survives Operation Mars, 320
responsibility for defeat, 303
Red Army, problems in
bottleneck at Vazuza, 87-88, 94-95
morale, 255, 266, 299-300
personnel and procedural deficiencies,
296-300
premature commitment of cavalry-
mechanized units, 96-97, 295-296,
301
repeated frontal attacks despite heavy
losses, 98-99, 190, 202, 238, 264, 275,
296, 301,
303
rigid command system, 303
underestimating German strength, 301
Red Army General Staff, 299, 303
critique of Operation Mars, 294—296
Repin, Colonel I. P., 59, 114, 119, 120,
131, 204-205, 233, 238-240, 243,
250-251
Reviakhin, Major General V. A.
attack orders, 46, 53, 87-88, 95
command removed, 190
delayed by bottleneck, 95
engaged, 98, 100, 104, 180, 184, 185, 190
losses, 98, 182
Rokossovsky, Colonel General K. K., 321
moved to central front, 313—314
penetration diverted by von Manstein,
311(map), 314
Romanenko, General P. L., 43, 321
Rommel, Field Marshal, 69
Rostov, 6, 9, 310, 312, 318
Rybalko, Commissar E. F.
engaged, 92, 102
killed, 185
Rybalko, Lieutenant General P. S., 19
assigned to Operation Jupiter, 24, 25, 49
assignment reconsidered, 178, 224, 226
reassigned to Operation Saturn, 258, 266,
308
Rzhev, 11, 22, 48, 151, 156, 219-221, 226,
256,
259
Rzhev-Olenino (-Velikie Luki) railroad line,
27, 29-30, 34, 48, 68, 69, 144, 221
logistical importance of, 22, 66
Rzhev salient, 16, 20, 38, 134, 139, 175,
176, 191, 227-228, 257-258, 309, 312
Moscow threatened by, 10, 15
Rzhev-Sychevka
offensive,
10-12, 307,
381nS
as dress rehearsal for Operation Mars,
11,
16-17
Rzhev-Sychevka Operation, 21(map)
Rzhev-Sychevka railroad line, 26, 48, 52,
87, 98, 188-189, 253, 256
Rzhev-Sychevka road, 89-96, 98, 99, 102-
110, 178, 182-184, 186, 225, 228, 259
Rzhev-Viaz'ma offensive, 307, 309
Samsonikha, 205, 208, 233, 238
Sazonov, Colonel K. I., 68-69, 154, 159,
160,
218
Scheller, Major General, 90, 93. See also
Kampfgruppen, Scheller
Schmidt, General G., 237, 241
Second Army (German), 312
Security measures, Soviet, 47, 60, 297-298
Seleznev, General D. M.
commands defense of Luchesa salient,
276-279
given 22d Army command, 275
notified Operation Mars ended, 278
Semenchenko, Major General K, A., 323
attack orders, 256
engaged, 264—265
Semenov, Major General, 297
Sementsovo, 129, 130, 133, 138, 139, 193,
195, 198, 204,
207
Sevastopol', 6
Sevost'ianov, 151
Shaitrovshchina, 134, 136-137, 191-192,
195, 202, 204, 205, 206, 232, 233,
237
Shalin, Major General M. A., 140
Shamilovo, 204, 207
Shanaurin, Lieutenant Colonel N. M., 119,
120, 128-129, 131, 137-138, 193-194,
204-5, 233-234, 243, 244
Shaposhnikov, Marshal B. M., 9, 16, 17
Sharki, 154, 155
Sheshchubakov, Colonel, 132, 205-206,
233, 240, 243, 250-251
Shevchenko, Lieutenant Colonel A. I., 119,
120, 128-130, 137-138, 193-194, 198,
239-40, 242
Shevnino, 238, 240, 249
Shiller, General, 259
Shiparevo, 238, 240, 249-250
Shtemenko, Major General S. M., 17
Index 419
Shumilov, M. S., 321
Sidirov, Colonel, 297
Sivakov, Colonel I. P., 59, 128, 131, 193,
198, 205, 233, 239-240, 242
Skripka, Lieutenant Colonel C. G., 262
Smolensk, 15, 31, 35, 39, 74, 176, 204, 228,
231, 257, 309,
317
Smoliany, 198
Smol'kovo, 148-149
Sokolovsky, Colonel General V. D., 26,
296
Solomatin, Major General M. D., 109, 139,
166(photo), 223, 309, 319, 322
analysis of defeat, 293-294
attack
orders for,
29, 39,
111-112,
122,
126-127, 131-132, 176-177
commands engagement, 119-121, 127
131, 193-194, 198-199, 201, 204-205,
231, 233, 239-240, 242-244, 249-251
and defensive regrouping, 231, 239—240
disagreements with Tarasov, 57—58, 132.
138, 193-194, 199, 204, 240-241
encirclement and breakout, 242—244,
249-251
final
preparations,
57—60,
113-114
losses, 251-252
memoir, 316, 323
Sorokino, 243, 245
Soviet Strategic Offensive Plan, 21(map)
Soviet Winter Campaign, 311(map), 312
Stalin, losif Vissarianovich, 8-10, 19, 30-
31, 74-75, 108-110, 178, 225, 229,
258, 304, 309, 312-13, 323
approves Khar'kov offensive, 16
approves winter offensive plans, 17—20,
38-39
cancels Operation Jupiter, 308
final approval to attack, 42
Order No. 227, 9
Order No. 306, 301, 302
Order No. 325, 301, 302
releases reserves to Vasilevsky, 75, 224,
258
and Stavka, 14-15
and termination of Operation Mars, 283
Stalingrad, 1, 19, 41, 44-45, 178, 224, 229,
308, 309,
318
encirclement of, 70
German capture of, 12-13
German relief efforts for, 310
and Operation Blau, 8
remoteness of, 319
symbolic value of, 10
Starukhi, 143, 145, 146, 147, 148, 149, 176,
209
State Defense Committee, 38, 42
Stavka, the (Soviet High Command), 8, 38-
39,
224, 255, 274, 310,
312,
317
accepts Zhukov's late winter plan, 313
attack orders, 22, 42, 226
decision for Operation Mars earlier than
claimed, 18
emphasis on Moscow axis, 16, 319
and Operation Saturn, 224
planning winter offensive (1942), 14-24
redirects attention southward, 308
strategic defense option (1942), 16
Steiger, Major. See Kampfgruppen, Steiger
Stepanovo, 200, 204, 207
Suchkov, Lieutenant, 286
Sukhinichi salient, 12
Summer-Fall Campaign, 1942 (German),
6-8, "(map), 12-13
Sychevka, 22, 29, 48, 55, 111, 127, 134,
176, 178,
189, 226,
251, 253,
256,
317
Sychevka sector. See Vazuza Front
Syrmatnaia, 208, 233, 240, 243
Sytnik, Colonel V. V., 260
Taman Peninsula, 6
Tarakanovo, 120, 123, 128, 242, 243, 245
Tarasov, Major General G. F., 123, 227, 309
attack orders for, 29, 176-177
commands Belyi sector, 110-112, 114,
122, 126, 131-132, 134, 139, 191-194,
196-197, 199, 201-206, 231-232, 238-
244
denies Solomatin's breakout request, 241
and encirclement of 41st Army, 239-244
excessive optimism, 122, 134, 139, 176,
202,
240
final
preparations,
57-60
focus on Belyi/fails deep mission, 131-
132, 138, 176-177, 191-194, 197, 294
insufficient
forces,
57-58,
112,
119-120
orders defensive regrouping, 205-206,
231-232, 239-241
relieved of command, 249, 320
Tat'ianino, 154
Tereshino, 206, 208, 234
Tikhonov, Colonel P. la., 190
Tilitsa River, 155
Timoshenko, Marshal, 9
and Khar'kov, 16
Tolkachi, 143, 145
Totshchino, 136
Troina, 156
Trushkovo, 155, 158, 159, 266-269
Tscherepy, 245, 246
Tsitsina, 113, 117, 226, 235, 239-241, 243-
244, 249-250
Turianka, 208, 233
420 Zhukov's Greatest Defeat
Ugriumov, Captain P. R., 244, 250
Urbanovich, Major General V. K., 154
Urdom, 66-69, 159-160, 162, 176-177,
218, 219, 266,
272
Urdom Road, 155, 272
Vasel'ki, 26, 51-52, 84-85, 179, 182, 187,
Vasilevsky, Colonel General Aleksandr
Mikhailovich, 9, 15, 20, 41-42, 178,
258,
308
competes with Zhukov for reserves, 38-
39, 75
downplays Operation Mars as
diversionary in memoir, 17—18
favored initial strategic defense (1942),
16
personal sketch of, 17
and southern victory, 224, 309-312
Stalin approves final plan of, 39
Vasil'tsovo, 209, 212
Vasnevo, 192, 195, 196
Vatutin, General Nicolai Fedorovich, 15,
20, 38, 43, 321
personal sketch of, 17
Vazuza bridgehead, 191, 225
battles in, 84-110, 178-191, 252-266
creation, 81-84
German counterattacks in, 88-89, 92-94,
106-108
German withdrawal from, 186—187
insufficient size of, 180
Soviet plan for, 26-27, 46, 52-55
traffic
bottleneck
at,
87-88, 94-96
Vazuza front, 50(map)
attack orders for, 22, 26-27, 46-48, 52-
55
first offensive
in,
77-110,
178-191
German defenses along, 34, 35, 46, 51,
71-74, 258-259
German losses in, 188-189
German reinforcements for, 187-189
lines formed, 11
maps of, 50, 78, 103, 181, 254, 261
preparations for, 40-41, 49, 51, 71, 73
second offensive in, 252-266
Soviet losses in, 189, 263
See also individual commanders
Vazuza River, 11, 22, 34, 35, 39-40, 48, 73,
108, 115, 187, 190,
258
and Osuga River sector, 36, 46, 51, 52,
83, 84, 86, 87, 99
and Vazuza bridgehead, 26-27, 46, 52,
54-55, 79-84, 91, 94-96, 98
Vedenichev, Colonel N. G., 88, 91-92, 102
Vedernikova, 54
Velikie Luki, 22, 29, 30, 31, 35, 44, 74, 177.
228,
257
Velizh, 35, 74, 257
Vena River valley, 117-123, 125, 126-129,
192, 196-197, 246
Viaz'ma, 10, 20, 22, 23(map), 24, 31, 48-49,
227, 257,
317
Vinakurov, Colonel V. P., 88, 92, 102
killed in action, 185
Vinnitsa, 5-8, 70
Vinogradov, Colonel A. E., 59, 112-114,
117, 120, 131, 138, 193, 198, 205, 233,
239-240
Vishenka River valley, 58, 113, 115, 119,
122-124, 137, 234, 239-240, 243, 246,
250
Vladimirskoe, 41, 59, 111, 116, 132, 137,
139, 201, 226, 231,
252
Vladimirskoe-Safonovo railroad, 204, 207
Vlasnevo, 121, 127, 245-246
Vodka rations, 111, 298
as indicator of Mars' importance, 400n32
Voelkers, Major General, 90, 93, 94, 259
Volga bridgehead, 74, 219-221, 266-269,
271
Volga River, 34, 66-69
Voloshin, Colonel M. A., 156
Volynovo, 238
Von Arnim, General Hans-Jurgen, 191, 258,
323
commanding engagement, 89—90, 93, 99,
106-108
commits reinforcements, 86, 101, 188
and
defensive positions,
35-36
intelligence of build-up, 35-38, 40^11
Von Bock, Fedor, 44
Von Fretter-Pico, General Maximilian, 126,
208,
323
and Belyi pincer, 235
Von Harpe, General Joseph, 323
Von Kluge, Field Marshal Guenther, 11
advises withdrawal from Rshev salient,
282,
291
final defensive orders, 73—74
intelligence of impending offensive, 71-
74
resists transferring reserves southward,
45, 74
and Stalingrad, 44-A5, 70
Von Luttwitz, Baron, 208
Von Manstein, General Erich, 6, 312
and counteroffensive against Vasilevsky,
311(map), 314
Vop' River, 137, 204
Voronov, N. N., 15

Navigation menu